"Lackey, Mercedes - Arrows 3 - Arrow's Fall" - читать интересную книгу автора (Lackey Mercedes)Prologue Long
ago—so long ago that the details of the conflict are lost and only the merest
legends remain—the world of Velgarth was wracked by sorcerous wars. With the
population decimated, the land was turned to wasteland and given over to the
forest and the magically-engendered creatures those peoples had used to fight
those wars, while the people that remained fled to the eastern coastline, for
only in those wilderness areas could they hope to resume their shattered lives.
In time, it was the eastern edge of the continent that became the site of
civilization, and the heartland tftat in turn became the wilderness. But
humans are cesilient creatures, and it was not overlong before the population
once again was on the increase, moving westward, building new kingdoms out of
the wilds. One
such kingdom was Valdemar. It had been founded by the once-Baron Valdemar and
those of his people who had chosen exile with him rather than face the wrath of
a selfish and cruel monarch. It lay on the very western-and-northeramost edge
of the civilized world, bounded on the north and northwest by wilderness that
still contained uncanny creatures, and on the far west by Lake Evendim, an
enormous inland sea. Travel beyond Valdemar was perilous and uncertain at the
very best of times, and at the worst a traveler could bring weird retribution
on innocents when the creatures he encountered back-trailed him to his point of
origin. In part
due to the nature of its founders, the monarchs of Valdemar welcomed fugitives
and fellow exiles, and 70 Mercedes Lackey the
customs and habits of its people had over the years become a polyglot
patchwork. In point of fact, the one rule by which the monarchs of Valdemar
governed their people was, "There is no 'one true way.' " Governing
such an ill-assorted lot of subjects might have been impossible—had it not been
for the Heralds of Valdemar. The
Heralds had extraordinary powers, yet never abused those powers; and the reason
for their forbearance—in fact for the whole system—was the existence of
creatures known as "Companions." To one
who knew no better, a Companion would seem little more than an extraordinarily
graceful white horse. They were for more than that. The first Companions had
been sent by some unknown power or powers at the pleading of King Valdemar
himself—three of them, at first, who had made bonds with the King, his Heir,
and his most trusted friend, who was the Kingdom Herald. So it came to be that
the Heralds took on a new importance in Valdemar, and a new role. It was
the Companions who chose new Heralds, forging between themselves and their
Chosen a mind-to-mind bond that only death could sever. While no one knew
precisely how intelligent they were, it was generally agreed that their
capabilities were at least as high as those of their human partners. Companions
could (and did) Choose irrespective of age and sex, although they tended to
Choose youngsters just entering adolescence, and more boys were Chosen than
girls. The one common trait among the Chosen (other than a specific personality
type: patient, unselfish, responsible, and capable of heroic devotion to duty)
was at least a trace of psychic ability. Contact with a Companion and continued
development of the bond enhanced whatever latent paranormal capabilities lay
within the Chosen. With time, as these Gifts became better understood, ways
were developed to train and use them to the fullest extent of which the
individual was capable. Gradually the Gifts displaced in importance whatever
knowledge of "true magic" was left in Valdemar, until there was no
record of how such magic had ever been learned or used. ARROWS
FALL 11 Valdemar
himself evolved the unique system of government for his land: the Monarch,
advised by his Council, made the laws; the Heralds dispensed the laws and saw
that they were observed. The Heralds themselves were nearly incapable of
becoming corrupted or potential abusers of their temporal power. In all of the
history of Valdemar, there was only one Herald who had ever succumbed to that
temptation. His motive had been vengeance—he got what he wanted, but his
Companion repudiated and abandoned him, and he committed suicide shortly
thereafter. The
Chosen were by nature remarkably self-sacrificing— their training only reinforced
this. They had to be—there was a better than even chance that a Herald would
die in the line of duty. But they were human for all of that; mostly young,
mostly living on the edge of danger—so, it was inevitable that outside of their
duty they tended to be a bit hedonistic and anything but chaste. They seldom
formed any ties beyond that of their brotherhood and the pleasures of the
moment—perhaps because the bond of brotherhood was so very strong, and because
the Herald-Companion bond left little room for any other permanent ties. For
the most part, few of the common or noble folk held this against them—knowing
that, no matter how wanton a Herald might be on leave, the moment he donned his
snowy uniform he was another creature altogether, for a Herald in Whites was a
Herald on duty, and a Herald on duty had no time for anything outside of that
duty, least of all the frivolity of his own pleasures. Still, there were those
who held other opinions. . . . Laws
laid down by the first King decreed that the Monarch himself must also be a
Herald. This ensured that the ruler of Valdemar could never be the kind of
tyrant who had caused the founders to flee their own homes. Second
in importance to the Monarch was the Herald known as the "King's (or
Queen's) Own." Chosen by a special Companion—one that was always a
stallion, and never seemed to age (though it was possible to kill him) —the
King's Own held the special position of confidant and most trusted friend and
advisor to the ruler. This 12 Mercedes Lackey guaranteed
that the Monarchs of Valdemar would always have at least one person about them
who could be trusted and counted on at all times. This tended to make for
stable and confident rulers—and thus, a stable and dependable government. It
seemed for generations that King Valdemar had planned his government perfectly.
But the best-laid plans can still be circumvented by accident or chance. In the
reign of King Sendar, the kingdom of Karse (that bordered Valdemar to the
south-east) hired a nomadic nation of mercenaries to attack Valdemar. In the
ensuing war, Sendar was killed, and his daughter, Selenay, assumed the throne,
herself having only recently completed her Herald's training. The Queen's Own,
an aged Herald called Talamir, was frequently confused and embarrassed by
having to advise a young, headstrong, and attractive female. As a result,
Selenay made an ill-advised marriage, one that nearly cost her both her throne
and her life. The
issue of that marriage, the Heir-presumptive, was a female child Selenay called
Elspeth. Elspeth came under the influence of a foreigner—the nurse Hulda, whom
Selenay's husband had arranged before he died to be brought from his own land.
As a result of Hulda's manipulations, Elspeth became an intractable, spoiled
brat. It became obvious that if things went on as they were tending, the girl
would never be Chosen, and thus, could never inherit. This would leave Selenay
with three choices; marry again (with the attendant risks) and attempt to
produce another, more suitable Heir, or declare someone already Chosen and with
the proper bloodline to be Heir. Or, somehow, salvage the Heir-presumptive.
Talamir had a plan—one that it seemed had a good chance of success. At this
point Talamir was murdered, throwing the situation into confusion again. His
Companion, Rolan, Chose a new Queen's Own—but instead of picking an adult or
someone already a full Herald, he Chose an adolescent girl named Talia. Talia
was of Holderkin—a puritanical Border group which did its best to discourage
knowledge of outsiders. ARROWS
FALL 13 Talia
had no idea what it meant to have a Herald's Companion accost her, and then
(apparently) carry her off. Among her people, females held very subordinate
positions, and nonconformity was punished immediately and harshly. She was
ill-prepared for the new world of the Heralds and their Collegium that she had
been thrust into. But the one thing she did have experience in was the handling
and schooling of children, for she had been the teacher to her Holding's
younger members from the time she was nine. She
managed to salvage the Brat—and succeeded well enough that Elspeth was Chosen
herself just before Talia was sent out on her internship assignment. During
that assignment she and Kris, the Herald picked to be her mentor, discovered
something frightening and potentially fatal—not only to themselves, but to
anyone who happened to be around Talia. Due to the chaos just after her initial
training in her Gift, she had never been properly trained. And her Gift was
Empathy—both receptive and protective—strong enough to use as a weapon. It
wasn't until it had run completely wild that she and Kris were able to retrain
her so that her control became a matter of will instead of instinct. She
still had moments of misgiving about the ethics of her Gift. She
also had moments of misgiving on another subject altogether; another Herald.
Dirk was Kris' best friend and partner—and Talia, after being with him only a
handful of times, none intimate, was attracted to him to the point of
obsession. There was a precedent for such preoccupation; very rarely, Heralds
formed a bond with one another as deep and enduring as the Herald-Companion
bond. Such a tie was referred to as a "lifebond." Kris was certain
that this was what Talia was suffering from. Talia wasn't so sure. This
was just one minor complication for an internship that included battle, plague,
intrigue, wildly spreading rumors about her, and a Gift that was a danger to
herself and others. At last
the year-and-a-hatf was over, and she was on her way home. 14 Mercedes
Lackey Home—to
an uncertain relationship, a touchy adolescent Heir, all the intrigues of the
Court—and possibly, an enemy; Lord Orthallen, who just happened to be Kris'
uncle. One Vie
could be brother and sister, Kris thought, glancing over at his fellow Herald.
Maybe twins— Talia
sat Rolan with careless ease—an ease brought about by the fact that they'd
spent most of their waking hours in the saddle during her internship up north.
Kris' seat was just as casual, and for the same reason. After all this time
they could easily have eaten, slept—yes, and possibly even made love a-saddle!
The first two they had accomplished, and more than once. The third they'd never
tried—but Kris had heard rumors of other Heralds who had. It did not sound like
something he really was curious enough to attempt. They
figured on making the capital and the Collegium by early evening, so they were
both wearing the cleanest and best of their uniforms. Heraldic Whites—those for
field duty—were constructed of tough and durable leather, but after eighteen
months they only had one set apiece that would pass muster, and they'd been
saving them for today. So
we're presentable. Which isn't saying much, Kris mourned to himself, surveying
the left knee of his breeches with regret. The surface of the leather was worn
enough to be slightly nappy—which meant it was inclined to pick up dirt. And
dirt showed on Whites—after riding all day they both were slightly gray. Maybe
not to the casual eye, but Kris noticed. Tantris
curvetted a little, and Kris suddenly realized that he and Talia's Rolan were
matching their paces. :On
purpose, two-footed brother,: came Tantris1 sending, tinged with a hint of
laughter. :Since you two are so 15 16 Mercedes
Lackey terribly
shabby, we thought we'd take attention off you. Nobody's going to notice you
when we're showing off: :Thanks—I
think.: :By the
way, you couldn't pass for twins; there's too much red in her hair, and she's
too little. But sibs, yes. Although where you got those blue eyes—: :Blue
eyes run in my family,: Kris replied with feigned indignation. :Both father and
mother have them.: -.Then
if you were going to be sibs, your mother must have been keeping a Bard in the
wardrobe for Talia to have hazel eyes and curly hair.: Tantris pranced and
arched his neck, and one of his sapphirine eyes flashed a teasing look up at
his Chosen. Kris
stole another glance at his internee, and concluded that Tantris was right.
There was too much red hi her hair, and it was too curly to have come out of
the same batch as his own straight, blue-black locks. And she barely came up to
his chin. But they both had fine-boned, vaguely heart-shaped faces—and more
than that, they both moved the same way. •Alberich's
training. And Keren's.: .•Probably.: :You'reprettier
than she is, though. The which you know.: Kris
was startled into a laugh, which made Talia glance over at him quizzically. "Might
one ask—?" "Tantris,"
he replied, taking a deep breath of the verdant air, and chuckling. "He's
twitting me on my vanity." "I
wish," she answered with more than a little wistful-ness, "that just
once I could Mindspeak Rolan like that." "You
ought to be glad you can't. You're saved a lot of back-talk." "How
far are we from home?" "A
little more than an hour." He took in the greening landscape with every
sign of satisfaction, now and again taking deep breaths of the flower-laden
air. "A silver for your thoughts." "So
much?" She chuckled, turning in her saddle to face him. "A copper
would be more appropriate." "Let
me be the judge of that. After all, I'm the one who asked." ARROWS
FALL 17 "So
you did." The
rode in tree-shadowed silence for several leagues; Kris was minded to let her
answer in her own time. The soft chime of bridle bells and their Companions'
hooves on the hard surface of the Trade Road made a kind of music that was most
soothing to listen to. "Ethics,"
she said at last. "Whoof—that's
dry thinking!" "I
suppose it is—" She plainly let her thoughts turn inward again; her eyes
grew vague, and he coughed to recapture her attention. "You
went elsewhere," he chided gently, when she jumped a little. "Now,
you were saying—ethics. Ethics of what?" "My
Gift. Specifically, using it—" "I
thought you'd come to terms with that." "In
a situation of threat, yes. In a situation where there was no appropriate and
just punishment under normal procedures." "That—child-raper." "Exactly."
She shivered a little. "I thought I'd never feel clean again after
touching his mind. But—what could I have done with him? Ordered his execution?
That . . .wouldn't be enough of a punishment for what he did. Imprison him? Not
appropriate at all. And much as I would have liked to pull him to bits slowly,
Heralds don't go in for torture." "What
did you do to him? In detail, I mean. You didn't want to talk about it
before." "It
was a—kind of twist on a mind-Healing technique; it depended on the fact that
I'm a projective Empath. I can't remember what Devan called it, but you tie a
specific thought to another thought or set of feelings that you construct.
Then, every time the person thinks that thought, they also get what you want them
to know. Like with Vostel—-every time he would decide that he was to blame,
he'd get what / put in there." "Which
was?" She
grinned. " 'So next time I won't be so stupid!' And when he'd be ready to
give up from pain, he'd get, 'But ft isn't as bad as yesterday, and it'll be
better tomorrow.' Not words, actually; it was all feelings." 18 Mercedes
Lackey "Better,
in that case, than words would have been," Kris mused, shooing a fly away
absently. "So
Devan said. Well, I did something like that with— that thing. I took one of the
worst sets of his stepdaughter's memories, and tied that in to all of his own
feelings about women. And I kept point-of-view, so that it would appear to him
as if he were the victim. You saw what happened." Kris
shuddered. "He went mad; he just collapsed, foaming at the mouth." "No,
he didn't go mad. He locked himself into an endless repetition of what I'd fed
him. It's an appropriate punishment; he's getting exactly what he put his
stepdaughters through. It's just, at least I think so, because if he ever
changes his attitudes he can break free of it. Of course if he does—" she
grimaced "—he might find himself dancing on the end of a rope for the
murder of his older stepdaughter. The law prevents the execution of a madman;
it doesn't save one who's regained his sanity. Lastly, what I did should
satisfy his stepdaughter, who is, after all, the one we really want to come out
of this thing with a whole soul." "So
where's the ethical problem?" "That
was a stress-situation, a threat-situation. But—is it ethical to—say—read
people during Council sessions and act on my information?" "Uh—"
Kns was unable to think of an answer. "You
see?" "Let's
go at it from another angle. You know how to read people's faces and
bodies—we've all been taught that. Would you hesitate to use that knowledge in
Council?" "Well,
no." She rode silently for a few more moments. "I guess what will
have to be the deciding factor is not if I do it but how I use the
information." "That
sounds reasonable to me." "Maybe
too reasonable," she replied doubtfully. "It's awfully easy to
rationalize what I want to do—what I have no choice about in some cases. It's
not like thought-sensing; I have to actively shield to keep people out. They go
around shoving their feelings up my nose on a regular basis, especially when
they're wrought up." ARROWS
FALL 19 Kris
shook his head. "All I can say is, do what seems best at the time. Really,
that's all any of us do." .-Verily,
oh, Wise One.: Kris
ignored his Companion's taunting comment. He was going to question her further,
but broke off when he caught the sound of a horse galloping full out, heading
up die road toward them, the hoofbeats having the peculiar ringing of a
Companion. "That—" "Sounds
like a Companion, yes. And in full gallop." he rose in his stirrups for a
better view. "Bright Lady, now what?" Steed
and rider came into sight as they topped the hill. :That's
Cymry—: Tantris' ears were pricked forward. .-She's slim. She must have foaled
already.: "It's
Cymry," Kris reported. "Which
means Skif—and since I'll bet she just foaled, it isn't a pleasure-ride that
takes them out here." The
last time they'd seen the thief-turned-Herald had been a bit over nine months
ago, when he'd met with them for their half-term briefing. Cymry had spent the
time frolicking with Rolan, and both she and her Chosen had forgotten about the
nearly-supernatural fertility of the Grove stallions. The result was
foregone—much to Cymry's chagrin as well as Skif s. Talia
knew Skif better than Kris did; they'd been very dose as students, close enough
that they'd sworn blood-brotherhood. They had been close enough that Talia
could read him better at a distance than Kris could. She
shaded her eyes with her hand, then nodded a tittle. "Well it isn't a
disaster; there's something serious afoot, but it isn't an emergency." "How
can you tell at tms distance?" "Firstly,
there's no emotional-surge. Secondly, if it were serious, he'd be absolutely
expressionless. He looks a bit worried, but that could be for Cymry." Skif
spotted them and waved wildly, as Cymry slowed her headlong pace. They hastened
theirs—to the dtsgrun-dement of the pack-mules. "Havens!
Am I ever glad to see you two!" Skif exclaimed as they came into earshot.
"Cymry swore you 20 Mercedes
Lackey were
close, but I was half-afraid I'd have to ride a couple of hours, and I hate to
make her leave the little one for that long." "You
sound like you've been waiting for us—Skif, what's the problem?" Kris
asked anxiously. "What are you doing out here?" "Nothing
for you; plenty for her. Mind you, this is strictly under the ivy bush; we
don't want people to know you've been warned, Talia. I slipped out on behalf of
a lady in distress." "Who?
Elspeth? Selenay? What—" "Give
me a minute, will you? I'm trying to tell you. Elspeth asked roe to intercept
you on your way in. It seems the Council is trying to marry her off, and she's
not overly thrilled with the notion. She wants you to know so you'll have time
to muster some good arguments for the Council meeting tomorrow," Skif
reined Cymry in beside them, and they picked up the pace. "Alessandar has
made a formal offer for her for Ancar. Lots of advantages there. Virtually
everybody on the Council is for it except Elcarth and Kyril—and Selenay.
They've been arguing it back and forth for two months, but it's been serious
for about a week, and it looks as if Selenay is gradually being worn down.
That's why Elspeth sent me out to watch for you; I've been slipping out for the
past three days, hoping to catch you when you came in and warn you what's up.
With you to back her, Selenay's got full veto—either to table the betrothal
until Elspeth's finished training, or throw the notion out altogether. Elspeth
didn't want any of the more excitable Councillors to know we were warning you,
or they might have put more pressure on Selenay to decide before you got
here." Talia
sighed. "So nothing's been decided; good. I can deal with it easily
enough. Can you get on ahead of us? Let Elspeth and Selenay both know we'll be
there by dinner-bell? I can't do anything now, anyway, but tomorrow we can take
care of the whole mess at Council session. If Elspeth wants to see me before
then—I'm all hers; she'll probably find me in my rooms." "Your
wish is my command," Skif replied. As all three ARROW'S
FALL 21 knew,
Skif knew more ways than one in and out of the capital and the Palace grounds.
He'd make far better time than they could. They
held their pace to that of the mules as Skif sent Cymry off at a diagonal to
the road, raising a cloud of dust behind him. They continued on as if they
hadn't met him; but Kris traded a look of weary amusement with her. They
weren't even officially "home" yet, and already the intrigues had
begun. "Anything
else bothering you?" "To
put it bluntly," she said at last, "Fm nervous about coming back
home—as nervy as a cat about to kitten." "Whyfor?
And why now? The worst is over. You're a full Herald—the last of your
training's behind you. What's to be nervous about?" Talia
looked around her; at the fields, the distant hills, at anything but Kris. A
warm spring breeze, loaded with flower-scent, teased her hair and blew a lock
or two into her eyes so that she looked like a worried foal. "I'm
not sure I ought to discuss it with you," she said reluctantly. "If
not me, then who?" She
looked at him measuringly. "I don't know. . . ." "No,"
Kris said, just a little hurt by her reluctance. "You know. You just
aren't sure you can trust me. Even after all we've shared together." She
winced. "Disconcertingly accurate. I thought blunt-ness was my besetting
sin." Kris
cast his eyes up to the heavens in an exaggerated plea for patience, squinting
against the bright sunlight. "I am a Herald. You are a Herald. If there's
one thing you should haver learned by now, it's that you can always trust
another Herald." "Even
when my suspicions conflict with ties of blood?" He gave
her another measuring look. "Such as?" "Your
uncle, Lord Orthallen." He
whistled through his teeth, and pursed his lips. "I thought you'd left
that a year ago. Just because of that little run-in you had with him over Skif,
you see him plotting conspiracy behind every bush! He's been very good to me,
and to half a dozen others I could name you, 22 Mercedes
Lackey and
he's been invaluable to Selenay—as he was to her father." "I
have very good reasons to see him behind every bush!" she replied with
some heat. "I think trying to get Skif in trouble was part of a long
pattern, that it was just an attempt to isolate me—" "Why?
What could he possibly gain?" Kris was fed up and frustrated because this
wasn't the first time he'd had to defend his uncle. More than one of his fellow
Heralds had argued that Orthallen was far too power-hungry to be entirely
trustworthy, and Kris had always felt honor-bound to defend him. He'd thought
Talia had dismissed her suspicions as irrational months ago. He was highly
annoyed to find that she hadn't. "I
don't know why—" Talia cried in frustration, clenching her fist on her
reins. "I only know that I've never trusted him from the moment I first
saw him. And now I'll be co-equal in Council with Kyril and Elcarth, with a
full voice in decisions. That could put us in more direct conflict than we've
ever been before." Kris
took three deep breaths and attempted to remain calm and rational. "Talia,
you may not like him, but you've never had any problems in keeping your dislike
out of the way of your decision-making that I've ever seen—and my uncle is very
reasonable. . . ." "But
I can't read the man; I can't fathom his motives, and I can't imagine why he
should feel antagonism toward me—but I know he does." "I
think you're overreacting," Kris replied, still keeping a tight rein on
his temper. "I told you once before that it isn't you that's offended
him—assuming that he really is offended—but because he's probably feeling like
a defeated opponent. He expected to take Talamir's place as Selenay's closest
advisor when Talamir was murdered." "And
cut out the role of Queen's Own?" Talia shook her head violently.
"Havens, Kris; Orthallen is an intelligent man! He can't have imagined
that was possible! He hasn't the Gift, for one thing. And I am not overreacting
to him." "Now,
Talia—;' "Don't
patronize me! You're the one who was telling me to trust my instincts, and now
you say my instincts ARROWS
FALL 23 can't
be trusted, because they're telling me something you don't want to
believe?" "Because
it's childish and silly." Kris snorted. Talia
took a deep breath and closed her eyes. "Kris, I don't agree with you, but
let's not fight about it." Kris
bit back what he wanted to say. At least she wasn't going to force him to stay
on the defensive. "If you want." ••It—it
isn't what I want. What I want is for you to believe and trust in my judgment.
If I can't have that— well, I just don't want to fight about it." "My
uncle," he said carefully, trying to be absolutely fair to both sides,
"is very fond of power. He doesn't like giving it up. That in itself is
probably the reason he's been displaying antagonism toward Heralds and you in
particular. Just be firm and cool and don't give an inch when you know you're
in the right. He'll settle down and resign himself; as you said, he's not
stupid. He knows better than to fight when he can't win. You'll never be
friends, but I doubt that you need to fear him. He may be fond of power, but he
has always had the best interests of the Kingdom at the forefront of his
concerns." "I
wish I could feel as confident about that as you do." She sighed, then
shifted in her saddle, as if trying to ease an uncomfortable position. Kris
began to make a retort, then thought better of it, and grinned. At this point a
change of subject was called for. "Why don't you worry about something
else—Dirk, for instance?" "Beast."
She smiled when she saw he was laughing at her. "So
I am. I'm sure he'll tell me the same. Oh, well, the best thing you can do for
that little trouble is to let affairs take their natural course. Soon or late,
he'll come to the point—if I have to push him myself!" "Callous,
too." She pouted mischievously at him. "Believe
it," he replied agreeably. "I'm going to enjoy teasing the life out
of both of you." Talia
schooled herself to remain calm. As she had told Skif, there was nothing to be
done right now. There were other things she wanted to find out before she took
that 24 Mercedes
Lackey Council
seat in the morning, too—like whether the rumors that she had
"misused" her Gift to manipulate others were still active. And who
was keeping them active, if they were. At this point, it was a bit too late to
try and find out who had originated them. As they
approached the outer city and its swirling crowds, she was made aware of just
how much more sensitive her Gift of Empathy had become. The pressure of all
those emotions ahead of her was so strong she found it hard to believe that
Kris could be unaware of it. She wished, not for the first time, that her Gift
included Mindspeech; it would have been comforting to consult with Rolan the
way Kris could with Tantris. She'd forgotten what living around so many people
was like—and having had her Gift go rogue on her had made her more sensitive
than she had been before she left. It wasn't going to be easy to stay tightly
shielded day and night, but her enhanced perception was going to demand just
that. She felt a flicker of reassurance from Rolan, and smiled faintly despite
her anxiety. They
made their way down the increasingly crowded road into the outer city, outside
the ancient defensive walls, which had sprung up over several generations of
peace. Hie inner city held the shops, the better inns, and the homes of the
middle class and nobility- The outer was given over to the workshops, markets,
rowdier hostels and taverns, and the homes of the laborers and poor. The
crowds of the outer city were noisy and cheerful. As when she had first ridden
into the capital, Tatia found herself assaulted on all sides by sight, scent,
and sound. Hie myriad odors of cookshops, inns, and food vendors vied with the
less savory smells of beasts and trade. The
pressure of all the varied emotions of the people around her threatened to
overwhelm her for one brief moment, until she firmed up her shields. No, she
thought with resignation, this is not going to be easy. The
road led through a riot of color and motion, and the noise was cacaphonic,
confusion without mirroring some of her own confusion within. The
leather-workers kept to a section here, outside the ARROWS
FALL 25 • North
Gate, and both Tatia and Kris were caught off ward by
a puff of acrid, eye-burning fumes that escaped from a vat somewhere nearby. '
"Whew!" Kris gasped, laughing at the tears in his eyes and Talia's,
"Now I remember why Dirk and I usually backtracked around to the Haymarket
Gate! Oh, well, too late now!" Hie
brief pause they made to clear their vision gave her a chance to finish making
her shielding automatic. Back in their Sector—once she'd gotten her shields
back— she'd tended to leave them down when it was only the two of them
together. Shielding expended energy, and at that point she hadn't any to spare.
Now she put in place the safeguards that would ensure that her shields stayed
up even when she was unconscious—and felt a brief surge of gratitude to Kris
for having re-taught her the right way to shield. Kris
kept a careful eye on her as they made their way through the crowds. If she
were going to break, now would be the time, under the pressure of aU these
emotions, .7
wasn't worried.: :You
weren't, hm? Maybe I should ask her to favor you with one of those emotional
backlashes: :No,
thank you, I had one. Remember? Rolan nearly brained me.: Tantris' sending took
on a serious coloration. :You know, you really shouldn't tease her about Dirk.
Lifebonds aren't easy to bear when the pair hasn't acknowledged it.: Kris
looked at his Companion's back-tilted ears in astonishment. : You re sure? I
mean, she certainly shows every symptom of lifebonding, but—: .-We're
sure.: :Do you
by any chance know when—?: he asked his Companion. :Dirk
was the first Herald she ever saw; Rolan thinks it might have been then.: :That
early? Lord and Lady, that would be one power-ful bond. . . .: Kris continued
to watch her with a little bemusement as the thought trailed away. Tradesmen
and their patrons screamed cheerfully at *.-- 26 Mercedes
Lackey one
another over the din of vehicles, squalling children, and bawling animals. Yet
for all that the populace seemed to ignore the presence of the two Heralds
passing through their midst, a path always seemed to clear itself before them,
and someone beckoned them on by a smile or a wave of a hat. The Guard at the
outer gate saluted them as they passed through; the Guardfolk were no strangers
to the comings and goings of Heralds. They rode through the tunnel that passed
under the thick, gray-granite walls of the old city, and the din lessened for
just a moment. Then they emerged into the narrower ways of the capital itself.
It lacked only an hour until the evening meal and the streets were as crowded
with people as Kris had ever seen them. It was not quite as noisy here in the
old city, but the streets were just as full. After months of small towns and
villages, Kris found himself marveling anew at the crush of people, and the
closely-built, multi-storied stone houses. For many months, the chime of bells
on their Companions' bridles had been the loudest sound they heard; now that
sound was completely engulfed in the babble around them. Hie
streets had been designed in a spiral; no one could move straight to the Palace
grounds—as in most older cities that had been built with an eye to defense.
Kris led them on a course that wound ever inward. The din died away behind them
as they left the streets of shops behind and entered the inner, residential
core. The modest houses of the merchant class gradually gave way to the more
impressive buildings owned by the wealthy or noble, each set apart from the
street by a private wall enclosing the manse and a bit of garden. Eventually
they made their way to the inner beige-brick wall surrounding the Palace and
the three Collegia—Bardic, Healer's and Herald's. The silver-and-blue-clad
Palace Guard stationed at the gate halted them for a moment, while she checked
them off against a list of those expected to be arriving. Careful records were
kept on when a Herald should come hi from the field—in the case of those
arriving from distant Sectors, this calculation was accurate within a stretch
of two or three days; in the case of those arriving from nearby Sectors,
expected arrival time was accurate ARROWS
FALL 27 to
within hours. This list was posted with the Gate Guard—so when a Herald was
overdue, someone knew it, and something could be done to find out why, quickly. "Herald
Dirk in yet?" Kris asked the swarthy Guards-woman casually when she'd
finished. . "Just arrived two
days ago, Herald," she replied, consulting the roster. "Guard then
notes he asked about you two." "Thank
you, Guard. Pleasant watch to you." Kris grinned, urging Tantris through
the gate she held open, with Rolan following closely behind. Kris continued
to watch Talia carefully, feeling a surge of gratified pride as he noted her
behavior. The past few months had been living hell for her. Control of her Gift
had been based entirely on instinct, rather than on proper training—and no one
had ever realized this. The rumors that she had used it to manipulate—worse,
that she had done so unconsciously—had pushed her off-balance. His own doubts
about the truth of those rumors had been easy for her to pick up. And for
someone whose Gift was based on emotions, and who was frequently prey to
self-doubt, the effect was bound to be catastrophic. It was
at least that. She'd lost all control over her Gift—which unfortunately
remained at full strength. She'd lost the ability to shield, and projected
wildly. She'd very nearly killed them both on more than one occasion. We were
just lucky that during the worst of it, we were mowed in at that Waystation. It
was just the two of us, and we were isolated long enough for her to get back in
charge of herself. And then
she'd met the rumors again—this time circulating among the common folk. More
than once they'd regarded her with fear and suspicion, yet she had never
faltered in the performance of her duties or given any indication to an
outsider that she was anything except calm, thoughtful, and controlled. She'd
given a months' long series of performances a trained player couldn't equal. It was
vital that a Herald maintain emotional stability under all circumstances. This
was especially true of the Queen's Own, who dealt with volatile nobles and the
mtrigues of the Court on a daily basis. She'd lost that 28 Mercedes
Lackey stability,
but after working through her trial had managed to get it back, and more. He
managed to catch her eyes, and gave her an encouraging wink; she dropped her
solemn face for a moment to wrinkle her nose at him. They
passed the end of the Guard barracks and neared the black iron fence that
separated the "public" grounds of the Palace from the
"private" grounds and those of the three Collegia. Another Guard
stood at the Gate here, but his position was mainly to intercept the
newly-Chosen; he waved them on with a grin. From here the granite core of the
Palace with its three great brick wings and the separate buildings of the Healer's
and Bardic Collegia was at last clearly visible. Kris sighed happily. No matter
where a Herald came from—this place, and the people in it, were his real home. Tali a
felt a surge of warmth and contentment at the sight of the Collegium and the
Palace—a feeling of true home coming. Just as
they passed this last gate, she heard a joyful shout, and Dirk and Ahrodie
pounded up the brick-paved pathway at a gallop to meet them. Dirk's straw-blond
hair was flying every which way, like a particularly windblown bird's nest.
Kris vaulted off Tantris' back as Dirk hurled himself from Ahrodie's; they met
in a back-pounding, laughing, bear hug. Talia
remained in the saddle; at the sight of Dirk her heart had contracted
painfully, and now it was pounding so hard she felt that it must be clearly
audible. Her anxieties concerning Elspeth and the intrigues of the Court
receded into the back of her mind. She was
tightly shielded; afraid to let anything leak through. Dirk's
attention was primarily on her and not on his friend and partner. Dirk
had been watching for them all day—telling himself that it was Kris whose
company he had missed. He'd felt like a tight bowstring, without being willing
to identify why he'd been so tense. His reaction on finally seeing ARROW®
FALL 29 them
had been totally unplanned, giving him release for "Jlfe pent-up emotion
in the exuberant greeting to Kris. Though he seemed to ignore her, he was
almost painfully aware of Talia's presence. She sat so quietly on her own Companion
that she might have been a statue, yet he practically counted every breath she
took. He knew
that he would remember how she looked right now down to the smallest hair.
Every nerve seemed to tingle, and he felt almost as if he were wearing his skin
inside out. When
Dirk finally let go of his shoulders, Kris said, with a grin that was bordering
on malicious, "You haven't welcomed Talia, brother. She's going to think
you don't remember her." "Not
remember her? Hardly!" Dirk seemed to be having a little trouble
breathing. Kris hid another grin. Talia
and Rolan were less than two paces away, and Dirk freed an arm to take Talia's
nearer hand in his own. Kris
thought he'd never seen a human face look so exactly like a stunned ox's. Talia
met the incredible blue of Dirk's eyes with a shock. It felt very much as if
she'd been struck by lightning. She came near to trembling when their hands
touched, but managed to hold to her self-control by a thin thread and smiled at
him with lips that felt oddly stiff. "Welcome
home, Talia." That was all he said—which was just as well. The sound of
his voice and the feeling of his eyes on her made her long to fling herself at
him. She found herself staring at him, unable to respond. She
looked a great deal different than he remembered; leaner, as if she'd been
fine-tempered and fine-honed. She was more controlled—certainly more mature.
Was there a sadness about her that hadn't been there before? Was it some pain
that had thinned her face? When
he'd taken her hand, it had seemed as if something—he wasn't sure what—had
passed between them; but if she'd felt it, too, she gave no sign. When
she'd smiled at him, and her eyes had warmed with that smile, he'd thought his
heart was going to stop. 30 Mercedes
Lackey The
dreams he'd had of her all these months, the obsession—he'd figured they'd pop
like soap bubbles when confronted with the reality. He'd been wrong. The
reality only strengthened the obsession. He held her hand that trembled very
slightly in his own, and longed with all his heart for Kris' silver tongue. They
stood frozen in that position for so long that Kris thought with concealed glee
that they were likely to remain there forever unless he broke their
concentration. "Come
on, partner." He slapped Dirk's back heartily and remounted Tan iris. Dirk
jumped in startlement as if someone had blown a trumpet in his ear, then
grinned sheepishly. "If
we don't get moving, we're going to miss supper— and I can't tell you how many
times I dreamed of one of Mero's meals on the road!" "Is
that all you missed? Food? I might have known. Poor abused brother, did Talia
make you eat your own cooking?" "Worse—"
Kris said, grinning at her, "-—she made me eat hersF He winked at her and
punched Dirk's arm lightly. When
Kris broke the trance he was in, Dirk dropped Talia's hand as if it had burned
him. When Talia turned a gaze full of gratitude on Kris, presumably for the
interruption, Dirk felt a surge of something unpleasantly like jealousy at the
thanks in her eyes. When Kris included her in the banter, Dirk wished that it
had been his idea, not Kris'. "Beast,"
she told Kris, making a face at him. "Hungry
beast." "He's
right though, much as I hate to agree with him," she said softly, turning
to Dirk, and he suppressed a shiver—her voice had improved and deepened; it
played little arpeggios on his backbone. "If we don't hurry, you will be
too late. It doesn't matter too much to me—I'm used to sneaking bread and
cheese from Mero—but it's very unkind to keep you standing here. Will you ride
up with us?" He
laughed to cover the hesitation in his voice. "You'd have to tie me up to
keep me from coming with you." ARROWS
FALL 31 He and
Kris remounted with a creak of leather, and they rode with Talia between them;
that gave Dirk all the excuse he needed to rest his eyes on her. She gazed
straight ahead or at Rolan's ears except when she was answering one or the
other of them. Dirk wasn't sure whether he should be piqued or pleased. She
wasn't favoring either of them with a jot more attention than the other, but he
began to wish very strongly that she'd look at him a little more frequently
than she was. A
dreadful fear was starting to creep into his heart. She had spent the past year
and a half largely in Kris' company. What if— He
began scrutinizing Kris' conduct, since Talia's was giving him no clues. It
seemed to confirm his fears. Kris was more at ease with Talia than he'd ever
been with any other woman; they laughed and traded jokes as if their friendship
had grown through years rather than months. It was
worse when they reached the Field and the tackshed, and Kris offered her an
assist down with mock gallantry. She accepted the hand with a teasing
haughteur, and dismounted with one fluid motion. Had Kris' hand lingered in
hers a moment or two longer than had been really necessary? Dirk couldn't be
sure. Their behavior wasn't really loverlike, but it was the closest he'd ever
seen Kris come to it. They
unsaddled their Companions and stowed the tack safely away in the proper places
after a cursory cleaning. Dirk's was pretty much clean; but Talia's and Kris'
needed more work than could be taken care of in an hour—after being in the
field for so long, it would all have to have an expert's touch. Dirk kept Talia
in the corner of his eye while she worked, humming under her breath. Kris kept
up his chatter, and Dirk made distracted, monosyllabic replies. He wished he
could get her alone for just a few minutes. He had
no further chance for observation. Keren, Sher-rill, and Jeri appeared like
magicians out of the thinnest air, converged on her, and carried her off to her
rooms, baggage and all, leaving him alone with Kris. "Look,
I don't know about you, but I am starved," Kris said, as Dirk stared
mournfully after the foursome, 32 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
carrying her harp "My Lady" and the rest sharing her packs.
"Let's get the four-feets turned loose and get that dinner." "Well?"
Keren asked, her rough voice full of arch significance, when the three women
had gotten Talia and her belongings safely into the privacy of her room. "Well,
what?" Talia replied, glancing at the graying Riding Instructor from under
demure lashes while she unpacked in her bedroom. "What?
What! Oh, come on, Talia—" Sherrffl laughed, "—you know exactly what
we mean! How did it go? Your letters weren't exactly very long or very
informative." Talia
suppressed a smile, and turned her innocent gaze on Keren's lifemate.
"Personal or professional?" Jeri
fingered the hilt of her belt-knife significantly. 'Talia," she warned,
"If you don't stop trying our patience, Rolan just may have to find a new
Queen's Own tonight." "Oh,
well, if you're going to be that way about it—" Talia backed away,
laughing, as Sherrill, hazel eyes narrowed in mock ferocity, curled her long
fingers into claws and lunged at her. She dodged aside at the last moment, and
the tall brunette landed on her bed instead. "—all right, I yield, I
yield! What do you want to know first?" Sherrill
rolled to her feet, laughing. "What do you think? Skif hinted that you and
Kris were getting cozy, but he wouldn't do more than hint." "Quite
cozy, yes, but nothing much more. Yes, we were sharing blankets, and no, there
isn't anything more between us than a very comfortable friendship." "Pity,"
Jeri replied merrily, throwing herself onto Talia's couch in the outer room,
then twining a lock of her chestnut hair around one finger. "We were
hoping for a passionate romance." "Sorry
to disappoint you," she replied, not sounding sorry at all, "Though
if you're thinking of trying in that direction—" "Hm?"
Jeri did her best not to look too eager, but didn't succeed very well. "Well,
once he's managed to shake Nessa loose—" "Ha!" ARROWS
FALL 33 "Don't
laugh, we think we know a way. Well, once she's no longer hot on the hunt, he's
going to be quite unpartnered, and he's just as—um—pleasant a companion as
Varianis claims. Jeri, don't lick your whiskers so damned obviously, he's not a
bowl of cream!" Jeri
looked chagrined and blushed as scarlet as the couch cushions, as Sherrill and
Keren chuckled at her discomfiture. "I wasn't that bad, was I?" "You
most certainly were. Keep your predatory thoughts to yourself if you don't want
to frighten him off the way Nessa has," Keren admonished with a wry grin.
"As for you, tittle centaur, he seems to have cured your man-shyness
rather handily. I guess I owe Kyril and Elcarth an apology. I thought assigning
him to you was insanity. Well, now that our prurience has been satisfied, how
did the work go?" "It's
a very long story, and before I go into it, have you three eaten?" Three
affirmatives caused her to nod. "Well / haven't yet. You have a choice;
you can either wait until I'm done with dinner for the rest of the
gossip—" They
groaned hi mock-anguish. "Or
you can check me in and bring me something from the kitchen. If Selenay or
Elspeth need me, they'll send a page for me." "I'll
check her in." Jeri shot out the door and down the spiral staircase. "I'll
go fetch you a young feast. You look like you've lost pounds, and when Mere
finds out it's for you, he'll probably ransack the entire pantry."
Sherrill vanished after Jeri. Keren
stood away from the wall she'd been leaning against. "Give me a proper
greeting, you maddening child." She smiled, holding out her arms. "Oh,
Keren—" Talia embraced the woman who had been friend, surrogate-mother and
sister to her—and more—with heartfelt fervor. "Gods, how I've missed
you!" "And
I, you. You've changed, and for the better." Keren held her closely, then
put her at arm's length, surveying her with intense scrutiny. "It isn't
often I get to see my hopes fulfilled with such exactitude." 34 Mercedes
Lackey "Don't
be so silly." Talia blushed. "You're seeing what isn't there." "Oh,
I think not." Keren smiled. "The gods know you are the world's worst
judge when it comes to evaluating yourself. Dearling, you've become all I hoped
you'd be. But—you didn't have the easy time we thought you would, did
you?" "I—no,
I didn't." Talia sighed. "I—Keren, my Gift went rogue on me. At full
power." "Great
good gods!" She examined Talia even more carefully, gray eyes boring into
Talia's. "How the hell did that happen? I thought we'd trained—" "So
did everyone." "Wait
a moment; let me put this together for myself. You finished Ylsa's class; now
let me remember . . .*' Keren's brow creased hi thought. "It does seem to
me that she mentioned something about wanting to send you to the Healers for
some special training, that she didn't feel altogether happy about handling an
Empath when her own expertise was Thought-sensing." Keren
turned away from Talia and began pacing, a habit the younger woman was long
familiar with, for Keren claimed she couldn't think unless she was moving. "Now—I'd
assumed she'd taken care of that because you spent so much time with the
Healers. But she hadn't, had she? And then she was murdered—" "As
far as Kris and I could figure, the Heralds assumed that the Healers were
giving me Empath training, and the Healers assumed the Heralds had already done
so because I seemed to be in full control. But I wasn't; it was all instinct
and guess. And when control went—" "Gods!"
Keren stopped pacing and put both of her hands on Talia's shoulders.
"Little one, are you sure you're all right now?" Talia
remembered only too vividly the hours of practice Kris had put her through; the
painful sessions with the two Companions literally attacking her mentally.
"I'm sure. Kris is a Gift-teacher, after all. He took me all the way
through the basics, and Rolan and Tantris helped." "Oh,
really? Well, well—that's an interesting twist!" ARROW'S
FALL 35 Keren
raised an eloquent eyebrow. "Companions don't intervene that directly as a
rule." **I
don't think they saw any other choice. The first month we were all snowed in at
that Waystation—then we found out that those damned rumors had made it up to
our Sector and we didn't dare look for outside help. It would have just
confirmed the rumors." "True—true.
If I were on the Circle, I think I would be inclined to keep all this under the
ivy bush. Letting the world know that we blundered that badly with you won't do
a smidgin of good, and would probably do a lot of harm. Selected people, yes;
and this should certainly go down in the annals so that we don't repeat the
mistake with the next Empath—but—no, I don't think this should be generally
known." "That
was basically Kris' thinking, and I agree. You're the first person to know
besides the two of us. We'll both be telling Kyril and Elcarth, and I think
that's all." "Ye-es,"
Keren said slowly. "Yes. Let those two worry about who else should know.
Well, what ends well is well, as they say." "I
am fine," Talia repeated emphatically. "I have absolute control now,
control not even Rolan can shake. In a way, I'm glad it happened; I learned a
lot—and it's made me think about things I never did before." "Right,
then. Now, let's take these rags of yours down to the laundry chute—yes, all of
them; not even one outfit for tomorrow. After being in the field, they'll all
need refurbishing. Here—" she dug into Talia's wooden wardrobe, and
emerged with a soft, comfortable lounging robe. "Put that on. You won't be
going anywhere tonight, and in the morning Gaytha will have left a pile of new
ones at your doorstep—though from the look of you, they'll be a bit loose,
since she'll have had them made up from the old measurements. We've all got a
lot of news to catch up on. Oh, and I've got a message from El-speth; Thank the
Lady, and I'll see you in the morning.' " "Well,
my old and rare, we have got a lot of news to catch up on." Dirk nodded,
his mind so fully occupied with things 36 Mercedes
Lackey other
than his dinner that be never noticed that he was munching his way through a
heap of ustil greens, a vegetable he despised with passion. Kris
noticed, and had a difficult time in keeping a straight face. Fortunately the
usual chaos of the Collegium common room at dinner gave him plenty of
opportunity to look in other directions when the urge to break into a howl of
laughter became too great. It was the height of the dinner hour, and every
wooden bench was full of students in Grays and instructors in full Heraldic
Whites, all shouting amiably at one another over the din. "So,
how did your stint go? We greatly appreciated that music, by the way, both of
us. We've got a goodly portion of it memorized by now." "Sh—you
did? You do? That's—" Dirk suddenly realized he was beginning to babble,
and ended lamely, "—that's very nice. I'm glad you liked it." "Oh,
yes; Talia especially. I think she values your present more than anything
anyone else sent her. She certainly has been taking very good care of it—but
that's tike her. I'm giving her highest marks; she is one damn fine
Herald." Now
Dirk took advantage of the noise and clatter at the tables all about them to
cover his own confusion. "Well," he replied when he finally managed
to clear his head a bit of the daze he seemed to be in, "It sounds like
you had a more entertaining trainee than I did. And a more interesting round.
Mine was so dull and normal Ahrodie and I sleepwalked through most of it.'* "Lord
of Lights—I wish I could claim that! Don't forget, 'May your life be
interesting* happens to be a very potent curse! Besides, I seem to remember you
claiming that young Skif had you worn to a frazzle before the circuit was
over." "I
guess I did," Dirk chuckled. "Did you know his Cymry dropped a foal,
and he blames it all on you two?" "No
doubt, since neither of them have an ounce of shame to spare between
them." Kris ducked as a student burdened with a stack of dirty dishes
taller than he was inched past them. "Lord, I hope that youngling's got
one of the Fetching Gifts, or he's going to lose mat whole ARROW'S
FALL 37 stack
in a minute—yes, Skif and Cymry deserve what they got. Poor Talia would have
been ready to skin both of them given the chance. ..." "Oh?" Kris
was more and more pleased by Dirk's reactions, He needed no further urging, and
related the tale with relish, stopping short of the fight—which had been
caused, in an obscure sort of way, by Dirk—and the swimming match that
followed. He insisted then that they ought to take themselves out of the way of
those students assigned to clearing tables. "Fine;
my room or yours?" Dirk was doing his damnedest to keep his feelings from
showing. Unfortunately, Kris knew him too well; that deadpan dicing face he was
putting on only proved he was considerably on edge. "Good
gods, not yours—we'd be lost in there for a week! Mine; and I still have some
of that Ehrris-wine, I think. . . ." The
tales continued over the wine and a small fire, both of them lounging at full
length in Kris' old, worn green chairs. And every other sentence Kris spoke
seemed to have something to do with Talia. Dirk tried his best to seem
interested, but not as obsessed as he actually was. Kris let the shadows hide
his faint smile, for he wasn't fooled a bit. But not
once did Kris let fall the information Dirk really wanted to know—and finally,
emboldened by the wine, he came out and asked for it. "Look,
Kris—you're the soul of chivalry, but we're blood-brothers, you can tell me
safely! Were you, or weren't you?" "Were
we what?" Kris asked innocently. "S-sleeping
together, you nit!" "Yes,"
Kris answered forthrightly. "What did you expect? We're neither one of us
made of ice." He figured that it was far better for Dirk to hear the
truth—and to hear it in such a way that he took it for the matter-of-fact thing
that it was. Talia and Dirk were probably tied neck-and-neck for the position
of his "best friend." And that was all he and Talia meant to each
other. He could 38 Mercedes
Lackey no more
conceive of being in love with her than with the close friend he now faced. He
watched Dirk covertly, weighing his reaction. "I—I suppose it was sort of
inevitable—" "Inevitable—something more. Frankly, during that first
winter it was too blamed cold to sleep alone." He launched into the whole
tale of their blizzard-ordeal—with editing, He didn't dare reveal how Talia's
Gift had gotten out of control. Firstly, it wasn't anything Dirk needed to know
about. Secondly, he was fairly certain it was something that should be known by
as few as possible. Elcarth and Kyril, certainly—but he was pretty well certain
it just wouldn't be ethical to go around telling anyone else without Talia's
express permission. He
concluded the tale with a certain puzzlement; Dirk seemed to have suddenly gone
dumb, and very soon pled exhaustion and left for his own room. Oh,
Lord. Of all the damned situations to be in—his very best friend in the entire
world with his hooks quite firmly in the first woman Dirk had even wanted to
look at in years. It
wasn't fair. It wasn't any damned fair. No woman in her right mind was even
going to want to look at him with Kris around. And Kris— Kris—was
he in love with Talia? And if he were . . . Gods,
gods, they certainly belonged together. No,
dammit! Kris could have any female he wanted, Herald or no, without even
lifting a finger! By all the gods, Dirk was going to fight him for this one! Except
that he hadn't the faintest idea how to go about fighting for her. And—Kris was
like a brother, more than a brother. This wasn't any kind of fair to him— He lay
sleepless for hours that night, staring into the darkness, tossing and turning
restlessly, and cursing the nightjar that was apparently singing right outside
his window. By dawn he was no closer to sorting out his own feelings than he
had been when he threw himself down to rest. Two "Talia!" Elspeth
greeted Talia's appearance at breakfast with a squeal, and a hug that
threatened to squeeze the last bit of breath out of her. The last year and a
half had added inches to the young Heir's height; she stood a bit taller than
Talia now. Time had added a woman's curves to the wraithlike child as well.
Talia wondered, now that she'd seen Elspeth, if her mother truly realized how
much growing she'd done in the time Talia had been gone. The
wood-paneled common room was full of youngsters in student Grays, as most of
the instructors had eaten earlier. The bench-and-table-filled room buzzed with
sleepy murmuring, and smelled of bacon and porridge. Except for the fact that
she recognized few of the faces, and the fact that the room was completely
full, it all looked the same as it had when Talia was a student; she slid into
the warm, friendly atmosphere like a blade into a well-oiled sheath, and felt
as if she had never left. "Bright
Lady, catling, you're going to break all my ribs!" Talia protested,
returning the hug with interest. "I got your message from Keren—I take it
Skif did tell you I got in last night, didn't he? I rather expected to find you
on my doorstep." "I
had foal-watch last night." One of the duties imposed on the students was
to camp in Companion's Field around the time of a foaling, each taking the
watch in turn. Companions did not foal with the ease of horses, and if there
were complications, seconds could be precious in preserving the life or health
of mare and foal. 39 40 Mercedes
Lackey "Skif
told me you were here, and that he'd given you my screech for help—-so I knew I
didn't need to worry anymore, and I certainly didn't need to disturb your
sleep." "I
heard Cymry dropped. Who else?" "Zaleka."
Elspeth grinned at Talia's bewildered look of nonrecognition. "She Chose
Arven just after you left. He's twenty if he's a day, and when Jillian was here
during break between assignments—well, you know Jillian, she's as bad as
Destria. Seems her Companion was like-minded. We haven't half been giving Arven
a hard time over it! Zaleka hasn't dropped yet, but she's due any day." Talia
shook her head, and slipped an arm around the Heir's shoulders. "You
younglings! I don't know what the world's coming to these days—" Elspeth
gave a very unladylike snort, narrowed her enormous brown eyes, and tossed her
dark hair scornfully. "You don't cozen me! I've heard tales about you and
your year-mates that gave me gray hairs] Climbing in and out of windows at the
dead of night with not-so-ex-thieves! Spying on the Royal Nursemaid!" "Catling—"
Talia went cold sober. "Elspeth—I'm sorry about Hulda." She met
Elspeth's scrutiny squarely. Elspeth
grimaced bitterly at the name of the nursemaid who had very nearly managed to
turn her into a spoiled, unmanageable monster—and came close to eliminating any
chance of her being Chosen. "Why?
You caught her red-handed in conspiracy to keep me from ever getting to be
Heir," she replied with a mixture of amusement and resentment—the
amusement at Talia's reaction, the resentment reserved for Hulda. "Sit,
sit, sit! I'm hungry, and I refuse to have to crane my neck up to talk to
you." "You—you
aren't angry at me?" Talia asked, taking a seat beside Elspeth on the worn
wooden bench. "I wanted to tell you I was responsible for her being
dismissed, but, frankly, I never had the courage." Elspeth
smiled a little. "You didn't have the courage? Thank the Lady for that! I
was afraid you were perfect!" "Hardly,"
Talia replied dryly. ARROWS
FALL 41 "Well,
why not tell me your end of it now? I just got it secondhand from Mother and
Kyril." "Oh,
Lord—where do I begin?" "Mm—chronologically,
as you found it out." Elspeth seized a mug of fruit juice from a server
and plumped it down in front of her seatmate. "Right.
It really started for me when I tried to get to know you. Hulda kept blocking
me." "How?" "Carrying
you off for lessons, saying you were asleep, or studying, or whatever other
excuse she could come up with. Catling, I was only about fourteen, and a fairly
unaggressive fourteen at that; / wasn't about to challenge her! But it just
happened too consistently not to be on purpose. So I enlisted Skif." Elspeth
nodded. "Good choice. If there was anybody likely to find out anything, it
would be Skif. I know for a fact he still keeps his hand in—" "Oh?
How?" Elspeth
giggled. "Whenever he's in residence he leaves me sweets hidden in the
'secret' drawer of the desk in my room. With notes." "Oh,
Lord—you haven't told anybody, have you?" Elspeth
was indignant. "And give him away? Not a chance! Oh, I've told Mother in
case he ever gets caught— which isn't likely—but I swore her to secrecy
first." Talia
sighed in relief. "Thanks be to the Lady. If anybody other than Heralds
found out... " Elspeth
sobered. "I know. At worst he could be killed before a Guard knew he was a
Herald and it was a prank. Believe me, I know. Mother was rather amused— and
rather glad, I think. It can't hurt to have somebody with skills like that in
the Heralds. Anyway, you recruited Skif . . ." "Right;
he began sneaking around, and discovered that Hulda, rather than being the
subordinate as everyone thought, had taken over control of the nursery and your
education. She was drugging old Melidy, who was supposed to be your primary
nurse. Well, that seemed wrong to me, but it wasn't anything I could prove because
Melidy had been ill—she'd had a brainstorm. So I 42 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW®
FALL 43 had
Skif keep watching. That was when he discovered that Hulda was in the pay of
someone unknown—paid to ensure that you could never be Chosen, and thus, never
become Heir." "Bitch."
Elspeth's eyes were bright with anger. "I take it neither you nor he ever
saw who it was?" Talia
shook her head regretfully, and took a sip of fruit juice. "Never. He was
always masked, cloaked, and hooded. We told Jadus, Jadus told the Queen—and
Hulda vanished." "And
I only knew that I'd lost the one person at Court I was emotionally dependent
on. I'm not surprised you kept quiet." Elspeth passed Talia a clean plate.
"Oh, I might have gotten angry if you'd told me two or three years ago,
but not now." There
was a great deal of cold, undisguised anger in the Heir's young brown eyes.
"I still remember most of that time quite vividly." Talia
lost the last of her apprehension over the indignation in Elspeth's voice. "There's
more to it than just my being resentful, though," Elspeth continued,
"Looking back at it, Talia, I think that woman who called herself my
'nurse' would quite cheerfully have strangled me with her own hands if she
thought she could have profited and gotten away with it! Yes, and enjoyed every
minute of it!" "Oh,
come now—you weren't that much of a little monster!" "Here,
you'd better start eating or Mero'll throw fits at us when we get downstairs to
clean; he's fixed all your favorites." Elspeth took some of the platters
being passed from hand to hand, and heaped Talia's plate with crisp oatcakes
and honey, warm bacon, and stir-fried squash, totally oblivious to the
incongruity of the Heir to the Throne serving one who was technically an underling.
She had indeed come a long way from the Royal Brat who had been so very touchy
about her rank. "Talia, I lived with Hulda most of my waking hours. I know
for a fact she enjoyed frightening me. Hie bedtime stories she told me would
curl the hair of an adult, and I'd bet my life that she got positive pleasure
out of my shivers. And I can't
tell you why I feel this way, but I'm certain she was the most coldly
self-centered creature I've ever met; that nothing mattered to her except her
own well-being. She was very good at covering the fact, but—" "I
don't think I doubt you, catling. One of your Gifts is Mindspeech, after all,
and little children sometimes see things we adults miss." "You
adults? You weren't all that much older than me! You saw a fair amount
yourself, and you'd have seen more if you'd been able to spend more time with
me. She was turning me into a little copy of herself, when she wasn't trying to
scare me. Once she'd cut me off from everyone else so that there was no one to
turn to as a friend, she kept schooling me in how I shouldn't trust anyone but
her—and how I should fight for every scrap of royal privilege, stopping for no
one and nothing on the way. There's more, something that turned up after you
left. When they told me the truth, I got very curious." "Which
is why I call you 'catling'—" Talia interrupted with a grin, "—since
you're fully as curious as any cat." "Too
true. Curiosity sometimes pays, though; I started going through the things she
left, and doing a bit of discreet correspondence with my paternal
relatives." "Does
your mother know this?" Talia was a bit surprised. "It's
with her blessing. By the way, I get the feeling that Uncle-King Faramentha
likes me as much as he disliked my father. We've gotten into quite a cozy
little exchange of letters and family anecdotes. I like him, too—and it's
rather too bad we're so closely related; he's got a whole tribe of sons, and I
think anybody with a sense of humor like his would be rather nice to get to
know. . . ." Elspeth's voice trailed off wistfully, then she got back to
the subject at hand with a little shake of her head. "Anyway, now we're
not altogether certain that the Hulda who left Rethwellan is the same Hulda who
arrived here." "What?" "Oh,
it's so much fun to shock you. You look like somebody just hit you in the face
with a board!" 44 Mercedes
Lackey "Elspeth,
I may kill you myself if you don't get to the point! "All
right, I'll be good! It's rather late in the day to be checking on these things
now, but there was a span of about a month after Hulda left the Royal Nursery
in Rethwellan to come here where she just seems to have vanished. She wasn't
passed across the Border, and no one remembers her in the inns along the way.
Then— poof!—she's here, bag and baggage. Father wasn't among the living anymore
through his own stupid fault, and she had all the right papers and letters;
nobody thought to doubt that she was the 'Hulda' he'd sent for. Until now, that
is." "Bright
Lady!" Talia grew as cold as her breakfast, thinking about the multitude
of possibilities this opened up. Had the unknown "my lord" she and
Skif had seen her conspiring with brought her here? They had no way of knowing
if that one had been among those traitors uncovered and executed after Visa's
murder, for neither of them had ever seen his face. They thought he had been,
for there were no other stirrings of trouble after that, but he might only have
gone to ground for an interval. Had even "my lord" guessed that she
was not what she seemed? And where had she vanished to after she was unmasked?
No one had seen her leave; she had not passed the Border, at least by the roads
(and that was an echo of what Elspeth had just detailed), yet she was most
assuredly gone before anyone had a chance to detain her. And who—or what—had
given her warning that she had been uncovered? A danger that Talia had long
thought safely laid to rest had suddenly resurrected itself, the cockatrice
new-hatched from the dunghill. "Mero
is going to have my hide," Elspeth warned, and Talia started guiltily and
finished her meal. But she really couldn't have told what she was eating. "—and
that was the last incident," Kris finished. "The last couple of weeks
were nothing but routine; we finished up, Griffon relieved us, and we headed
home." He met
the measuring gazes of first Elcarth, then Kyril. Both of them were shocked
cold sober by his ARROW'S
FALL 45 revelation
of the way Talia's Gift had gone rogue—and why. They had evidently assumed this
interview was going to be a mere formality. Kris' tale had come as an
unpleasant surprise. "Why,"
Kyril asked, after a pause that was much too long for Kris' comfort,
"didn't you look for help when this first happened?" "Largely
because by the time I knew something was really wrong, we were snowed into that
Waystation, Senior." "He's
got you there, brother." Elcarth favored the silver-haired Seneschal's
Herald with a wry smile. "By
the time we got out, she was well on the way to having her problems
solved," Kris continued doggedly. "She had the basics, had them down
firmly. And once we got in with people again, we found that those rumors had
preceded us. At that point, I reckoned we'd do irreparable harm by leaving the
circuit to look for other help. We'd only have confirmed the rumor that there
was something wrong by doing so." "Hm.
A point," Kyril acknowledged. "And
at that point, I wasn't entirely certain that there was anyone capable of
training her." "Healers—"
Elcarth began. "Don't
have Empathy alone, nor do they use it exactly the way she does—the way she
must. She's actually used it offensively, as I told you. They rarely invoke the
use of it outside of Healing sessions; she is going to have to use it so
constantly it will be as much a part of her as her eyes and ears. At
least," Kris concluded with an embarrassed smile, "that's the way I
had it figured." "I
think that in this case you were right, young brother," Kyril replied
after long thought, during which time Kris had plenty of leisure to think about
all he'd said, and wonder if he'd managed to convince these two, the most
senior Heralds in the Circle. Kris
let out a breath he didn't even realize he'd been holding. "There
was this, too," he added. "At that point, letting out word that we,
and the Collegium, had failed to 46 Mercedes
Lackey properly'
train the new Queen's Own would have been devastating to everyone's
morale." "Bright
Goddess—you're right!" EIcarth exclaimed with consternation, his eyebrows
rising to meet his gray cap of hair. "For that to become well known would
be as damaging to the faith of Heralds as it would to that of nonHeralds. I
think, given the circumstances, you both deserve high marks. You, for your good
sense and discretion, and your internee for meeting and overcoming trials she
should never have had to face." "I
agree," Kyril seconded. "Now, if you'll excuse us, Elcarth and I will
endeavor to set such safeguards as to ensure this never happens again." With a
polite farewell, Kris thankfully fled their presence. In the
hour after breakfast, Talia covered a great deal of ground. She first left the
Herald's Collegium and crossed to the separate building that housed Healer's
Collegium and the House of Healing. The sun was up by now, though it hadn't
been when she'd gone to breakfast, and from the cloudless blue of the sky it
looked as if it were going to be another flawless spring day. Once within the
beige-brick walls, she sought out Healer Devan, to let him know of her return,
and to learn from him if there were any Herald-patients in the House of Healing
that needed her own special touch. She
found him in the still-room, carefully mixing some sort of decoction. She
entered very quietly, not wanting to break his concentration, but somehow he
knew she was there anyway. "Word
spreads quickly; I knew you'd gotten back last night," he said without
turning around. "And most welcome you are, too, Talia!" She
chuckled a little. "I should know better than to try and sneak up on
someone with the same Gift I have!" He set
his potion down on the table before him, stoppered it with care, and turned to
face her. As a smile reached and warmed his hazel eyes, he held out
brown-stained hands in greeting. ARROWS
FALL 47 "Your
aura, child, is unmistakable—and right glad I am to feel it again." She
took both his hands in her own, wrinkling her nose a little at the pungent
odors of the still-room. "I hope you're glad to see me for my own sake,
and not because you need me desperately," she replied. Much to
her relief, he assured her that there were no Heralds at all among his patients
at the moment. "Just
wait until the Midsummer storms South, or the pirate-raids West, though!"
he told her, his dark eyes rueful. "Rynee will have her Greens by winter;
she's got every intention of going back South to be stationed near her home.
You're back in good time; you'll be the only trained mind-Healer besides Patris
here when she leaves, and it's possible we may need you for patients other than
Heralds." Next
she returned to the Herald's Wing for an interview she had not been looking
forward to. She
knocked hesitantly on the door to Elcarth's office; and found that not only was
Elcarth there, but that the Seneschal's Herald was with the Dean. During
the next hour she reported, as dispassionately as she could, all that had
happened during her internship. She did not spare herself in the least,
admitting fully that she had concealed the fact that she was losing control over
her Gift; admitting that she did not confess the fact until forced to by Kris.
She told them what Kris had not; that she had nearly killed both of them, They
heard her out in complete silence until she had finished, and sat with her
hands clenched in her lap, waiting for their verdict on her. "What
have you concluded from all this?" Elcarth asked unexpectedly. "That—that
no one Herald can stand alone, not even the Queen's Own," she replied,
after thought. "Perhaps especially the Queen's Own. What I do reflects on
alt Heralds, and more so than any other just because I'm so much in the minds
of the people." "And
of the proper usage of your Gift?" Kyril asked. "I—I
don't really know, entirely," she admitted. "There 48 Mcrcedes
Lackey are
times when what I need to do is quite clear. But most of the time, it's so—so
nebulous. It's going to be pretty much a matter of weighing evils and
necessity, I guess." Elcarth
nodded. "If
I have time, I'll ask advice from the Circle before I do anything irrevocable.
But most of the time, I'm afraid I won't have that luxury. But if I make a
mistake . . . well, I'll accept the consequences, and try and make it
right." "Well,
Herald Talia," Elcarth said, black eyes bright with what Talia finally realized
was pride, "I think you're ready to get into harness." "Then—I
passed?" "What
did I tell you?" Kyril shook his head at his colleague. "I knew she
wouldn't believe it until she heard it from our lips." The iron-haired,
granite-faced Herald unbent enough to smile warmly at her. "Yes, Tafia,
you did very well; we're quite pleased with what you and Kris have told us. You
took a desperate situation that was not entirely of your own making, and turned
it around, by yourselves." "And
we're satisfied with what you told us just now," Elcarth added.
"You've managed to strike a decent balance in the ethics of having a Gift
like yours, I think. So now that you've had the sweet compliments, are you
ready for the bitter? There's a Council meeting shortly." "Yes,
sir," she replied. "I've been . . . warned." "About
more than just the meeting, I'll wager." "Senior,
that would be compromising my sources—" "Lord
and Lady!" Elcarth's sharp features twitched as he controlled his urge to
laugh. "She sounds like Talamir already!" Kyril
just shook his head ruefully. "That she does, brother. Well enough,
Talia—we'll see you there. You'd best be off; I imagine Selenay is wanting to
discuss a few things with you before the Council meeting itself." Talia
knew a dismissal when she heard one, and took her leave of both of them, with a
light foot to match her lightened heart. ARROWS
FALL 49 "Talia—"
Selenay forestalled all formality by embracing her Herald warmly. "—Bright
Lady, how I have missed you! Come in here where we can have a little
privacy." She
drew Talia into a granite-walled alcove holding a single polished wooden bench,
just off the corridor leading to the Council chamber. As usual, she was dressed
as any of her Heralds, with only the thin circlet of royal red-gold that rested
on her own golden hair proclaiming her rank. "Let
me get a good look at you. Havens, you look wonderful! But you've gotten so
thin—" "Having
to eat my own cooking," Talia replied, "that's all. I would have
tried to see you last night—" "You
wouldn't have found me," Selenay said, blue eyes dark with affection.
"I was closeted with the Lord Marshal, going over troop deployments on the
Border. By the time we were finished, I wouldn't have been willing to see my
resurrected father, I was that weary. All those damn maps! Besides, the first
night back from internship is always spent with your closest friends, it's
tradition! How else can you catch up on eighteen months of news?" "Eighteen
months of gossip, you mean." Talia grinned. "I understand Kris and I
caused a little ourselves." "From
your offhand manner can I deduce that my thoughts of a deathless romance are in
vain?" Her eyes danced with amusement and she pouted in feigned
disappointment. Talia
shook her head in mock exasperation. "You, too? Bright Havens, is everyone
in the Collegium determined to have us mated, whether we will or no?" "The
sole exceptions are Kyril, Elcarth, Skif, Keren, and—of all people—Alberich.
They all swore that if you ever lost your heart, it wouldn't be to Kris' pretty
face." "They
. . . could be right." Selenay
noted her Herald's faintly troubled expression, and deemed it prudent to change
the subject. "Well, I'm more than happy to have you at my side again, and
I could have used you for the past two months." 50 Mercedes
Lackey "Two
months? Is it anything to do with what Elspeth sent Skif out to us for?" "Did
she? That minx! Probably—she hasn't been any more pleased over the Council's
actions than I have. I've gotten an offer for Elspeth's hand, from a source
that is going to be very difficult for me to refuse." "Say
on." Selenay
settled back on the bench, absently caressing the arm of it with one hand.
"We received an envoy from King Alessandar two months ago, a formal
request that I consider wedding Elspeth to his Ancar. There's a great deal to
be said for the match; Ancar is about Kris' age, not too great a discrepancy as
royal marriages go; he's said to be quite handsome. This would mean the
eventual joining of our Kingdoms, and Alessandar has a strong and well-trained
army, much larger than our own. I'd be able to spread the Heralds into his
realm, and his army would make Karse think twice about ever invading us again.
Three quarters of the Councillors are for it unconditionally, the rest favor
the idea, but aren't trying to shove it down my throat like the others
are." "Well,"
Talia replied slowly, twisting the ring Kris had given her, "you wouldn't
be hesitating over it if you didn't feel there was something wrong. What is
it?" "Firstly,
unless I absolutely have to, I don't want Elspeth sacrificed in a marriage of
state. Frankly, I'd rather see her live unwedded and have the throne go to a
collateral line than have her making anything but a match that is at least
based on mutual respect and liking." Selenay played with a lock of hair,
twisting it around one of her long, graceful fingers, thereby betraying her
anxiety. "Secondly, she's very young yet; I'm going to insist she finish
her training before making a decision. Thirdly, I haven't seen Ancar since he
was a babe in arms; I have no idea what kind of a man he's grown into, and I
want to know that before I even begin to seriously consider the match. To tell
the truth, I'm hoping for her to have a love-match, and that with someone who
is at least Chosen if not a Herald. I saw for myself the kind of problems that
can come when the Queen's consort is not co-ruler, yet has been trained to the
idea of rule. And you know very ARROWS
FALL 51 well
that Elspeth's husband will not share the Throne unless he, too, is
Chosen." "Good
points, all of them—but you have more than that troubling you." Talia had
fallen into reading the Queen's state of mind as easily as if she'd never been
away. "Now
I know why I've missed you! You always manage to ask the question that puts
everything into perspective!" Selenay smiled again, with delight.
"Yes, I do, but it wasn't the kind of thing I wanted to confess to the
Council, or even to Kyril, bless his heart. They'd put it down to a silly
woman's maunderings and mutter about moon-days. What's bothering me is this:
it's too pat, this offer; it's too perfect. Too much like the answer to
everyone's prayers. I keep looking for the trap beneath the bait, and wondering
why I can't see it. Perhaps I'm so in the habit of suspicion that I can't trust
even what I know to be honest." "No,
I don't think that's it." Talia pursed her lips thoughtfully. "There
is something out of kilter, or you wouldn't be so uneasy. You've Mindspeech and
a touch of Foreseeing, right? I suspect that you're getting foggy Foresight
that something isn't quite right about the idea, and your uneasiness is being
caused by having to fight the Council with no real reasons to give them." "Bless
you—that's exactly what it must be! I've been feeling for the past two months
as if I were trying to bail a leaky boat with my bare hands!" "So
use Elspeth's youth and the fact that she has to finish her training as an
excuse to stall for a while. I'll back you; when Kyril and Elcarth see that I'm
backing you, they'll follow my lead," Talia said with more confidence than
she actually felt. "Remember, I have a full vote in the Council now.
Between the two of us we have the power to veto even the vote of the full
Council. All it takes is the Monarch and Queen's Own to overturn a Council
vote. I'll admit it isn't politic to do so, but I'll do it if I have to." Selenay
sighed with relief. "How have I ever managed all these years without
you?" "Very
well, thank you. If I hadn't been here, I expect 52 Mercedes
Lackey you'd
have managed to stall them somehow—even if you had to resort to Devan
physicking Elspeth into a phony fever to gain time! Now, isn't it time to make
our entrance?" "Indeed
it is." Selenay smiled, with just a hint of maliciousness. "And this
is a moment I have long waited for! There are going to be some cases of chagrin
when certain folk realize you are Queen's Own in truth, vote and all, and that
the full Council will be in session from now on!" They
rose together and entered the huge, brass-mounted double doors of the Council
chamber. The
other members of the Council had assembled at the table; they stood as one as
the Queen entered the room, with Talia in her proper position as Queen's Own,
one step behind her and slightly to her right. The
Council Chamber was not a large room, and had only the horseshoe Council table
and the chairs surrounding it as furnishings, all of a dark wood that age and
much handling had turned nearly black. Like the rest of the Palace, it was
paneled only halfway in wood; the rest of the room, from about chin-height to
the ceiling, being the gray stone of the original Palace-keep. A downscaled
version of Selenay's throne was placed at the exact center of the Council
table, behind it was the fireplace, and over the fireplace, the arms of the
Monarch of Valdemar; a winged, white horse with broken chains about its throat.
On the wall over the door, the wall that her throne faced, was an enormous map
of Valdemar inscribed on heavy linen and kept constantly up-to-date; it was so
large that any member of the Council could read the lettering from his or her
seat. The work was exquisite, every road and tiny village carefully delineated.
The chair to the immediate right of the Queen's was Talia's; to the immediate
left was the Seneschal's. To the left of the Seneschal sat Kyril, to Talia's
right, the Lord Marshal. The rest of the Councillors took whatever seat they
chose, without regard for rank. Talia
had never actually used her seat until this moment; by tradition it had to
remain vacant until she completed her training and was a full Herald. She had ARROW'S
FALL 53 been
seated with the rest of the Councillors and had done nothing except voice an
occasional opinion when asked, and give her observations to Selenay when the
meetings were over. While her new position brought her considerable power, it
also carried considerable responsibility. The
Councillors remained standing, some with visible surprise on their faces;
evidently word of her return had not spread as quickly through the Court as it
had through the Collegium. Selenay took her place before her chair, as did
Talia. The Queen inclined her head slightly to either side, then sat, with
Talia sitting a fraction of a second later. The Councillors took their own
seats when the Queen and Queen's Own were in their places. "I
should like to open this meeting with a discussion of the marriage envoy from
Alessandar," Selenay said quietly, to the open surprise of several of her
Councillors. Talia nodded to herself; by taking the initiative, Selenay started
the entire proceedings with herself on the high ground. One by
one each of those seated at the table voiced their own opinions; as Selenay had
told Talia, they were uniformly in favor of it, most desiring that the match be
made immediately. Talia
began taking stock of the Councillors, watching them with an intensity she had
never felt before. She wanted to evaluate them without using her Gift, only her
eyes and ears. First
was Lord Gartheser, who spoke for the North— Orthallen's closest ally, without
a doubt. Thin, nervous, and balding, he punctuated his sentences with sharp
movements of his hands. Though he never actually looked directly at Orthallen,
Talia could tell by the way he oriented himself that his attention was so bound
on Orthallen that no one else made any impression on him at all. "There
can be no doubt," Gartheser said in a rather thin and reedy voice,
"that this betrothal would bring us an alliance so strong that no one
would ever dare dream of attacking us again. With Alessandar's army ready to
spring to our rescue, not even Karse would care to trifle 54 Mercedes
Lackey with
us. I venture to predict that even the Border raids would cease, and our
Borders would be truly secure for the first time in generations." Orthallen
nodded, so slightly that Talia would not have noticed the motion if she had not
been watching him. And she wasn't the only one who caught that faint sign of
approval. Gartheser had been watching for it, too. Talia saw him nod and smile
slightly in response. Elcarth
and Kyril were next; Elcarth perched on the edge of his chair and looking like
nothing so much as a gray snow-wren, and Kyril as nearly motionless as an
equally gray granite statue. "I
can see no strong objections," Elcarth said, his head slightly to one
side, "But the Heir must be allowed to finish her training and her
internship before any such alliance is consummated." "And
Prince Ancar must be of a suitable temperament," Kyril added smoothly.
"This Kingdom—forgive me, Highness—this Kingdom has had the bitter
experience of having a consort who was not suitable. I, for one, have no wish
to live through another such experience." Lady
Wyrist spoke next, who stood for the East; another of Orthallen's supporters.
This plump, fair-haired woman had been a great beauty in her time, and still
retained charm and magnetism. "I
am totally in favor—and I do not think this is the time to dally! Let the
betrothal be as soon as possible— the wedding, even! Training can wait until
after alliances are irrevocable." She glared at Eicarth and Kyril.
"It's my Border the Karsites come rampaging over whenever they choose. My
people have little enough, and the Karsites regularly reive away what little
they have! But it is also my Border that would be open to new trade with our
two Kingdoms firmly united, and I can see nothing to find fault with." White-haired,
snowy-bearded Father Aldon, the Lord Patriarch, spoke up wistfully. "As my
Lady has said, this alliance promises peace, a peace such as we have not
enjoyed for far too long. Karse would be forced to sue for a lasting peace,
faced with unity all along two of its borders. Renewing our long friendship
with Hardorn can ARROWS
FALL 55 only
bring a truer peace than we have ever known. Though the Heir is young, many of
our ladies have wedded younger still—" "Indeed."
Bard Hyron, so fair-haired that his flowing locks were nearly white, was
speaker for the Bardic Circle. He echoed Father Aldon's sentiments. "It is
a small sacrifice for the young woman to make, in the interests of how much we
would gain." Talia
noted dubiously that his pale gray eyes practically glowed silver when
Orthallen nodded approvingly. The
thin and angular Healer My rim, spokeswoman for her Circle, was not so
enthralled. To Talia's relief she actually seemed mildly annoyed by Hyron's
hero worship; and something about Orthallen seemed to be setting her ever so
slightly on edge. "You all forget something—though the child has been
Chosen, she is not yet a Herald, and the law states clearly that the Monarch
must be a Herald, There has never b^een a reason strong enough to overturn that
law before, and I fail to see the need to set such a dangerous precedent
now!" "Exactly,"
Kyril murmured. "The
child is just that; a child. Not ready to rule by any stretch of the
imagination, with much to learn before she is. Nevertheless, I am—cautiously—in
favor of the betrothal. But only if the Heir remains at the Collegium until
after her full training is complete." Somewhat
to Talia's surprise, Lord Marshal Randon shared Myrim's mild dislike of
Orthallen. Talia wondered, as she listened to that scarred and craggy warrior
measuring out his words with the care and deliberation of a merchant measuring
out grain, what could have happened while she'd been gone to so change him. For
when she'd last sat at the Council board, Randon had been one of Orthallen's foremost
supporters. Now, however, though he favored the betrothal, he stroked his dark
beard with something like concealed annoyance, as if it galled him, having to
agree with Orthallen's party. Horselike
Lady Kester, speaker for the West, was short and to the point. "I'm for
it," she said, and sat herself down. Plump and soft-spoken Lord Gildas for
the South was equally brief. 56 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 57 "I
can see nothing to cause any problems," said Lady Cathan of the Guilds
quietly. She was a quiet, gray, dovelike woman, of an outer softness that
masked a stubborn inner core. "And much that would benefit every member of
the Kingdom." "That,
I think, is a good summation," Lord Palinor, the Seneschal, concluded.
"You know my feelings on the matter. Majesty?" The
Queen had held her peace, remaining calm and thoughtful, but totally
noncommittal, until everyone had spoken except herself and her Herald. Now she
leaned forward slightly, and addressed them, a hint of command tingeing her
voice. "I
have heard you all; you each favor the match, and all of your reasons are good
ones. You even urge me to agree to the wedding and see it consummated within
the next few months. Very well; I can agree with every one of your arguments,
and I am more than willing to return Alessandar's envoy with word that we will
be considering his offer with all due gravity. But one thing I cannot and will
not do—I will never agree to anything that will interrupt Elspeth's training.
That, above all other considerations, must be continued! Lady forbid it, but
should 1 die, we cannot risk the throne of Valdemar in the keeping of an
untrained Monarch! Therefore I will do no more than indicate to Alessandar that
his suit is welcome— and inform him in no uncertain terms that serious
negotiations cannot begin until the Heir has passed her internship." "Majesty!"
Gartheser jumped to his feet as several more Councillors started speaking at
once; one or two growing angry. Talia stood then, and rapped the table, and the
babble ceased. The argumentive ones stared at her as though they had forgotten
her presence. "My
lords, my ladies—forgive me, but any arguments you may have are moot. My vote
goes with the Queen's decision. I have so advised her." It was
fairly evident from their dumbfounded expressions that they had forgotten that
Talia now carried voting rights. If the situation had not been so serious,
Talia would have derived a great deal of amusement from some of
the dumbfounded expressions—Orthallen's in particular. "If
that is the advice of the Quoen's Own, then my vote must follow," Kyril
said quickly, although Talia could almost hear him wondering if she really knew
what she was doing. "And
mine," Elcarth seconded, looking and sounding much more confident of
Talia's judgment than Kyril. There
was silence then, a silence so deep one could almost hear the dust motes that
danced in the light from the clerestory windows falling to the floor. "It
seems," said Lord Gartheser, the apparent leader of those dissenting,
"that we are outvoted." Faint
grumbling followed his words. At the
farthest end of the table, a white-haired lord rose; the faint grumbling
ceased. This gentleman was the one Talia had been watching so closely, and the
only one who had not spoken. Orthallen; Lord of Wyvern's Reach, and Kris'
uncle. He was the most senior Councillor, for he had served Selenay's father.
He had served Selenay as well, throughout her entire reign. Selenay often
called him "Lord Uncle," and he had been something of a father-figure
to Elspeth. He was highly regarded and respected. But
Talia had never been able to warm to him. Part of the reason was because of
what he had attempted to do to Skif. While he did not have the authority to
remove any Chosen from the Collegium, he had tried to have the boy sent away
for two years' punishment duty with the Army. His ostensible reason was the
number of infractions of the Collegium rules Skif had managed to acquire,
culminating with catching him red-handed in the office of the Provost-Marshal
late one night. Orthallen had claimed Skif was there to alter the Misdemeanor
Book. Talia, who had asked him to go there, was the only one who knew he had
broken into the office to investigate Hulda's records. He was going to try to
see who, exactly, had sponsored her into the Kingdom, in an attempt to ferret
out the identity of her co-conspirator. Talia
had saved her friend at the cost of a lie, saying that she had asked him to
find out whether her Holderkin 58 Mercedes
Lackey relatives
were claiming the Privilege Tax allowed those who had produced a child Chosen, Since
that time she had been subtly, but constantly, at loggerheads with Orthallen;
when she first began sitting on the Council it seemed as if he had constantly
moved to negate what little authority she had. He had openly belittled so many
of her observations (on the grounds of her youth and inexperience) that she had
very seldom spoken up when he was present. He always seemed to her to be just a
little too careful and controlled. When he smiled, when he frowned, the
expression never seemed to go any deeper than the skin. At
first she had chided herself for her negative reaction to him, putting it down
to her irrational fear of males; handsome males in particular, for even though
past his prime, he was a strikingly handsome man—there was no doubt which side
of Kris' family had blessed him with his own angelic face. And there was no sin
in being a trifle cold, emotionally speaking, yet for some reason, she was
always reminded of the wyvern that formed his crest when she saw him. Like the
wyvern, he seemed to her to be thin-blooded, calculating, and quite ruthless—
and hiding it all beneath an attractively bejewefed skin. But
there was more to her mistrust of him now—because she had more than one reason
to suspect that he was the source of those rumors about her misusing her Gift,
and she was certain that he had started them because he knew how such vile
rumors would affect an Empath who was well-known to have a low sense of
self-esteem. She was equally certain that he had deliberately planted doubts in
Kris' mind—knowing that she would feel those doubts and respond. But
this time she had cause to be grateful to him; when Orthallen spoke, the rest
of the Councillors paid heed, and he spoke now in favor of the Queen's
decision. "My
lords, my ladies—the Queen is entirely correct," he said, surprising Talia
somewhat, for he had been one of those most in favor of marrying Elspeth off
with no further ado. "We have only one Heir, and no other candidates in
the direct line. We should not take such a risk. The Heir must be trained; I
see the wisdom of that, ARROWS
FALL 59 now. I
withdraw my earlier plea for an immediate betrothal. Alessandar is a wise
monarch, and will surely be more than willing to make preliminary agreements on
the strength of a betrothal promised for the future. In such ways, we shall
have all the benefits of both plans." Talia
was not the only member of the Council surprised by Orthallen's apparent
about-face. Hyron stared as if he could not believe what he had heard. The
members of his faction and those opposed to him seemed equally taken aback. The
result of this speech was the somewhat reluctant— though unanimous—vote of the
Council to deal with the envoy just as Selenay had outlined. The vote was,
frankly, u'ttle more than a gesture, since together Selenay and Talia could
overrule the entire Council. But though the unanimous backing of her stance
gave Selenay a position of strong moral advantage, Talia wondered what private
conversations would be taking place when the Council session concluded—and who
would be involved. The
remaining items on the Council's agenda were routine and mundane; rescinding
tax for several villages hard hit by spring floods, the deployment and
provisioning of extra troops at Lake Evendim in the hope of making life
difficult enough this year that the pirates and raiders would decide to turn to
easier prey, the fining of a merchant-clan that had been involved in the
slave-trade. The arguments about just how many troops should be moved to Lake
Evendim and who would fund the deployment went on for hours. The Lord Marshal
and Lady Kester (who ruled the district of the fisherfolk of the lake) were
unyielding in their demands for the extra troops; Lord Gildas and Lady Cathan,
whose rich grainlands and merchant-guilds would supply the taxes for the
primary support of the effort, were frantic in then-attempts to cut down the
numbers. Talia's
sympathy lay with the fisherfolk, yet she could find it in her heart to feel
for those who were being asked to delve into their pockets for the pay and
provisioning of extra troops who would mostly remain idle. It seemed that there
was no way to compromise, and that the 60 Mercedes
Lackey arguments
would continue with no conclusion. That would be no solution for the
fisherfolk, either! Finally,
as the Lord Marshal thundered out figures concerning the numbers needed to keep
watch aiong the winding coastlines, a glimmering of an idea came to her. "Forgive
me," she spoke into one of the sullen silences "I know little of
warfare, but I know something of the fisherfolk. Only the young, healthy, and
whole go out on the boats in season; unless my memory is incorrect, the old,
the very young, pregnant women, those minding the young children for the rest
of the family, and the crippled remain in the temporary work-villages. Am I
right?" "Aye—and
that's what makes these people so damned hard to defend!" the Lord Marshal
growled. "There isn't a one left behind with the ability to take
arms!" "Well,
according to your figures, a good third of your troopers would be spending all
their time on coastwatch. Since you're going to have to be feeding that many
people anyway, why not provision the dependents instead, and have them doing
the watching? Once they're freed from having to see to their day-to-day food
supplies, they'll have the time for it, and what does a watcher need besides a
pair of good eyes and the means to set an alert?" "You
mean use children as coastwatchers?" Gartheser exclaimed.
"That—that's plainly daft!" "Just
you wait one moment, Gartheser," Myrim interjected. "I fail to see
what's daft about it. It seems rare good sense to me." "But—how
are they to defend themselves?" "Against
what? Who's going to see them? They'll be hidden, man, in blinds, the way
coastwatchers are always hidden. And I see the girl's drift. Puttin' them up
would let us cut down the deployment by a third, just as Gildas and Cathan
want," Lady Kester exclaimed, looking up like an old gray warhorse hearing
the bugles. "Ye'd still have to provision the full number, though, ye old
tightfists!" "But
they'd not have to pay 'em," one of the others chuckled. "But—children?"
Hyron said doubtfully. "How can ARROWS
FALL 61 we put
children in that kind of vital position? What's to keep them from running off
to play?" "Border
children are not very childlike," Talia said quietly, looking to Kester,
and the Speaker for the West nodded emphatic agreement. "Silverhair,
lad, the only thing keepin' these children off the boats is size," Kester
snorted, though not unkindly. "They're not your soft highborns; they've
been working since their hands were big enough to knot a net." "Aye,
I must agree." Lady Wyrist entered this argument for the first time.
"I suspect your fisherfolk are not unlike my Holderkin—as Herald Talia can
attest, Border-bred children have little time for childish pursuits." "All
the more chance that they'll run off, then," Hyron insisted. "Not
when they've seen whole families burned out by the selfsame pirates they're
supposed to be watching for," said Myrim. "I served out there. I'd
trust the sense of any of those 'children' before I'd trust the sense of some
highborn graybeards I could name." "Well
said, lady!" Kester applauded, and turned sharp eyes on the Lord Marshal.
"Tell ye what else, ye old wardog—an ye can persuade these troopers of
yours to turn to and lend a hand to a bit of honest work now and again—" "Such
as?" The Lord Marshal almost cracked a smile. "Taking the landwork;
drying the fish and the sponge, mending the nets and lines, packing and
crating, readying the longhouses for winter." "It might be possible;
what were you planning to offer?" "War-pay; with the landwork off my
people's hands, and knowing their folk on land are safe, we should be able to
cover the extra bonus ourselves, and Mill bring in a proper profit." "With
careful phrasing, I think I could manage it." "Done, then. How say
you, Cathan, Gildas?" They were only too happy to agree. The Council
adjourned on this most positive note. Selenay and Talia stood as one, and
preceded the rest out; Kyril a pace behind them. 62 Mercedes
Lackey "You
have been learning, haven't you?" Kyril said in Talia's ear. "Me?" "Yes,
you; and don't play the innocent," Elcarth joined his colleague as they
stood in a white-clad knot outside the Council Chamber door, waiting for
Selenay to finish conferring with the Seneschal on the agenda for the
afternoon's audiences. He pushed a lock of gray hair out of his eyes and
smiled. "That was cleverly done, getting the Border Lords on your
side." "It
was the only way to get a compromise going. Cathan and Gildas would have agreed
to anything that saved them money. With the Borderers and those two, we had a
majority, and everybody benefited." Talia smiled back. "It was just a
matter of invoking Borderer pride, really; we're proud of how tough we are,
even as littles." "Lovely.
Truly lovely." Selenay joined them. "AU those sessions of dealing
with hardheaded Borderers in the middle of feuds taught you more than a little!
Now tell me this; what would you have done if you hadn't absorbed all that
fisherfolk lore from Keren, Teren, and Sherrill? Sat dumb?" "I
don't think so, not when it was obvious that there'd never be agreement."
Talia thought for a moment. "I think ... if one of you hadn't done so
first... I would have suggested an adjournment until we could dig up an expert
on the people of the area, preferably a Herald who has done several circuits
there." "Fine—that's
what I was about to do when you spoke up; we are beginning to think as a team.
Now I have a working lunch with Kyril and the Seneschal. I don't need you for
it, so you can go find something to gulp down at the Collegium. At one I have
formal audiences, and you have to be there. Those will last about three hours;
you're free then until seven and Court dinner. After dinner, unless something
comes up, you're free again." "But
Alberich is expecting you at four—" Elcarth grinned at Talia's groan.
"—and Devan at five. Welcome home, Talia!" "Well,"
she said with a sigh, "It's better than shovel- ARROWSFALL 63 ing
snow, I guess! But I never thought I'd begin missing field work so soon!" "Missing
field work already?" Talia
turned to find Kris standing behind her, an insolent grin on his face. "I
thought you told me you'd never miss field work!" She
grinned back. "I lied." "No!"
He feigned shock. "Well, what of the Council meeting?" She
wanted to tell him everything—then suddenly, remembered who he was—who his
uncle was. Anything she told him would quite likely get back to Orthallen, and
Kris would be telling Orthallen in all innocence, never dreaming he was handing
the man weapons to use against her by doing so. "Oh—nothing
much," she said reluctantly. "The betrothal's being held off until
Elspeth's finished training. Look, Kris, I'm sorry, but I'm rather short on
time right now. I'll tell you later, all right?" And she
fled before he could ask anything more. Lunch
was a few bites snatched on the run between the Palace and her room; audiences
required a slightly more formal uniform than the one she'd worn to the Council
session. Talia managed to wash, change, and get back in time to discuss the
scheduled audiences with the Seneschal. Talia's role here was as much bodyguard
as anything else, although her duties included assessing the emotional state of
those coming before the Queen and giving her any information that seemed
appropriate. The
audience chamber was long and narrow; the same gray granite and dark wood as
the rest of the old Palace. Selenay's throne was on a raised platform at the
far end. Behind the throne the wall had been carved into the Royal arms; there
were no curtains for assassins to hide behind. The Queen's Own spent the entire
time positioned behind the throne to the Queen's right, from which position the
Queen could hear her least whisper. Petitioners had to travel the length of the
chamber, giving Talia ample time to "read" their emotional state if
she thought it necessary to do so. 64 Mercedes
Lackey The
audiences were quite unexciting; petitioners ranged from a smallholder seeking
permission to establish a Dyer's Guildhouse on his property to two noblemen who
had called challenge on each other and were now trying desperately to find a
way out of the situation without either of them losing face. Not once did she
deem the situation grave enough to warrant "reading" any of them. When
the audience session concluded, Talia sprinted back to her room to change into
something old and worn for her weapons drill with Alberich. Walking
into the salle was like walking into the past; nothing had changed, not the
worn, backless benches against the wall, not the clutter of equipment and
towels on and beneath the benches, not the light coming from the windows. Not
even Alberich had changed so much as a hair; he still wore the same old
leathers, or clothing like enough to have been the same. His scar-seamed face
still looked as incapable of humor as the walls of the Palace; his long black
hair held neither more nor less gray than it had the last time Talia had seen
him. Elspeth
was already there, going full out against Jeri under Alberich's critical eye.
Talia held her breath in surprise; Elspeth was, (to her judgment, at least)
Jen's equal. The young weapons instructor was not holding anything back, and
more than once only saved herself from a "kill" by frantically
wrenching her body out of the way of the wooden blade. Both of them were sodden
with sweat when Alberich finally called a halt. "You
do well, children; both of you," Alberich nodded as he spoke. Both Elspeth
and Jeri began walking slowly in little circles to keep their muscles from
stiffening, while drying their faces with old towels. "Jeri, it is more
work you need on your defense; working with the students has made you sloppy.
Elspeth, if it was that you were not far busier than any student should be, I
would make you Jeri's assistant." Elspeth
raised her head, and Talia could see she was flushed with the praise, her eyes
glowing. "However,
you are very far from perfect. Your left side is too weak and you are
vulnerable there. From now on you are to work left-handed, using your right
only ARROWS
FALL 65 when I
tell you, to keep from losing your edge. Enough for today, off to the bath with
you—it is like your Companions you smell!" He
turned to Talia, who bit her lip, then said, "I have the feeling I'm in
trouble." "In
trouble? It is possible—" Alberich scowled; then unexpectedly smiled.
"No fear, little Talia; it is that I am well aware how few were the
chances for you to keep in practice. Today we will start slowly, and I will
determine just how much you have lost. Tomorrow you will be in trouble." Talia
was thanking the gods an hour later that Kris had insisted they both keep in
fighting trim as much as possible, Alberich was reasonably pleased that she had
lost so tittle edge, and kept his cutting remarks to a minimum. Nor was she the
recipient of more than one or two bruising thwacks from his practice blade when
she'd done something exceptionally stupid. On the whole, she felt as if she'd
gotten off very lightly. Another
run, this time to wash and change yet again, and she was back at Healer's
Collegium, going over the past eighteen months with Devan and Rynee. Both were
blessedly succinct; there had not been any truly major mental traumas for Rynee
to deal with among the Heraldic Circle. As a result, Talia was able to flee to
Companion's Field just as the warning bell for supper sounded at the Herald's
Collegium. Rolan
was waiting at the fence, and she pulled herself onto his back without
bothering with going for a saddle, "I
think," she told him, as he walked off into a quiet copse, "that I
may die of exhaustion. This is worse than when I was a student." He
lipped her booted foot affectionately; Talia picked up a projection of
reassurance and something to do with time. "You
think I'll get used to it in a few days? Lord, I hope so! Still—" She
thought hard, trying to remember just what the Queen's schedule was like.
"Hm. Council sessions aren't more than three times a week. Audiences,
though, they're every day. Alberich will torture me every 66 Mercedes
Lackey day,
too. But I could reschedule, say, Devan before breakfast and just after
lunch—save weapons drill for just before dinner, so I'm only changing twice a
day. You, my darling, whenever I can squeeze a free moment." Rolan
made a sound very like laughing. "True,
with the tight bond we have, I don't have to be with you physically, do I? What
did you think of the audiences?" To
Talia's delight, he hung his head and did a credible imitation of a human
snore. "You,
too? Lord and Lady, they're as bad as State banquets! Why did I ever think
being a Herald would be exciting?" Rolan
snorted, and projected the memory of their flight across country to get help
for the plague-stricken village of Waymeet, following that with the fight with
the raiders that had attacked and fired Hevenbeck. "You're
right; I think I can live with boredom. What do you think of how Elspeth's
coming along?" To her
surprise, Rolan was faintly worried, but could give her no clear idea why he
felt that way. "Is
it important enough to trance down to where you can give me a clearer
idea?" He
shook his head, mane brushing her face a little. "Well,
in that case, we'll let it go. It's probably just the usual rebelliousness—and
I can't say as I blame her. Her schedule is as bad as mine. / don't like it,
and I can't fault her if she doesn't either." Talia
dismounted beside a tiny, spring-fed poof, and sat in the grass, watching the
sun set, and emptying her mind. Rolan stood beside her, both of them content
with a quiet moment in which to simply be together. "Well,
I'm into it at last," she said, half to herself. "I thought I'd never
make it, sometimes. . . ." This
had been the first day she had truly been Queen's Own—with all the duties and
all the rights; from the right to overrule the Council to the right to overrule
Selenay (though that was one she hadn't exercised, and still wasn't sure she
had the nerve for!); from her duty to ease the fears of her fellows in the
Circle to the duty to see to the Heir's well-being. ARROWS
FALL 67 It was
a frightening moment in a way, and a sobering one. On reflection, it almost
seemed as if the Queen's Own best served the interests of Queen and country by
not being too forward; by saving her votes for the truly critical issues and
keeping her influence mostly to the quiet word in the Queen's ear. That suited
Talia; she hadn't much enjoyed having all eyes on her this afternoon—especially
not Orthallen's. But Selenay had been more at ease just because Talia was
there; there had been no mistaking that. In the long run, that was what the job
was all about—giving the Monarch one completely honest and completely
trustworthy friend. . . . The
dying sun splashed scarlet and gold on the bottoms of the few clouds that hung
in the west, while the sky above them deepened from blue to purple, and the
Hounds, the two stars that chased the sun, shone in unwinking splendor. The
tops of the clouds took on the purple of the sky as the sun dropped below the
horizon, and the purple tinge soaked through them like water being taken into a
sponge. The light faded, and everything began to lose color, fading into cool
blues. Little frogs began to sing in the pool at Talia's feet; night-blooming
jacinth flowers opened somewhere near her, and the cooling breeze picked up the
perfume and carried it to her. And
just when she was feeling totally disinclined to move, a mosquito bit her. "Ouch!
Damn!" She slapped at the offending insect, then laughed. "The gods
remind me of my duty. Back to work for me, love. Enjoy your evening." Three As if
that tiny insect bite had been an omen, things began to go wrong, starting with
the weather. The
perfect spring turned sour; it seemed to rain every day without a letup, and
the rain was cold and steadily dismal. The sun, when Talia actually saw it,
gave a chill, washed-out light. Miserable, that was what it was; miserable and
depressing. The few flowers that managed to bloom seemed dispirited, and hung
limply on their stems. The damp crept into everything, and fires on the hearths
all day and all night did tittle to drive it out. The whole Kingdom was
affected; there were new tales reaching the Court every day of flooding,
sometimes in areas that hadn't flooded in a hundred years or more. This
was bound to have an effect on the Councillors. They worked like heroes at all
hours to cope with emergencies, but the grim atmosphere made them quarrelsome
and inclined to snipe at each other at the least opportunity. Every Council
session meant at least one major fight and two ruffled tempers to be soothed.
The names they called each other would have been ample cause for dueling
anywhere else. At
least they treated Talia with that same lack of respect—she came in for her
share of sniping, and that was a positive sign, that she had been accepted as
one of them, and their equal. The
sniping-among-equals was something she could cope with, though it was
increasingly difficult to keep her temper when everyone around her was losing
theirs. Far harder to deal with in any rational way were Orthallen's 69 70 Mercedes
Lackey subtle
attempts at undercutting her authority. Clever, those attempts were;
frighteningly clever. He never said anything that anyone could directly
construe as criticism; no, what he did was hint—oh, so politely, and at every
possible opportunity—that perhaps she was a bit young and inexperienced for her
post. That she might be going overboard because of the tendency of youth to see
things always in black and white. That she surely meant well, but. . . and so
on. It made Talia want to scream and bite something. There was no way to
counteract him except to be even more reasonable and mild-tempered than he. She
felt as if she were standing on sand, and he was the flood tide washing it out
from under her. Things
were not going all that well between herself and Kris either. "Goddess,
Talia," Kris groaned, slumping back into his chair. "He's/usf doing
what he sees as his duty!" Talia
counted to ten, slowly, counted the Library bookshelves, then counted the rings
of the knothole in the table in front of her. "He was claiming / was
overreacting at the same time that Lady Kester was calling Hyron a pompous
peahrain at the top of her lungs!" "Well—" "Kris,
he's said the same damn things every Council session and at least three times
during each session! Every time it looks as if the other Councillors are
beginning to listen to what I'm saying, he trots out the same speech!" She
shoved her chair away from the table, and began pacing restlessly, up and down
the length of the vacant Library. This had been a particularly bad session, and
the muscles of her neck felt as tight as bridge cables. "I
just can't see* anything at all sinister in my uncle's behavior—" "Dammit,
Kris—" "Talia
he's old, he's set in his ways—you're frighteningly young to him, and likely to
usurp his position! Have some pity on the man, he's only human!" "So
what am I?" She struggled not to shout, but the argument was giving her a
headache. "I'm supposed to like what he's doing?" ARROW*
FALL 71 "He's
not doing anything!" Kris scowled, as if he had a headache, too.
"Frankly, I think you're hearing insult and seeing peril that isn't there." Talia
turned abruptly, and stared at him, tight-lipped, fists clenched. "In that
case," she replied, after a dozen slow, careful breaths of dust-laden air,
"maybe I should take my irrational fantasies elsewhere." "But—" She
turned again and all but ran down the staircase. He called something after her,
in a distressed voice. She ignored it, and ran on. So now
they didn't talk about much of anything anymore. And Talia missed that; missed
the closeness they used to have, the way they used to be able to confide their
deepest secrets to each other. Truth to be told, she missed that more than the
physical side of their relationship—though now that she was no longer used to
being celibate she missed that, too. . . . Then
there was her relationship—or more accurately, lack of one—with Dirk. His
behavior was baffling in the extreme; one moment he would seem determined to
get her alone somewhere, the next, he shied away from even being in the same
room. He would be lurking in the background everywhere she went for a day or
two, then just as abruptly would vanish, only to reappear in a few days. Half
the time he seemed determined to throw Kris at her, the other half, equally
determined to block Kris from getting anywhere near her— Talia
saw her elusive quarry leaning on the fence surrounding Companion's Field. He
was staring, broodingly, off into the far distance. For a wonder, it wasn't
raining, although the sky was a dead, dull gray and threatening to pour any
moment. "Dirk?" He
jumped, whipped about, and stared at her with wide, startled eyes. "W-what
are you doing here?" he asked, somewhat ungraciously, his back pressed
hard against the fence as if 72 Mercedea
Lackey that
barrier was all that was keeping him from running away. "The
same as you, probably," Talia replied, forcing herself not to snap at him.
"Looking for my Companion, and maybe somebody to ride with." "In
that case, shouldn't you be looking for Kris?" he asked, his expression
twisted as if he'd swallowed something very unpleasant. She
couldn't think of a reply, and chose not to answer him. Instead she moved to
the fence herself, and stood with one booted foot on the first railing and her
arms folded along the top, mimicking the pose he had held when she saw him. "Talia—"
He took one step toward her—she heard his boot squelch in the wet grass—then
stopped. "I—Kris is—a very valuable friend. More than friend. I—" She
waited for him to say what was on his mind, hoping that this time he'd finish
it. Maybe if she didn't look at him, he'd be able to speak his piece. "Yes?"
she prompted when the silence went on so long she'd almost suspected him of
sneaking away. She turned to catch his blue, blue eyes staring almost
helplessly at her before he hastily averted them. "I—I've
got to go—" he gasped, and fled. She was
ready to scream with frustration. This was the fourth time he'd pulled this
little trick, starting to say something, then running away. And with things
somewhat at odds between herself and Kris, she really didn't feel as if she
wanted to ask Kris to help. Besides, she hadn't seen Kris much since their last
little set-to. With an
exasperated sigh she Mindcalled Rolan. They both needed exercise—and he, at
least, would be a sympathetic listener. Kris
was avoiding Talia on purpose. When
he'd first returned, his uncle had taken tune out to give him familial
greetings; that was only to be expected. But Orthallen lately seemed to be
going out of his way to speak to his nephew two or three times a week, and the
conversation somehow always turned to Talia. ARROW'S
FALL 73 Not by
accident, either. Kris was mortally sure of that. Nor were they pleasant
conversations, though they seemed to be on the surface. Kris was beginning to
get an impression that Orthallen was looking for something— weaknesses in the
Queen's Own, perhaps. Certainly, whenever he happened to say something
complimentary about Talia, his uncle would always insinuate a "Yes, but
surely . . ." in a rather odd and confiding tone. Like
the latest example. He'd
been on his way back from a consultation with Elcarth about some of his latest
Farseeing pupils, when Orthallen had just "happened" to intercept
him. "Nephew!"
Orthallen had hailed him, "I have word from your brother—" "Is
anything wrong?" Kris had asked anxiously. The family holdings were in the
heart of some of the worst flooding in a generation. "Does he need me at
home? I'll be free in a few weeks—" "No,
no; things are far from well, but it's not an emergency yet. T^e smallholders
have lost about a tenth of their fields, in total; obviously some are worse off
than others. They've lost enough livestock that the spring births are barely
going to make up for the losses—oh, and your brother lost one of his Shin'a'in
cross-bred stallions." "Damn—he's
not going to find another one of those in a hurry. Are we needing any outside
help?" "Not
yet. There's enough grain in storage to make up for the losses. But he wanted
you to know exactly how things stood, so that you wouldn't worry." "Thank
you, uncle. I appreciate your taking the time to let me know." "And
is your young protegee settling in, do you think?" he then asked smoothly.
"What with all the emergencies that have come up lately, I wonder if she
has more than she can cope with, sometimes." "Havens,
Uncle, I'm the last one to ask," Kris had said with a little impatience.
"I hardly see her anymore. We both have duties, and those duties don't let
us cross paths too often." "Oh?
Somehow I had gotten the impression that you 74 Mercedes
Lackey Heralds
always knew what was happening in each others' lives." Kris
really hadn't been able to think of a response to that; at least not a
respectful one. "I
only asked because I thought she looked a bit careworn, and I thought perhaps
she might have said something to you," Orthallen continued, his cold eyes
boring into Kris'. "She has a heavy burden of responsibility for one so
young." "She's
equal to it, Uncle. I've told you that before. Rolan wouldn't have Chosen her
otherwise." "Well,
I'm sure you're correct," Orthallen replied, sounding as if he meant the
opposite. "Those rumors of her using her Gift to manipulate—" "Were
absolutely unfounded. I told you that. She has been so circumspect in even
reading others that she practically has to be forced to it—" Kris broke
off, wondering if he was saying too much. "Ah,"
Orthallen said after a moment. "That is a comfort. The child seems to have
a wisdom out of keeping with her years. However, if she should feel she's
having problems, I would appreciate it if you'd tell me. After all, as the
Queen's eldest Councillor, I should be aware of possible trouble. I'd be only
to happy to help her in any way I can, but she still seems to be carrying over
that grudge from her student days, and I doubt she'd ever give me the correct
time of day, much less confide in me." Kris
had mumbled something noncommittal, and his uncle had gone away outwardly
satisfied—but the whole encounter had left a very bad taste in Kris's mouth. He
was regretting now the fact that he'd confided to his uncle in one of those
early conversations his belief that Talia and Dirk were lifebonded; the man had
seized on the tidbit as avidly as a hawk on a mouse. But at the same time, he
didn't want to have to face Talia herself with these suspicions awakened; she'd
get it out of him, no doubt of it. And while she wouldn't say, "I told you
so," she had a particular look of lowered eyelids and a quirk at one
corner of her mouth that spoke volumes, and he wasn't in the mood to deal with
it. ARROWS
FALL 75 Besides,
it was only too possible that she'd infected him with her paranoia. If only
he could be sure of that—but he couldn't. So he avoided her. Dirk
straddled an old, worn chair in his room, staring into the darkness beyond the
windowpane. It was nearly dusk—and as black as midnight out there. He felt as
if he were being torn into little bits. He
couldn't make up his mind what he wanted to do; part of him wanted to battle
for Talia by all means fair or foul, part of him felt that he should be
unselfish and give Kris a clear field with her, part of him was afraid to find
out what she thought of all this, and a fourth part of him argued that he
really didn't want any commitments to females anyway—look what the last one had
gotten him. The
last one. Lady Naril—oh, gods. He
stared at the sullen flickers of lightning in the heart of the clouds above the
trees. It had been so long ago— and not long enough ago. Gods, I
was such a fool. He and
Kris had been posted to the Collegium, teaching their specialties—Fetching and
Farsight. It had been his first experience of Court and Collegium as a full
Herald. / was a
stupid sheep looking for a wolf. Not
that he hadn't had his share of dalliances, even if he'd always had to play
second to Kris. He hadn't minded, not really. But he'd been feeling a little
lost; Kris had been born to Court circles, and flowed back into them
effortlessly. Dirk had been left on the outskirts. Then
Naril had introduced herself to him— /
thought she was so pure, so innocent. She seemed so alone in the great Court,
so eager for a friend. And she was so young—so very beautiful. How
could he have known that in her sixteen short years she'd had more men in her
thrall than a rosebush had thorns? And how
could he have guessed she intended to use him to snare Kris? Gods, I
was half out of my mind with love for her. 76 Mercedes
Lackey He
stared at the reflection in the window, broodingly. / saw only what / wanted to
see—that's for certain. Lost most of my few wits. But
there had been just enough sense left to him that when she'd asked him to
arrange a private meeting between herself and his friend, he'd hidden where he
could overhear her. The artificial grotto in the garden that she had chosen was
secluded—but had ample hiding space in the bushes to either side of the
entrance. Dirk
probed at the aching memory as if it were a sore tooth, taking twisted pleasure
from the pain. / could hardly believe my ears when I heard her issuing Kris an
ultimatum: come to her bed until she tired of him, or she would make my life a
living hell. He had
burst in on them, demanding to know what she meant, crazy-wild with anger and
pain. Kris
had slipped away. And Naril turned to him with utter hatred in her enormous
violet eyes. When she'd finished what she had to say to him, he'd wanted to
kill himself. Again
he stared at his reflection. Not everything she said was wrong— he told himself
sadly. What woman with any sense would want me? Especially with Kris in reach.
. . . It had
been a long time before he'd stopped wanting to die—and a longer time before
life became something he enjoyed instead of something he endured. Now—was
it all happening again? He was
doing his level best to come to terms with himself, and being stuck at the
Collegium with Talia in sight at least once a day wasn't helping. The whole
situation was comical, but somehow when he tried to laugh it off, his
"mirth" had a very hollow sound even to his ears. He had thrown
himself into his work, only to find that he was watching for her constantly out
of the corner of his eye. He couldn't help himself; it was like scratching a
rash. He knew he shouldn't, but he did it anyway, and it gave him a perverse
sort of satisfaction. And even though it troubled him to watch her, it troubled
him more not to. Gods,
gods—what am I going to do? ARROW'S
FALL The
reflection gave him no answer. 77 After
three weeks of rain, the weather had cleared for a bit. To Talia's great
relief, things were emotionally on a more even keel, at least where the tempers
of Court and Collegium were concerned. The evening had been warm enough to
leave windows open, and the fresh air had made a gratifying change in the
stuffiness of her quarters. Talia was fast asleep when the Death Bell shattered
the peace of the night with its brazen tolling. It woke
her from a nightmare of flame, fear, and agony. That nightmare had held her in a
grip so tenacious that she expected to open her eyes to find her own room an
inferno. She clutched the blankets to her chest, as she slowly became aware
that the air she breathed was cool and scented with night mist, not
smoke-filled and choking. It took several moments for her to clear her mind of
the dream enough to think clearly again, and when at last she did, it was to
realize that the dream and the Death Bell's tolling had related causes. Fire—her
nails bit into her palms as she clenched her hands. When fire was involved, the
Herald most likely to be involved with it was—Griffon! Dear gods—let it not be
Griffon, not her year-mate, not her friend— But as
she stared unseeing into the darkness and forced herself into a calmer frame of
mind, she knew without doubt that it was not Griffon, after all. The name and
the face that hazed into her now-receptive mind were those of a student of the
year following hers—Christa, whom she remembered as one of Dirk's pupils in the
Gift of Fetching. And in
many ways, this was an even greater tragedy, for Christa had still been on her
internship assignment. When
the pieces were all assembled from the various fragments the Heralds at the
Collegium had "read" when the Death Bell began ringing, the result
was almost as confusing as having no information at all. This much alone they
knew; Christa was dead; the Herald assigned as her counselor, the cheerfully
lascivious Destria, was 78 Mercedes
Lackey badly
hurt, and the cause had something to do both with raiders and a great fire. The
information they received from the Heralds stationed with the Healing Temple to
which Destria had been carried was nearly as fragmentary. Their Gifts of
Mindspeech weren't nearly as strong as Kyril's or Sher-rill's. But they made it
plain that Destria needed more help than they could provide—and that there was
urgent need of a different kind of aid. They were sending Destria back to
Healer's Collegium and the Palace, and with her would come clarification. Within
the week they came; one uninjured Herald, Destria (a pitiful thing carried on a
titter swung between two Companions, one of them Destria's Soft), and a
battered and bruised farmer whose clothing still bore the smoke stains and ash
of a fire. All three of them had to have traveled day and night with scarcely a
pause to rest to reach the capital so quickly. Selenay
called the Council into immediate session, and the petitioner came before them.
He sagged wearily into the chair they set for him, his eyes sunken deeply into
their sockets, his hair so full of ash it was hard to tell what color it was.
It was plain he had wasted not even a single hour, but had gotten on with the
journey without taking time for his own comfort. And the tale he told, of
well-armed, organized raiders, and the near-massacre of everyone in his town,
was enough to chill the blood. They
had given him a seat, since he was plainly too weary to stand for very long,
and he seemed like an omen of doom, sitting before the Council Table, both
hands bandaged to the elbow. The taint of smoke had so permeated his clothing
that it was carried even to the Councillors, and the smell of it brought his
message home with terrible force. "It
was slaughter, pure and simple,*' he told the Council in a voice roughened by
the smoke. "And we walked into it like silly sheep. Up until this spring
we've had so much problem with brigands, little bands of them, pecking away at
us, that we'd come to expect them, like spring floods. Then, when they all
vanished this winter— gods, you'd think we'd have had the sense to realize ARROWS
FALL 79 something
was up. But we didn't; we just thought they'd gone off to richer pickings. Ah,
fools, fools and blind!" He
dropped his face into his hands for a moment, and when he lifted it again,
there were tears on his cheeks from eyes already red. "They'd gotten
together, you see; one of the wolves had finally proved the strongest, and
they'd gotten together. We'd prided ourselves on having put the village in an
unassailable valley; sheer rock to our back and sides, and only one narrow pass
that let into it. We couldn't be starved or forced out from thirst; we had our
own wells, and plenty of food stockpiled. Well, they had an answer to that. A
handful of them killed the sentries, and poisoned the dogs that patrolled the
heights, then rained fire arrows down on the village by night. We build with
wood and thatch, mostly; the buildings went up like pitch torches. The rest
waited outside the pass, and picked off those of us that got as far as the
cleft. Have you ever seen rabbits running before a grass fire? That was us—and
they were the hungry wolves waiting for dinner to leap into their jaws. Men
I've known all my life I watched getting their legs shot out from underneath
them. Children hardly old enough to be wearing knives, too—even graybeards and
grannies. Anybody likely to be able to take up a weapon. They shot to cripple,
not to kill; dead mouths can't tell where they've hid their little treasures,
y'see. A good half of those they shot may never walk right again. A good
quarter bled to death where they lay. And a full quarter of the children burned
to death in the houses they set fire to." A muted
murmur of horror crept around the table; Lady Kester hid her own face in her
hands. A beam
of late afternoon sunlight spotlighted the speaker as it poured in through the
high windows. It touched him with a clear gold that made his eyes seem even
more like burned-out pits in his face. "Your Heralds were not far;
overnighting in a Waystation, I think. How they knew our plight, I'll never
know—must've been more of your magic, I guess. They came charging up on the
backs of the raiders, two of 'em like a blessed army. Those white horses—the
Companions—they were damn near an army by themselves. They broke up the 90 Mercedes
Lackey ambush
at the head of the pass, got them scattered off into the woods for a bit. Then
the older one started getting us organized, got us clearing the snipers off the
heights; the younger one took off into the burning buildings, hearing cries and
looking for somebody to save, I guess. The older one didn't even notice she was
gone— until—" He
swallowed hard, and his hands were shaking. "I heard screaming, worse than
before; the older Herald, she jerked like she'd been shot. She shouted at us to
take the brigands before they got themselves over their fright, then she headed
into the fires herself; I followed-—my hands were too burned to hold a weapon,
but I thought I might be able to help with the fires. The younger one had
gotten trapped on the second floor of one of the houses; I was right behind the
older one and I could see her against the fire. Calm as you please, she's
tossing younglings out to their parents. At least I think she was tossing 'em—she'd
have a little one in her hands one moment, then the next, his mum or dad would
be holding it. The older one ran up, started shouting at her to jump. She just
shook her head, and turned back one more time—the floor collapsed then. That
damn horse of hers crashed through the wall and went in after her—the other
Herald was right on his heels. She'd no sooner cleared the door when the whole
roof caved in. We got her out, but the other—" One of
Selenay's pages brought him wine, and he drank it gratefully, his teeth
chattering against the rim of the tankard. "That's
what happened. For us, we beat 'em back, but we didn't get more than a handful
of them compared to the numbers we know they've got. They're comin' back, we
know they are. 'Specially since they must know the Heralds are—gone. We lost
hah* the town—most of the able-bodied. I was about the only one that could make
the ride here. We need help, Majesty, m'lords—we need it bad-" "You'll
have that help," Selenay pledged, her eyes hard and black with anger as
she stood. 'This isn't the first incursion of these bastards we've heard of,
but it's ARROWS
FALL 81 by far
and away the worst. It's obvious to me that there is no way we can expect you
folk to handle brigands as organized as these are. Lord Marshal, and good sir,
if you'll come with me we'll mobilize a company of the Guard." She looked
inquiringly at the rest of the Council. Lady
Cathan spoke for all of them. "Whatever is needed, Highness. You and the
Lord Marshal are the best judge of what that is. We'll stand surety for
it." Talia
nodded, with all the other Councillors. What Setenay had told the man was true;
for the past few months there had been tales of bandits growing organized in
Gyrefalcon's Marches. Sporadic raids had occurred before this—but never had the
brigands dared to put an entire town to the sword! It was obviously more than
local militia could handle; the entire Council was agreed on that. Talia
slipped away then, knowing with certainty that Selenay did not need her at the
moment, and that another most definitely did. The tug at her was unmistakable.
She opened the door to the Council chamber just enough to slip through—and once
she wa§ out into the cool, dark hallway, broke into a run. She ran
out through the old Palace and passed the double doors of Herald's
Collegium—then down the echoing main hall, heading for the side door and for
Healer's. She felt the pull of a soul in agony as clearly as if she were being
called by voice. She all but collided with Devan, who was on his way to look
for her. "I
might have known you'd know," he said gratefully, hitching up his green
robes so that he could run with her. "Talia, she's fighting us, and we
can't get past her shielding to do even the simplest painblocks. She blames
herself for Christa, and all she wants to do now is die. Rynee can't do
anything with her." "That's
what I thought; Lord and Lady, the guilt is so thick I can almost see it. Well,
let's see if 1 can get through to her." They
had accomplished a certain amount of Healing at the site of the battle, while
Destria was still unconscious; enough to enable moving her safely. She still
was a most unpretty sight, lying on a special pad in one of the rooms 82 Mercedes
Lackey reserved
for burn patients. The room itself was bare stone; scrubbed spotless twice a
day when unoccupied, and not so much as a speck of dust was ever allowed to
settle there. The one window was sealed tight so that nothing could blow in.
Everything that was brought in was removed as soon as it was no longer needed,
and scalded. It was
a tribute to the onsite Healers that Destria was still among the living. The
last person Talia had seen with burns like hers had been Vostel, who had taken
the full fury of an angry firebird on his fragile flesh. Where her burns had
been relatively light—though the skin was red, puffed, and blistering—she was
unbandaged. But her arms and hands were wrapped in special poultices of herbs
and the thinnest and most fragile of tanned rabbit and calfskin, and Talia knew
that beneath those bandages the skin was gone, and the flesh left raw. They had
laid her on a pallet of lambskin, tanned with the wool on; the fibers would
cushion her burned skin and prevent too much pressure from being exerted on it.
Talia knelt at the head of the pallet and rested both her hands on Destria's
forehead. Destria's face and head were the only portions of her that were
relatively untouched. As Talia reached into the whirlwind of pain, delirium,
and guilt with her Gift, she knew that this was likely to be the hardest such
fight she'd ever faced. Guilt,
black and full of despair, surrounded Talia from all directions. Pain, physical
and mental, lanced through the guilt like red lightning. Talia knew her first
priority was to find out why the guilt existed in the first place, and where it
was coming from— That
was easy enough; she simply lowered her shielding a fraction more, and let
herself be drawn in where the negative emotions were the thickest. The
fading core that was Destria spun an ever-tightening cocoon of bleakness around
herself. Talia reached for that cocoon with a softly glowing mental
"hand" and withered it until that which was Destria stood cringing
before her. Talia
paid no heed to her attempts at escape, but drew ARROWS
FALL 83 her
into a rapport in which nothing was hidden; not from her—and not from Destria.
And she let Destria read her as she strove to begin the Healing of the other
Herald's mental hurts. I
failed— that was the most overwhelming. They counted on me, and I failed. But
there was something more, something that kept the guilt feeding on itself until
Destria loathed her own being. And Talia found it, hiding underneath,
festering. And I failed because I wanted something for me. I failed because I
was selfish; I don't deserve my Whites—I deserve to die. This
was something Talia was only too familiar with; and was something Rynee
wouldn't understand. Healers were firm believers in a little honest
selfishness; it kept a person sane and healthy. Heralds, though—well, Heralds
were supposed to be completely unselfish, totally devoted to duty. That was
nonsense, of course; Heralds were only people. But sometimes they started to
believe in that nonsense, and when something went wrong, because of their
natures, the first people they tended to blame were themselves. So now
Talia had to prove to Destria that there was nothing wrong with being a Herald
and human. No small task, since Destria's guilt was akin to doubts she shared about
herself. How
often had she berated herself for wanting a little comer of life to call her
own—some time when she didn't have to be a Herald—when she had been so tired of
having to think first of others before taking the smallest action? How many times
had she yearned for a little time to be lazy, a chance for a bit of privacy—and
then felt guilty because she had? And
hadn't she had been ready to assume that she was guilty of unconsciously using
her Empathy to manipulate others? Hadn't
she been angry enough to strangle someone more than once, and then been angry
at herself for giving in to the weakness of rage? Oh, she
understood Destria's self-loathing, only too well. 84 Mercedes
Lackey Rynee
and the rest of the Healers watched soberly, sensing the battle Talia fought,
though (except for the perspiration beading Talia's brow) there were no outward
signs of a struggle. They all remained in the same positions they had first
taken as the shadows cast through the window lengthened almost imperceptibly
and the light slowly faded; and still there was no outward indication of
success or failure. Then,
after the first half-hour, Rynee whispered to Devan, "I think she's
getting somewhere; Destria threw me out after the first few minutes and
wouldn't let me in again." When a
full hour had passed, Talia sighed, then carefully broke her physical contact
with the other Herald, and slumped with exhaustion, her hands lying limply on
her thighs. "Go
ahead; I've got her convinced for now. She won't fight you at the moment." As she
spoke, the waiting Healers converged on Destria tike worker-bees on an injured
queen. Rynee, whose Gift of Healing was (like Talia's) for minds rather than
bodies, helped Talia to her feet. "Why
couldn't / get through to her?" she asked plaintively. "Simple;
I'm a Herald, you're not," Talia said, edging past the Healers and out
into the hall. "She reacted to you the way you would react to a nonHealer
trying to tell you that a gut-stab was nothing to worry about. Gods, I'm tired!
And I'll have it all to do again tomorrow, or she'll fight you again. And then,
when I finally convince her permanently that it wasn't her fault, I'll have to
convince her she isn't going to revolt men with—the way she'll look when you're
done. And that the scarring isn't some punishment set on her for being a bit
randy," "I
was afraid of that." Rynee bit her lip. "And she is going to scar; I
can't tell you how badly yet, but there's no getting around it. Her face wasn't
touched, but the rest of her—some of it isn't going to be at all pretty. The
only burn victim I've ever heard of that was as bad was—" ARROVTSFALL 85 Despite
her weariness, Talia's eyes lighted when she saw an idea begin to form behind
Rynee's frown. "Out with it, milady—you've the same Gift as I have, and if
you've gotten a notion it's probably going to work." She paused in the
hallway and leaned against the wood-paneled wall; Rynee rubbed the bridge of
her long nose with her finger. "Vostel—what
does he do now? Could he be recalled here for a while?" she asked finally,
hope in her cloud-gray eyes. "Relay
at the Fallflower Healing Temple; and yes, anyone on relay work can be
replaced. What are you thinking of?" "That
he'll be the best 'medicine' for her; he went through it all himself. He knows
how it hurts, and when it'll stop, and how you have to force yourself to work
through the pain if you intend to get the full use of your limbs back. And he's
a Herald, so she'll believe what he says. Besides all that, despite the old
scars he's still a better-than-passable-looking man. And he doesn't believe in
the fates dealing out arbitrary punishments for a little healthy
hedonism." Talia
chuckled in spite of herself. "Oh, very good! If we have him at her side
coaxing and encouraging, he'll do half our work for us! You're right about his
beliefs, too. All I had to do was keep reassuring him that the pain would end,
and that he wasn't being a coward and a whiner for occasionally wanting to give
up. I've no doubt they'll find each other quite congenial when Destria's back
to something like her old self and her old appetites. I'll see Kyril and get
Vostel sent here as soon as he can be replaced; he'll be here by the time she
starts to need him." Talia
moved away from the wall and stumbled as her knees wobbled a little. They had
only gotten a few feet down the hall, and already her exhaustion was
threatening to overwhelm her. Rynee steered her toward a soft and
comfortable-looking padded bench, one of many placed at intervals along the
walls, for Healers were apt to catch oddments of rest wherever and whenever
they could. 86 Mercedes
Lackey "And
you—you get yourself down onto that couch and take a short nap. I'll wake you,
but if you don't take some recovery time you won't be of any use to any of us.
You know the saying—never argue with a Healer—" "And
I never do!" "See
that you keep it that way." About a
week later Talia was on her way from the Audience Chamber to her own room to
change for arms practice, and her mood was a somber one. The audiences were no
longer dull, and that was unfortunate. More and more often those seeking
audience with the Queen were from Gyrefalcon's Marches reporting the
depredations of what was obviously a small army of bandits. It was the wild and
rocky character of the countryside that had let them organize without anyone
realizing it; that same wild countryside enabled them to vanish before the
Guard could pin them down. Orthallen
was using the existence of these bandits as a political tool—a tactic that
disgusted Talia, considering the suffering that they were causing, not to
mention that they were preying on some of the lands supposedly in his
jurisdiction. She had
just endured one such session. There
were six Heralds out there now—along with the Guard company Selenay had sent.
The Heralds were organizing the common folk to their own defense, since the
Guard could not be everywhere at once. One of those Heralds, Herald Patris,
sent a messenger that had only arrived today. "
"They seem to know exactly where the Guard is at all times/ Patris had
written. 'They strike, and are away before we can do anything. They know these
hills of stone and the caves that honeycomb them better than we guessed; I
suspect them of traveling a great deal underground, which would certainly
answer the question of how they move about without being spotted. At this
point, we are beyond saving the livestock or the harvest; Majesty, I must be
frank with you. It will be all we can do just to save the lives of these
people. And I must tell you worse yet—having stripped them of all possessions, ARROWS
FALL 87 the
bastards have taken to carrying off the only thing these folk have left. Their
children.' " "Great
Goddess!" Lady Wyrist had exclaimed. "I'm
on it, Majesty,'* Lady Cathan had said grimly at almost the same moment.
"They won't get children out past my Guildsmen—not after that slaver
scandal—with your permission?" Selenay
had nodded distractedly, and Lady Cathan sprinted from the room in a swirl of
colorful brocades. "Majesty,"
Orthallen said then, "It is as I have been saying. We need a larger
standing army—and we need more autonomy in local hands. If I had been given two
or three companies of the Guard and the power to order them, this emergency
would never have become the disaster it is!" Then
the debate had broken out—yet again. The Council had split on this issue of
granting power at the local level and increasing the size of the Guard; split
about equally. On Orthallen's side were Lord Gartheser, Lady Wyrist, Bard
Hyron, Father Aldon and the Seneschal. Selenay—who did not want the size of the
army increased, because to do so would mean drafted levies and possibly
impressment—preferred to keep the power where it was, with the Council, and was
lobbying for hiring professional mercenaries to augment the existing troops.
Backing her were Talia, Kyrit, Elcarth, Healer My rim, and the Lord Marshal.
Lady Kester, Lord Gildas, and Lady Cathan remained undecided. They weren't
especially pleased with the notion of foreign troops, but they also weren't
much in favor of hauling folk away from their lands and trades either. Talia
was pondering the state of things when her sharp ears caught the sound of a
muffled sob. Without hesitation she unshielded enough to determine the source,
and set out to find out was wrong. Her
sharp ears led her into a seldom-used hallway near the Royal Library, one lined
with alcoves which could contain statues or suits of plate-mail or other large
works of art, but which were mostly vacant and screened off by velvet curtains.
This was a favored place for courting 88 Mercedes
Lackey couples
during great revels, but the lack of seating tended to confine assignations to
those conducted standing. She had
a little problem finding the source of the sob, as it was hiding itself behind
the curtains in one of those alcoves along this section of hall. Only a tiny
sniffle gave her the clue as to which of three it was. She
drew the heavy velvet curtain aside quietly; curled up on a cushion purloined
from a chair in the audience chamber was a child. He was
a little boy of about seven or eight; his eyes were puffy from crying, his face
was smeared where he'd scrubbed tears away with dirty fingers, and from the
look of him, he hadn't a friend in the world. She thought that he must have
been adorable when he wasn't crying, a dark-haired, dark-eyed cherub; the
uniform Selenay's pages wore, sky-blue trimmed in dark blue, suited his fair
complexion. He looked up when the curtain moved, and his face was full of woe
and dismay, his pupils dilated in the half-light of the hall. "Hello,"
Talia said, sitting on her heels to bring herself down to his level. "You
look like you could use a friend. Homesick?" A fat
tear trickled slowly down one cheek as he nodded. He looked very young to have
been made one of Selenay's pages; she wondered if he weren't a fosterling. "I
was, too, when I got here. There weren't any girls my age when I first came, just
boys. Where are you from?" "G-g-gyrefalcon's
Marches," he gulped, looking as if her sympathy had made him long for a
comfortable shoulder to weep on, but not daring to fling himself on a strange
adult. "Can
I share that pillow?" she asked, solving the problem for him. When he
moved aside, she settled in with one arm comfortingly around his shoulders,
projecting a gentle aura of sympathy. That released his inhibitions, and he
sobbed into the velveteen of her jerkin while she soothingly stroked his hair.
He didn't need her Gift, really. All he needed was a friend and a chance to cry
himself out. While she gentled him, she pummeled her memory for who he could
be. ARROW'S
FALL 89 "Are
you Robin?" she asked finally, when the tears had slowed a bit. At bis
shaky affirmative she knew she'd identified him correctly. Robin's parents, who
held their land of Lord Orthallen, had prevailed on Orthallen to take their
only child to the safest haven they knew— Court. Understandable, even laudable,
but poor Robin didn't see their reasoning. He only knew that he was alone for
the first time in his young life. "Haven't
you found any friends yet?" Robin
shook his head and clutched her sleeve as he looked up to read her expression.
When he saw that she was still sympathetic and encouraging he took heart enough
to explain. "They—they're
all bigger an' older. They call me 'tag-along' an' they laugh at me ... an' I
don't tike their games anyway. I—I can't run as fast or keep up with 'em." **Oh?"
She narrowed her eyes a little hi thought, trying to remember just what it was
she'd seen the pages playing at. You took them so for granted, they were almost
invisible—then she had it, "You
don't like playing war and castles?" That was understandable enough, when
fighting threatened his parents. Hie
flicker of the oil-lamp opposite their alcove showed her his sad, lost eyes.
"I—I don't know how to fight. Da said I wasn't old enough to learn yet.
That's all they want to do—an' anyway, I'd rather r-r-read—but all my books are
still at h-h-home." And if
she knew the Seneschal, he'd strictly forbidden the pages to enter the Palace
Library. Not too surprising, seeing as most of them would have played catapults
using the furniture, with the books as ammunition. She hugged his slight
shoulders, and made a quick decision. "Would
you like to be able to read and take lessons at the Herald's Collegium instead
of with the pages?" Selenay had all of her pages schooled, but for most of
them it was a plague to be endured or a nuisance to be avoided. He nodded, his
eyes round with surprise. "Well, my master Alberich is going to have to
wait a tittle; you and I are going to go see Dean Elcarth." She 90 Lackey rose
and offered her hand, he scrambled to his feet and clutched it. Fortunately
there were plenty of other youngsters being schooled at die Collegia—though few
were as young as this one. They were the unaffiliated students—the
"Blues" —who belonged to no Collegium, but were attending classes
along with the Bardic, Healer and Heraldic students. They, too, wore uniforms,
of a pale blue, and not unlike the page's uniform. A good many of them were
well-born brats, but there were others that were well-intentioned—those
studying to be builders, architects, or scholars in many disciplines. They'd be
well pleased to welcome Robin into their ranks, and they'd probably adopt him
as a kind of mascot. Talia knew she'd have no trouble in arranging with Selenay
for this little one to spend most of his time at the Collegium when he wasn't
standing his duty—and at his age, his "duty" was probably less than
an hour or two a day. She was pretty certain she'd be able to convince Elcarth
as well. She was
right. When she took the child to Elcarth's cramped office, piled high with
books, the Dean seemed to take to Robin immediately; Robin certainly did to
him. She left him with Elcarth, the gray-haired Herald explaining some of the
classes, Robin snuggled trustingly against his chair, both of them oblivious to
the dust and clutter about them. It seemed that she'd unwittingly brought
together a pair of kindred spirits. So it
proved; she met Robin from time to time thereafter—once or twice when he'd
unthinkingly sought her out as a never-failing wellspring of comfort for homesickness,
the rest of the time trudgingly merrily about the Collegium, his arms loaded
with a pile of books almost as tall as he—and more than once, in the Library,
with Elcarth. Once she found both of them bent over an ancient tome of history
written in an archaic form of the language that little Robin couldn't read
himself, but just knew Elcarth could—and said so. He was convinced that Elcarth
was the original fount of all knowledge. He was bringing Elcarth all his
questions, as naturally as breathing. Until
now Talia frequently found both of them immersed in something so dry that she
needed a drink just thinking about it! Kindred souls, indeed. Four Dirk
sprawled in his favorite chair in his quarters, a battered old piece of
furniture long ago faded to indeterminate beige, but one that was as
comfortable as an old boot. He wished that he could be as comfortable inside as
he was outside. He
stared at the half-empty glass in his hand morosely. He shouldn't be drinking
on such a fine night. He was drinking far too much of late, and he knew it. But
what's a man to do when he can't sleep? When all he thinks of is a certain pair
of soft brown eyes? When he doesn't know whether to betray his own heart or his
best friend? The
only cure for his insomnia was to be found at the bottom of a bottle; so that's
where he usually was at day's end. Of
course the cure had its drawbacks; wretched hangovers, increasingly ill temper,
and the distinct feeling that avoiding problems was the coward's way out. He longed
for a field assignment—oh, gods, to get away from the Collegium and Her! But
nothing of the kind was forth-coming—and anyway, they wouldn't assign anything
to Kris or him until their current batch of students was fully trained in the
use of their Gifts. Their
students—gods, there was another reason to drink. He
finished the glass without even noticing he'd done so, eyes burning with unshed
tears. Poor
little Christa. He wondered if anyone else had figured out she had been using
her Gift to save the little ones in that fire. 91 92 Mercedes
Lackey Any
tune I close my eyes, I can almost see her— The
self-conjured vision was horrific. He could picture her only too easily;
surrounded by an inferno, steadfastly concentrating with all her soul—because
moving anything alive by means of the Fetching Gift was hard; hard and
dangerous—while the building went up in flames around her. And it was all his
fault that she'd sacrificed herself that way. He
raised his glass to his lips, only to discover that it was empty already. I'm
drinking this bottle too fast— And the
way she'd died—it was all his fault. Before
Christa had finished training with him she'd asked him if it was possible to
move living things by Fetching. Anyone else he'd have told "no"—-but
she was so good, and he was so infernally proud of her. So he told her the
truth, and what was more, done what he'd never done before and and showed her
how; how to move live creatures without smothering them, without twisting them
up inside. And he'd told her (gods, how well he remembered telling her) that
when it had to be done, it was far safer to move a living thing from your bands
to where you wanted it to go, than from where it was to your hands. / am
definitely drinking this too fast—the bottle's half empty already. That
was why she'd gone in to send the babies out, not Fetched them out to her. If
only he'd known when he'd taught her what he'd discovered since, researching in
the Library—that under great stress it was often possible for someone with
their Gift to transport themselves short distances. He'd meant to tell her—but
somehow he never found the time. Now
she's dead, horribly, painfully dead, because I "never found the
time." He
shook the bottle, surprised to find it empty already. Oh,
well, there's another where that one came from. He
didn't even have to get up; the second bottle was cooling on the windowsill. He
reached out an unsteady hand and somehow managed to grab the neck of it. He'd
already taken the cork out when he was sober, then stuck ARROWS
FALL 93 ft back
in loosely. If he hadn't, he'd never have gotten the bottle open. Gods,
I'm disgusting. He knew
this was not the way to be handling the problem; that he should be doing what
his heart was telling him to do—find Talia, and let her help him work it all
out. But he couldn't face her. Not like this. / can't
let her see me like this. I can't. She'll think I'm—I'm worse than what Naril
called me. Besides,
if he did go to her, she'd read the rest of what was on his mind, and then what
would he do? Gods, what a tangle he'd gotten himself into. I—I
need her, dammit. But—do I need her more than Kris does? I don't know. I just
don't know. He
couldn't ask Kris for help, not when Kris was the other half of the problem.
And music was no longer a solace, not when every time he played he could hear
her singing, haunting every line. Damn
the woman.' She steals my friend, she steals my music, she steals my peace of
mind-In the next instant he berated himself for even thinking such things. That
wasn't fair, it wasn't her fault. She hadn't the least notion of what she'd
done to him. And so
far as he'd been able to tell, she really hadn't been spending all that much
time with Kris since she'd gotten back. Maybe there was hope for him, after
all. She and Kris surely weren't behaving like lovers. But
what would he do if they were in love? For
that matter, what would he do if they weren't? The
level in the bottle continued to go down as he tried—and failed—to cope. Robin
trotted happily down the hall to the Herald's quarters. He adored the Heralds,
and was always the first to volunteer when someone had a task that would
involve his helping them in any way. In this case it was twice the pleasure,
for the Queen's Own, Herald Talia, had come looking for a page to return some
manuscripts she'd borrowed from Herald Dirk for copying. Robin loved Herald
Talia better than all the others put together— excepting only EIcarth. Heralds
were wonderful, and 94 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
was even more than usually wonderful; she always had time to talk, she never
told him he was being a baby (like Lord Orthallen did) when he was homesick.
His Mama had told him how important Lord Orthallen was, but so far as Robin was
concerned, Talia was worth any twelve Orthallens. He had often wished he could
make her smile the way she could cheer him up. She wasn't looking very happy
lately and anything he could do to make her brighten a little, he would, and
gladly. There
was a swirl of somber robes ahead of him—one of the Great Lords. Maybe even his
own Lord. Robin kept his eyes down as he'd always been told to do. It wasn't
proper for a little boy to gawk at the Great Lords of State, especially not when
that little boy was supposed to be running an errand. If it was Orthallen, it
was important for him to see that Robin was properly doing his duty. So it
was rather a shock, what with the fact that he was watching where he was going
and all, when he tripped and went sprawling face-first, all his scrolls flying
about him. If the
one ahead of him had been a fellow page, he would immediately have suspected
he'd been tripped a-purpose. But a Great Lord could hardly be suspected of a
childish prank like that. The
Great Lord paused just a moment, papers fluttering around his feet, then went
on. Robin kept his eyes down, blushing scarlet in humiliation, and began
collecting them. Now
that was odd. That was very odd. He'd had fourteen scrolls when he'd been sent
on this errand. He knew, because he'd counted them in Talia's presence twice.
Now he had fifteen. And the fifteenth one was sealed, not just rolled up like
the others. He
could have gotten muddled, of course. But he
could almost hear Dean Elcarth's voice in his ear, because he'd asked Elcarth
just this very week what he should do if he was asked to do something that
didn't seem quite right, or if something happened in the course of his duties
that seemed odd. One of the older boys had been sent on a very dubious errand
by one of the ladies of the Court, and there'd been trouble afterward. The ARROWS
FALL 95 page
involved hadn't had the nerve to tell anyone until it was too late, and by then
his memory was all confused. So Robin had asked the wisest person he knew what
he should do if he found himself in a similar case. "Do
it, don't disobey—but remember, Robin," Elcarth had told him,
"remember everything; what happened, who asked you, and when, and why, and
who was with them. It may be that what you're being told to do is perfectly
legitimate. You could have no way of knowing. But if it isn't, you could be the
only person to know the real truth of something. You pages are in a very
special position, you know, people look at you, but they really don't see you.
So keep that in mind, and if anything ever happens around you that seems odd,
remember it; remember the circumstances. You may help someone that way." "Isn't
that being a little like a sneak?" Robin had asked doubtfully. Elcarth
had laughed and ruffled his hair. "If you ask that question, you're in no
danger of becoming one, my little owl. Besides, it's excellent training for
your memory." Very
well then. Robin would remember this. There
was no answer when Robin tapped at Herald Dirk's half-open door. When he peeked
inside, he could see Herald Dirk slumped in a chair at the farther end of the
room by his open window. He seemed to be asleep, so Robin slipped inside, quiet
as a cat, and left the scrolls on his desk. Talia
didn't need a summons that morning; anyone with the vaguest hint of her Gift of
Empathy would have come running to the Queen's side. Emotional turmoil— anger,
fear, worry—was so thick in the air Talia could taste it, bitter and metallic. She
caught the first notes of it as she was dressing, and ran for the royal
chambers as soon as she was decent. The two Guards outside the door looked very
uncomfortable, as if they were doing their level best to be deaf to the
shouting behind the double doors they guarded. Talia tapped once, and cracked
one door open. Selenay
was in her outer chamber, dressed for the day, 96 Mercedes
Lackey but
without her coronet. She was sitting behind her work-table in her
"public" room; there was a sealed scroll on the table before her.
With her were Lord OrthaUen (looking unbearably smug), a very embarrassed Kris,
an equally embarrassed Guardsman, and an extremely angry Dirk. "I don't
give a fat damn how it got there—/ didn't take Ur Dirk was shouting as Talia
glanced at the sentry outside and entered. She shut the door behind her
quickly. Whatever was going on here, the fewer people there were who knew about
it, the better. "Then
why were you trying to hide it?" Orthallen asked smoothly. "I
wasn't trying to hide it, dammit! I was looking for my headache-powders when
this idiot barged in without a by-your-leave!" Dirk did look slightly ill;
pale, with a pain-crease between his brows, his sapphire-blue eyes thoroughly
bloodshot, his straw-blond hair more than usually tangled. "We
have only your word for that." "Since when—" Talia said clearly
and coldly "—has a Herald's word been subject to cross-examination? Your
pardon, Majesty, but what in the Haven's name is going on here?" "I
discovered this morning that some rather sensitive documents were missing/'
Selenay answered, looking outwardly calm, though Talia knew she was anything
but untroubled. "Lord Orthallen instigated a search, and he found them in
Herald Dirk's possession." "I
haven't been anywhere near the Palace wings for the past week! Besides, what
use could I possibly make of the damned things?" Dirk's mental anguish was
so intense that Talia wanted to weep. "Look,
Uncle, you know my quarters are just down the hall from his. I can pledge the fact
that he didn't leave them all last night." "Nephew, I know this man
is your friend." "If I have to be brutally frank, then I will
be," Kris said, flushing an angry and embarrassed red. "Dirk couldn't
have moved anywhere because he wasn't in any shape to move. He was dead drunk
last night, just like he's been every night for the past couple of weeks." ARROWS
FALL 97 Dirk
went almost purple, then deathly white. "So? Since when has inability to
move physically pered anyone with his Gift?" Now it was Kris' turn to
pale. "I
haven't heard an answer to a very good question— Orthallen, what on earth would
Dirk want with those documents?" Talia asked, trying to buy a little time
to think. "They
would put someone hi this Court in a rather indelicate position,"
Orthallen replied, "And let us say that the person is entangled with a
young lady with whom Herald Dirk was at one time very much involved himself.
Their parting was somewhat acrimonious. His motivation could be
complex—revenge, perhaps. Blackmail, perhaps. The Queen and I have been
attempting to keep this situation from escalating into scandal, but if anyone
excepting us saw the contents of these letters, it could throw the entire Court
into an uproar." "I
can't believe I'm hearing a Councillor accuse a Herald of blackmail!"
Talia cried out indignantly. "You
just heard my nephew—his best friend—-say he's been drinking himself insensible
every night for the past few weeks. Does that sound like normal behavior for a
Herald?" Orthallen turned to the Queen. "Majesty, I am not saying
that this young man would have purloined these documents were he in his proper
mind, but I think there is more than enough evidence to indicate that—" "OrthaUen,"
the queen interrupted him, "I—" "Wait
just a moment—don't anyone say anything." Talia held one hand to her
temple, feeling pain stab through her head. The hot press of the emotions of
those around her was so intense she was getting a reaction-headache from trying
to shield herself. "Let's just assume for one moment that Dirk is telling
the absolute truth, shall we?" "But—" "No,
hear me out. Under that assumption, in what way—other than someone deliberately
going into his room and planting them there—could those documents have gotten
where they were found? Dirk, were they there after dinner?" 98 Mercedes
Lackey "Before
I started drinking, you mean?" Dirk replied bitterly. "No. My desk
was perfectly clean, for a change. When I woke up this morning, there were
about a dozen scrolls there, and this was one of them." "Fine.
I know if someone had gone into your room that normally didn't belong there,
you'd have woken up, no matter what. I can tell you that / sent Robin to you
last night with those poems I borrowed. There were exactly fourteen scrolls,
and that wasn't one of them. Now unless Lord OrthaUen would like to accuse me
of purloining those documents—" "I
still had them after you left, Talia," the Queen said, a distinct edge to
her voice. "I
also know that none of the Heralds would wake up for a page entering their room
unless the page deliberately woke them. The little devils are too ubiquitous;
practically invisible, and we all know they're harmless. So, it is possible
that some tune between when Robin left me and when he got to your room, Dirk,
an extra scroll got added to his pile." "Guard,"
Selenay addressed the fourth person in the room, and the Guardsman turned to
the Queen with gratitude suffusing his face, "Fetch Robin, please, would
you? He'll be having breakfast in the page's room about now. Just ask for
him." The
Guard left, plainly happy to be out of the situation. When he
returned with Robin, Talia took the child to one side, away from the others,
and closer to the Queen than to Orthallen. She spoke quietly and encouragingly,
taking the initiative before Orthallen had a chance to try and bully him. "Robin,
I gave you some papers to take to Herald Dirk last night. How many were
there?" "I—"
He looked troubled. "I thought there were fourteen, but—" "But?" "I
fell down, and when I picked them up, there were fifteen. I know, because Dean
Elcarth told me to remember things that were funny, and that was funny." "When
did you fall down?" "Near
the staircase, by the lion tapestry." ARROWS
FALL 99 "Was
anyone else nearby? Did you run into anyone?" "I
wasn't running," he said indignantly. "There was a m'lord,
but—m'lady, Mama always told me not to stare at m'lords, so—I didn't see who it
was." "Bright
Stars!" Orthallen suddenly looked shamefaced— almost
horror-stricken—though somehow Talia had the feeling that he was putting on an
act. Certainly there was nothing she could sense empathically behind his
expression. "That was me—and I had the scroll at the time. Stars, I must
have dropped it, and the child picked it up!" He turned to Dirk, a faint
flush creeping over his face, and spread his hands with an apologetic grimace.
"Herald Dirk, my most profound apologies. Majesty, I hardly know what to
say." "I
think we've all said quite enough for one morning," Selenay replied
tiredly. "Dirk, Kris, I am terribly sorry. I hope you'll all put this down
to an excess of zeal. Talia—" Talia
just shook her head a little, and said, "We can all talk about it when
we've cooled down. Right now is not the time." Selenay
gave her a smile of gratitude as Orthallen used this as a cue to excuse
himself. Talia
was not sorry to see him leave. Selenay
detailed the Guard to escort Robin back, and asked Talia, "Have you had
anything to eat yet? I thought not. Then go do so, and I'll see you in
Council." The
three Heralds left together, the Guardsman right behind them, escorting a
mystified Robin back to the page's quarters. Talia could feel Dirk seething,
and braced herself for the explosion. As soon
as they were a sufficient distance from the Queen's chambers that they were
likely to have no audience, it came. "Thanks
a lot, friendr Dirk all but hissed. "Thanks ever so much, brother! How I
ever managed without your help, I'll never know!" "Look,
Dirk—I'm sorry—" "Sorry!
Dammit, you didn't even believe me! My best friend, and you didn't believe a
single word I said!" "Dirk!" "Then
telling everyone I'm some kind of drunken fool—" 100 Mercedes
Lackey "I
didn't say that!" Kris was beginning to get just as angry as Dirk was. "You
didn't have to! You implied it very nicely! And gave your precious uncle more
ammunition to use on me!" "Dirk,
Kris has every right to worry about you if you've been acting oddly. And Kris,
Dirk's right. Even I could tell you didn't believe him without having to read
you." Talia knew she should have kept her mouth shut, but couldn't help
herself. "And he's right about Orthallen." They
both turned on her as one, and spoke in nearly the same breath. "And
I don't need any more help from you, 'Queen's Own'—" "Talia,
I'm getting very tired of listening to your childish suspicions about my
uncle—" She
went white-lipped with anger and hurt. "Fine, then—" she snarled,
clenching her fists and telling herself that she would not deliver a pair of
hearty blows to those stubborn chins. "I wash my hands of both of you! You
can both go to Hell in a gilded carriage for all of me! With purple
cushions!" Unable
to get another coherent word out, she spun on her toe and ran to the closest
exit, and didn't stop running until she reached the Field and the sympathetic
shoulder of Rolan. "Now
look what you've done!" Dirk sneered in triumph. "What
I've done?" Kris lost what little remained of his temper and groped
visibly for words adequate to express his anger. "Gods, I hope you're
satisfied—now that you've managed to get her mad at both of us!" In
point of fact, a nasty little part of him Dirk hadn't dreamed existed was
pleased, for now, at least, they were on an equally bad footing with Talia. He
could hardly admit it, though. "Me? All / did was defend myself—" "I,"
Kris interrupted angrily, "have had just about enough of this. Til talk to
you about this mess if and when you decide to stop behaving like a damn fool
and when you quit drinking yourself into a stupor every night. Until
then—-" ARROWS
FALL 101 "This
is just a little too public a place for you to start making threats." Kris
bit back the angry words that he knew would put any hope of reconciliation out
of reach. "Far too public," he replied stiffly, "and what we
have to say to each other is far too private, and can and should wait until
then." Dirk
made an ironic little bow. "At your pleasure." There
didn't seem to be any way to respond to that, so Kris just nodded abruptly, and
stalked off down the corridor. Dirk
found himself standing alone in the deserted corridor, temples pounding with a
hangover, feeling very much abused. He wanted to feel vindicated, and all he
really felt like was a fool. And very much alone. By the
time Talia arrived for her weaponry lesson, Alberich had heard the rumors that
Kris and Dirk had had a falling-out. He was not too terribly surprised when
Talia appeared for her practice session wearing an expression so coldly
impassive it might have been a mask. Few even at the Collegium would have
guessed how well he could read the Queen's Own, or how well he knew her. She
had quite won his heart as a student—so very alone, and so determined to do
everything perfectly. She seldom tried to make excuses for herself, and never
gave up, not even when she knew she had no chance of success. She had reminded
him of times long past, and a young and idealistic student-cadet of Karse—and
his sympathy and soul had gone out to her. Not that he would ever have let her
know. He never betrayed his feelings to his students while they were still
students. He had
a shrewd idea of how matters stood with.her in regard to her feelings about
Dirk and Kris. So he had a fairly good idea what her reaction to the quarrel
might be. This
afternoon the lesson called for Talia to work out alone against the Armsmaster.
She did not hold back hi the least—began attacking him, in fact, with blind
fury as soon as the lesson began. Alberich let her wear herself 102 Mercedes
Lackey out for
a bit, scar-seamed face impassive, then caught her with a feint not even a
beginner would have fallen for and disarmed her. "Enough—quite
enough," he said, as she stood white and drained and panting with
exhaustion. "Have I not told you many times, it is with your intellect you
fight, not with your anger? Anger you are to leave at the door. It will kill
you. Look how you have let it wear you out! Had this been a real fight, your
anger would have done half your enemy's work for him." Talia's
shoulders sagged. "Master Alberich—" "Enough,
I have said it," he interrupted, picking up her blade from the floor. He
took three soundless steps toward her, and placed one callused hand on her
shoulder. "Since the anger cannot be left at the door, you will confide
it?" Talia
capitulated, letting him push her gently toward the seats at the edge of the
floor. She slumped dispiritedly down onto a bench pushed up against the wall as
he seated himself beside her. After a long moment of silence, she gave him a
brief outline of the morning's events. She kept her eyes for the most part on a
beam of the late afternoon sunlight that fell upon the smooth, sanded,
gray-brown wooden floor. No sound penetrated into the salle from the outside,
and the ancient building smelled of dust and sweat. Alberich sat beside her,
absolutely motionless, hands clasped around the ankle that rested on his right
knee. Talia glanced at him from time to time, but his harsh, hawklike face
remained unreadable. Finally
when she had finished, he stirred just a little, raising his hand to rub the
side of his nose. "I
tell you what I have never admitted," he said after a long pause, tapping
his lips with one finger, thoughtfully. "I have never trusted Lord
Orthallen. And I have served Valdemar fully as long as he." Talia
was taken aback. "But—" "Why?
Any number of small things. He is too perfect the servant of the State, never
does he take for himself any reward. And when a man does not claim a reward
visibly, I look for a reward hidden. He does not openly oppose the Heraldic
Circle, but when others do, he is ARROWS
FALL 103 always
just behind them, pushing, gently pushing. He is everyone's friend—and no one's
intimate companion. Also, my Companion does not like him." "Rolan
doesn't either." "A
good measure by which to judge the man, I think. I believe that your suspicions
are correct; that he has been striving to undermine your influence with
Selenay. I think that since he has failed at that, he turns to eliminating your
friends, to weaken your emotional base. I think he well knows how it hurts you
to see young Dirk injured." Talia
blushed. "You
are the best judge of the truth of what I say." He shifted on the hard,
worn bench and recrossed his legs, ankle over knee. "My guess—he knows
Kris is your partisan; he could not get Kris to repudiate you so he decided to
set the two great friends at odds with each other in hopes you would be caught
in the middle." "Me?
But—" "If
he is of the mind to undermine your authority, this is one way of it,"
Alberich added quietly, hands clasped thoughtfully over one knee. "To chip
away at those supporting you until they are so entangled in their own
misfortune that they can spare no time for helping you." "I
see what you're getting at, now. He's removing my support in such a way that
I'm set off-balance. Then, when I'm in a particularly delicate position, give
me a little shove—" Talia flicked out a finger, "—and with no one to
advise me or give me backing, I vacillate, or start making mistakes. And all
the things he's been whispering about my not being quite up to the job look
like something more than an old man's mistrust of the young. I thought you
didn't deal with Court politics . . ." She smiled wanly at her instructor. "I
said I do not play the game; I never said I did not know how the game was
played." His mouth turned up a little at one corner. "Be advised,
however, that I have never told anyone of my suspicions because I seemed to be
alone in them—and I did not intend to give Lord Orthallen a reason to gaze in
my direction. It is difficult enough being from Karse—without earning
high-placed enemies." 704 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
nodded with sympathy. It had been hard enough on her during her first years at
the Collegium. She could hardly imagine what it had been like for someone
hailing from the land that was Valdemar's traditional enemy. "Now
I do think he has miscalculated, perhaps to his eventual grief. It is that he
has badly underestimated the unity of the Circle, I think, or it is that he
cannot understand it. Among the courtiers, such a falling out as is between
Kris and Dirk would be permanent—and woe betide she caught between them!" Talia
sighed. "I know they'll make up eventually—Lord of Lights, though, I'm not
sure I can deal with the emotional lightnings and thunders till they do! Why
couldn't Ahrodie and Tantris get their hooves into this and straighten it
out?" "Why
do you not?" Alberich retorted. "They are our Companions and friends,
deiinda, not our overseers. They leave our personal lives to ourselves, nor
would any of us thank them for interfering. Yes, they will most probably be
whispering sensible things into their Chosen's minds, but you know well they
will not force either of the two into anything." She
sighed wistfully. "If I were a little less ethical, I'd fix both of
them." "If
you were a little less ethical, you would not have been Chosen," Alberich
pointed out. "Now, since the anger is gone, shall we return to the
exercise of the body in place of the tongue?" "Do
I have a choice?" Talia asked, as she rose from her place on the bench. "No,
deiinda, you do not—so guard yourself!" Elspeth
had encountered Orthallen during one of her rare moments of leisure; she was
dawdling a bit on her way back to her suite in the Palace to dress for dinner
with the Court. She took dinner with the Court once a week—"to remind
everyone" (in her own wry words) "that they still have a Heir." She was
standing before an open second-story window; some of the gardens were directly
below her. She was wearing a rather wistful expression and hadn't realized ARROWS
FALL 105 there
was anyone else in the corridor with her until Orthallen touched her elbow. She
jumped and started back (one hand brushing a hidden dagger) when she realized
who it was and relaxed. "Havens,
Lord-Un—Lord Orthallen, you startled me out of a year's life!" "I
most sincerely hope not," he replied, "But I do wish you would
continue to call me 'Lord-Uncle' as you started to. Surely now that you're
nearly through your studies you aren't going to become formal with me!" "AH
right, Lord-Uncle, since you ask it. Just remember to defend me for my
impudence when Mother takes me to task for it!" Elspeth grinned, and
leaned back on the window-frame a little. "Now
what is it that you were watching with such a long face?" he asked
lightly, coming close enough to look out of the window himself. Below
the window were some of the Palace gardens; in the gardens a hatf-dozen
couples—children of courtiers or courtiers themselves—ranging from Elspeth's
age upward to twenty or so. They were involved in the usual sorts of activities
that might be expected from a group of adolescents in a sunny garden in the
spring. One couple was engaged in a mock-game of "tag," one girl was
embroidering while her gallant read to her, two maids were giggling and gasping
at the antics of two lads balancing on the basin of a fountain, one young
gentleman was peacefully asleep with his head in the lap of his chosen lady,
two couples were simply strolling hand in hand. Elspeth
sighed. "And
why aren't you down there, my lady?" Orthallen asked quietly. "Havens,
Lord-Uncle, where would I get the time?" Elspeth's reply was impatient and
a touch self-pitying. "Between my classes and everything else—besides, I
don't know any boys, at least not well. Well, there's Skif, but he's busy
chasing Nerissa. Besides, he's even older than Talia." "You
don't know any young men—when half the swains of the Court are near dying just
to speak to you?'* 106 Mercedes
Lackey OrthaUen's
expression of incredulity held as much of bitter as playful mockery, though
Elspeth was so used to his manners that she hardly noted it, "Well
if they're near-dying, nobody told me about it, and nobody's bothered to
introduce us." "If
that's all that's lacking, I will be happy to make the introductions.
Seriously, Elspeth, you are spending far too much of your time among the
Heralds and Heraldic Students. Heralds make up only a very small part of
Valdemar, my dear. You need to get to know your courtiers better, particularly
those of your own age. Who knows? You may one day wish to choose a consort from
among them. You can hardly do that if you don't know any of them." "You
have a point, Lord-Uncle," Elspeth mused, taking another wistful glance
out the window, "But when am I going to find the time?" "Surely
you have an hour or two in the evenings?" "Well,
yes, usually." "There's
your answer." Elspeth
smiled. "Lord-Uncle, you're almost as good at solving problems as
Talia!" Her
race fell a trifle then, and Orthalien's right eyebrow rose as he took note of
her expression. "Is
there some problem with Talia?" "Only—only
that there's only one of her. Mother needs her more than I do, I know
that—but—I wish I could talk to her the way I used to when she was still a
student. She doesn't have the time anymore." "You
could talk to me," Orthallen pointed out. "Besides, Talia's first
loyalty is to your mother; she might feel obliged to tell her what you confided
in her." Elspeth
did not reply to this, but his words made her very thoughtful. "At
any rate, we were speaking of those young gentlemen who are perishing to make
your acquaintance. Would you care to meet some of them tonight, after dinner?
In the garden by the fountain, for instance?" Elspeth
blushed and her eyes sparkled. "I'd love to!" "Then,"
Orthallen made her a sweeping bow, "it shall be as my lady commands." ARROW'S
FALL 107 Elspeth
thought a great deal about that conversation as she sat through dinner. On the
one hand, she trusted Talia; on the other, if there were a conflict of
loyalties there was no doubt who her first allegiance was due. She hadn't
thought about it before—but the idea of her mother knowing everything about her
wasn't a comfortable one. Especially
since Selenay didn't appear to be taking Elspeth's maturity very seriously. But
Elspeth had gained inches since Talia had gone— and with the inches, a woman's
curves. She was taking more care with her appearance; she'd seen the glances
given some of her older friends by the young males of the Collegium and
recently those glances had seemed very desirable things to collect. She found
that lately she was looking to the young men of Collegium and Court with an eye
less bemused and more calculating. And to the eyes of a stranger— She'd
looked at herself in her mirror before dinner, trying to appraise what she saw
there. Lithe, taller than Talia by half a head, wavy sable hair and velvety
brown eyes—the body of a young goddess, if certain people were to be believed,
and the look of one more than ready to know more of life—yes. There was no
doubt that to a stranger, she looked more than ready to be thinking about
wedding or bedding, certainly old enough by the standards of the Court. Or so
Elspeth thought, setting her chin stubbornly. Well, if her mother wouldn't see
on her own that Elspeth was quite fully grown now, perhaps there were ways to
to bring that knowledge home to her. And,
she thought, catching sight of Lord Orthallen among a group of quite
fascinating-looking young men, it just might be rather exciting as well. . . Five The
weather, which had briefly taken a turn for the better, soured again. Talia's
mood was none too sweet either. The
rains returned, and with them, spoiled tempers among the Councillors. Again
Talia found herself spending as much time intervening in personal quarrels as
helping to make decisions. Orthallen, strangely enough, seemed content now to
let her alone. He brooded down at his end of the Council table like some huge
white owl, face blank and inscrutable, pondering mysterious thoughts of his
own. This alarmed her more than it reassured her. She took to examining every
word she intended to say, and weighing it against all the possible ways
Orthallen might be able to use what she said against her at some later date. Dirk
split his free time either lurking in her vicinity or hiding out in the wet.
The one was as frustrating as the other. Either she didn't see him at all, or
she saw him but couldn't get near him. For whenever she tried to approach him,
he turned pale, looked around—wearing a frantic expression—for the nearest
exit, and escaped with whatever haste was seemly. He seemed to have a sixth
sense for when she was trying to catch him; she couldn't even trap him in his
rooms. Either that, or he somehow knew when she was at the door, and pretended
he wasn't there. Kris
all but hibernated in his room. And Talia was determined not to see him until
he apologized for what he'd said to her. While then: quarrel of itself was of
no 109 no Mercedes
Lackey great
moment, she was tired to death of having to justify her feelings about his
uncle. After her little talk with Alberich, she was certain—with a surety that
came all too seldom—that in the case of Orthallen she was entirely in the
right, and he was entirely in the wrong. And this time she was going to hold
out until he acknowledged the fact! Meanwhile
she made up for the absence of both of them by trying to be everywhere at once. She was
shorting herself of sleep to do so, and still felt there was much she wasn't
doing. But there was just so much work; Selenay had asked her to take on the
interviews of petitioners from the flooded areas, Devan needed her with three
profoundly depressed patients, and there were all those quarrels among the
Councillors. It was
with heartfelt gratitude that she found the sessions with Destria going well;
Vostel's arrival put the cap on their success. It was plain to Talia that his
reaction to Destria's appearance comforted her immensely. It helped that he
regarded her scars as badges of honor and told her so in as many words. And as
Rynee had thought, he was of tremendous aid when they began Destria's
rehabilitative therapy—for he had gone through all this himself. He coaxed her
when she faltered, bolstered her courage when it ran out, goaded her when she
turned sulky, and held her when she wept with pain. He was doing so much for
her that she needed Talia's Gift less with every day. Which
was just as well, for Selenay needed it the more. As soon as one crisis was
solved, another sprang up like a noxious weed, and Selenay's resources were
wearing thin. And when some of the choices she made turned out to be the wrong
ones—as, soon or late, happened—Talia found herself exercising her good sense
and Gift to the utmost. A
drenched and mud-splattered messenger from Herald Patris stood before the
Council; when the door-Guard had learned his news, he'd interrupted the session
to bring him there himself. "Majesty,"
the man said, with a blank expression that Talia found very disconcerting, and
which made her very ARROW'S
FALL 111 uneasy,
"Herald Patris sends this to tell you that the outlaws are no more." He held
out a sealed message pouch as those at the Council board erupted in cheers and
congratulations. Only the Queen, Kyril, and Selenay did not join in the
rejoicing. There was something about the messenger's expression that told them
there was much he had not said. Selenay
opened the message and scanned it, the blood draining from her face as she did
so. "Goddess—"
the parchment sheet fell from her nerveless fingers, and Talia caught it. The
Queen covered her face with trembling hands, as the tumult around the Council
table died into absolute silence. Her
Councillors stared at their monarch, and at an equally pale Queen's Own, as
Talia read Patris' grim words in a voice that shook. "
'We ran the brigands to earth, but by the time they were brought to bay, the
temper of the Guard was fully aroused. We cornered them at their own camp, a
valley overlooked by Darkfell Peak. It was then that they made the mistake of
killing the envoy sent to parley. At that point the Guard declared "no
quarter." They went mad— that is the only way I can describe it. They were
no longer rational men; they were blood-mad berserkers. Perhaps it was being out
here too long, chasing phantoms—perhaps the foul weather—I do not know. It was
hideous. Nothing I or anyone else could say or do was able to curb them. They
fell on the encampment—and the outlaws were slaughtered to the last man.'
" Talia
took a deep breath, and continued. " 'It was not just the outlaws
themselves; the Guard slew every living thing in their bolt-hole, be it man,
woman, or beast. But that was not the worst of the horrors, though that was
horror enough. Among the dead—* " Talia's
voice failed, then, and Kyril took the message from her, and continued in a
hoarse half-whisper. "
'Among the dead were the very children we had hoped to save. All—all of them,
dead. Slain by their captors when it became obvious that they would get no
mercy from the Guard.' " 112 Mercedes
Lackey The
Councillors stared in dumb shock, as Selenay wept without shame. Selenay
blamed herself for not replacing the Guard companies with fresher troops or for
not sending someone who could have controlled the weary Guardsmen no matter
what strain the troops were under. Nor was
the murder of the children the only tragedy, although it was the greatest.
Vital intelligence had been lost in that slaughter—who their leader had been,
and whether or not he had been acting under orders from outside the Kingdom. It took
days before Selenay was anything like her normal self. The one
blessing, so far as Talia was concerned, was that Orthallen exercised a little
good sense and chose to back down on his militant stance for more local
autonomy; just as well, for Lady Kester's people began having the expected
troubles with pirates and coastal raiders, and the promised troops had to be
shifted to the West. But before they could reach their deployments, Herald
Nathen was seriously hurt leading the fisherfolk in beating off a slaving raid. And
that opened up another wonder-chest of troubles. Nathen
himself came before them, although the Healers protested that he was not yet
well enough to do so. He was a sharp-featured man, not old, but no longer
young; brown-haired, brown-eyed—quite unremarkable except for the intensity in
those eyes, and an anger that kept him going when nothing else was left to him.
He sat, rather than stood, facing the entire Council. He was heavily bandaged,
with his arm bound against his side, and still physically so weak he could
scarcely speak above a whisper. "My
ladies, my lords—" he coughed,"—I did not dare trust this to anyone
but myself. Messengers can be waylaid, documents purloined —" "My
lord Herald," Gartheser said smoothly, "I think you may be
overreacting. Your injuries ..." "Did
not cause me to hallucinate what I heard," Na- ARROWS
FALL 113 than
snapped, his anger giving him a burst of strength. "We captured a
prisoner, Councillors; I interrogated him myself under Truth Spell before I was
hurt. The brigands are serving those slavers we thought banished!" "What?"
Lady Cathan choked out, as she half-stood, then collapsed back into her seat. "There
is worse. The slave-traders are not working unaided. I have it by my prisoner's
confession and by written proofs that they have been aided and abetted by Lord
Geoffery of Helmscarp, Lord Nestor of Laverin, Lord Tavis of Brengard, and
TradeGuildsmen Osten Deveral, Jerard Stonesmith, Petar Ringwright, and Igan
Horstfel." He sank
back into his own chair, eyes still burning with controlled rage, as the
Council erupted into accusation and counter-accusation. "How
could this have occurred without your knowledge, Cathan?" Gartheser
demanded. "By the gods, I begin to wonder just how assiduous you were in
rooting out the last lot—" "You
were right up there in the front ranks to accuse me the last time,
Gartheser," Cathan sneered "but I seem to remember you were also the
one who insisted I do all the dirty work. I am only one woman; I can't be
everywhere at once." "But
Cathan, I cannot see how this could have escaped your knowledge," Hyron
protested. "Those four named are of first-rank." "And
the other three are Kester's liegemen," added Wyrist, suspiciously,
"I'd like to know how they managed to operate a slaving ring under
Kester's nose." "And
so would I," Lady Kester snapped. "More than you, I reckon." And so
it went, as Selenay mediated the strife among her Councillors. Talia had her
hands full seeing that she remained sane during all of it. All
this, of course, meant that she had no time to pay heed to her own
problems—most particularly that of the rift between Dirk and Kris, Kris and
herself, and Dirk and herself. 114 Mercedes
Lackey It was
bad enough that the quarrel existed—but to add yet another pine-bough to the
conflagrations, Rolan was causing her considerable discomfort. He was
the premier stallion of the Companion herd and while Talia had been on
internship, had only had another stallion—Kris' Tantris—for company. Now he was
making up for his enforced celibacy with a vengeance—and the partner he dallied
with most often was Dirk's Ahrodie. And
Talia shared it—couldn't block it if she tried. Not that she blamed Rolan;
Ahrodie was sweet, attractive, and a most cooperative partner. She ought to
know; she was on the empathic receiving end of all of it. But to have this
going on, two and three times a week, while she positively ached for Ahrodie's Chosen—well,
it was unpleasantly like torture. Rolan evidently had no notion of what he was
doing to his Chosen, and Talia refused to spoil his pleasure by letting him
know. So she
lost further sleep at night; either in suffering through what Rolan was unknowingly
inflicting on her or in dreams in which she worked desperately to knit up some
undefined but important object that kept unraveling. She
didn't see Elspeth except at training sessions with Alberich, occasional meals,
or now and again with Gwena out in the Field. She seemed a little distracted,
and maybe a touch shy, but that was normal for a girl just into puberty, and
besides, Talia had her hands full to overflowing. So Talia never once worried
about her— until one day she realized with a chill of foreboding that she
hadn't seen the girl in several days, not even at arms practice. Well,
that could have been simple circumstance, but it was a situation that needed
rectifying. So Talia went looking for her. She
found the Heir in the garden, which was not a place where Elspeth usually spent
any time. But she was reading, so she could have decided simply that she needed
some fresh air. "Hello,
catling," Talia called cheerfully, seeing Elspeth's ARROW'S
FALL 115 head
snap up at the sound of her voice. "Are you waiting for someone?" "No—no,
just got tired of the Library—" Had she hesitated a fraction of a second
before denying that? "Say, you've been so busy, I'll bet you haven't heard
the latest scrape Tuli's gotten himself into, and I'll bet you could use a good
laugh—" With
that, Elspeth kept the conversation on Collegium gossip, and then pled tasks
elsewhere before Talia could gain control of the situation. The
incident left Talia very disconcerted, and when she began seeking the girl out
on a regular basis, she only got repetitions of the same. Then Talia began to
take note of the specific changes in the girl's behavior. She was
secretive—which was unlike her. There was just the vaguest hint of guilt in the
way she evaded Talia's questions. Talia
took an indirect approach then, and began checking on her through her
year-mates and teachers. What she found made her truly alarmed. "Havens,"
Tuli said, scratching his curly head in puzzlement. "/ don't know where
she is. She just sort of vanishes about this time of day." "Uh-huh,"
Gerond agreed, nodding so hard Talia thought his head was going to come off.
"Just lately. She's swapped me chores a couple times so she had the hour
free—an' she hates floorwashing! Somethin' wrong?" "No,
I've just been having trouble finding her today," Talia replied, taking
care to seem nonchalant. But she
was unnerved. These two were Elspeth's closest friends among her year-mates,
and they only confirmed what Talia had begun to fear. There were gaps of an
hour or so in Elspeth's day during which she was vanishing, and no one seemed
to have any idea of where she was. It was
time she checked her other sources—the Palace servants. Talia
perched herself on a settle, next to the cold fireplace in the Servant's Hall.
She had come to her 176 Mercedes
Lackey friends—for
many of the servants were her friends, and had been since she was a
student—rather than raise anyone's attention by having them come to her. Seated
about her were a half-dozen servitors she had found to be the most observant
and most trustworthy. Two of them, a chambermaid called Elise and a groom named
Ralf, had pinpointed the guilty parties when a group of the "Blues"
(or unaffiliated students) had tried to murder her as a student by attacking
her and throwing her into the ice-covered river. Elise had seen several of
Talia's attackers coming in mucky, and thought it more than odd; Ralf had
spotted the entire group hanging about the stable earlier. Both had reported their
observations to Elcarth when word spread of the attempt on Talia's life. "All
right," Talia began, "I have a problem. Elspeth is going off
somewhere about midafternoon every day, and I can't find out where or why. I
was hoping one of you would know." From
the looks exchanged within the group, she knew she'd found her answer. "She's—this
goes no farther, young Talia—" this from Jan, one of the oldest there. He
was a gardener, and to him, she would always be "young" Talia. Talia
nodded and he continued. "She's hangin1 about with young m'lord Joserlin
Corby's crew. Them as is no better'n rowdies." "Rowdies!"
Elise snorted. "If 'tweren't for their highborn da's, they'd been sent
home long ago for the way they paw over every girl they can catch unawares."
"Girl" here meant "female servant"; if Elise had intended
to say that the young men had been mishandling other females, she'd have said
"m'ladies." Not that this difference was very comforting; it meant
that they were only confining unwanted attentions to the women who dared not
protest overmuch. "It's
said," added another chambermaid, "that at home they gets t' more'n
pawings." "Such
as?" Talia replied. "You know I won't take it elsewhere." "Well—mind,
m'lady, this is just tales, but it's tales I hear from their people—this lot is
plain vicious." Besides
forcing their attentions on the servants of their ARROWS
FALL 117 estates,
it seemed that "Corby's Crew" was given to so-called pranks that were
very unfunny. A cut saddle-girth before a rough hunt was no joking matter, not
when it nearly caused a death. And some of these same adolescents were the
younger brothers and sisters of those who had tried to murder Talia. But
thus far—that anyone knew—Elspeth had not been a participant in any of their
activities. It seemed that at the moment she was simply being paid elaborate
court to—something new to her that she evidently found very enjoyable. But it
could well be only a matter of time before they lured her into some indiscretion—then
used that indiscretion to blackmail her into deeper participation. Elspeth's
good sense had probably protected her so far, but Talia was worried that it
might not be enough protection for very much longer. This
required active measures. She tried
to set a watch on the girl, but Elspeth was very clever and kept eluding her.
She tried once or twice to read her with a surface probe, but Elspeth's shields
were better than Talia's ability to penetrate without forcing her. Something
was going to have to be done, or among the three of them, Elspeth, Dirk, and
Kris were going to drive her mad in white linen. So she
decided to try to do something about Dirk first, as being the easiest to get
at—and since he wasn't talking to Kris, the way to him was through her
blood-brother Skif. "I'm
as baffled as you are, little sister," Skif confessed, running a nervous
hand through his dark curls, "I haven't got the vaguest notion why Dirk's
making such an ass of himself." "Lord
and Lady," Talia moaned, rubbing her temple and collapsing onto an old
chair in Skifs room, "I'd hoped he'd have said something to you—you were
my last hope! If this doesn't clear up soon, I think I'm going to go rather
noisily mad!" When
she had finally given up on trying to manage the problem of Dirk by herself,
and had sought out Skifs 118 Mercedes
Lackey aid,
he'd invited her up to his quarters. He'd been to hers a time or two, but this
was the first time she'd seen his. Skif s room was much like Skif himself; neat,
decked with odd weapons and thick with books. Lately Talia hadn't had much time
to devote to picking her own rooms up, and she found his quarters a haven from
chaos. He had only one window, but it looked out over Companion's Field—always
a tranquilizing view. "First
things first—this bond you've got. Kris was right. It's a lifebond—and he's got
it, too. I have no doubt whatsoever of that. I can tell by the way he looks at
you." "He
looks at me? When? I never see him anymore! Since the fight he spends all of
his tune out in the mud." "Except
at meals—any meal you take at the Collegium—he spends so much time watching you
that he hardly eats. And I think he knows your schedule by heart. Any time you
might be passing under a window, he's got an excuse to be near that
window." Skif paced the length of the room restlessly as he spoke, his
arms folded. "He's wearing himself to a thread. That's why I wanted to
talk to you alone here." "I
don't know how I'm supposed to be able to help when the man won't let me near
him." "Oh,
great!" "He
acts like I was a plague-carrier. I've tried to get him alone; he won't let me.
And that was before all this mess with the argument with Kris. Now it's twice
as bad." "Havens,
what a mess." Skif shook his head ruefully. "He hasn't said anything
to me. I can't imagine why he's acting this way. I've had it though, and I know
you're at your wits' end. It's about time we brought this out into the
sunlight. Since he won't talk to you, I'm going to make damned sure he talks to
me. I'm going to have it out with him as soon as I can corner him, and I'll do
it if I have to trap him in the bathing-room and steal his clothes! I'm going
to get things settled between him and Kris and him and you if I have to tie you
all together in a bundle to do it!" Neither
of them had reckoned on the whims of Fate. ARROW'S
FALL 119 Dirk
had been fighting what he thought was a slight cold—one of the many varieties
that were currently decimating Court and Collegium alike—for about a week.
Perversely he refused to care for it; continuing to escape Talia and Kris by
retreating into the dismal weather out-of-doors. In a bizarre way, he didn't
really mind feeling miserable; concentrating on his symptoms kept him from
thinking about Her and Him. Physical misery provided a relief from emotional
misery. So he
ducked in and out of the cold and rain, day after day, getting soaked to the
skin more often than not, but not doing much about it except to change his
clothing. Added to that, the emotional strain was taking a greater toll on him
than anyone—including himself—realized. It was
midweek, and Talia was taking dinner with the Collegium instead of the Court.
She was watching Dirk out of the corner of her eye the entire time, and hoping that
Skif was going to be able to fulfill his promise. She was worried—very worried.
Dirk was white to the ears; he kept rubbing his head as if it ached. She could
see him shiver, although the common-room was warm. He seemed to be unable to
keep his mind on what anyone was saying, and he couldn't speak more than two
words in a row without going into a fit of coughing. She
could also see that Kris was watching him, and looking just as concerned. He
pushed his food around without eating much. Kris finally seemed to come to some
conclusion, visibly steeled himself, and walked over to sit down next to him. Kris
said something to him, which he answered with a shake of his head. Then he
stood up—and Kris had to catch him as he started to crumple. Kris had
decided he'd had enough. He couldn't stand watching his dearest friend fret
himself to pieces—and he'd come to some unhappy conclusions over the past
couple of weeks. He'd gone over to sit next to Dirk before the Herald was aware
that he was even in the 720 Merceries
Lackey common
room, and spoke his piece before Dirk had a chance to escape. "I
was wrong; I was wrong to put so much trust in my uncle, wrong to have doubted
you, and wrong to have said anything about your private life. I apologize. Are
you going to forgive me, or will I have to throw myself from the battlements in
despair?" Dirk
had started a little when Kris first began speaking in his ear, but hadn't
moved away. He'd listened with a mixture of relief and bemusement, then shook
his head with a weak smile at Kris' last sally. Then he stood up— And the
room faded from before his eyes, as he felt his legs give under him. Half a
dozen instructors and field Heralds made a rush for him as Kris caught him.
They lowered him back down into his seat, as he protested weakly that he was
all right. "I—"
he coughed, rackingly. "I just was dizzy a minute—" he bent over in a
fit of coughs, unable to continue, hardly able to catch his breath. "Like
Hell!" replied Teren, one hand on his forehead, "You're on fire, man.
You're for the Healers, and I don't want to hear any nonsense out of you about
it." Before
he could regain enough breath to object, Teren draped one of his arms over his
own shoulders, while a very worried Kris did the same on Dirk's other side. The
rest surrounded the three of them, allowing no opportunity to escape, and
escorted them out the door. By the
time they'd reached their goal, his breath was rattling in his chest and there
was little doubt of what ailed him. The Healers isolated him and ran everyone
else off, and there was very little that anyone could do about it. Talia
had turned ashen when he'd collapsed, and had left her dinner uneaten, waiting
for Kris' return. Kris
finally reappeared, to be engulfed by everyone who'd been present, demanding to
know what the Healers had said. "They
tell me he has pneumonia, and it's going to get a lot worse before it gets
better," he replied, his voice ARROWS
FALL 121 carrying
easily across from the doorway to the bench where Talia sat. "And they
won't let anyone see him for at least a day or two." Talia
made a little noise like a strangled sob, stood quickly, and pushed blindly
away from the table. The knot of people surrounding Kris had blocked the door
nearest her; she stumbled against benches twice as she fled to the door
opposite and to her room. She ran all the way down the corridors of the
Collegium and through the double doors leading to the Herald's Wing. She hurled
herself up the darkened spiral staircase of the tower that held her room,
pushed the door open and flung herself down on the couch in the outer room of
her suite, sobbing with a lost despair she hadn't felt since that awful moment
in the Waystation. . . . She
hadn't closed the door behind her hi her flight, and wasn't in much shape to
pay attention to sounds around her. She only realized that she was not alone
when she heard someone settle beside her, and somehow knew it was Keren and
Sherrill. She
tried to get herself back under control, but Keren's first words, spoken in a
tone of such deep and unmistakable love that Talia hardly believed her ears,
completely undid her. "Little
centaur, dearheart, what cause tha' greeting?" Keren
had slipped into the dialect of her home, something she only did on the rarest
of occasions, and then mostly with her twin or her lifemate—moments of profound
intimacy. That
broke down the last of her reserve, and she turned with gratitude into Keren's
arms and wept bitterly on her ready shoulder. "Everything's
gone wrong!" she sobbed, "Elspeth isn't talking to me anymore, and I
know there's something going on—something she doesn't want either Selenay or me
to know about—but I can't find out whatl And Dirk— and Kris—we fought, and now
they won't talk to me either and—and—now Dirk's sick, and I can't bear it! Oh,
gods, I'm a total failure!" Keren,
wisely, said nothing, and let the hysterical words and tears wear themselves
out. Sherrill meanwhile went 122 Mercedes
lackey quietly
about the room, closing the door and fighting candles against the growing
darkness. That done, she seated herself at Keren's feet to wait. "For
tha' problem of Elspeth I can think of no solution," Keren said
thoughtfully when Talia was in a better state to listen. "But if there was
anything truly wrong, her Gwena would surely seek out Rolan—and thee would
know." "I
hadn't even thought of that." Talia looked up into Keren's eyes from where
she rested on her shoulder, crestfallen at her own stupidity. "Why
should thee? She's never given thee anxiety before." Keren almost-smiled. "I'm
not thinking very clearly. No, that's not true. I'm not thinking at ail. It's
wrong of me, but—Keren, I don't know how much longer I can bear this trouble
with Dirk without flying to pieces. Keren, I want to be with him so much
sometimes I think it would be easier to die!" Keren
sighed. "Lifebond, then, is it? And with Dirk— gods, what a tangle! Well,
that explains his madness, for certain. Lady only knows what cracked notion the
lad has in his head, and 'tis sure the thing's got him all turned round
about." "We
know how it can be—an agony." Sherrill rose from her place, sat next to
Talia, and slipped her arm around Talia's waist, joining Keren in supporting
her. "It's hellish, being pulled inside out by something that can't be
denied and won't be turned to anything else. Is anyone trying to help you get
this straightened out?" At
Talia's nod, Keren pursed her lips thoughtfully. "I can't think of
anything at all to help thee, little centaur. First it's a matter of getting
Dirk and Kris speaking, then getting Dirk's mind made up about thee. Hopefully
the first is done already. But the second—my best guess is that he's gotten
confused somewhere, and has been chasing his own tail. Time, dearling. That's
all it will take. Time." "If
I can just hold out a little longer—" Talia relaxed herself with an effort
while Keren and Sherrill held her in a circle of love and comfort for long
moments. "You
know we understand, dearling," Sherrill said at ARROW®
FALL 123 last
for both of them. "Who better? Now, let's change the subject. We're
determined to make you smile again." With
that she and Keren took turns telling her the most hilarious stories that they
could think of—mostly of some of the goings-on at the Collegium during her
absence. No few of them were libelous; all of them were at least undignified.
Talia wished profoundly that she had been present to witness the grave and
aloof Kyril picking himself out of the fish pond with a strand of waterweed
behind his ear. Between the two of them, they soon had her laughing again, and
had drained at least some of the tension from her. Finally,
Keren nodded to her lifemate and gave Talia a comforting hug. "I think
you're cheered enough to survive the night, dear one," the older woman
said. "Yes?" "I
think so," Talia replied. "Then
let tomorrow take care of tomorrow, and have a good long sleep," Keren
advised, and she and Sherrill departed as quietly as they had come. Talia
wandered back into her bedroom to shed her uniform. She dressed for bed, then
changed her mind and wrapped a robe about herself and settled down on her couch
with a book. She must have dozed off without meaning to, because the next thing
she knew, Kris was standing beside her and touching her arm lightly to wake
her, and the candles were burned down to stubs in their holders. He was
hardly what she expected to see. "Kris!" she exclaimed joyfully, then
fear took the place of joy. "Is Dirk—worse?" she asked, feeling the
color drain from her face. "No,
little bird, he's no worse. I've just come from there. He's asleep, and the
Healers say he'll be all right in a week or two. And we're friends again. I
thought you'd want to know—and I wanted to make up with you, too." "Oh,
Kris—I—I've never been so miserable in my life," she confessed. "I
was so angry with you, that I swore I wasn't going to speak to you until you
came to me and apologized, but my pride isn't worth wrecking our friendship
over." 124 Mercedes
Lackey His
expression softened a little, and she realized he'd been tensed against her
answer. "I've never been so miserable either, little bird. And I've never
felt like quite so much of an idiot." "You
aren't an idiot. Your uncle is—" "My
uncle is—not what I thought," he interrupted. "I have to apologize to
you, like I apologized to Dirk. I was wrong about my uncle. I'm not certain
what his problem is, but he is trying to undermine you. And he's trying to wean
me away from you. I've extracted information from the unwary often enough that
I ought to have recognized it when he was doing it to me—but I didn't until
just recently. He became a little too eager, and failed to cover his
trail." Kris' expression was troubled. "I hope that what he did to
Dirk was unintentional, but I'm afraid I can't be certain anymore. I wish I
knew what his game is. At the moment if I were to hazard a guess, it would be
this: he wants the postion he had as Seienay's closest advisor, and he wants me
slightly disaffected from the Heralds so that my family loyalty is just a
trifle stronger than my loyalty to the Circle. You were right; I was
wrong." "I—I'm
almost sorry to hear you say that." A little breeze from the open window
behind her made the candles flicker and stirred locks of his hair as she
assessed his rueful expression. "What happened to change your mind?" "Mostly
that he tried too hard after the squabble; as I said, he tried to pump me for
information about you, and made one too many slighting remarks about Dirk. You
were right, that he has a grudge against you, though why, I have no idea. And I
think he used that incident with the scrolls as a chance to get at you through
Dirk . . . and as a chance to come between me and Dirk. I can only hope he
didn't manufacture it, too." She
almost said angrily that the dropped scroll was no accident, that Orthallen had
manufactured the incident, but decided to hold her tongue. He was in a
receptive mood, but the quickest way to close his mind would be to make further
accusations. "I have to admit I'm of two minds about this. I'm glad you're
coming around to my ARROWS
FALL 125 way of
thinking, but I'm sorry to have changed your faith in your uncle." "Don't
be, it isn't you that has problems, it's him." "Well,
this is the first time anything has gone right in weeks. Kris, I'm glad we're
friends again." He
dropped easily to the floor beside her couch. "So am I. I've missed
talking to you. But as for things not going right ... I don't know about
that." He grinned ironically. "That advice you gave me on how to deal
with Nessa certainly worked." "I
meant to ask you about that," she said, grateful for the way they dropped
back into easy conversation, and dad of his company. "I noticed she seems
to be pursuing Skif these days." He
sighed, and drooped like a mime displaying dejection. "Once she had her
way with me, she was off to other conquests. Oh, the perfidy of women! When
will I ever learn? My heart is forever broken!" **That's
the first time I ever heard that forever' equaled the time it takes to boil an
egg," she replied wryly. "Oh,
less, I assure you. I had a chance to drop Skif a word on the subject of the
fair Nessa. Now he happens to be very appreciative of Nerissa's quite real
charms. So now that he knows the means of keeping her attention— which is to
play hard-to-get—she may very well find herself in the position of
hunter-turned-hunted." "Like
the old man said about that handfasted couple in Fivetree ... do you
remember?" Kris
screwed his face up into a fair imitation of the old man's age-twisted
countenance. "Lor' help you, Herald!" he croaked. "Chased 'er?
'Deed he did, in very .deed. Chased 'er till she caught Aim!" Talia
smiled wistfully. "We had some good times out there, didn't we?" "There'll
be more. Don't worry, little bird. I'll get this tangle straightened as soon as
the Healers will let me near to talk to Dirk. You know, this illness may be a
blessing in disguise; he won't be able to avoid me or find something that
urgently needs his attention, and hopefully he'll believe the things I tell
him." 726 Mercedes
Lackey He
stood to leave, and Talia gently touched his hand in thanks. "Take
heart, little bird. Things will get better. I can always slip Dirk love-potions
with his medicines!" He winked, and ran lightly down the staircase. She
laughed, feeling much eased, and rose; laving her book down on the table beside
the couch. She went slowly about the room and extinguished her lights, and then
went to bed with a happier heart and mind. By the
next morning Talia felt far more optimistic— and far readier to tackle her
problems face on. And since Dirk was out of reach, the logical problem to
tackle was Elspeth. Now she
was determined to corner Elspeth and confront her about her behavior. Council
and Court kept her occupied most of the day, she missed the girl at arms
practice by scant moments. Finally she tried tracking her down after dinner—but
Elspeth managed to elude Talia again. She had no doubt this time that it was no
accident, but a purposeful avoidance. Talia
was badly worried. All her instincts told her that things were about to come to
a head. She opened her shields and was unsuccessfully trying to locate the girl
when she felt an urgent and unmistakable summons from Rolan. With a sinking
heart she left the Collegium and ran for the Field. When she reached the fence
that surrounded it she saw her worst fears realized. Waiting with Rolan was
Elspeth'$ Gwena, both of them like marble statues in the moonlight. The
images she received from both of them—especially Gwena—were blurred and
chaotic, though there was no mistaking Gwena's anxiety. Tafia touched both
their necks and concentrated in an effort to make some sense of the images.
Finally she got a series that came clear . . . and Orthallen was at the center
of them. Orthatlen, and a young courtier who was his creature, one of
"Corby's Crew"—and they were planning Elspeth's disgrace! She
threw herself onto Rolan's back without a moment's hesitation. He galloped at
full speed to the fence that separated the Field from the barn and stables of
the ARROW'S
FALL 127 ordinary
horses, with Gwena barely keeping up beside him. They vaulted the fence like a
pair of great white birds, and headed straight for the haybarn. Talia flung
herself off Rolan's back before they had fully stopped. As she
sprinted for the barn, she heard a young male voice murmuring something in the
darkness, and she flung open the great door with a strength she never even knew
she had. Moonlight
poured in on the pair disclosed, and Talia saw with relief that matters had not
yet had a chance to proceed very far between Elspeth and her would-be lover. He
was rattled considerably by Talia's sudden appearance. If Elspeth was, she
wasn't showing it. "What
do you want?" Elspeth asked flatly, refusing pridefully to snatch her
jerkin closed where it was unlaced. "To
prevent you from making the same mistake your mother did," Talia replied
just as coldly. "The mistake of thinking that fine words mean a lofty
mind, and a pretty face goes with a noble heart. This young peacock has little
more in his mind except to put you in a position where you have no choice but
to take him as your consort or disgrace yourself, your mother, and your
Kingdom." "You're
wrong!" Elspeth defended him passionately. "He loves me! He told me
so!" "And
you believed him, even when your own Companion would have nothing to do with
him?" Talia was white-hot with anger now. Elspeth was not willing to
listen to reason. Very well then, she should have evidence that she would
accept—in plenty. Talia
ruthlessly forced rapport on the young courtier. His petty evil was no match
for some of the minds Talia had been forced to touch, though his slimy slyness
made her skin crawl. Before Elspeth had a chance to shield herself, Talia
pulled her in as well—and forced her to see for herself the true thoughts of
one who had claimed that he cared for her. With a
cry of revulsion, Elspeth tore herself away from him and fled to the opposite
side of the barn, while Talia released her mind from the enforced union. She
was less gentle with the young popinjay. She had him in a crush- 128 Mercedes
Lackey ing
mental grip, and fed his fear without compunction as he gazed at her in dumb
terror. "You
will say nothing of this to anyone," she told him, burning each word into
his mind. "Because if you dare, you'll never sleep again—for every time
you shut your misbegotten eyes, this is what you'll see—" She
tore the memory of his worst nightmare out of the bowels of recollection and
flung it in his face, brutally invoking terror and forcing that on him as well.
He whimpered and groveled at her feet until she threw him violently out of rapport. "Get
out of here," she growled. "Get out, go back to your father's
holding, and don't come back." He fled
without a single backward glance. She
turned to face Elspeth, trying to control her anger by slowing her breathing.
"I thought better of you than that," she said, each word built of
ice. "I thought you would have had better taste than to let a creature
like that touch you." Elspeth
was crying, but as much out of anger as unhap-piness. "Fine words from the
Herald Vestal," she spat. "First Skif, then Kris—and now who? Why
shouldn't I have my lovers as well as you?" Talia
closed her hands into fists so tightly that her nails cut her palms. "I
think I hear the Brat speaking," she replied. "The little bitch who
wants all the glory of being the Heir, but none of the responsibilities. Oh,
Hulda taught you very well, didn't she? Grab and take—snatch all you can, think
only of yourself, and never mind what repercussions your actions may have on
others. Others don't matter. Oh, no, not now that you're Heir. After all, your
word is law, right? Or it should be. And if somebody tries to make you see
reason, well, dredge up the worst you can about mem and throw it in their
faces— then they'll be afraid to try and stop you from doing what you want. Well,
that doesn't work with me, young woman. For alt the importance it has, I could
be sleeping with men, women, or chirras, because I'm not the Heir. You seem to
have conveniently forgotten that you will sit on the Throne when your mother
dies. You may have to make a marriage of state to save us from a powerful ARROWS
FALL 129 enemy.
That was what this business with Alessandar and Ancar was all about, or have
you forgotten that, too? No one will want you or respect you outKingdom after
dallying with a petty schemer like he is. And I, at least, have never been
intimate with anyone that I didn't know, and who wasn't willing to let me
inside his thoughts. He wouldn't let you do that, would he? Didn't that make
you the least bit suspicious? Lady's Breasts, girl—where was your mind? Your
own Companion wouldn't have anything to do with him! Didn't that tell you
anything? If you're so hot to have a man between your legs, why the hell didn't
you choose a fellow student or someone from the Circle? They will at least
never betray you and they know when to keep their mouths shut!" Elspeth
burst into frantic tears. "Go away!" she wailed. "Leave me
alone! It wasn't like that at all! I thought—I thought—he loved me! I hate
you—I never want to see you ever again!" "That
pleases me very well," Talia snapped. "I'm ashamed that I wasted so
much of my time trying to help a damned fool." She
stalked out of the barn, vaulted onto Rolan's back, and returned to the Palace
without a backward glance. But
before she was halfway there, she was already rueing half of what she had said. She
reported to Selenay in an agony of self-accusation. The
Queen was in her private quarters, which were as Spartan as her public rooms
were opulent. She had wrapped herself in a robe of old and shabby brown
velveteen, nearly the same age and color as the couch she curled up on. Talia
stood before her, unable to look her in the eyes, as she related the entire
bitter tale. "Goddess,
Selenay, I couldn't have made a bigger mess of the situation if I'd planned it
out in advance,1* she finished, nibbing one temple and very near to weeping
with vexation. "I'm as big an idiot as I accused Elspeth of being. I let
all my training go flying merrily out the window, let my own problems get the
better of me, 130 Mercedes
Lackey and
completely lost my temper. Maybe you'd better send me back through the
Collegium with the babies again." "Just
wait a moment. I'm not sure that your reaction was the wrong one, and I'm not
sure that you didn't do the right thing," the Queen replied thoughtfully,
candlelight reflecting in her wide eyes. "Sit down, little friend, and
hear me out. Firstly, we've been very gentle with Elspeth up until now insofar
as exposing her to the kind of emotional blackmail and double-dealing perfidy
that we both know is fairly commonplace at Court. Well, now she's learned that
deceit can arrive packaged very attractively, and that isn't a bad thing. She
was hurt and frightened—but that will send the lesson home the more deeply. I
believe you were correct in thinking that this experience will prevent her from
making the same kind of mistake I made. That's not to say that you didn't
overreact and say some things you shouldn't have, but on the whole, I think the
good will outweigh the mistakes." "How
can you say that after the way I've alienated her? I'm supposed to be her
friend and counselor!" "And
when, in all the time you've known her, have you ever lost your temper with
her? Not once. So she learns something else—that it's possible to go too far
with you, and that you're as human and fallible as the rest of us. I doubt
she'll ever provoke you that far again." "There
isn't likely to be another chance," Talia said bitterly. "Not the way
I've fouled things up." "I
disagree." Selenay shook her head emphatically. "Since you've been
gone I've gotten to know my daughter very well. She meant what she said ... for
now. She has a temper, but once it cools she doesn't hold a grudge. And when
she realizes that you were right—and acting in her defense—she'll come around.
If you were to disappear for a while, I think she'll eventually realize that
while you did overreact, so did she." The
Queen pondered for a moment. "I think I have the perfect solution.
Remember Alessandar's marriage proposal? I intended to make a state visit there
in the next few weeks, and I wanted to send an envoy on ahead to look the
prince over. As my own personal advisor you would be perfect for that, the more
especially as I intend ARROW'S
FALL 131 to send
Kris as well. I heard about the quarrel between Kris and Dirk, and I had
figured on giving them a bit of time for things to cool as well. I was going to
send Dirk and Kyril, until Dirk fell ill last night, so I'll separate the pair
by sending Kris off." "That's
mended," Talia sighed. "I
still want to send Kris; he has the manner and the blood to be acceptable, and
I would as soon keep Kyril here. You and Kris worked outstandingly well as a
team, and I trust your judgment completely. I think that rather than canceling
the visit, I'll move the date up and send the two of you on ahead to spy things
out for me. I'll take Elspeth with me. And I'll have a word with Orthallen
about those protege's of his." Selenay's eyes grew cold. "It's about
time he stopped being their defender and stopped letting them use his good name
to get away with whatever they please." Talia
realized then that she had not told Selenay her belief that Orthallen had put
the boy up to the attempted seduction. But—what proof did she have? Nothing,
except the vague image of Orthallen in the boy's mind— and that could have been
because he was hoping to escape punishment by sheltering behind his protector.
Best not to mention it, she thought wearily. I'm not up to going through the
same arguments I faced with Kris. "By
the time we all meet again," Selenay was saying, "Elspeth will have
had time to think. Do you think you could be ready in the morning? The sooner
you drop out of Elspeth's sight, the better." "I
could be ready in an hour," Talia replied. "Although I'm not sure you
should be so quick to trust me after tonight." "Talia,
I trust you even more," Selenay replied, as Talia seemed to read
understanding in her eyes. "You've come to me hot from the quarrel to
claim it was all your fault—how many people, how many Heralds, even, would have
done the same? But you haven't told me what has set you so on edge. Is it
something to do with Kris? Did you get caught in the middle of his feud with
Dirk? If you have problems with Kris, I'll send a different Herald with
you." 132 Mercedes
Lackey "Kris?"
Talia's honest surprise seemed to relieve the Queen. "No, thank the Lady,
we've more than made up our differences, just as he and Dirk made up. Bright
Havens, if anything he'll help straighten out this awful tangle! It's nothing
that can't be worked out with time, just like this row with Elspeth; it's just
that the time it's taking to set everything straight is driving me out of
patience and out of temper." "Good.
Then the plan stands. You and Kris will leave in the morning." "Selenay,
if you don't think it's a bad idea ..." Talia began hesitantly. "I
doubt that it would be. What is it you'd like to do?" "I'd
like to write a note of apology to Elspeth and leave it with you. There's no
doubt in my mind that I was partially in the wrong, that I overreacted, and
that I said a great many hurtful things because I was unhappy and I wanted to
hurt someone else. I certainty was far too hard on her. You can use your own
judgment whether or not to give it to her, and when." "It
sounds reasonable to me," Selenay replied, '"although a bit
unnecessary. We'll be following a week or two behind you, and apologies are
always more effective in person." "That's
quite true—but you never know what's likely to happen, and you may to want to
give it to her before you start off. I don't like the idea of leaving
unfinished business behind me, especially something as wretched as this. Who
knows? I might never get another chance." "Bright
Havens, dear! I should hire you out as my official doomsayer!" Selenay
laughed, but it was a little uneasy. Talia
shook her head with a vague smile. "Gods, I'm seeing everything miserable
just because I'm miserable. I will leave that note with you, but because the
catling may well decide to be a human being again once I've left. Now—are they
expecting any two Heralds, or Dirk and Kyril? Will there be any problem with me
showing up?" "The
underlings are probably just expecting two Heralds," Selenay said. "I
hadn't specified. I'll send the appropriate papers with you, of course. The
guards on ARROWS
FALL 133 Aiessandar's
side of the Border will send the specifics on ahead of you. I've heard he has
some special way of relaying messages, faster than birds or couriers. I would depends from
allies or not—or whether it's a secret at all. We'll do our best," Talia
managed half a smile. "You know, having the two of us on this assignment
will work rather well at ferreting secrets out. Anybody involved with state
secrets will be nervous; I can pick that up, and Kris can follow my anchor to
Farsee what's going on. My Queen, you are very sly." "Me?"
Selenay contrived to look innocent, then caught her eyes squarely. "Are
you sure you're ready for this? I won't send you if you don't feel capable of
political intrigue and all the rest that this will entail. It is likely to be
simple and straightforward, but it could involve ferreting out secrets, and at
the very least you'll be dealing with the same amount of scheming you have
here." "I'm
ready," Talia sighed. "It can't be worse than the mess I've already
been dealing with." Six "I
feel like I'm running away." Talia's
voice was quiet, but in the hush of pre-dawn Kris had no trouble hearing her. "Don't,"
Kris replied, tightening Tantris' girth with a little grunt. Their
Companions stood patiently side by side in the tackshed, as they had so many
times during Talia's internship, waiting for their Chosen to finish harnessing
them. The rain mat had blown up just past midnight had died away to nothing,
but the skies were still overcast; both Heralds wore their cloaks against the
chill damp. Tantris and Rolan were being decked out in full "formal"
array; the silver brightwork gleamed in the light from the lantern just above
Tantris' shoulder and the bridle bells tinkled softly as the Companions
shifted. The homey scent of leather and hay made Talia's throat ache with tears
she refused to shed. "Look,
there isn't anything either of us can do here at tile moment, right?" Kris
threw his saddlebags over Tantris' hindquarters and fastened them to the
saddle's skirting. "Elspeth won't talk to you, and Dirk can't. So you
might as well be doing something useful—something different. There won't be
anybody who's going to need you during the few weeks we'U be gone, will
there?" "No,
not really." TaUa had been very busy this past evening; her lack of sleep
was apparent from the dark circles under her eyes. "Destria is doing fine;
anything she needs now Vostel is more than competent to give her. I talked to
Alberich; he took me to see Kyril. They 135 136 Mercedes
Lackey promised
me that they'd keep an eye on your uncle—I'm sorry, Kris. ..." "Don't
apologize; I'm just a little surprised you managed to convince Kyril he needed
watching. Tantris, stand, dammit!" "I
didn't, really, Alberich did." "Huh.
Alberich? Nobody convinces him of anything; he must have had reasons of his own
to agree with you." He digested this in silence for a moment. Tantris
shifted over another step. "Alberich
is going to have a word or two with Elspeth, too," she continued after the
silence had become a little uncomfortable. She ran her hands down Rolan's legs
to confirm that the bindings on his pasterns and fetlocks were firm. "And
Keren promised to beard Dirk in his lair as soon as she can bully her way past
the Healers. So did Skif." "Skif
said as much to me. Poor Dirk, I could almost feel sorry for him. He's not
likely to get much sympathy from either of those two." Tantris' bridle
bells tinkled as he shifted again. "Sympathy
isn't what he needs," she replied a little waspishly, straightening up.
"He's been wallowing in self-pity long enough ..." her voice trailed
off, and she concluded shamefacedly: "for that matter, so have I." "Work
is the best cure I know for self-pity, little bird," Kris said,
self-consciously. "And—hey!" With
that last step Tantris had managed to shift over far enough that Kris and Talia
were trapped between the two Companions, breast-to-breast. :Kiss
and make up, brother-mine. And be nice. She's having a hard time.: Kris
sighed with exasperation, then looking down at Talia's wistful eyes, softened. "It'll
be all right, little bird—and you have every reason to feel sorry for
yourself." He kissed her softly on the forehead and the lips. She
relaxed just a Tittle, and leaned her head for a short moment on his shoulder.
"I don't know what I've done to deserve a friend tike you/' she sighed,
then took hold of herself. "But we have a long road ahead of us—" ARROW'S
FALL 137 Tantris
had moved away so that they were no longer trapped, and Kris could hear him
laughing in his mind. "—and we've got a limited time to cover it,"
Kris finished for her. "And since my Companion has decided to cooperate
again, wrought to get moving." He gave Tantris' harness a final tug and
swung into the saddle. "Ready to go?" "As
ready as I'll ever be." They
took with them only what Tantris and Rolan could carry. They needed to carry no
supplies; they would be housed and fed at inns along the way until they reached
the Border, and thereafter would be using the hostels of King Alessandar. They
also needed to bring a minimum in the way of personal belongings. The Queen and
her entourage would be following at a pace geared to her baggage train, and
they would bring whatever might be required for the term of official visits.
Selenay and Alessandar were long-time allies; he and her father had been that
rarest of things among rulers—personal friends. Although it was a slim chance,
the possibility of Elspeth being willing to make a marriage with Alessandar's
own heir was not to be dismissed offhand. Alessandar had not been discouraged
by Selenay's initial reply to his offer— rather he had urged this visit on her,
so that she and Elspeth could see Ancar for themselves. He had argued
convincingly that such marriages took years to arrange; even were they to agree
now, Elspeth would be past her internship when it became a reality. Since
Selenay had not seen the young man since he was an infant, on the occasion of
his naming and her last state visit, she agreed. This would be the ideal time
for such a visit. Since the Collegium was about to go into summer recess, she
could bring Elspeth with her. She was still determined that Elspeth would not
be forced into any marriage unless the safety of the entire realm rested on it.
She was equally determined that any young man that Elspeth chose, be he royal
or common, would at least be of the frame of mind to agree with the principles
that governed her Kingdom. If possible, he should be of Heraldic material
himself. Ideally, Elspeth's consort would be someone who was either Chosen
already 138 Mercedes
Lackey or who
would be Chosen once he was brought to the attention of the Companions. If this
came to pass, it would fulfill Selenay's highest hopes, for the Heir's consort
would be co-ruler if also a Herald. Besides
preceding their Monarch and making certain all was in readiness for her, Kris'
and Talia's primary duty was to examine the proposed bridegroom—and to
determine how his own people felt about him—for themselves; and then give
Selenay their opinions of his character. It was no small trust. This
was all in the back of Talia's mind as they rode away in the darkness before
dawn. Troubling her thoughts was her feeling that, in spite of the importance
of this mission, she was running away from unfinished business by accepting it. She had
labored for hours over the simple note to Elspeth, tearing up dozens of false
starts. It stitl wasn't right; she wished she'd been able to find better words
to explain why she had overreacted, and nothing she could say would unspeak
some of the hurtful things she'd said. The incident was evidence that she and
Elspeth had drawn apart during Talia's interning, and the rift that had come
between them needed to be healed, and quickly. She couldn't help but berate
herself for not seeing it when she'd first returned. Then
there was Dirk . . . She couldn't
help but think she was being cowardly. Anyone with any courage at all would
have remained, despite everything. And yet—what could she truly do back there
besides fret? Kris was right; Elspeth would refuse to speak with her, and Dirk
was out of bounds in the Healers' hands. It
seemed appropriate that they rode away through darkness, and that the sky was
so gloomy and overcast there was no bright dawn at all, merely a gradual
lightening of the dark to gray, leaden daylight. Kris
was not very happy with himself at the moment, ,7 haven't been doing too well
by my friends lately, have I?: he sent to Tantris' backward-pointing ears. ;Not
little brother, you haven't,: his Companion agreed. ARROW'S
FALL 139 He
sighed, and settled himself a little more comfortably in the saddle. Now that
he looked back on it, there were things he should have done. He should have
told Dirk right off about the way Talia felt—about Dirk, and about himself.
When Dirk started acting oddly, he should have had it out with him. He should
never have let things get to the point where Dirk was leaning on the bottle to
cope. Lord
and Lady, I'd be willing to bet gold he thinks its me Talia's in love with.
Gods, gods, I've been tearing his heart and soul into ragged bits and I never
even noticed. No wonder he picked a fight with me, no wonder he was drinking.
Ah, Dirk, my poor brother—I did it to you again. How am I going to make it up
to you? Then
there was Talia. He should have believed that Talia wasn't indulging in a
grudge. He should have known, what with all the time he'd spent with her, that
she wasn't inclined to hold grudges, even though she wasn't inclined to forgive
a hurt too easily. He should have believed that her feeling about his uncle was
rooted in fact, not dislike. Alberich obviously believed her—and the Armsmaster
was hardly noted for making hasty judgments. :Might-have-beens
don't mend the broken pot,: Tantris said in his mind. .-Little brother, why
didn't you do these tilings?: Good
question. Kris thought about that one while the road passed under Tantris'
hooves. There weren't many folk out this early, so they had the road to
themselves, and there was nothing to distract him. One
thing at a time. Why hadn't he done anything about Dirk? He came
to the sobering conclusion that he hadn't done anything because he hadn't seen
the problem until Dirk was drinking himself to sleep every night. And he hadn't
seen it because he was so pleased with himself for the completion of a
successful assignment on his own—so wrapped up in a glow of
self-congratulation—that he hadn t noticed anything else. He'd been like a
child on holiday; selfishly intent only on his own pleasures now that the
onerous burden of school was done with for the 740 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 141 nonce.
Teaching the classes in Farseeing was so very easy for him that it was like
having no duty at all, and he'd been spending the rest of his time up to his
eyebrows in his own pleasures. ;Very
good,: Tantris said dryly. :Now don't go overboard in beating your breast about
it. I wasn't too remiss in enjoying myself, either. It had been a long lime to
be out—and Ahrodie and I missed each other. : :Hedonist,:
Kris sent, a little relieved that his Companion was being so reasonable. :Not
realty. We're as close as you and Dirk—in a slightly different fashion. More
like you and Talia, really.: Yes,
Talia—it was easy to figure out why he'd been so slow to see her plight.
Orthallen was, in all honesty, a politician, a schemer, and power-hungry. Kris
had been forced to defend his uncle's actions to other Heralds more than once,
although never against an accusation of deliberate and malicious wrongdoing.
Kris knew Orthallen never did anything for just one reason; yes, he might well
manage to gain a little more power, influence, or put someone in his debt by
the things he did, but there was always a profit for the Kingdom as well.
Heralds though— the use of authority for personal benefit bothered them,
probably because such usage was forbidden them, both by training and by
inclination. Most Heralds weren't highborn, and didn't grow up with the
intrigue and politics that were a part of the rhythm of Court life. Things Kris
accepted matter-of-factly disgusted them. But the fact was that Heralds were
very sheltered creatures—except the ones who lived and worked in the Court, or
were highborn. Court politics were a reality most Heralds could remain
blissfully unaware of, for they dealt only with the highest level of Court life—the
Queen, her immediate entourage, and the Seniors—where for all intents and
purposes, the politicking didn't exist. It was at Orthallen's level, the
mid-to-upper level nobility, that the competition was fiercest. And it was very
possible he had seen only the political implications of the ascension of the
new Queen's Own. More than possible. Most likely . . . Which
meant he'd seen Talia as a political rival to be trimmed down; seen her only as
a political rival. Her duties
and responsibilities as a Herald—Orthallen probably didn't understand them, and
certainly discounted them as irrelevant. Old Talamir had been no threat to
Orthallen, but this quick, intelligent, young woman was. All of
which boiled down to the fact that Talia was likely dead-accurate in reading
Orthallen's motives toward her. Yes,
Kris had dealt with fellow Heralds' censure of his uncle before. But Talia's
accusations had been different— and he had been as shocked by the idea that a
member of his family could be suspected of real wrongdoing as Talia had been
that a Herald was accused of it. He'd taken it almost as an attack on himself,
and had reacted just as unthinkingly. .7 wish
you'd spoken your mind to me before this,: Kris told Tantris, just a hint of
accusation flavoring the thought. :It
doesn't work that way, little brother,: Tantris replied, :and you know that
perfectly well. We only give advice when we're asked for it. It isn't our job
to interfere in your personal lives. How do you think poor Ahrodie was feeling,
with her Chosen making a muck of things and not even talking to her, hm? And
Rolan can't even properly talk with his Chosen. But now that you are finally
asking—: ilmpari
to me your deathless wisdom.: :Now,
now, there's no need to be sarcastic. As it happens, I don't like Orthallen
either, but he's never given anyone any real evidence of iU-will before this.
All I've ever had to go on were my instincts.: .-Which
are far better than any human's,: Kris reminded him. :Weti,
don't blame yourself for not seeing anything,: Tantris continued. :But when
someone like Talia insists on a thing, it's probably a good idea to lay aside
your feelings about it and consider it as dispassionately as possible. Now that
she's got that Gift of hers in full control, her instincts in these matters are
as good as mine.: :Yes,
graybeard,: Kris thought, his good humor somewhat restored by the fact that
Tantns wasn't trying to make him feel guilty about the mess. :Graybeard,
am I?: Tantris snorted and shook his mane. 'fit. 142 Mercedes
Lackey :We'll
see about that.: And he performed a little caracole, a half-buck that shook
Kris* bones, and a kick or two before settling back down to his original steady
pace. While
Rolan could not Mindspeak Talia as Tantris could Kris, he was making his
feelings abundantly clear. It was quite plain to Talia that her Companion
thought she was indulging in a good deal more self-pity than the occasion
warranted. Perversely, his disapproval made her feel all the sorrier for herself. Eventually
he gave up on her, and let her wallow in her misery to her heart's content. The
weather, unseasonable for the edge of summer, was certainly cooperating; it was
a perfect day for being depressed. The chill, leaden skies threatened rain, but
it never quite made up its mind to fall. The few people they met on the roadway
were taciturn and scant in their greetings. The threat of rainfall made folk in
the villages they passed inclined to stay indoors. Because
they were traveling light, they would make the best possible time to the
Border, even though they would be stopping to rest at night. According to
Kyril, it was probable that they would proceed still on their own as far as the
capital, since the Companions would be able to make far better time than any
steeds the King could send with an escort. Which meant, given the probable
speed of Selenay and her entourage, they would have several days at least to
assess the prince and the situation before one of them rode back to meet the
Queen on the Border. That
likeliest would be Kris; Talia, as Queen's Own, was the better choice for
envoy. Although her reason acknowledged the wisdom of this, her emotions
rebelled, wanting it to be her who made that first contact with Selenay—and
with Elspeth—and possibly, with Dirk, if he were well enough by then. Nothing
was going as she would have chosen; and on top of it all, she had been
experiencing an odd foreboding about this trip from the moment Selenay
mentioned it. There was no reason for it, yet she couldn't shake it. ARROWS
FALL 143 It was
as if she were riding from bad into worse, and there was no way to stop what
was coming. Talia
remained turned inward, determined to control her own internal turmoil by
herself. Weeping on Kris' shoulder would accomplish nothing. Rolan was a
solace— but this was a matter of dealing with her own emotions and her own
control. A Herald, she told herself for the thousandth time, was supposed to be
self-sufficient, able to cope no matter how difficult the situation. She would,
by the Havens, control herself—there was no excuse for her own emotional
weakness. She had learned to control her Gift—she would learn to school her
emotions to the same degree. The
hard pace they were setting left little opportunity for conversation, but Kris
was very aware of her unhap-piness. Talia had told him in detail about the
confrontation with the Heir as they were saddling up. He was sadly aware that
there was little he could do to help her; it was extremely frustrating to see
her in such emotional pain and be unable to do anything constructive about it.
Not long ago, he would have fled the prospect of emotional demands. Now in the
light of this morning's introspection his sole regret was that he could not
find some way to help. When
she'd lost control over her Gift, there had been something he could do. He was
a teacher; he knew the fundamentals of training any Gift, and he had Tantris
and Rolan to help him with the specifics of hers. Now .. . Well,
maybe there was one small way in which he could help her. If he talked to his
uncle, perhaps he could make him understand that Talia was not a political
threat. With that pressure off, the problem of dealing with Elspeth and Dirk
might assume more manageable proportions. They
stopped for a brief lunch at an inn, but mindful of the time constraints they
were under, they ate it standing in the stable-yard. "How
are you doing so far?*' he asked around a mouthful of meat pie. "I'm
all right," she replied. She'd already bolted down 744 Merccdcs
Lackey her
portion so fast she couldn't have tasted it. Now she was giving Rolan a brisk
rubdown, and was putting far more energy into Rolan's currying than was
strictly necessary. "Well
I know you haven't ridden much at forced pace; if you have any problems, let me
know." "I
will," was her only reply. He
tried again. ((I hope the weather breaks; it's bad for riding, but I would
think it's worse for crops." "Uh-huh." "We'll
have to ride right up until dark to make Trevale, but the inn there should make
up for the ride. I've been there before." He waited. No response.
"Think you can make it that far?" "Yes." "Their
wine is good. Their beer is better." "Oh." "Their
heartbeats have two tails." "Uh-huh." He gave
up. They
stopped long after dark when Kris was beginning to go numb in his legs, and
staggered into an inn neither of diem really saw. The innkeeper saw that both
of them were exhausted, and wisely kept his other customers away from them,
giving them a table right on the hearth and a good dinner. The inn
was a big one, and catered to traders, carters, and other mercantile travel.
The common room was nearly full, and noisy enough that Kris did not attempt
conversation. Talia was just as glad; she knew she wasn't decent company at the
moment, and she rather hoped he'd ignore her until she was. After a meal which
she did not even taste and choked down only because she needed to fuel her
body, they went straight to their beds. She was able to force herself to sleep,
but she could do nothing about her dreams. They were tortured and nightmarish,
and not at all restful. They
again left before dawn, rising before any of the other guests of the inn,
breaking their fast with hot bread ARROWS
FALL 145 aad
milk before swinging up into their saddles and resuming the journey. Talia,
having found no answers within, began resolutely turning her attention without.
The sides had begun clearing, and by late morning they were able to roll up
their cloaks and fasten them behind their saddles. When birds began voicing
their songs, her spirits finally began to lighten. By noon she had managed to
regain enough of her good humor to speak normally with Kris, and the whole mess
she'd left behind her began to assume better proportions. She was still
conscious of a faint foreboding, but in the bright sunlight it seemed hardly
more than the remnants of her nightmares. Toward
midday Talia suddenly perked up and became more like her old self, for which
Kris was very grateful. Riding next to a person who strongly resembled the
undead of the tales was not his idea of the way to make a journey. Diplomatic
missions were not entirely new to Kris, though he'd not been senior Herald
before. This was Tatia's first stint as an envoy, and they really needed to
talk about it while it was possible to do so unobserved. Kris
was relieved by her apparent return to normal, and ventured a tentative
prompting. She responded immediately with a flood of questions, and that was
more like the Talia he knew, but he could not help but note (with a feeling of
profound sympathy) her dark-circled eyes. While he was no Empath, he knew her
sleep must have been scant. By the
time they reached the Border itself at the end of a week of hard riding, things
were back on their old footing between them. They had discussed every
contingency that they could think of between them (ranging from the possibility
that Ancar should seem to be perfect in every way, to the possibility that he
was a worse marital prospect than Selenay's late consort) and talked over
graceful ways to get them all out if the latter should be the case. Kris was
fairly sure she was ready to face whatever the fates should throw at her. 746 Mercedes
Lackey As they
rounded a curve, late in the afternoon of the fourth day of the journey, Talia
got her first sight of the Border. The Border itself, here where two civilized
and allied countries touched, was manned by small outposts from each Kingdom. On the Valdemar
side stood a small building, a few feet from the road, and a few feet from the
simple bar that marked the Border itself. It served as dwelling and office for
the two pairs of Guardsfolk stationed there. The pair on duty were checking the
papers of an incoming trader; they looked up at the sound of hoofbeats, and
grinned to see the two Heralds. The taller of the two left the trader's wagon
and took down the bar for them, waving them through with an elaborate mock bow. A few
lengths farther on was a proper gate, marking Alessandar's side of the Border.
It was manned by another pair of guards, this time in the black-and-gold
uniforms of Alessandar's army. With them was a young man in a slightly more
elaborate uniform; a Captain of Alessandar's army. The
Captain was young, friendly, and quite handsome; he passed them in without more
than a cursory glance at their credentials. "I've
been waiting for you," he told them, "but I truly didn't expect you
here this soon. You must have made very good time." "Fairly
good," Kris replied, "and we started out a bit sooner than planned.
We've been out in the field for the last year or so. Field Heralds are used to
being ready to go at a moment's notice." "As
opposed to folks with soft bunks at Court, hm?" the Captain grinned.
"Same with us. That lot stationed at Court couldn't have a half-day of
maneuvers without a full baggage train and enough supplies to feed a town.
Well, I do have some basic orders about what to do with you . . ." "You
do?" Talia said, raising her eyebrows in surprise. "Oh,
it isn't much—just wait until you arrive, then inform the capital." Talia
recalled then what Selenay had said, that Ales-sandar was rumored to have some
new system of passing ARROWS
FALL 147 messages
swiftly. She also remembered that Selenay had asked her to find out what she
could about it. Evidently
Kris had gotten similar instructions. "Now
how are you going to get further instructions about us in any reasonable amount
of time?" Kris asked. "I know the nearest authority is several days
away on horseback, and you don't have Heralds to carry messages quickly." The
young Captain smiled proudly. "It's no secret," he replied, his brown
eyes frank. "In fact, I would be honored to show you, if you aren't too
tired." "Not
likely—not when you're offering to show us what sounds like magic!" The
Captain laughed. "From what / understand, you're fine ones to talk about
wonders and magic! Well, one man's magic is another man's commonplace, so they
say. Come along then, and I'll show you." Out of
courtesy to him, since he was afoot, Talia and Kris dismounted and walked with
him up the packed-gravel roadway to his outpost; a building much bigger man the
one on the Valdemar side, and shaded on three sides by trees. "WiU
it interest you to know that I may very well get my orders within a matter of
hours, if someone is found of high enough rank to issue them before the sun
sets?" "That's
amazing! We can't even do that," Talia replied. "But what does the
sun setting have to do with it?" "You
see the tower attached to the outpost?" He shook dark hair out of his eyes
as he pointed to a slim, skeletal edifice of gray wood. This tower rose several
feet above the tree tops, and was anchored on one side to the mam barracks of
the Border station. It had had both of them puzzled since it seemed to have no
real use except perhaps as a lookout point. "I
must admit we were wondering about that," Kris told him. "Are forest
fires that much of a danger around here? I wouldn't have thought so, what with
all the land under cultivation." "Oh,
it's not a firetower, though that's where the design is from." The young
Captain laughed. "Come up 740 Mercedes
Lackey to the
top with me, and I'll show you something to set you on your ears." They
followed him up the series of ladders that led to the broad platform on the
top. Once there, though, Talia didn't see anything out of the ordinary—just two
men in the black uniform tunics of Alessandar's army, and an enormous concave
mirror, as wide as Talia was tall. Although it was not quite perfect, its
surface a bit wavering, it was an impressive piece of workmanship. Talia
marveled at the skill that had gone into first producing and then silvering such
an enormous piece of glass. The
mirror stood on a pivoting pedestal, and as they watched, one of the two men
turned it until it reflected a beam of the westering sunlight at the
southwestern corner of the platform. When he'd done that, the second man picked
up a smaller mirror about three handspans across and took his position in the
beam of reflected light. That
was when Talia realized just how they were going to pull off the trick. It was
a very clever variant on the old scheme of signaling across distance by means
of the sun flashing off a reflective object. It was clever because in this case
there was no need to hope that the sun was in the correct position when you
needed to send a message. The
Captain smiled broadly as he saw understanding in their faces. "It was the
idea of some savant in A near's entourage. We started building these towers
last year at all the outposts; when we realized how useful they are we sped up
the building and put towers up as fast as we could get the mirrors for them. We
have relay towers all across the Kingdom now," he continued, with cheerful
pride. *'We can transmit a message from one end of the Kingdom to the other in
a matter of hours. That's rather better than you Heralds can do, from what I
understand." "That's
quite true, but anyone who knows your code has no trouble in learning the
content of any messages you send," Kris pointed out. "That makes it a
bit difficult to keep anything secret, doesn't it?" The
Captain laughed. "In that case, the couriers need never fret that there
will be no job for them, true? Solan," he addressed the man holding the
smaller mirror, "tell them down the line that Queen Selenay of ARROWS
FALL 149 Valdemar's
two envoys are here, and waiting for instructions on how to proceed." "Sir!"
The signalman saluted smartly, and carried out his orders. In the far distance
the Heralds could just barely make out what might be the top of another tower
above the treetops. Shortly after their man had completed his message, a series
of flashes winked back at them from this point. "He's
repeating our entire message back to us," the Captain explained. "We
started this check after a few too many misreadings had caused some serious
tangles. Now if he's mistaken any of it, we can correct him before he sends it
on." "Sir.
Message correct, sir," the signalman replied. "Send
the confirmation," the Captain ordered, then continued his commentary.
"Now the closer you get to any of the major cities, especially the
capital, the more men we have on each tower. That makes sure that several
incoming messages can be handled at once. If the originator doesn't get
confirmation, he assumes that there was a momentary jam-up, and keeps sending
until he does." "It's
really brilliant," Talia said, and she and the Captain exchanged a grin at
her pun, "but what do you do on cloudy days or at night?" He
laughed. "We go back to the old, reliable courier system in bad weather.
We back it up by making our posting stations part of the tower system, so as soon
as the clouds break or the sun rises, the message can be relayed. Even when
conditions have been at their worst the towers usually still manage to beat the
courier. At night, of course, we can signal with lanterns, but that won't be of
any help in this case, since no one is going to want to trouble envoys with
orders after they've presumably retired. That's assuming anyone highborn enough
to issue those orders is willing to take the time to do so after the sun
sets!" They
followed him back down the ladders. Once back on the ground, since neither of
them showed any signs of fatigue, he gave them a tour of the post that lasted
until darkness fell. Talia was intrigued, and not just by the 150 Mercedes
Lackey signal
towers. This was more than simply a Border-guard station; there was a company
of Alessandar's army on permanent duty here. When not patrolling the road for
bandits or standing watch on the relay tower, the men (there were no women in
Alessandar's army) performed policing functions for local villages. It was
an interesting contrast to ttye Valdemar system, where Selenay's soldiery was
kept in central locations, and shifted about at need. But then, Alessandar had
a much larger standing army. In
addition to the army company, there were four Healers—all women—permanently
assigned here. There were three buildings, not including the tower; the
barracks, the Border station where the Healers lived and where Customs checks
were made and taxes collected from those passing across the Border, and a kind
of all-purpose building that included the kitchen and storage facilities. "Well,"
the Captain said with resignation, when the tour was over and no one had
appeared from the tower with a message. "It looks like the folks at the
other end couldn't find anyone with enough authority to issue orders about you
before it became too late. That means you'll have to spend the night
here—unless you'd rather recross the Border?" "Here
will be fine, providing it's no imposition," Kris answered. The Captain
looked doubtfully from Kris to Tatia and back again, and coughed politely. "I
haven't got private quarters for you," he said a bit awkwardly. "I
could easily find you space in the barracks, of course, and the young lady
could take a bed with the Healers, since they re all women. But if you'd rather
not be separated. ..." "Captain,
Herald Tali a and I are colleagues, nothing more." Kris looked sober
enough, but Taha could read his amusement at the Captain's embarrassment. "Your
arrangements are perfectly fine," Talia said smoothly. "We're both
used to barracks-style quarters; I promise you that they're quite a luxury
compared with some of the Waystations I've spent my nights in." ARROWS
FALL 151 Talia
had been careful to use "I" instead of "we" in speaking of
the Waystations. She saw out of the corner of her eye Kris winking at her to
congratulate her on her
tact. "If
that's the case, I'll escort you to the officer's mess for some dinner,"
the Captain replied, apparently relieved that they'd made no awkwardness over
the situation. His attitude made Talia wonder if other guests at this outpost
had been less than cooperative, or if it was simply that he'd heard some of the
more exaggerated tales about Heralds. While
somewhat restrained by the presence of outsiders, the officers were a very
congenial lot. They were terribly curious about Heralds, of course, and some of
the questions were as naive as any child's. If all of Alessandar's people were
as open-handed and content with their lot as these men were, Talia was inclined
to think he was every bit as good a ruler as Selenay. Although
Kris got a real bed, Talia had to make do with a cot in the Healer's quarters.
She didn't mind in the least. The nightmares that had plagued her nightly all
the way here had left her so weary she thought that she could quite probably
sleep on a slab of stone. This
night, however, the nightmares seemed to have been partially thwarted. That
might have been due to the soothing presence of the Healers bedded all around
her. After all, she was an Empath; Kris was not. There had been enough bad
fortune this spring that it was possible she might well have been picking up
the general air of disaster everyone was sharing lately. She'd thought she'd
made her shields strong enough to block just about anything, but she had been
stressed, and that put a strain on her shielding. Or the
fact that the nightmares went away might have been just because she had worn
herself out past the point of being disturbed by them. For whatever reason, she
slept soundly for the first time since leaving, and had only the vaguest
memories of disturbing dreams in the morning. Seven K Kris
had been deaf, he might have been able to sleep through the noise of the night
guards coming in and the day guards getting up. Since he wasn't, he made a
virtue of the inevitable and got up with them. He found Talia, still
sleepy-eyed, waiting for him in the mess hall; she'd had the foresight to claim
two breakfasts from the cook. Their host put hi an appearance just as they were
finishing. "Well,
I've got your instructions. Fm to give you maps, and you're not to wait for an
escort but to go on to the capital. You're to check in with relay stations at
sunset before you stop for the night." "Sounds
simple enough," Kris replied. "I really wanted to get on—not that
your hospitality isn't appreciated, but I'd rather not strain your resources.
Just as well we're not going to have to wait for an escort." "I'll
admit I was glad to hear I didn't need to supply you with one," their host
said frankly. "I'm shorthanded enough, and if half of what I've heard is
true, none of our beasts could ever hope to keep pace with yours, •Byway." "It's
true enough," Kris replied with pardonable pride. "There isn't a
horse born that can match the speed and endurance of a Companion." "All
right, what you'll do is follow the main road to the capital—it's easy
enough—and stay overnight at Alenandar's hostels. They'll always be on the main
square of town; there'll be a Guardpost nearby, and they'll look Wee inns. The
only difference between a hostel and an inn 153 154 Mercedes
Lackey is that
the sign outside will have a wheat sheaf in a crown. Oh—you do speak our
language, don't you?" "Perfectly,"
Kris replied in Hardornen. "Oh,
good—I thought they wouldn't have sent anybody that didn't, but you never
know—and once you get a few miles off the Border nobody speaks
Valdemaren." "I
can't say that surprises me too much," Talia put in, in slow, clear
Hardornen. "Once you get a few miles off our Border no one except Heralds
speaks yours!" "Right
then, you can be on your way as soon as you're ready. Here's your map," he
handed Kris a folded packet "and best of luck to you." "Thanks,"
Kris said, both of them rising and heading for the door. "And
don't forget," he called after them as they headed for the stables,
"Check in with the relay towers every night. The capital wants to be able
to keep track of you." The
first day passed without incident. Alessandar's people seemed as content as
Seienay's; they were friendly, and looked quite prosperous, at least from a
distance. "Isn't
there supposed to be a village along here soon?" Talia asked around noon. Kris
pulled the map they'd been given out of his beltpouch and consulted it.
"Assuming I haven't been misreading this—let's see if we can find a
native." One
more turning of the road brought them to a grove of trees in the road-side
corner of a fenced field. Beneath those trees was a group that could have been
exchanged for farmers of Vaidemar without anyone noticing the difference. They
were stolidly munching their way through a dinner of thick, coarse bread and
cheese, but when one of them noticed that the two Heralds were approaching them
with purpose, he stood, brushed crumbs off his linen smock, and met them
halfway. "Eh,
sir, and can I be of any help to ye?" he asked, as friendly as the Captain
had been. "I'm
not quite used to this map," Kris replied, "And I wonder if you could
tell me how far it is to Southford?" "That
be just a league or so a-down the road; there's that hill yonder in the way, or
ye could see it from here." ARROW?
FALL 155 man
grinned. "A'course, if the hill bain't there, ye wouldn't have to ask,
eh?" Kris
laughed along with him. "That's only true," he said, "And thank
you." **Nice
man," Talia commented when Kris returned to her side. "He could have
been one of ours." She squinted across the fields of swiftly-growing green
grain, and Kris followed her gaze. "They seem to be thriving, too. So far
Alessandar gets high marks from me." "Ah,"
Kris replied, "But it isn't Alessandar that's the prospective
bridegroom." '"That's
true." The face she turned toward him was a sober one. "And I wish I
didn't know so many tales of Mack-sheep sons. . . ." They
were to stay only at the hostels, or so their orders went, so as sunset neared
they checked the map for the first town ahead of them likely to have one. Tlw
hostels were an innovation of Alessandar's, and were meant to serve as a
courtesy to those moving about his Kingdom on official business. They were
rather like well-run inns, save that there was no fee. Court officials, envoys
of other Kingdoms, and clergy were permitted unlimited use of these facilities. They
first reported their progress to one of the relay stations in a village along
the way, as had been requested. The station was easy enough to find, as it
towered over every other structure in the village. "Will
ye be stayin' here, or movin' on past dark?" asked the grizzled veteran
who greeted them. "Moving
on," Talia replied, "We plan on making-Keeper's Crossing, was
it?" She looked to Kris for confirmation. He
checked the map and nodded. "That's
a ways—but you know best. Guess the tales *bout them horses o' yours must be
true." He looked over Rolan and Tantris with an appraising and approving
eye. "Useta be cavalry, meself. Can't say I've ever seen neater beasts. Ye
came all the way from the Border since this mornin*?" Rolan
and Tantris preened under his admiring gaze 156 Mercedes
Lackey and
curvetted a little, showing off. "That we did, sir," Kris answered
with a smile. "Don't
look winded—don't even look tired—just exercised a mite. Lord Sun, I'd not have
believed it if I hadn't a' seen it. Well if ye can make that kinda time, ye'll
be at the Crossings 'bout a candlemark after sunset. Hostel's in the town
square, right-hand side as you come in." "Many
thanks," Talia called as they turned the Companions' heads back to the
road. "Fair
wind at yer back!" he called after them, his admiring gaze following them
until they were out of sight. The
hostel was indeed like an inn, complete with innkeeper. They had been told that
the accommodations were as plain as the food, but adequate. They
showed their credentials to the businesslike Hostelmaster when they dismounted
at the door. He examined them quite carefully, paying close attention to the
seals of Valdemar and Hardorn. When he was satisfied that they were genuine, he
summoned a stabieboy with a single word. The lad came at a run to take the
Companions, and the Hostelmaster waved them inside. The
common room was hot, smoky, and crowded, and it took them a little tune to find
themselves places at smooth, worn wooden trestle-tables. Finally Talia squeezed
in beside a pair of travelers in priestly garb—apparently from the rival sects
of Kindas Sun-Kindler and Tembor Earth-Shaker. They were having a spirited
discussion of the deficiencies of their various congregations and simply nodded
to her as she took her place on the very end of the bench. Kris sat opposite
her, with his neighbor a thin, clerkly-looking sort with ink-stained fingers,
whose sole interest was the contents of the stoneware platter in front of him. A
harried serving girl placed similar platters before the two Heralds; meat,
bread, and stewed vegetables. A boy followed her with a tray of wooden mugs of
thin ale, and the keys to their rooms. They
ate quickly; the food wasn't anything to linger over, and Talia's bench, at
least, was so crowded she had ARROW'S
FALL 157 barely
enough room to perch. And there were more people coming in, waiting with
expressions of impatience for seats. With their hunger appeased, they took
their keys and their mugs to the other side of the lantern-lit room, where
there was a fire and a number of benches and settles scattered about. Talia
felt curious eyes on them—not hostile, just curious. She decided that they were
the only foreigners among the guests, for she couldn't detect any accents among
those speaking. She picked a seat, and took it quickly, feeling very conspicous
in her white uniform that stood out so sharply in the otherwise dark room. "Heralds
out of Valdemar, be you?" asked a portly fellow in brown velvet as Kris
took a comer of a bench. "You
have us rightly, good sir," Talia answered him. "Don't
see Heralds often," His inquisitive glance left no doubt but that he was
curious about what brought them. "You
should be seeing more before summer's over," Talia replied with what she
hoped was just enough friendliness. "Queen Selenay will be making a visit
to your King. We're here to help get things ready for her." "Ah?"
he replied, his interest piqued. "That so? Well-maybe things be taking a
turn for the better, after all." "Have
things been bad lately?" she asked as casually as possible.
"Valdemar's had its share of troubles, what with floods and all." "Oh,
aye—floods and all," he replied, a bit too hastily, and turned to the men
on the other side of him, joining the conversation in progress. "'Scuse
me, milady, but could you tell me what the grain prices look to be on your side
of the Border?" A tall, thin merchant interposed himself between Talia and
die man she had first spoken to, and it would have been plain rudeness to
ignore him. He kept her engaged with so many questions that she had no chance
to ask any of her own. Finally she'd had enough of being monopolized, and
signaled Kris that she was ready to leave. When
Kris yawned, pled fatigue, and rose to head for his room and bed, Talia
followed. The guest rooms were monklike cells arranged along the walls; they
had no 158 fireplaces
or windows, but slits in the walls near the ceiling gave adequate ventilation.
Kris raised one eyebrow interrogatively at her as he unlocked his door; she
gave him the little nod that meant she'd learned something interesting, and the
hand motion that meant they'd talk about it later. Even
without a window, Talia knew when it was sunrise. She wasn't much surprised to
discover that Kris had beaten her to breakfast by a few minutes. No one else
was even stirring. She didn't pay much attention to what she was eating; some
kind of grain porridge with nuts and mushrooms, she thought. It was as bland as
the dinner had been. "The
boy is harnessing for us," Kris said around a mouthful. "We can be on
the road as soon as you're ready." She
washed down the last bite of the gluey stuff with a quick gulp of unsweetened
tea. "I'm ready." "Then
let's get going." They
cantered out the village until they reached the outskirts before settling back
to a slower pace. "Well?"
Kris asked, when they were well out earshot of the village. "There's
something not quite right around here," Talia replied, "but I can't
put my finger on anything. All I've got is a feeling—and that no one wants to
talk about 'bad times' around here. It may just be an isolated case of
discontent—" She
shook her head, suddenly feeling dizzy. "What's
the matter?" "I
don't—know. I feel a little funny all of a sudden." "You
want to stop a minute?" Kris asked, sounding concerned. She was
about to say "no" when another wave of disorientation hit. "I
think I'd better—" Their
Companions moved over to the grassy verge of the road on their own. Rolan
braced all four legs and stood rock-still, while waves of dizziness washed over
her. She didn't dismount—she didn't dare; she was afraid ARROW*
FALL 159 sue
wouldn't be able to get back up again. She just clung lo the saddle, and hoped
she wouldn't fall off. "Want to go back?" Kris asked anxiously.
"Think you need a
Healer?" "N-no.
I don't think so. I don't know—" The disorien-tation didn't seem quite so
bad, after a bit. "I think it's going away by itself." Then,
as the dizziness faded, so did the empathic awareness of those around her; an
awareness she always had, no matter how tightly shielded. "Goddess!"
Her eyes snapped open and she looked frantically around her, as Kris grabbed
her elbow, anxiously. "It's—" She unshielded. It was the same. She
could sense nothing, not even Kris, beside her. "It's gone! My Gift—" Then it
was back—redoubled. And she, unshielded and wide open, bent over in physical
pain at the mental clamor of what seemed to be thousands of people. Hastily she
shielded back down— Only to have the clamor vanish again, She remained bent
over, head in hands. "Kris—Kris, what's happening to me? What's
wrong?" He was
steadying her as best he could from his saddle. "I don't know," he
said tightly, "I—wait—wasn't there some kind of mushroom in that glop they
fed us?" "^" she tried to think. "Yes. Maybe."
"Goatsfoot," he said grimly. "It has to be. That's why you're
getting hit and I'm not." "Goatsfoot?
That—" She sat up slowly, blinking tears away. "That's the stuff that
scrambles Gifts, isn't it? I thought it was rare—" "Only
Thoughtsensing and Empathy and yes, it is rare in most places. It's not common
around here, but it's not rare either, and it's been a wet spring, just what
goatsfoot likes. The damned fools must have gotten hold of a lot and just
chucked it in the food without checking beyond seeing that it was edible." She was
able to think a little clearer now. "This is going to make anything I read
pretty well worthless for rae next couple of days, isn't it? * He grimaced.
"Don't even try; it'll make you sick. 160 Mercedes
Lackey Those
damned fools were just lucky they didn't have a Healer overnighting there! If
you can ride, I think we'd better go back—" "I
can ride, if we take it easy. Why?" He had
already turned Tantris' head back the way they had come. "What if they
have more of that stuff—and a Healer as a guest tonight?" "Great
good gods!" She let Rolan follow in Kris' wake. It
wasn't more than a league back; they hadn't traveled far before the effect of
the fungus hit her. She fought off successive waves of dizziness and
disorientation, and was vaguely aware that they'd stopped and Kris was giving
someone a sharp-tongued dressing-down. She caught frantic apology; it seemed
genuine enough—what her Gift was feeding at her was anything but a reliable
gauge. Waves of paralyzing fear, apprehension, guilt—followed immediately by
waves of delirious joy, intense sexual arousal, and overwhelming hunger. Finally,
another "blank" moment, and she drew a shuddering breath of relief. "Little
bird?" She
opened her eyes to look down on Kris standing at her right stirrup. "Do
you want to stay here? I can go back to the signal tower and get them to send a
message that you've been taken ill—and whose fault it is." "No—no,
ni be better—better away from people. You can shield; they can't. I won't fall
off; Rolan won't let me." "If
that's the way you want it..." "Please—"
She closed her eyes. "Let's get out of here—" She
heard him mount; felt Rolan start off after him. She didn't open her eyes; the
disorientation didn't seem so bad when she could keep them closed. And she was
right; as distance increased between herself and the village, the worst of the
effects decreased. She felt a second shield snap up around her—Kris*—then a
third—Rolan's— She
opened her eyes cautiously. It was like looking ARROWS
FALL 161 op
through water, but bearable. She felt Kris touch her arm, and saw that he was
riding beside her. "This
couldn't have been on purpose," she asked, slowly, "Could it?" He gave
the idea serious thought; she could tell by the blank expression on his face.
"I don't think so," he said at last. "They couldn't have known
what hostel we'd overnight in, and they couldn't have counted on goatsfoot
being available. They swore they only had that one batch, that it was in a lot
of edible fungus some boy sold them tins morning. I made them dump the rest of
the porridge in the pig trough. No, I think it's just a damned bad accident.
Can you go on?" She
dosed her eyes, and took a kind of internal tally. MYes.M "All
right, then let's get on with it. I'd tike to get you to bed as early as we
can." But
Talia wondered—because with the relay towers, someone could have known what
hostel they intended to stay in—and as a former fannchild, she knew that some
mushrooms could be preserved indefinitely when dried.. . . Kris
pushed both of them to the limit, hoping to get Tana into the haven of a bed
long before sundown. He managed; better still, that night they were the only
travelers making use of the hostel. The quiet did her some good; so did the
rest. Unfortunately, he knew from old lessons that there was no remedy for
goatsfoot poisoning except time. The
accident was more than annoying; he really needed her abilities on this trip.
Without them, they'd have to go on wit alone. With a
good night's sleep she was back to normal— except that her Gift was completely
unreliable. She was either completely blocked, or so wide open she couldn't
sort out what emotion was coming from whom. Neither
one of them wanted her to try projecting under these conditions. They couldn't
predict what would happen and didn't really want to find out. So he
pushed to make the best time they could to the 162 Mercedes
Lackey next
hostel—and hoped they could make training, wit, and skills serve. When
Kris stopped to try to inquire about hostels at noon, people seemed overly
quiet, and not inclined to talk much beyond the simple courtesy of answering
their questions. And the townspeople in the hamlet they finally reached were
the same; hurrying to be about their business and showing only furtive
curiosity about the strangers who had ridden in. That
night the Guard at the relay station they reported to was cold and somewhat
brusque, and advised them against changing their plans for stopping at
Ilderhaven. "Them
at the capital need to know where ye be; they'll be takin* it amiss if they
can't find ye should they need ye," he said, making it sound as if
"they" would be taking it more than "amiss" if the Heralds
changed their stated plans. Kris
exchanged a flickering, sober glance with his partner, but made no retort. At the
hostel, which held a scant handful of travelers, they split up, each taking a
likely prospect, and began trying to eke a little more information out of them. Talia
had chosen a shy priestess of one of the Moon-oriented orders, and hoped she
could get something useful out of her without her Gift. She began her
conversation with ordinary enough exchanges; the difficulties women faced when
making long journeys, commiseration over tiie fact that men in authority seemed
to take them lightly—Hostelmasters serving the men in the room first, no matter
what the order of their arrival was, and much more in the same vein. Carefully,
over the entire evening, she began steering the talk to the topics that seemed
to be the most sensitive. "Your
King—I must say, he certainly seems to be a good ruler," Talia said
casually, when the topic of Alessandar came up. "From what I can see,
everyone seems to be prospering. That ought to be making for good days with
your temple." "Oh,
yes ... Alessandar is a fine ruler to us; things ARROWS
FALL 163 have
never been better . . ." The priestess trailed off into hesitant
uncertainty. "And
he has a fine, strong son to follow him? Or so rmtold." "Yes,
yes, Ancar is strong enough ... has there been much flooding in Valdemar? We've
never seen the like of it this spring." Had
there been uneasiness when the woman spoke Ancar's name? "Flooding,
for fair. Crops and herds wiped out, rivers ^hanging course even. Young Elspeth
has been at the Queen to let her be about the countryside doing what she
can—but of course that's out of the question while she's still in schooling.
Once she's older though, I've no doubt sheTl be the Queen's own right hand.
Surely Ancar has been seeing to things for his father?" "No
... no, not really. The ... the factors take care of all that, you know. And
... we really don't want to be seeing Ancar ... it isn't fitting for someone in
his station to be going among the common folk. He has his own Court-—has since
he came of age, you know. He has—other interests." "Ah,"
Talia replied, and allowed the conversation to turn to another topic. "Not
very conclusive," Kris mused. "But it's looking odd." Talia
nodded; they'd waited again until they were on the road before talking. "I've
gotten a similar sort of impression," he began. "As
if things were reasonably well now, but that folk are not entirely sure of what
the morrow might bring." "Damn
that goatsfoot! If we could just have some idea bow deeply this goes—if it's
more than just the usual worries about 'better the straw king than the lion
king' —gods, we need your Gift!" "Ifs
still not reliable," she told him regretfully. "Well,
we just have to muddle along on our own." He sighed, t-Ґhis is exactly the
kind of reason we've been Sent on ahead, and we have to have clearer
information than we've got. Selenay can't act on anything this vague." 164 Mercedes Lackey "I
know," she said, biting her lip. "I know." That
night Talia tackled an elderly clerk. When she brought up the topic of the
King, he was voluble in his praise of Alessandar. "Look
at these hostels—wonderful idea, wonderful! I remember when I was just a lad,
my first post as tax-collector—Lord Sun, the inns I had to stay in, verminous,
filthy, and costing so high you wondered why they didn't just put a knife to
your throat and have done with it! And he's cleaned out most of the brigands
and robbers, him and his Army; Karse daren't even think about invading anymore.
Oh, aye, he's a great King—but he's old . , ." "Surely
Ancar—" "Well,
that's as may be. The Prince is a one for protocol and position; he doesn't
seem to be as open-handed as his sire. And there's the rumors. . . ." "Oh?" "Oh,
you know, young m'lady—there's always rumors." Indeed
there were rumors; and now Kris actually suspected listeners, so he signaled
Talia to wait to talk until they were on an open stretch of road the next day,
with no one else near. She
told him what she'd gotten, and what she'd guessed. "So
Ancar has his own little Court, hm?" Kris mused. "And his own circle
of followers and hangers-on. I can't say as I like the sound of that. Even if
the Prince is innocent and fair-minded, there's likely to be those that would
use him in a situation like that." "He
doesn't sound innocent or fair-minded from the little I've pried out of
anyone," Talia replied. "Granted in fairness—he may just be a
naturally cold and hard man. Goddess knows he's seen enough warfare at his age
to have turned him hard." "Oh?
This is news to me—say on." "At
fourteen he participated in a series of campaigns that wiped out every trace of
the Northern barbarians along therr North Border. That set of campaigns lasted
almost two years. At seventeen he led the Army against ARROWS
FALL 165 the last
raid Karse ever dared make on them—and again, the raiders were utterly wiped
out. At twenty he personally mounted a campaign against highwaymen, with the
result that nearly every tree from here to the capital was bearing gallows'
fruit that summer." "Sounds
like he should be regarded as a hero." "Instead
of with fear? It was apparently the way he conducted himself that has people
afraid. He makes no effort to hide the fact that he enjoys killing—and he's
utterly, utterly ruthless. He hanged more than a few of those 'highwaymen' on
merest suspicion of wrongdoing, and lingered with a winecup in his hand to
watch while they died." "Lovely
lad. Sounds like just the mate for our Elspeth." "Don't
even say that as a joke!" Talia all but hissed. "Or haven't you been
granted any of the tales of his conduct with women? / was told it isn't a good
idea to attract his attention, and to stay out of his sight as much as
possible." "Probably
more than you; if you believe what you hear, young Ancar's taste runs to rape,
and the younger, the better, so long as they're nubile and attractive. But
that's the tale only if you read between the lines. Nobody's told me anything
about that straight out." :They
haven't said anything straight out about the wizards he keeps either,: Tantris
put in unexpectedly. "What?"
Kris replied in surprise. :Fve
been keeping my ears open in the stable. The hostelkeepers have been
frightening the stablehands into line with threats about turning them over to
Ancar's wizards if they don't move briskly and keep to their work.: "So?
That's an old wives' trick." :Not
when it's being used on "stableboys" old enough to have families of
their own. And not when the threat genuinely terrified them.: "Lord
of Light, this is beginning to look grim—" Kris relayed Tantris' words to
Talia. "We've
got to find someone willing to speak out," she replied. "We daren't
turn back with nothing in our hands but rumors. Selenay needs facts—and if we
turned back now, we might well precipitate a diplomatic incident." 166 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 167 "I
agree," Kris replied, even more firmly. "And if we're being watched,
welt—-we just might not reach the Border again." "You
think it's possible? You think he'd dare?" "I
think he would, if what the rumors hint at is true, and enough was at stake.
And the only way we're going to get any idea of what Ancar is like and what his
plans are, is to get in close to him. And I'm afraid we need that information;
I'm afraid more than Elspeth's betrothal hinges on us now." "That,"
she replied, "is what I feared you'd say." A day
from the capital they finally found someone who would discuss the
"rumors." It was pure luck, plainly and simply. As they
rode into town, Talia spotted a trader's caravan that she thought she
recognized. Traders' wagons were all built to the same pattern, but their gaudy
painting was highly individual. The designs rarely included lettering, since
most of a trader's customers were far from literate, but they were meant to be
memorable for the selfsame reason. And Talia thought she remembered the design
of cheerful blue cats chasing each other around the lower border. A few
moments later, she saw the shaggy black head of the bearded owner, and couldn't
believe her good fortune. This trader, one Evan by name, was a man who owed
Talia his life. He had been accused of murder; she had defended him from an
angry mob and found out the real culprit. Having cast Truth Spell on him and
touched his mind, she knew she could trust not only his words, but that he
would not betray them to anyone. His
wagon was parked in a row of others, in the stable-yard of the "Crown and
Candle,1" an inn that catered to trade. When
they reached the hostel, and settled down to dinner, Talia tapped Kris' toe
with her own. They didn't like to use this method of communicating; it was
awkward and very easy to detect unless their feet were hidden. But the hostel
was nearly empty, and they'd been given a table to themselves in the back; she
reckoned it was safe enough this tune. Follow
my lead, she signaled. He
nodded, eyes half closed, as if in response to a thought of his own. "I
saw an old friend today," she said—and tapped Trader—Truth Spell—knowing
that he would readily remember the only circumstance that combined those two
subjects. "Really?
Wonder if we could get him to stand us a drink?" And—Information
source?—he tapped back. "Oh,
I think so," she replied cheerfully. Yes. "Good!
I could stand a drop of good wine. This stuff is not my idea of a drink."
Reliable? "Then
I'll see if we can't talk him into a round or two.'* Yes—Debt of honor. "Hm."
He pushed his stew around with a bit of bread. Gods—your Gift? Back. Doit. She
summoned one of the little boys that hung around the hostel hoping for just
such an opportunity to earn a coin, and sent a carefully worded message to
Evan. He replied by the same messenger, asking her to meet him, not at his inn,
but at his wagon. He did
not seem surprised to see Kris with her. He opened the back of the wagon and
invited both of them inside the tiny living area. The three of them squeezed
into seats around a tiny scrap of a table, and Evan poured three cups of wine,
then waited expectantly. Talia
let down her shields with caution, and searched about the wagon for any human
presence near enough to hear anything. There was nothing, and no one. "Evan—"
she said quietly, then, "traders hear a lot. To come straight to the
point, I need to know what you've heard about Prince Ancar. You know you can
trust me—and I promise we aren't being spied on. I'd know if we were." Evan
hesitated, but only a moment. "I ... expected something of this sort. If I
did not owe you so very much, Lady Herald—but there it is. And you have the
right of it, a trader hears much. Aye, there's rumors, black ru- 166 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 169 mors,
about young Ancar. Five, six years agone, when he first came of age and
warranted his own court, he began collecting some unchancy sorts about him.
Scholars, he calls 'em. And, aye, some good has come of it—like the signal
towers, some aqueducts and the like. But in the last year his scholars have
gotten more of a reputation for wizardry and witchcraft than they have for knowledge." "Well,
now, isn't that what they say of Heralds here, too?" Kris smiled uneasily. "But
I never heard anyone say your witchcraft was anything but of the Light, young
man," Evan replied, "And I've never heard anything but darksome tales
of late where Ancar's friends are concerned. I've heard tales that they raise
power with the spilling of blood—" "How
likely?" Kris asked. Evan
shrugged. "Can't say. To be fair, I've been places where the same is said
of the followers of the One, and you of Valdemar know how wrong that is. This I
can tell for true—he has in the past year turned to wenching. Wenching of the
nastier sort. He has his way with any poor young maid that catches his eye,
highborn or low, and none dare gainsay him—and his tastes run to leaving them
with scars. Well, and that isn't all. He has men of his own about the
countryside these days—'intelligencers' they call themselves. They claim to be
like you twain, being the King's eyes and ears, to see that all's well—but I
misdoubt that they're speaking their information in any ears but Ancar's, and I
doubt the King knows they exist." "I
don't like that," Talia whispered. "I
don't either. I've been questioned by 'em fair often since I crossed the
Border, and I mislike some of the questions they're asking. Who bought like
they'd gotten prosperous, who'd told me aught, who bends knee to what god—aye,
you can believe old Evan the Shrewd became Evan the Stupid 'round 'em." His
expression changed to one of thick-headed opacity. "Aye, milord, no,
milord, talk t' me milord?" He wiped the look from his face. "Even
let 'em cheat me right royally t' convince 'em. That's not the end of it. I've
heard from those I trust that Ancar has raised his own private Army; at least
three thousand men, and all of when
Ancar takes the throne. Oh, yes," he shook his head, "I pity
them." They
rode away from their hostel the next morning with grim faces, and paused in a
little copse of trees just outside of town, where they could see anyone
approaching, but no one could see them. "I
don't like it," Talia said flatly. "My vote is to turn around and
head back for the Border—but there's the fact that a move like that could be
construed as an insult." She
wanted badly to run; she was more afraid now than she'd ever been except when
she'd lost control over her Gift. She was feeling very like she was walking
into something she couldn't handle now, too—but this was exactly why Selenay
had sent them in the first place—to uncover anything that might threaten
Valdemar. And there was just the faintest of premonitions that some of this
might lead back to Orthallen. "All
the more reason to stick it out," Kris replied soberly. "We've heard
the rumors; we need to learn exactly how much danger there is, or we can't
properly advise the Queen of the situation. We don't learn the depth of the
problem by turning tail and running. And like I said before—if we turn now,
they might decide we've learned something, and stop us before we made it back
across the Border. If we stick, we should be able to bluff our way out." "Kris,
it's dangerous; we're playing with fire, here." "I
know it's dangerous, but no more dangerous than any number of other missions
Dirk and I pulled off. And we have to find what his long-term plans are, if
there's any chance at all to do so." "I
know, I know," Talia shivered. "But Kris, I don't like it. I feel
like I'm walking into a darkened room, knowing that as soon as I tight a candle
I'll discover I've walked into a den of serpents and the door's been locked
behind me." 170 Mercedes
Lackey "You're
the ranking Herald, little bird. Do we go on and find out exactly what the
situation is and whether or not there's immediate threat to the Kingdom, or do
we head back to Selenay with what we know now—running like our tails are on
fire and hope they can't stop us?" "How
could we get back if they come after us?" Kris
sighed. "I wouldn't give very good odds. What we'd have to do is cut
across country, avoiding roads— unfamiliar country, I might add, and we'd have
to go night and day. Or we send Rolan and Tantris back alone, with messages,
get rid of our rather conspicuous uniforms, steal disguises, try to get back
afoot. With accents that damn us and every 'intelligencer' in the country knowing
our exact descriptions. Frankly, the odds are with playing stupid and bluffing
our way out." "Could
I pretend to be sick again?" "Then
they'd expect us to go straight to the capital and the King's Healers, not head
back to our Border." Talia
shut her eyes and weighed all the possible consequences; then bit her lip, and
steeled herself for the decision she knew she had to make. "We
go on," she said, unhappily. "We haven't got a choice." But
when they met their escort just outside the capital at the end of a six-day
journey from the Valdemar Border, Talia almost heard the click of the lock
behind her. They
announced their arrival at the gates of the city, and were asked, courteously
enough, to wait. After about an hour, spent watching the usual sort of
foot-and-beast traffic pass in and out of the city, there was a blast of
trumpets and the common folk vanished from the vicinity as if whisked away by a
speil. Talia
had expected an official escort; she had not expected that they would be met by
what amounted to a royal procession. For that was exactly what emerged from the
city gates. Prancing
out of the gateway came a procession of dozens of brightly-bedecked nobles and
their liveried attendants, all mounted on high-bred palfries. Prince
Ancar and his entourage rode at the head of it. ARROWS
FALL 171 Talia
had definitely not expected him—and from the very brief flash of surprise on
his face, neither had Kris. Ancar
rode toward them through a double row formed by his mounted courtiers and his
guards; it was all very staged, and meant to impress. It impressed Talia, but
hardly in the way she assumed he intended. On seeing him for the first time,
Talia felt like a cat that has suddenly been confronted by a viper. She wanted
to arch her back, hiss, and strike out at him. "Greetings,
from myself, and my honored Father," he said coolly, bowing slightly but
not dismounting. "We nave come to escort the envoys of Queen Selenay to
the palace." Talia
was mortally certain that the "we" he used was the royal plurality,
and noted that his horse was at least two hands higher than either Companion,
allowing his head to be that much higher than theirs. Gods—I
don't think he's left anything to chance— There
was no superficial reason for the violent feeling of animosity that struck her;
as they exchanged courtesies the Prince seemed perfectly amiable. He was darkly
handsome with smooth, even features and a neat black beard and mustache. He
spoke to them fairly enough and accorded them every honor. As he rode beside
them, back into the city and toward the palace, he discoursed on neutral
topics—the harvest to come, the recent spring floods that had occurred in both
countries, his wish for continuing good relations between the two Kingdoms. All
perfectly natural topics, and all spoken in tones of good-will. None of
this made the slightest bit of difference to Talia. There was something
indefinably evil about the man, something cold and calculating, like a snake
judging when it would be best to strike. He was
paying very little attention to Talia, who was riding with Kris between them;
as if, because of her sex, she was not quite of an exalted enough station for
him to bother with. That was all to the good; since he was busy directing his
attention to Kris, she decided that this was no time for ethical quibbling; she
would try to probe him. This was neither diplomatic nor particularly moral, 772 Mercedes
Lackey but she
didn't much care. There was something lurking beneath the smooth, careful
surface of this cultivated Prince, and she was determined to discover what it
was. She was
stopped by a powerful shield—one unlike anything she had ever touched before.
There were no cracks in it that she could discover, not by the most careful
probing. Startled, she cast a surreptitious glance at Ancar; he continued his
conversation without seeming the least disturbed. So he was not the one doing
the shielding. Who was? Then
her sharp glance was intercepted by a nondescript man in gray riding to the
left of the Prince. He looked at her with eyes like dead brown pebbles, then
permitted himself a faint smile and a nod. She shivered, and looked hastily
away. They
couldn't reach the Palace grounds any too soon for Talia, who only wanted out
of the Prince's presence. When they reached the courtyard of the Palace the
entire entourage dismounted and dozens of liveried grooms appeared to lead the
horses away—and with them, their Companions. Shaken by the encounter with the
Prince's mage, Talia scanned the grooms quickly for any evidence of harmful
intent. Thank
the gods— To her
relief there was nothing there but admiration for the beautiful creatures and
the honest wish to make them comfortable. She tried to link with Rolan, and caught
an impression of concern, but in the confusion it was hard to make out what the
concern was for. Kris
began to say something—the Prince interrupted him before he'd even gotten a
single syllable out. "The
Palace is quite remarkable," said Ancar, a kind of glint in his eye that
Talia didn't understand and didn't at all like. "You really must see it
all" What
could they do but consent? And the
Prince seemed determined that they see every inch of his father's Palace,
conducting them all over it himself. He kept himself at Kris' side, and one of
his ubiquitous toadies at Talia's, effectively separating them. They couldn't
even signal to one another—and Talia was ARROW'S
FALL 173 nearly
stiff with apprehension before the enforced tour was over. Her anxiety,
carefully concealed, redoubled every moment they spent in his presence, and she
longed for one single moment alone with Kris. It almost seemed as if the Prince
were deliberately attempting to prevent any contact between the two Heralds
that did not take place under his gaze, for he kept them at his side until it
was nearly time for the state banquet that was to welcome them. At last
they were left alone in their sumptuous suite. Talia
scanned about her for listeners, but could detect none. But then—could she if
they were shielded? Make
discretion the better part, then. "Lord
of Light," she sighed, "I didn't think I could ever be so tired
..." Hand-sign;
Trap—listeners? She sat down on a couch, and patted the fabric next to her in
invitation. He took
a seat next to her, and her hand. Squeezed. Gift? She
squeezed back. Shields? His
eyebrows arched in surprise. How? "Did
you see that odd little man on the Prince's right?" she asked. Him.
"I wonder what on earth he could be." Shielded Ancar. Maybe more. "Who
knows? Some sort of tutor, maybe." Trouble. "Hm.
I could use a little air." For true. They
moved to the open window, arms around one another, loverlike. "Little
bird," Kris whispered in her ear, "There's another problem—there
aren't enough guards visible here." Talia
giggled and nuzzled his neck. "I'm not sure I understand you," she
murmured back. He
laughed, and kissed her with expertly feigned passion, "Look, Selenay is
well-loved, so she keeps a minimum of guards about her for safety—but they're
still there, still visible. Alessandar is just as highly regarded, •o I would
expect to see about the same number of guards. I didn't see them. If they're
not in sight, they mutt be out of sight. Why should he hide his guards? Unless
he doesn't know that they're hidden—and if you 174 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FAU 175 can
hide one, you can hide a dozen just as easily. I don't like it." "Kris,
please—" Talia whispered urgently. "I've changed my mind about
staying. I think we should get out of here. Now. Tonight." "I
agree; I think we've walked into a bit more than we can handle by
ourselves." He led her back to the couch, where they continued the
mock-loveplay. "I've got no doubt now after seeing that magician and
watching the way people react to Ancar that every one of the rumors is true. So
we'd better leave tonight-—but not quite yet. I want to find out what's going
on with Alessandar first." He stayed quiet for a moment, deep in thought,
hands resting in the small of her back, and face buried in her hair. "I
think we should send substitutes into the banquet and do some spying before we
leave." "All
right, but I'll do the spying. If I unshield I'll be able to detect people
coming long before you would." "Could
you tell if there's a shielded spy watching us by the shield on him?" "Alone—no." "I
see what you're getting at. Link—" By
Unking their two Gifts, her Empathy and his Farsight, they were able to scan
their entire vicinity for "null" areas. And discovered, to their
mutual chagrin, that there were no spies, shielded or otherwise. "Well—"
he pulled away from her, embarrassed. "I certainly feel like a fool." "Don't."
She ran her hands nervously through her hair, and smiled wanly at him.
"Better we take the precaution needlessly. If we send in substitutes,
won't they be recognized?" "No
one from the Prince's party will be at the banquet, remember? There won't be
anyone there who's ever seen us. And if we use a couple of the servants there
should be no problems. After all, no one ever looks at servants. The two they
assigned to us should do. They're enough like us in size and appearance that
our uniforms will fit reasonably well. I'll get their attention, and you deep-trance,
and take them over." Talia
shivered. She didn't like doing this, but Kris couldn't.
His Gift of Farsight would do him no good in implanting a false personality. It
was only by virtue of the fact that her Gift of Empathy was a particularly strong
one that Talia could do it at all—this was normally a trick only Mindspeakers
could manage. Kris
rang for the two who had been assigned to them. As he had pointed out, they
were similar enough in height and build to the two of them that the uniforms
should fit well enough to cause no comment. The
servants arrived, and with them, their baggage; Kris instructed them in the
unpacking of the formal uniforms. While he engaged their attention, Talia put
herself into deep-trance. Forgive
me—she thought, then reached out and touched their minds—lightly—there—first
the man, then the woman— Kris
caught them as they fell, easing them down onto the bed. Talia
insinuated herself carefully into their minds, sending their real selves into a
kind of waking sleep. Now—for
the next part she would need help— :Rolon?: In a
moment he was with her, still anxious, but in agreement with the plan, or at
least as much of it as she was able to show him without being able to Mindspeak
him in words instead of images. Together
they emplanted false personalities and memories in their two substitutes; he
could do some things she couldn't, she could make them believe that they were
the foreigners. For the next several hours the servants would be a sketchy sort
of Kris and Talia, and remain that way until they returned to these rooms after
the banquet. Their behavior would be rather stilted and wooden, but the formal
etiquette such occasions demanded would cover most of that. Talia
let Rolan go, and eased herself up out of trance, feeling very stiff, quite
exhausted, and just a bit guilty. "Is
it—" 'They're
ready," she replied, moving her head around to ease the stiffness in her
neck, and getting slowly to her feet. "Let's get some clothes on
them." 176 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 177 They
clothed the pair in the waiting forma! Whites as if they were dealing with two
dolls, it being easier to handle them in the entranced state. Talia cut their
hair in imitation of Kris* and her own, and applied her skill with makeup to
both of them. When she'd done, they bore at least enough of a superficial
resemblance to the two of them to get them safely through the doors. "Ail
right." Kris looked at her as they got the two substitutes on their feet.
'Tm for the stables. It's going to take a little time to find the Companions
and their tack without being detected, ff I can, I'll get everything and get
them ail saddled up. If you have the chance, you meet me at the stable
doors." "Fine,"
Talia replied nervously. "I'm going to sneak up to the second floor and
the minstrel's gallery. I ought to learn something there; with luck I may be
able to pick up something from one of Ancar's toadies, and I'll definitely be
able to probe Alessandar and find out if he knows what his son is up to. I
won't take long, if I can help it." "If
the worst happens, and you have to run for it, tell Rolan, and I'll pick you up
on the run in the courtyard." Kris gave her a tight grin, and she returned
it. Talia
took her substitute by the elbow; Kris did the same with his. Together they led
them as far as the doors to the suite; then Talia released their minds and gave
hers a tittle push. The young woman blinked once, then her implanted
personality took over. She took the young man's arm; he opened the door, and
led her toward the banquet hall. Kris and Talia followed behind them long
enough to be certain that the ruse would work, then separated. Thanks
to the Prince's enforced tour they were both familiar with the layout of the
entire Palace. Kris made for one of the servants' stairs that led to the
stables; once she saw him safely on his way, Talia headed for the gallery that
overlooked the banquet hall. She
dropped all her shielding and slipped from shadow to shadow along the corridor,
taking another of the servants' stairs to the second floor. The activity in the
banquet hall aided her; the servants hadn't yet had time to light more than a
few of the candles meant to illuminate the
maze of corridors. She detected no one as she moved to the wall that backed the
gallery. She
sensed the presence of many men as she paused there, hiding herself in the
folds of drapery along the wall. This was very wrong. There were to be no
minstrels playing in the gallery until much later this evening; at the moment
they were playing from behind a screen on the floor of the hall. There should
be no one at all in the gallery at this time. She
closed her eyes and carefully extended her other sense past the wall, hoping
that one of them might be nervous enough to let her read what he was seeing,
carried on the wind of his emotions. It was
easy—too easy. The images came charging into her mind—she knew who and what
they were, and what their intent was, and her heart leapt into her throat with terror. Ranged
at about three-foot intervals around the gallery, which ran the entire
circumference of the hall, were crossbowmen. Their weapons were loaded and
ready, and each had a full quiver of bolts beside him. These were not members of
Alessandar's guard, nor soldiers from his army; these were ruthless killers
recruited personally by Ancar. The
Prince was impatient, and no longer prepared to wait for his father's natural
death to bring him to the seat of power. He was also ambitious, and not content
with the prospect of ruling only one kingdom. Here in one room sat his lather
and everyone who might be opposed to Ancar's rule, as well as the two Heralds
who might have warned their Queen of his intent. The opportunity was far too
tempting for him to pass by. Once the banquet was well underway, the doors
would be locked—and all who might oppose Ancar's desires would die. With
the exception of the Heralds; Ancar's orders concerning them were to disable,
not kill. And if anything, that frightened Talia even more. Ancar
must have had this whole scheme planned for months, and had only waited for the
perfect moment to pot it in motion. The six days' warning he'd had when 178 Mercedes
Lackey they
crossed the Border was sufficient for him to mobilize what was already
prepared. When
the slaughter was over he would ride with his own army to the Border, overwhelm
the Queen and her escort as soon as they'd crossed it, kill her, seize Elspeth,
and present himself as Vaidemar's ruler by fait accompli. Talia
longed for KyriPs ability to Farspeak; even at this distance she would have
been able to get some kind of warning back to the Heralds near the Border. And
she would have been able to Mindcall Kris, and warn him as well. All she could
do was to Mindcall to Rolan, carrying her message on a burst of purest fear,
and hope he could convey the whole to Kris through Tantris. She
slipped back to the staircase as silently and carefully as she had come, and
made her way down to the lower floor. The
hall here was lighted well, and Talia feared to set foot in it; feared it
doubly when she sensed the presence of more of Ancar's men standing at
intervals along it, presumably to take care of any stragglers. She clung, half
paralyzed with terror, to the inside of the door, and tried to think. Was there
any other way out? Then
she recalled the smaller rooms of state, meant for receptions and the like,
that faced the forecourt on the second floor. Many of them had balconies, and
windows or doors that opened out onto the balconies. For the second time she
climbed the staircase, heart pounding, her Empathic-sense extended to the
utmost. She
moved along the wall, between it and the musty draperies lining it, until she
came to the door of one of those rooms. Mercifully it was unoccupied and
unlocked; not even a single candle was lit within. She crept out from behind
the drape, ignoring the itch of dust in her eyes and nose, and slipped inside. There
was only the gleam of torchlight and moonlight through the windows, but that
was enough to show her a room with a polished-wood floor empty of all
furniture. She edged around the walls, grudging the time, but not wanting to
silhouette herself against those windows for anyone passing by the hall door. The
door to the balcony was locked, but from the ARROW'S
FALL 179 inside.
Talia realized this after an instant of panic-stricken struggle with it. The
catch was stiff, but finally gave. She eased the door open and stepped out onto
the balcony, crouched low so as to be below the balustrade. A moment's
surveillance of the courtyard showed no eyes to be watching it; she slipped
over the balustrade and was about to drop to the court, when the killing began. With
her Empathic senses extended as they were, that nearly killed her along with
the rest. She felt the deaths of dozens of people in her own flesh; she lost
her grip on the railing and dropped to the cobblestones below. Shock, pain, and
fear drove any other thoughts out of her, she could not even move to save
herself. She was falling— and couldn't think, couldn't move, couldn't do
anything but wart—react to the agony, the terror—and the anguished guilt of
Alessandar's guards seeing him pinned to his throne by dozens of crossbow bolts
before they themselves were cut down— But
Alberich had foreseen the day when something like this might happen; he had
drilled her until some reactions had become instinctive. Though her mind might
be helpless beneath that onslaught, her body wasn't— She twisted
in midair, rolled into a limp ball—hit the pavement feet-first, and turned the
impact into a tumble that left her sprawled and bruised, but otherwise
unharmed. Her
face twisted with agony as she struggled to her feet and staggered toward the
entrance to the stable area, trying to shut her shields down and the pain out.
It seemed like an eternity between each stumbling step, yet she had hardly
taken half a dozen when she heard the pounding of hooves on stone and saw a
white form surging toward her. It was
Rolan—unsaddled. He did not pause as he passed her, knowing that she would not
be able to mount unless he came to a dead stop. Hard on his heels came Tantris
carrying Kris—who was leaning over as far as he dared, one hand wrapped in
Tantris' mane, the other extended toward her, his legs clenched so tightly she
could almost feel the muscles ache. As Companion and rider passed her, Talia
caught him, hands catching fore- was narrow 180 ,_ i
A *r»d Kris pulled her up in front of arms as she leaped i »' to ^^ trffl ^ Ro,an ^•J??8 if f ^v'd not had to st°P-ahead of him, but
they obstade to But
there was one and outЈr ^ lcd (o ^ passage
between the i* te And TaUa had
succeeded in portculhs and the out^K shielding
herself one e n|d J fe that
the walls were m^t mto a hail of am)WS They
galloped stratf ^ Fire |anced ^ h Taha,s It was
over in seoj ^ ^^ jn Juddered, shoulder-just
as TaЈ und She was thr* WIJ 'forward and and
crashed to the gfO ^ ^ t bre
Qff ^ *? lhe
Af,?Und H ^riving the head deeper. But
more shaft of the arrow and ^ ^
Kris F enduri agonizing
than her ow^headl mght_the
marksmen Rolan paused ml*, ^^ * f ^ wag Qne had let the unburden j^ Ј thought only in Taha sescape 5 J F that one of them
mus' ^ with voic heart " with
voic heart and 'Rolan — run"
she mi?T i.
•* * j i«neer, but shot through
the gate just He hesitated no 1^^^
d so%lose ^atjshe as the
Portcullis came ^ rf fcar felt
the sharp pain *» from ^ ^ earned away
a few - b* ^ the motionless bod yof Tantris> Kns lay crumpled b^5 he could not even ^ QUt She so racked with agony
^stumb,ed half.dragged 7herself to toed
to rise, and I hЈ pain.tortured body into her arms, his side She took his ^ Qf ^ ^^ desperately trying to ^^^ ^f he Iooked ,ike J that
bled it had been his bod her Even flickeri4 * him. He
was straw target-but a and Tantns that had torchlight she could creeping
scarlet blot She groped mmdles had used; not sure beyond sanity with burden of
his pressure building when desperation d whj,e
she g Kerithwyn d(f ^^ f^ ^ driv^n overwhelming
need to take the | .{ had driven
her to r of 181 what
she knew. It built past the point where she was conscious of anything outside
of herself, conscious even of the agony lancing her own shoulder— Then it
found sudden release. She
opened her eyes to find Kris' own eyes holding hers; free from pain and
feverishly clear. Although she could feel his pain still, he could not. She had
somehow come to stand between it and him. But he
was dying, and they both knew it. She looked
around, expecting to see soldiers surrounding them. "No." Kris'
hoarse whisper brought her attention back to him. "Hiey—it is a maze.
While I live, they will not come." She
understood. His Gift had shown him that there was a maze of stairs and
corridors to traverse before the soldiers reached an entrance to this area. But
it had also shown him how little tune he had left. "Kris—"
She couldn't get anything more past the tears that rose and choked off her
words. "No,
little love, little bird. Weep for yourself, not for me." She
nearly fell to pieces with grief at his words. "I
don't fear Death; gladly, willingly would I seek the Havens, if I but knew my
Companion waits for me there— but to leave you—how can I leave you with all my
burden and yours as well?" He coughed, and blood showed at the comer of
his mouth. Somehow he managed to raise one hand to touch her cheek; she seized
it with her own and wept into it. "It
isn't fair—to leave you alone—but warn them, heartsister. Somehow warn them. I
cannot carry the task to the end, so it ends with you." She
nodded, so choked with tears she could not speak. "Oh,
little bird, I love you—" He seemed to be trying to say more when another
spate of coughing shook him. He looked up again, but plainly did not see her;
his eyes brightened and gladdened as if he were seeing something wonderful and
unexpected. "So^-bright! T—" For one
fleeting moment Talia sensed—joy; joy and the touch of awe and a strange glory
that was like noth- 182 Mercedes
Lackey ing
she'd ever sensed before. Then his body shuddered once in her arms, and the
light and life left his eyes. He went limp within her embrace—and then there
was nothing but the empty husk she held. The
soldiers came then, tore them apart, and took her away; she was too numb with
shock and grief to resist. Eight Her
guards were anything but gentle. They
bound her hands behind her and kicked and shoved her down countless rock-faced
corridors and a flight of rough stone stairs; when she stumbled they kicked her
until she rose, when she faltered they sent her onward with blows. They gave
her a final push that sent her sprawling into the center of a bare room. There
they put her in the custody of three hulking brutes, creatures who looked more
beast than man. These
three stripped her to the skin, indifferent to the agony of her shoulder, and
brutally searched her. Then one by one, they raped her with the same brutality
and indifference. By that time, she was nearly senseless with shock and pain,
and it hardly seemed to matter. It was just one more torture. She couldn't even
concentrate enough to use her Gift to defend herself, and when she'd tried
feebly to fight back, the one using her had knocked her head against the stone
floor so hard she was barely conscious. When
they had finished with her they hauled her to her feet by one arm, and threw
her into a dirt-floored, stone-walled cell, then tossed what was left of her
bloodstained clothing in behind her. It was the cold that finally roused her,
cold that chilled her and made her shake uncontrollably, and awoke her
lacerated shoulder to new pain. She roused enough then to crawl to where they'd
tossed her things and pull them on over her abused flesh. Not
surprisingly, nothing had been done about the 183 184 Mercedes
Lackey wound
in her shoulder, which continued to bleed sluggishly. I've—got
to do something—she thought, through the pain and cold clouding her mind, —got
to—get it out. She got
a firmer grip on reality; thought she remembered that the arrows she'd seen the
guards carrying had had leafpoints. Right— She steeled herself against the
inevitable, got a good grip on what was left of the slippery, blood-soaked
shaft, and pulled. It came
free—she passed out briefly as it did. When her vision cleared, she bound the
wound with one hand using a scrap from her shredded shirt as a bandage, and
hoped that this would at least stem the blood loss. Setenay.
Elspeth. She had to warn the Queen— That
goad was driving her past the point where she should have collapsed, and
continued to drive her. She had to warn the others. For that she must stay
aware— and alive, much as she longed to die. She curled in on herself, forcing
herself into trance, driving herself regardless of the pain of her brutalized
body. With this much pain behind it, even she should be able to reach the
Border. But she
met with the same wall that had protected the Prince from her probe. She
battered herself against it like a wild bird against the bars of a cage, and
with as much effect. There were no cracks, no weak points in it. Try as she
might, she could not reach her Mindcall past it. Weeping with bitter pain and
tortured frustration, she gave up, and lay in a hopeless huddle on the floor in
the darkness. There
was no way of telling how long she lay there before an anomalous sound roused
her from a nightmare of shock, pain, and confused grief. She listened again. It
was the sound of someone whispering. "Herald!
Lady Herald!" The voice sounded vaguely familiar. "Herald!"
It was coming from a small opening in the ceiling. She
crawled on hands and knees across the dirt floor to lie beneath it, for her
legs trembled so much she doubted ARROW'S
FALL 185 hold
her, and coughed several times before she speak. "I'm—here." "Lady
Herald, it's me, Evan—Evan, the trader from Westmark in Valdemar. The one you
talked to a day ago." As she
reached out tentatively with her Gift she wondered briefly if this, too, was a
trap. Gods—if
it is—but what do I have to lose? Please, Lady— She
nearly fainted with relief when her Gift confirmed that it was the same man. "Oh,
gods—Evan, Evan, Lady bless you—" she gulped and got control over her
babbling. "Where are you?" "Outside
the walls in the dry moat. Some of my acquaintances have worked in the Palace
and Guard and told me of these ventilation holes. I arrived after you, late
this evening—I was drinking with some of the Guard when—there were screams.
They told me some of what was happening, and warned me to hold my tongue if I
wanted to live. They aren't bad men, but they are afraid, Herald, very much
afraid. The Prince is making no secret now that he has evil magicians, and an
entire army that answers only to him." —if
only I'd overruled Kris—he'd be alive now— "Later they told me they'd
captured you—I—couldn't leave you without trying to help. I bribed a guard to
learn which cell they had taken for you. Lady—" he seemed to be groping
for words. "Lady, your friend is dead." **Yes—I—I
know." She bowed her head as the tears fell anew and she did not try to
hold them back. He was
silent for a long moment. "Lady, you saved my fife; I am still in your
life-debt. Is there some way I can bete you? The Prince means to keep you
living; I am told he has plans for you." Hope
rose to faltering life. "Can you help me escape this place?" And
died. "No, Lady," he said sadly. "That would require an army. I
would gladly try alone—but it would 186 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 187 not
serve you. You would still be here, and I would be quite dead." Half a
dozen ideas flitted through her mind; one stayed. "Are
these holes straight? Could you lower something to me, or bring something
up?" "If
it were something small, yes, Lady; easily done. My guide told me that they
were quite straight, and unobstructed." "Can
you find me two arrows—if you can, see that the barbs of the fletching are
heavy—and—" She faltered, and forced herself to continue. "—and at least
ten drams of argonel." "Have
they hurt you, Lady? There are safer ways to ease pain than argonel. And Lady,
that much—" "Trader,
do not argue. I have my reasons, and argonel it must be. Can you do it?" "Within
the hour, Lady." There
was a thin whisper of sound as he left. She propped herself against the wall
and tried to use the pain-deadening tricks she'd been taught to ease her
shoulder and her throbbing loins. She would not let herself hope that the
trader would keep his promise, but strove to remain passive, unfeeling, in a
kind of numbness. It was still dark when she heard a scratch and the trader's
voice. "Lady,
I have all you asked for. It's coming now." She
pulled herself up the wall and reached for the bundle that dangled from the
ceiling with her good hand, feeling more of the injured shoulder muscles tear
as she reached up. "The
bottle holds fourteen drams, and it is full." "May
the Lord of Lights and the Fair Lady shine on you, friend, and all your kin and
trade—" she replied fervently, loosening the stopper enough to catch the
distinctive sweet-sour odor of argonel. The bottle was completely full.
"Leave the string. You will be taking something up in a moment and doing
me another service— one last office that will free you of life-debt
entirely." "I
am yours to command," he replied with simple sincerity. She
snapped the head from the first arrow by holding it
under one foot. She let the tears flow freely as she patterned it with Kris'
fletching pattern, grateful that she'd been made to learn to do the task in the
dark, and finding it hard to continue with the memory fresh of him teaching her
his own pattern. The headless arrow—code for a Herald dead. Now for the most
important half of the message—code for herself; and code for the mission in
such ruins that no attempt at rescue should be made. She broke the second arrow
in half and patterned the fletching as her own. She tore the remains of one
sleeve from her shirt, secured the arrows into a compact bundle with it, and
fastened the whole to the string dangling down from the hole in the ceiling. 'Trader,
pull it up." It
gleamed for a moment against the stone, then was gone. "Now
listen carefully. I want you to leave now, before dawn, before the Prince tries
to seal the city. You must get outside the city gates." **There
is a guard at the night-gate I know I can bribe." "Good.
Just out of sight of the guardpost on the main highway that runs from the
Triumph Gate there is a shrine to the god of wayfarers." "I
know the place." "My
horse will find you there." The one thing that damned magician couldn't
block was her bond with Rolan! "He the bundle around his neck, just as it
is, then take whatever plan seems good to you. If I were you, I would make a
run for the Border; you'll be safe enough on the Valdemar side. Know that you
have all my thanks and all my blessings." ^Lady—a
horse?" She
remembered then that he was Hardornen, and couldn't know how unlike horses the
Companions were. "He
is more than horse; think of him as a familiar spirit. He will return to my
people with my message. Will ; jbu do
this for me?" He was
close to weeping himself. "Is there nothing more I can do?" ;; "If you do that, you will have done
more than I dared 188 Mercedes
Lackey hope.
You take with you all my gratitude, and my blessings. Now go, please, and
quickly." He did
not speak again, and she heard the scrape that signaled his departure. She
felt for her contact with Rolan. Her bond with him was at too deep a level for
the magician even to sense, let alone block. Although alternating waves of pain
and faintness threatened to overwhelm her, she managed to remain aware until
she knew with total certainty that Rolan had gotten her message-bundle from the
trader. Rolan
did not need any instructions to know what to do. Her contact with him weakened
and faded as she weakened with effort and blood loss and he headed for the
Border at his fastest pace, until it vanished altogether as he reached the edge
of her fast-shrinking range. By then it was almost dawn. Now,
there were just two more tasks, and she would be able to give way to her
anguish, her hurts, her grief. First,
the bottle. The trader had been right to be nervous about argonel. It was
chancy stuff. Sometimes even the normal dose of four drams killed—but the
Healers used it now and again to end the suffering of one they could not save.
It had the advantage that no matter how great the overdose, there were no
painful side effects such as there were with other such drugs—nothing but a
peaceful drifting into sleep. If four drams could kill, fourteen should make
death very sure. Using
the broken-off arrowhead, she scraped a hole in the floor beneath the pile of
molding straw that was supposed to be her bed, a hole just deep enough to bury
the bottle. Alessandar had not been the kind of monarch that often used his
dungeons; by the grace of the gods the floors were packed earth rather than
stone, with a pit dug in one corner for a privy. She
would not use the drug yet—not until she was certain that the Queen had
received the warning. Soon, Bright Lady—make it soon— Then
she scraped a second hole, and a third, and hid the arrowhead from the broken
arrow and the one she'd pulled from her own shoulder. If by some mischance they ARROWS
FALL 189 should
find the bottle, she could still cut her wrists with one of them. Her
shoulder was aflame with pain and bleeding again, and a little gray tight was
creeping down the ventilation hole when she'd finished. She lay
on the straw and let herself mourn at last. Tears
of sorrow and of pain were still pouring from her eyes when blood loss and
exhaustion finally drove her into unconsciousness. When
she came to herself again, there was a single spot of sunlight on the floor,
making the rest of the .room seem black by comparison. She blinked in hurt and
confusion, as the door clanked once and opened. She saw
one of her jailors strolling toward her, wearing a sadistic grin and unfastening
his breeches as he walked. For the space of a second she was ready to cry out
and shrink away from him—but then a cold and deadly anger came over her, and
abruptly she could bear no more. She took all her agony and Kris' (still rawly
part of her), all her loss, all her hatred, and hurled them into his
unprotected mind in a blinding instant of forced rapport. Hatred
couldn't sustain her long—she couldn't maintain it for more than a single
moment—but that moment was enough. He
screamed soundlessly, and flung himself wildly at the door, nearly knocking
himself senseless when he readied it. He slammed it after himself, and threw
the bolt home. She could hear him babbling in panic to his comrades on the
other side. As she slumped back, she knew that they would not dare to molest
her again, not unless the magician was with them. That was very unlikely. That
one was too busy protecting his Prince and keeping her from Mindspeaking to
have time to spare to protect menials so that they might amuse themselves. ,
They shoved in a pail of water and a plate of some sort of slop later in the
day. She ignored the food, but drank Ae stale, fusty-tasting water avidly. Her
terrible thirst woke her to the fact that she was beginning to feel both
overheated and chilled. 190 Mercedes
Lackey Gingerly
she touched the skin next to the arrow-wound. It was hot and dry to the touch,
and badly swollen. She was
taking wound-fever. While
she was still able, she relieved herself down the privy hole in the corner,
telling herself that she should be grateful that there was nothing in her
stomach and bowels to make a flux of. It was cold comfort, that. She pulled the
bucket within reach of the straw and propped herself against the wall in case
someone should try to take her unaware. When the hallucinations and
fever-dreams began, she was more or less ready for them. There
was no pattern to the fever. When she was able to think, she would tend to
herself as best she could. When the fever took her, she endured. There
were horrible visions of the slaughter in the banquet hall, and the victims
paraded their death-wounds before her and mutely asked why she hadn't warned
them. In vain she told them that she hadn't known—they pressed in on her,
shoving mutilated limbs and dripping wounds in her face, smothering her— Her
bestial guards multiplied into a horde, and used her, and used her, and used
her— Then
Kris came. At
first she thought it was going to be another dream like the first, but it
wasn't. Instead, he was whole, well; even happy—until he saw her. Then, to her
distress, he began weeping—and blamed himself for what had happened to her. She
tried to put on a brave face for him, but when she moved, she hurt so much that
her fragile pretense shattered. He shook off his own distress at that, and
hurried to kneel at her side. He
somehow drove away some of the pain, spoke words of comfort, bathed her
feverish brow with cool water. When she whimpered involuntarily as movement
sent lances of hurt through her shoulder, he wept again with vexation at his
own impotence, and berated himself for leaving her alone. When the other,
horrible dreams came, he stood them off. The
next time she came to herself, she found that there was a scrap torn from her
sleeve near the bucket, ARROWS
FALL 191 still
damp. After trying to puzzle it out, she decided that ite'd done it herself,
and the dream had been a rationalization of it. "
As delirium began to take her again, she tried to tell fcerself that it was unlikely
that her hallucinations would include Kris a second time. But
they did, and Kris continued to guard her from the hideous visions, all the
while trying to give her courage. Finally
she gave up even trying to pretend to hope, and told Kris about the argonel. "No,
little bird," he said, shaking his head at her. "It isn't your time
yet." "But—" "Trust
me. Trust me, dearheart. Everything is going to come out fine. Just try to hold
on—" He faded into the stone, then, as she woke once more. That
puzzled her. Why should a fever-dream of her own making be trying to urge her
to live, when she only wanted release? But tor
the most part, she simply suffered, and en-dured the waiting, watching for some
sign that her message had safely reached Selenay. The Queen and her entourage
should have reached the Border about two days after she and Kris had ridden
through the palace gates. They would have been expecting Kris about three or
four days after they arrived—a week after she'd been thrown in here. With luck
and the Lady with him, Rolan should reach them about that time. She added the
days in her head—that meant he would reach the Queen in six to ten days at his
hardest gallop—six if he could take the Open roads, ten if he had to backtrack
and hide. "
When Hulda first appeared, at the end of the third day, Talia thought initially
that she was another hallucination, *, Kit
hadn't been that Hulda's sharp features and strange (ray-violet eyes were
unmistakable, Talia wouldn't have recognized her. She was swathed in a
voluptuous gown of burgundy-wine velvet, cut low and daringly across the bosom,
and there were jewels on her neck and hands and 192 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 193 the net
that bound her hair. But most amazing of all, she appeared to be hardly older
than Talia herself. She
stood peering into the darkness, eyes darting this way and that; a cruel smile
touched her tips when she finally spotted Talia huddled against the wall. She
moved from the center of the room with an odd, gliding step to stand above
Talia, eyes narrowed in pleasure, and nudged her sharply with one dainty shoe. The
pain she caused made Talia gasp and pull in on herself—and her heart leapt into
her throat when she realized that the woman was still standing there—real, and
no hallucination. When
Talia's eyes widened with shock and recognition, Hulda smiled. "You
remember me? How very touching! I had no hope you'd have any recollection of
little Elspeth's adored nurse." She
moved a few steps farther away and stood artfully posing in the light that came
through the ventilation bole. "And how low the mighty Herald has fallen!
You'd have been pleased to see me brought so low, wouldn't you? But I am not
caught so easily, little Herald. Not half so easily." "What—what
are you?" The words were forced out almost against Talia's will. "I?
Besides a nurse, you mean?" She laughed. "Well, a magician, I suppose
you'd call me. Did you think the Heralds held all the magic there was in the
world? Oh, no, little Herald, that is for, for from being the case." She
laughed again, and swept out of the cell, the door clanging shut behind her. Talia
struggled to think; but—Lord and Lady, this meant there was more, much more at
stake here than she'd dreamed. Hulda—so
young-looking, and claiming to be a magician. And she hadn't any trace of a
Gift, Talia knew thai for certain. Put that together with the mage who guarded
Ancar and kept her from Mmdspeaking to other Heralds— gods protect Valdemar!
That meant that old magic, real magic, and not just Heraldic Mind-magic, was
loose in the world again. And in the hands of Valdemar's enemies— And
Hulda had been—must have been—playing a deeper game than anyone ever guessed,
and for for longer. But to what purpose? Hulda
came again, this time after dark, bringing some kind of witchlight with her. It
was an odd, misty ball that gave off a red glare that flickered and pulsated;
it floated m behind her and hovered just above her shoulder, bath-iag die
entire cell in an eerie, reddish glow. This
time Talia was more or less ready for her. She was free from delirium for the
moment, and feeling light-vet dear-headed. She had managed to put her own
emotions and the helplessness of her position hi the back of her mind, hoping
for some stroke of luck that might bring her a chance to strike back at her
tormentors. She had
figured that Hulda was warded, even as the Prince was; she probed anyway, and
discovered her guess was correct. So rather than making any other moves, she •imply
shifted her weight where she sat so that she might be able to get to her feet
at a moment's notice. Hulda
smiled mockingly; Talia glared right back. "You
might rise to greet me," she mocked. "No? Well, I shan't ask it of
you. You'll be dancing to my tittle Prince's tunes soon enough. Or should I
say, 'King*? I •oppose
I should. Aren't you at all curious as to why and 1 how I came here?" "I
have the feeling you'd tell me whether I cared or not/* Talia said bitterly. "Spirited!
You're right, I would. Oh, I spent years looking for a child like Ancar—one of
high estate, yet oae who could readily incline himself to what I would teach
him. Then once I found nun, I knew within a year that one land would never be
enough for him. So once I taught him enough that he could do without me for a
time, I turned my attention toward finding him a suitable mete. Dear Elspeth
seemed so perfect—" she sighed theatrically. "Oh?" "You
are so talented, little Herald! What volumes of meaning you convey with a
single syllable! Yes, dear Efapeth seemed perfect—coming from a long line of
those 194 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 195 Gifted
magically, and with such a father! Plotting against his own wife!
Delicious!" "If
you're trying to convince me that treachery is inherited, you're wasting your
breath." She
laughed. "Very well then, I'll be brief. I intended Elspeih to be properly
trained and eventually consolidate an alliance with Ancar. As you probably
guessed, I substituted myself for the original Hulda. Things were progressing
quite well—until you intervened." This
time the glance she shot at Talia was venomous. "Fortunately I was
forewarned. I returned to my dear Prince, and when he was of an age to begin
taking part in the making of plans, we put together a quite tidy plot." She
began pacing the room, restlessly, the folds of her vermilion gown collecting
loose dirt from the floor, dirt which she ignored. "What
is it," Talia asked the ceiling above her head, "what is it about
would-be tyrants that makes them speak and posture like third-rate gleemen in a
badly-written play?" Hulda
pivoted sharply about and glared, her hands twitching a little as if she'd like
to settle them about Talia's neck. Talia braced herself, hoping she'd try.
Granted, she was as weak as water, but there were some tricks Alberich had
taught her. . . . "Haven't
you got anything better to do than boast about your petty triumphs to a captive
audience?" she taunted. Hulda's
face darkened with anger; then to Talia's disappointment she regained control
of herself, and slowly straightened and smoothed the folds of her gown while
she calmed her temper. "You're
to be a part of this, you know," she said abruptly. "Ancar wanted
both of you alive, but you alone will do. We'll all ride together to the Border
and wait for your Queen there. She'll see you with us, and be reassured.
Then—" "You
don't seriously think you'll get me to cooperate, do you?" "You
won't have a choice. Just as my Prince's servant can keep you from sending your
little messages, so I can control
of your own body from you—particularly you're in rather poor condition at the
moment." "You can try." "Oh, no, little Herald. I can bring
in more help than you could ever hope to hold against. I will succeed." She
laughed, and swept out the door, then, the witchlight following. As
Talia had hoped, on the tenth day of her captivity, the door to her cell
opened, and Prince Ancar and his magician stood before her. And with him was
Hulda. She was
in another of the periods of clear-headedness between bouts of delirium. She
debated facing them standing, but decided that she didn't have the strength.
She simply stared at them with undisguised contempt. "My
messengers have sent signals telling me that the Queen of Valdemar has turned
back at the Border," Aacar said, gazing at her with basilisk-eyes.
"And now they say she gathers an army to her side. Somehow you warned her,
Herald. How?" She
returned him stare for stare. "If you two are so all-powerful/' she asked
contemptuously, "why don't you read my thoughts?" His
race reddened with anger. "Damn you Heralds and your barriers—" he
spat, before Hulda managed to hush Talia
stared at him in astonishment. Brightest Lady—he can't read me—they can't read
me, can't read Heralds—no wonder we almost caught Hulda before— For one
mo-nent, she felt a stirring of excitement, but it faded. The information was
priceless—and useless. It only meant they would not be able to pluck truth from
her thoughts, and so would never know when and if she lied. So
start now. Tell them a truth they would never believe. According to Elspeth,
Hulda had never believed that the Companions were more than very well trained
beasts. She had been convinced it was the Heralds who picked the Chosen, not
the Companions. So.
"My horse," she said after a long pause, "My horse escaped to
warn them." Ancar
smiled, and ice rimed her blood. "An imagina- 196 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 197 tion, I
trow. You should have been a Bard. This will only delay things, you must
realize. I have been working toward my goals for years, and I can easily
compass a little more delay." He turned toward Hulda, and brushed his lips
along her hair. "Can't I, my dear nurse?" "Easily,
my Prince. You have been a most apt pupil." "And
the pupil has exceeded the teacher, no?" "In
some things, my love. Not in all." "Perhaps
you will be interested to hear that I know of your quarrel with the young Heir,
little Herald. It would seem that she is quite crestfallen, and determined to
make it up with you, since my informant tells me she is most eager to be
meeting with you again. A pity that won't happen. It would have been amusing to
watch the meeting—and you under my dear nurse's control." Talia
tried not to show any reaction, but her concentration slipped enough that she
bit her lip. "Do
tell her who our informant is, my love," Hulda murmured in Ancar's ear. "None
other than the trusted Lord Orthallen. What, you are not surprised? How vexing.
Hulda discovered him, you know—found that he had been working at undermining
the Heralds and the Monarchs so long and so cleverly that no one even guessed
how often he'd played his cards." "Some
of us guessed." "Really?"
Hulda pouted. "I am disappointed. But have you guessed why? Ancar has
promised him the throne. Orthallen has wanted that for so very long, you see.
He thought he had it when he arranged for an assassin to take Selenay's father
in battle. But then there was Selenay—and all those Heralds who persisted in
protecting her. He decided to do away with them first—it's a pity how little
luck he's had. He has been so surprised at the way you keep eluding his traps.
He'll be even more amazed when Ancar gives him the dagger instead of the crown.
But I am disappointed that you had guessed at his perfidy already." "My
poor dear—two disappointments in one day." Ancar turned his cold gaze back
on Talia. "Well, since you have denied me one pleasure, you can hardly
blame anyone
but yourself when I use you for another, can you? Perhaps it will make up for
the entertainments your actions denied my dear nurse." "Ah,
but be wary of this wench, my lord King," Hulda cautioned. "She is
not without weapons, even now. Your servant must not let the barrier break for
even a moment." He
smiled again. "Small chance of that, my love. He knows the penalty should
he fail to keep her trapped within her own mind. Should he weaken, my heart—he
becomes yours." She
trilled with delight as he signaled to the hulking guards that stood behind
him. They
seized Talia and dragged her to her feet, pinioning her arms behind her back.
Anguish threaded her body as the wound broke open anew, but she bit her lip and
suffered silently. "Stubborn
as well! How entertaining you will be, Herald. How very entertaining." He
turned and led the way from the cell with the magician and Hulda in close
attendance and the guards following with Talia. There was a long corridor that
smelled of mold and damp, and an iron door at the end of it. Beyond it was the
smell of fear, and blood. They
shackled her arms to the cold stone above her head, putting an almost
intolerable strain on her wounded shoulder. "I
consider myself an artist," Ancar told her, "There is a certain
artistry in producing the most pain without inflicting permanent damage, or
causing death." He removed a long, slender iron rod from the fire and
re-garded the white-hot tip thoughtfully. "There are such fascinating things
to be done with this, for instance." As from
a century distant she recalled Alberich discussing some of the more unpleasant
realities of becoming a Herald with a small knot of final-year students in
which she was included. *The
possibility of torture," Alberich had said on that long ago afternoon,
"is something we cannot afford to ignore. No matter what it is that the
stories say, anyone can be broken by pain. There are mental exercises that 193 Mercedes
Lackey will
enable one to escape, but they are not proof against the worst that man can
devise. All I can advise you if you find yourself in the hopeless situation is
that you must lie; lie so often and with such creativity that your captors will
not know the truth when they hear it. For the time will come when you will tell
them the truth—you will be unable to help yourself. But by then, I hope, you
will have muddied the waters past any hope of clarity. . . ." But
Ancar did not want information; he was getting that in plenty from Orthallen.
AH he wanted was to make her hurt. She was damned if she'd give him
satisfaction before she had to. So the
"fascinating things" failed to drive a sound from her, and the Prince
was displeased. He
proceeded to more sophisticated tortures, involving complicated apparatus. He
handled all of this himself, his long hands caressing the bloodstained straps
and cruel metal as he described in loving detail what each was to do to her
helpless body. Talia
did her best to keep herself shielded, and to retreat behind those mental
barriers to pain and the outside world she had long ago learned to erect, but
as he continued his entertainment, her barriers and shielding gradually eroded.
She became nauseatingly aware of every emotion he, Hulda, and the nameless
magician were experiencing. The intensely sexual pleasure he derived from her
pain was worse than rape; and she was in too much agony to block it out.
Hulda's pleasure was as perverted, and as hard to bear. In fact, both of them
were erotically aroused to a fever-pitch by what they were doing to her, and
were a scant step from tearing the clothing from each other's backs and
consummating their passion there and then. Twice
she tried to turn her agony back on him, but the magician always shielded him.
The magician was deriving nearly as much enjoyment from this as Ancar and his
"dear nurse" were, and Talia wished passionately (while she was still
thinking coherently enough to wish) to be able to strike out at all of them. After a
time, she was no longer capable of anything but screaming. ARROWS
FALL 199 When
they crushed her feet, she was not even capable of that. They
dragged her back to her cell when her voice was gone, for the Prince did not
derive half the pleasure from her torture when she could not respond to his
experiments. He stood over her, gloating, as she lay unable to move on the
straw where they'd left her. "So,
child, you must rest, and recover, so that we can play my games again," he
crooned. "Perhaps I will tire of the game soon; perhaps not. No matter.
Think on tomorrow—and think on this. When I tire of you, I shall still find a
use for you. First my men will again take their pleasure of you, for they shall
not mind that you are no longer as attractive as you once were; some of them would
find your appearance as stimulating as 7 do, my dear. Then you shall be my
messenger. How will your beloved Queen react to receiving her favorite Herald,
but a small piece at a time?" He
laughed, and swept out with Hulda at his side, already fondling one of her
breasts as the door thudded shut behind him. It took
every last bit of her will, but she remained where she was until it was dark,
dark enough that she knew that no one would be able to see what she was doing.
She rolled to one side then, pushed aside the straw, and uncovered the place
where she'd buried her precious bottle of argonel. It had been the knowledge
that she had it that was all that had sustained her this day, and she prayed
that they had not searched the cell anS found it. .TOy hadn't. She
kept her mind fastened on each tiny movement, knowing that otherwise she would
never be able to continue. Her
fingers were so swollen as to be all but useless, but she had anticipated that.
She managed to scrape back the loosely-packed dirt with the sides of her hands,
clearing away enough so that she could get her teeth around the neck and pull
the bottle out of the hole that way. The
effort nearly caused her to black out and left her 200 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 201 gasping
and weeping with pain, unable to stir for long moments. When she could move
again, she braced the bottle between wrists rubbed raw and pulled the stopper
out with her teeth. She lay
for a long, long moment again, while her mind threatened to retreat into
blackness. That would only be a temporary escape, and she needed a permanent
one. She
spat the stopper out and rolled onto her side while her body howled in anguish,
and poured the entire bottle into her mouth. It burned all the way down her raw
throat, and burned in her stomach where it lay like molten lead. It felt as if
it were eating a hole through to the outside. She
wept with pain, conscious of nothing but pain, for what seemed to be an
eternity. But then numbness began to spread from the fire, pushing the pain
before it. It spread faster as it moved outward, and soon she could no longer
feel anything, anything at all. Her mind seemed to be floating in warm, dark
water. A few
thoughts remained with her for a while. Elspeth; she hoped the child really had
forgiven her—she hoped the next Queen's Own would love her as much as Talia
did. And Dirk. Perhaps it was the best thing that he should not know how much
she loved him; he would be spared much anguish that way. Wouldn't he? She was
glad of one thing; that he and Kris had made up before they'd left. It was
going to hurt him badly enough when he learned of Kris' death as it was. If only
she'd been able to tell them—if only she'd known for certain about Orthallen.
He still was there, the unsuspected enemy, waiting to try yet again. And Ancar—
master of magicians and possessed of an army of killers. If only she could tell
them somehow. . . . While
she still had the strength and the will, she tried again to Mindcall, but was
foiled by the mage-barrier. Then
her will went numb, and all she could do was drift, It was
odd . . . Bards always claimed that alt the answers came when one died, but
there were no answers for her. Only questions, unanswered questions, and un- finished
business. Why were there no answers? One would think that at least one would
know why one had to die. Maybe
it didn't matter. Kris
had said it was bright. The tales all said the Havens were bright. But it
wasn't bright. It was dark— darkness all around, and never a hint of
brightness. AIM! so
lonely! She would have welcomed anything, even a fever-dream. But
perhaps that was just as well, too. In the darkness that damned magician
couldn't find her to bring her back. If she fled away far enough, he might get
tost in trying to find her. It was worth the effort—and the warm, numbing
darkness was very soothing, if the loneliness could be ignored. Perhaps
elsewhere, where the mage couldn't follow, she would find the Havens . . . and
there would be light. She let
the darkness pull her farther along, closing behind her, and thoughts began to
numb and fall away as well. As she
retreated away down into the darkness, her very last thought was to wonder why
there still was no hght at all, even at the end of it. Nine When
the Queen and her entourage set out at last, Dirk was part of her honorguard
despite the vehement protests of Healers and fellow Heralds that he was not
well enough for such an expedition. He had
responded that he was needed. This was true; the Collegium had suspended
classes and all Heralds normally teaching were serving as bodyguards, with the
»le exceptions being those too sick or old to travel. He also argued that he
was far healthier than he looked (which was not true), and that he would rest
just as well at die easy pace of the baggage train as he would fretting in the
infirmary (which was marginally true). The Healers threw up their hands in
disgust when Selenay agreed to Us presence, and pronounced her to be insane and
him tote the worst patient they had ever had since Keren. He knew
very well that Teren and Skif had quietly debated themselves to keep an eye on
him, not trusting te protestations of health in the slightest. He didn't care,
was worth not being left behind—even being over. he was
right about the leisurely quality of the ey—this was to be an easy trip; the
most exciting likely to occur would be when they met Talia or > at the
Border. The bodyguard of Heralds was more of tradition than suspected danger.
After all, was a trusted ally and a firm friend of lar, and it was as likely
for harm to come to iy and Elspeth in her own capital as it was for them 204 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 205 to come
to harm in Hardorn. Dirk figured he should be as safe with them as in his own
bed. There
were other reasons why Dirk wanted to accompany the others, although none that
he was willing to disclose to anyone else. His enforced idleness had given him
ample time for thought, and he was beginning to wonder if he hadn't made a bad
mistake in his assumptions about the relationship between Talia and Kris. While
he hadn't precisely left the field clear, Kris hadn't spent much (if any!) time
alone with her since they'd returned. Instead, he'd had a brief fling with Nessa,
then returned to his old semi-monastic habits. Nor had Talia sought him out. He
knew these things to be facts, since he'd been keeping track of their
whereabouts rather obsessively. Now that he thought back on it, Kris' frequent
paeans of praise for the Queen's Own seemed less like those of a lover lauding
his beloved, and more like a horsetrader trying to convince a reluctant buyer!
And the one whose company Talia hod been seeking was the one person who had
been trying to avoid her—himself. Then there
was that odd incident with Keren, right after he'd damn near collapsed. She'd
bullied her way past the Healers the morning Kris and Talia had left, while he
was still fairly light-headed with fever, and had delivered a vehement lecture
to him that he couldn't quite remember. It was maddening, because he had the
shrewd notion that it was important, and he couldn't quite bring himself to
confront Keren again and ask her what her diatribe had been all about. But if
what vague memories he did have were not totally misleading—and they very well
could be—she'd spoken of lifebonds, and more than once. And she'd gone on at
some length about what an idiot he was being, and how miserable he was making
Talia feel. Besides
all that, he had had some very frightening dreams that he didn't think could
all be laid to the fever, and had been entertaining very uneasy feelings about
the whole expedition from the moment he had learned that Talia and Kris were
gone. If something were to go wrong, he wanted to know about it firsthand. And
he wanted to be in a position where he could do something, not just wonder
what was happening; although in the kind of shape he was in, he was not too
sanguine that he'd be able to do much. Technically,
he was still an invalid, so he was sent to the rear of the company before the
baggage animals, to share Skifs bodyguard duty on Elspeth. Skifs Cymry had
foaled in early spring, and the youngster was just barely old enough to make
this kind of easy trip. Elspeth
was anxious, and Dirk had a notion that he and Skif were the best possible
company for the young Heir; the antics of Cymry's offspring and Skifs easy
patter kept her spirits up, and Dirk was more than will-mg to talk about the
one subject that overwhelmed her with guilt and dominated her thoughts—Talia. Selenay
had given Talia's note to Elspeth when the Heir had searched for the Queen's
Own without success and had finally demanded to know what her mother had done
with her. She had recalled her promise of many years' standing with heartfelt
remorse almost as soon as Talia had turned her back on her and ridden away.
"I'll never get mad at you," she had pledged. "No matter what
you say, unless I go away and think about it, and decide what you told me just
wasn't true." And a
great deal of what Talia had said that night, though harsh, was true. She
hadn't thought past her own pleasure and her own wishes. She hadn't once
considered her "affair" in the light of the larger view. Her
would-be lover's betrayal had hurt—but not nearly SO much as the thought that
she'd driven away a friend $tio truly loved her with that broken promise.
Talia's words had been ugly, but not unearned—and Elspeth had returned her own
share of harsh and ugly words. . If truth were to be told, though Elspeth was
even more ashamed when she thought about it, the name-calling bad begun with
her. She wanted desperately, now that Hfe'd read the note, to make her own
apologies and explanations, and to regain the closeness they'd had be-i.'•';•'.
fore Talia's stint in the field. Her remorse was very real, and she had the
urge to talk about it incessantly. 206 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 207 She
found a sympathetic ear in Dirk, who never seemed to find her own repetitive
litany boring. She
gradually managed to purge some of her guilt just by pouring her unhappiness
into his ears, and slowly it became less obsessive. But it
was still very much with her. "Daydreaming,
young milady?" The
smooth, cultivated voice startled Elspeth out of deep thought. "Not
daydreaming," she corrected Lord Orthallen, just a shade stiffly.
"Thinking." He
raised an inquisitive eyebrow, but she wasn't about to enlighten him. He
nudged his chestnut palfrey a little closer; Gwena responded to her unspoken twinge
of revulsion and moved away. "I
must admit to being caught up in a great deaf of thought, myself," he
said, as if unwilling to let her escape from him. "Thought—and
worry—" Damn
him! she thought. He is so smooth—he makes me want to trust him so much! If
Alberich hadn't said what he did to me— :Td
trust Alberich with my life,: Gwena said unexpectedly in her mind. :l wouldn't
trust that snake with my hoof-parings!: -.Hush,
loveling,: she replied the same way, amusement at her Companion's vehemence
restoring her good humor. :He won't catch me again,: "Worry
about what, my Lord?" she asked ingenuously. "My
nephew," he replied surprising the boots off her with his expression and
the tinge of real concern in his voice. "I wish that Seienay had consulted
me before sending him on this mission. He's so young." "He's
quite experienced." "But
not in diplomacy. And not alone." .•Bright
Havens, loveling, I could almost believe he really is anxious!: :He
is.: Gwena sounded just as surprised. :And somehow—somehow that frightens me.
What does he know that we don't?: "It's
a simple mission to an ally," she said aloud. "What could possibly go
wrong?" "Nothing,
of course. It's just an old man's foolish fancies" He laughed, but it
sounded forced. "No, never mind. I actually came back here to see if you
were pining aver one of those young men you've left back at Court." "Them?"
She produced a trill of very artificial gaiety. "Lady bless, my lord, I
can't for the life of me wonder what I ever saw in them. I never met a pack of
puppies with emptier heads in my life! I'm afraid they bored me so I was only
too pleased to escape them—and I think I'd better head to the rear and take my
turn making sure poor Dirk doesn't fall out of his saddle. Farewell, my .-Ofc,
that's putting a kink in his tail, little sister!: Gwena applauded as she spun
and cantered to the rear. :Well done indeed f: "Dilk?"
Elspeth cantered up next to him. "What
imp?" He'd been almost half-asleep; the sun was gentle and warm, Ahrodie's
pace was smooth, and the gentle chime of bridle bells and the ringing of hooves
on the road had been very soporific. ;**Do
you think it'll be Talia that meets us on the Border?" Elspeth's tone was
wistful, her face full of undisguised hope. Dirk hated to disappoint her, but
he didn't have much choice. He
sighed. "Not likely, I'm afraid. Fact is, as Queen's Own she's really your
mother's first representative, so chances are shell still be with
Alessandar." -
VQh." She looked rather crestfallen, but apparently Mil feeling like
continuing the conversation. "Are you feeimg all right? You've been
coughing a lot." She
looked sideways at him with a certain amount of concern in her glance. -
4*Don*t tell me you're going to nursemaid me," Dirk replied
with some exasperation. "It's bad enough with 4 tiWMC
two playing mother-hen." He nodded back in the Erection
where Skif and Teren were riding, just out of L* bright
noontide sun, so welcome after all those 208 Mercedes
Lackey ARROVTSFALL 209 weeks
of cold rain, made their white uniforms difficult to took at without squinting,
Teren positively glistened. And How
in blazes, Dirk found himself wondering, does he manage to took so immaculate
with all the dust we're kicking up? Elspeth
giggled. "Sorry. It does get to be a bit muchish, doesn't it? Now you know
how I feel! It was all right back at the Collegium, but I can't even slip off
into the woods to—you know—without two Heralds pounding up to bodyguard me!" "Don't
blame anybody but your mother, imp. You're the only offspring. She should have
whelped a litter, then you wouldn't have these problems." Elspeth
giggled even harder. "I wish some of the courtiers could near you, talking
about her like she was a prize bitch!" "They'd
probably call me out for insulting her. She, on the other hand, might very well
agree with me. What are you doing for classes since you're not wanning a
desk?" Much to
his own surprise, Dirk realized he was interested in hearing Elspetn's answer.
Some of the lethargy of his illness was ebbing, replaced by a little of his old
energy, and he was beginning to realize that a good deal of his mental distress
had vanished as well. Whether this was as a result of mending his quarrel with
Kris or something else he had no idea, but it was a welcome change. "Alberich
told Skif to teach me knife-throwing. I'm getting pretty good at it, if I can
be forgiven a boast. Watch—" Her
hand flicked out sideways and forward, and a small knife appeared almost
magically, quivering in the bole of a tree ahead of them. Dirk hadn't even seen
it leave her hand. "Not
bad—not bad at all." Elspeth
cantered up to retrieve it, cleaning the blade of sap on her sleeve, then
rejoined Dirk. "He gave me a wrist sheath with a trick release—see?"
She pushed up her sleeve to display it proudly. "Just like Talia's." "So
that's where she got them! Figures it'd be him. If there's a way to hide
anything, that boy knows it." Dirk orwned,
and realized with surprise that it had been a long while since he'd smiled.
"Not that I've got any objections, mind you. I'm just as glad you've got a
hidden sting, imp.'1 **Whyfor?
Mother wasn't all that happy about my learn-ing 'assassin's tricks,' as she so
tactfully put it. It was only toy saying that Alberich ordered it that made it
right with her." "Call
me a little more pragmatic, but if you know the assassin's tricks, you're one
up on the assassin—and there's only one of you, imp. We can't afford to lose
you." "Funny,
that's just what Skif said. I guess I'm out of the habit of thinking of myself
as important." She grinned, and Dirk thought fleetingly that a charming
young woman had been born out of the naughty Brat Talia had taken in charge. No
small miracle had been wrought there. "I
hope you're also learning that in a dangerous situation you react with
reflexes, not with your head." She
made a face. "Am I not! It hasn't been so long ago that Alberich, Skif and
Jeri were ambushing me every time I wasn't looking, solo or in groups! Anyway,
other than that, I'm just supposed to be talking with Heralds. I guess they
figure I'll pick things up by contamination, or something." ''That's
a fine way to talk about your elders! Although I hate to admit it—but with
Skif, 'contamination' is pretty accurate." /•Do I
hear my name being taken in vain?" Skif
nudged Cymry up to ride beside them. "Most
assuredly, my fine, feathered felon. I was just warning our innocent young Heir
about associating with "Me?"
Skif went round-eyed with innocence. "I am as pure—" "As
what they shovel out of the stables." "Hey, I don't have to sit here
and be insulted!" "That's right," Elspeth giggled. "You
could ride off and let
us insult you behind your back like we were doing As if
to echo her, a bold scarlet jay called down filthy on him just as he rode
beneath it. It hopped along 210 Mercedes
Lackey the
branch that overhung the road and continued catcalling after he'd passed. "I
do believe I am outnumbered—you're even getting the wildlife on your side! It's
time, as Master Alberich would say, for a strategic retreat." He
reined Cymry in and dropped back to resume his place beside Teren, making a
face at Elspeth when he saw she was sticking her tongue out at him. Dirk was
hard put to keep a straight face. But a
moment later Elspeth's mood abruptly shifted. "Dirk? Can I ask you
something?" "That's
what I'm here for, imp. Part of it, anyway." "What's
evil?" Dirk
nearly lost his teeth. Philosophy was not what he was expecting out of Elspeth.
"Ouch! Don't believe in asking the easy ones, do you?" He sat
silent for a long moment, aware after a sidelong glance at her that he had won
Elspeth's heart forever by taking her question seriously. "Have you ever
asked Gwena that one?" he said at last. "She's probably a better
authority than I am." "I
did—and all she did was look at me like I'd grown horns and say, 'It just is/1
" He
laughed, for the answer sounded very like the kind of response Ahrodie used to
give him. "They do seem to have some peculiar blind spots, don't they? All
right, I'll give it a try. This isn't the best answer by a long road, but I
think it might be somewhere in the right direction. It seems to me that evil is
a kind of ultimate greed, a greed that is so all-encompassing that it can't
ever see anything lovely, rare, or precious without wanting to possess it. A
greed so total that if it can't possess these things, it will destroy them
rather than chance that someone else might have them. And a greed so intense
that even having these things never causes it to lessen one iota—the lovely,
the rare and the precious never affect it except to make it want them." "So—'good'
would be a kind of opposite? Unselfishness?" He
frowned a little, groping for the proper words. "Oh, partially. Evil can't
create, it can only copy, mar, ARROWS
FALL 211 tx
destroy, because it's so taken up with itself. So 'good' would also be a kind
of selflessness. And you know what 8 lot of sects preach—that ultimate
good—Godhead—can only be reached by totally forgetting the self. What brought
this on?" "When
Skif mentioned Master Alberich—he—I—" she hesitated, looking shamefaced,
but Dirk did his best to took kind and understanding, and his expression
evidently encouraged her to continue. "You know about what happened—with
Talia and me. I was still angry with J»er the next day, even though I was
almost as angry with myself; well, that showed up in practice. Master Alberich
made me stop, and took me out to the Field for a walk to cool off. You know, I
never thought he was—I don't know, understanding, I guess. Nice. He seems so
hard, most of the time." "Perhaps
that's to mask the softness underneath," Dirk replied quietly. He knew
Alberich better than almost any *ower
Herald, except for Elcarth and Jeri; and despite all the time he spent in the
field, he had come as close as anyone was ever likely to get to the Armsmaster.
"Being easy with any of us might be a quick way to get us killed in the
field. So he's hard, hopefully harder than anything jwpill have to face. That
doesn't make him less a human, qf less a Herald. Think about it a minute. He's
the one teacher in the Collegium whose lessoning will make a difference whether
we live or die. If he eliminates one little thing—no matter for what reason—it
might be the cause of one of his pupils finding an early grave. You 1*1 say
that about any other instructor in the Colle-Vou might notice the next time the
Death Bell that you won't see him anywhere around. I don't r where he goes, but
I saw him leaving, once. He looked like he was in mortal agony. I think he
feels more than most of us would credit him with." 'I
guess I know that now. Anyway, he started talking, " you know how it is with
him, when he talks, you automatically listen. Somehow I ended up telling him
about everything—about how, since Talia seemed so busy, I started talking to
Lord-Un—I mean, Lord Orthallen. •;Aad
how that was why I—started being with—some peo- 212 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 213 pie.
The wild crowd, I guess. That boy. Lord Orthallen introduced us; he told me he
thought I ought to be spending more time with the other people of the Court. It
all made sense when he was saying it, and the boys he introduced me to seemed
so ... attentive. Flattering. I . . . like the attention; I told Alberich that.
That's when he said something really odd, Alberich, I mean. He said, "I
tell you this in strictest confidence, Herald to Herald, for I think I would
have to guard my back at all times should he come to learn of it. Lord
Orthallen is one of the only three truly evil persons I have ever encountered.
He does nothing without a purpose, my lady, and you would be wise never to
forget this.'" She
glanced at Dirk; he had the feeling she wanted to see the effect of her words. He made
no effort to hide that he was quite sobered by them. The first time she had
spoken Lord Orthallen's name, it had felt as if a cloud had passed between
himself and the gentle warmth of the sun. And her account of Alberich's words
had come as something of a revelation. "I'm
not sure what to say," he replied finally. "Alberich is hardly
inclined to make hasty judgments though; I'm sure you realize that. But at the
same time, I am hardly one of Orthallen's supporters. I'll just say this; Kris
and I quarreled largely because Orthallen insisted he be there when I was
accused, and because Orthallen did his best to force him to make a choice
between himself and me. I can't think why he would want to do that—except for
what I already have said about evil; that it can't see a precious thing without
wanting to own or destroy it. And our friendship, Kris' and mine, is one of the
most precious things in my life." Elspeth
rode silently by his side for a good many miles after that, her face very quiet
and thoughtful This
was only the first of many such conversations they were to have. They
discovered that they were very much alike, sharing a bent toward the mystical
that might have surprised those who didn't know them well. "Well?"
Elspeth asked aggressively, "Why don't they interfere? If I'm making an
ass of myself, why won't Gwena say anything?" Dirk
sighed. "Imp, I don t know. Have you ever asked her?" Elspeth
snorted, sounding rather like her own Companion when impatient. "Of
course—after I'd made a total fool of myself I asked her right off why she
didn't Just forbid me to have anything to do with that puppy." **And
what did she tell you?" "That
I knew very well Companions didn't do things that
way." "And
they don't . . . until we, their Chosen, come to tfaem." Dirk harbored no
small amount of chagrin for not having asked Ahrodie's advice when he'd
quarreled with Kris. "But
why? It isn't fairr At Elspeth's age, Dirk knew from his own experience,
"fair" achieved monumental importance. .•
Iffl't it? Would it be fair to us, in the long run, if they stepped in like
nursemaids and prevented us from falling on our noses every time we tried to
learn to walk?" *.Good
answer, Chosen,: Ahrodie told him, :Even if a bit simplistic.: :Untess
you've got a better one—: Mh, no!: she said hastily. :You go right on as you
were!: , "You mean, we have to learn from
experience by ilves?" Elspeth asked, as Dirk fought down a grin at ;'s
hurried reply. th
brooded over that while Gwena and Ahrodie themselves by matching paces with
such absolute pteciskm that they sounded like one Companion rather tout two.
'-' "Don't they ever interfere?" she asked, finally. **Not
in living memory. In some of the old chronicles, ftough..." ^Well?"
she prompted, when his silence had gone on too long. f^Some
Companions, very rarely, have intervened. But only when the situation was
hopeless, and only when 214 Mercedes
Lackey there
was no other way out of it except by their aid. They were always Grove-born,
though, and the only one of those we have now is Rolan. And they have never
done so except by freely volunteering, which is why Heralds never ask them
to." "Why
only then? Why shouldn't we ask?" "Imp—"
He was doing his best to try and express what until now he had only sensed.
"What's the one governing taw of this Kingdom?" She
looked at him askance. "Are you changing the subject?" "No.
No, I'm not, trust me." "There
is no 'one true way.' " "Take
it a step further. Why are the clergy forbidden by law to pray for Valdemar's
victory in war?" "I
... don't know." "Think
about it. Go away, if you like, and come back when you're ready." She
chose not to leave his side, and simply rode next to him with her expression
blank and her attention turned so inward that she never noticed Skif coming up
from behind them. Skif
pulled up on Dirk's other side, and gave the young Heir a long and curious
look. "Isn't
this a bit deep for her?" he asked, finally. "I mean, I've been
trying to follow this, and I'm lost." "I
don't think so," Dirk replied slowly. "I really don't. If she weren't
ready, she wouldn't be asking." "Lord
and Lady," Skif exclaimed, shaking his head in honest bewilderment,
"I give up. You are two of a kind." At
length the party reached the Border; Selenay ordered that they make camp there
on the Valdemar side since the outpost was far too small to accommodate all of
them. The last of the baggage train actually reached it very near dark, and so
the Queen was hardly surprised that neither of the two envoys was waiting for
them when they arrived. But when the next day passed, she felt a building
uneasiness. When two more went by without any sign whatsoever, the uneasiness
became alarm. ARROVTSFALL 215 "Kyril—"
Selenay did not remove her gaze from the road as she spoke to the Seneschal's
Herald. "—I have the feeling something has gone terribly, terribly wrong.
Am I being alarmist?" "No,
Majesty." Kyril's usually controlled voice held an unmistakable tenor of
strain. Selenay
looked at him sharply. Kyril's brow was lined with worry. "I've tried
Farspeech; I can't reach them— and Kris, at least, has enough of that Gift to
be able to receive what I send. He's done so in the past. I don't know what's
gone awry, but Majesty, I—I am afraid for them/' She did
not hesitate. "Order the camp moved back from the Border, and now. There's
a good place about half a mile back down the road; it's a flatfish hill, barren
except for grass. Should there be need, it won't be hard to defend." Kyril
nodded. He did not seem surprised by her paranoia. "When
you've gotten the rest on the move," she continued, "order the local
reserves of the Guard to meet us there. I'm going to have the Border Guards
stand alert and keep a watch down the Hardorn side of the trade road." Her
Companion, Caryo, came trotting up at her mental summons, and she pulled
herself up on the Companion's bare back, without bothering to call for saddle
or bridle. As she rode away, Kyril was going in search of the Herald in charge
of the camp to begin seeing to the first of her orders. TV new
camp was uncomfortable, but as Selenay had planned, was far more easily defensible
than the old. When the Guardsmen arrived, Selenay ordered them to bivouac
between their camp and the Border. She had sentries posted as well—and
ominously, she noticed that the Companions began taking up stations about the
perimeter, providing their own kind of sentry-duty. Elspeth
attached herself to Dirk and seldom left his side. Neither of them voiced their
fears until late in the 216 Mercedes
Lackey fifth
day, a day spent in an atmosphere of tension and anxiety. "Dirk,"
Elspeth finally said, after Dirk watched her try to read the same page in her
book ten times, and apparently never once see a word of it, "do you
suppose something's happened to them?" Dirk
hadn't even been making a pretense of doing anything but watching the road.
"Something must have," he answered flatly, "If it had been
simple delay, they would have gotten word to us. It's not like Kris—" He
broke off at the sight of her frightened eyes. "Look
imp, I'm sure they'll be all right. Kris and I have gotten out of a lot of
tight situations before this, and Talia's no faint-hearted Court flower. I'm
sure they're making their way back to us right now." "I
hope you're right . . ." Elspeth said faintly, but she didn't sound to
Dirk as if she really believed his words. For
that matter, he wasn't sure he believed them either. The
sixth day dawned, with Selenay—in fact, all of them—waiting for the axe to
fall. Late in
the afternoon, when one of the lookouts—a Herald with Farsight as well as
Mindspeech—reported that a Companion was approaching at speed, the entire
encampment was roused within moments, and lined the roadside. Selenay was one
of the first; eyes straining to catch the first glimpse. She,
Kyril, and several others of her immediate entourage stood in a tense knot at
the edge of the encampment. She noticed vaguely that Dirk, Teren, Skif,
Elspeth, and Jeri had formed their own little huddle just within earshot. None
of them moved or spoke. The sun beat down on them all without pity, but no one
made a move to look for shade. As Dirk
waited with mouth going dry with unspoken fear, a second lookout sprinted up
and whispered in the Queen's ear. Selenay grew pale as ice; Elspeth clutched
Dirk's arm and the rest stirred uneasily. Then a
dust-cloud and hoofbeats signaled the arrival of ARROW'S
FALL 217 the
Companion, and hard on the sound itself Rolan pounded into their midst. Rolan—alone.
Without saddle or bridle; gaunt, covered with dust and sweat, and completely
exhausted, a-state few had ever seen a Companion in before. He
staggered the last few feet up the hill to the Queen, paring a bundle from his
neck with his teeth and dropping it at her feet. Then he sagged with
exhaustion, standing motionless except for his heaving flanks and his quivering
muscles, head nearly touching the ground, eyes dosed, suffering written in
every line of him. Keren
was the first to break from her shock. She ran to him, throwing her cloak over
him for lack of any other blanket and began to lead him to a place where he
could be tended properly, step by trembling step. Selenay
picked up the filthy, stained package with hands that shook so hard she nearly
dropped it, and undid the knots holding it together. Into
the grass at her feet fell two arrows; one headless, one
broken. A
ripple of shocked dismay passed over the crowd. The Queen felt as frozen as a
snow-statue. As
Kyril bent to pick them up, Elspeth whimpered once beside her, and swayed with
shock. Jeri caught and supported her just as Dirk's agonized cry of negation
broke the silence. Selenay
started, and turned to see Dirk struggling to break away from Skif and Teren. "Damn
you, let me go/" he cried in agony, as Skif held him away from Ahrodie.
"I've got to go to her—I've got to help her!" "Dirk,
man, you don't even know if—" Teren choked out the words "—if she's
still alive." "She's
got to be. I'd know if she weren't. She's got to beP' He fought them still, as
(Cyril's low tones carried to where they stood. "The
headless arrow is Herald Kris," he said, his expressionless face belying
the anguish in his voice. "The broken is Herald Talia." 218 Mercedes
Lackey "You
see? I was right! Let me go!" Skif
caught his chin in one hand and forced his head around so that Dirk was forced
to look him in the eyes, with a strength that matched Dirk's own, even
augmented by the letter's frenzy. There were tears flowing freely down his
cheeks as he half sobbed his words. "Think, man! That's the broken arrow
she sent. She was as good as dead when she sent it, and dammit, she knew it.
There's no hope of saving her, but she gave us the warning to save ourselves.
Do you want to kill yourself, too, and make us mourn three of you?" His
words penetrated Dirk's madness, and the wild look left his eyes, replaced by
anguish and torture. "Oh,
gods!" The fight left him, and he sagged to his knees, buried his face in
his hands, and began weeping hoarsely. At this
moment Selenay wished with all her aching heart that she could do the same. But
this message could have only one meaning; a friend to her and her people had
suddenly turned his coat, and her land was in danger. Her Kingdom and the lives
of her folk were at stake and she had her duty just as surely as any other
Herald. There was no leisure time to spend on personal feelings. Later, when
all was safe, she would mourn. Now she must act. She
emptied herself of emotion, knowing she'd pay for this self-denial later. There
was the Guard to be alerted, the Lord Marshal to be brought; her mind filled
with plans, making it easier to ignore (for the moment) the sorrow she longed
to give vent to. She
gave orders crisply, sending one Herald after another flying for his Companion,
carrying messages to warn, to summon, to prepare. She turned on her heel with
Kyril at her side and strode hastily to her tent. Those with experience in
armed conflict followed; as did those who might still be needed to bear
messages. Those who were not of either group headed for the baggage train to
break out the weaponry, or down the hill to organize the tiny force of the
Guard to protect the Queen. ARROWS
FALL 219 Left in
their wake were Skif, Teren, and Dirk. Skif reached out his hand to his friend,
then pulled it bade. Dirk was curled in on himself, still kneeling in the dust
of the road. Only the shaking of his shoulders showed that he still wept. Skif
and Teren stood awkwardly at his side for long moments, both unsure of what, if
anything, they could do for him. Finally Teren said in an undertone, "He
won't try anything stupid now. Why don't we give him a tittle privacy?
Ahrodie's the only one likely to be able to comfort him at all." Skif
nodded, biting his lip to keep from sobbing himself; and they withdrew after
the others, as Ahrodie moved up beside Dirk and stood with her head bowed next
to his, almost, but not quite, touching his shoulder. Lost in
his own travail, Dirk heard nothing of another approaching, until a hand
lightly touched his shoulder. He
raised his head slowly, peering through blurred, burning eyes, to see that the
one touching him was Elspeth. Grief matching his stared out of her eyes, and
her features were as tear-streaked as his own. It was growing dark; the last
rays of sunset streaked the sky like bloodstains and stars were showing
overhead. He realized dimly that he must have been crouching there for hours.
And as he stared at her, he began to have the beginnings of an idea. "Elspeth,"
he croaked. "Do you know some place no one is likely to be right now? Some
place quiet?" "My
tent, and the area around it," she said. He thought he had surprised her
out of her own tears by the question. "I'm at the back of the camp, not
close to mother's tent. Everybody is with her right now." "Can I use
it?" "Of
course—why? Have you—can you—oh, Dirk, have you thought of something? You
have—you have!" "I
think . . . maybe ... I might be able to 'Fetch' her. But I need a place where
my concentration won't be broken." Elspeth
looked hopeful—and dubious. "It's an awfully long way." "I know.
That doesn't matter. It isn't the distance that 220 Mercedes
Lackey worries
me, it's the weight. I've never Fetched anything that big before; gods, nothing
alive even close to that size." His face and heart twisted with pain.
"But I've got to try—something, anything!" "But
Kris—" her voice broke. "Kris isn't here to See for you—no,
wait—" she said, kneeling next to him as his hope crumpled. "I can
See. I'm not trained, but I've got the Gift. It came on me early—it's been
getting a lot stronger since I was Chosen and I know I've got more range than
anybody else I've talked to. Will I do?" "Yes!
Oh, gods, yes!" He hugged her shoulders and they rose together and
stumbled through the dusk to her tent. Elspeth
slipped inside the tent and tossed two cushions out for them to sit on. Dirk
set his hands lightly on her wrists and calmed his own thoughts as best he
could. He tried to pretend to himself that this was just another student he was
training in her Gift, and began coaxing her into a light trance. The last of
the light faded, and the stars grew brighter overhead, while they sat oblivious
to their surroundings. She was silent for a very long time, and Dirk began to
fear that her untrained Gift would be useless against all that distance,
despite the power of the emotions fueling it. Then,
abruptly, Elspeth whimpered in fear and pain and her own hands closed
convulsively on his wrists. "I've found her—oh, gods! Dirk, they've done
such horrible things to her! I—think I'm going to be sick—" "Hold
on, imp. Don't break on me yet! I need you— she needs you!" Elspeth
gulped audibly, and held. He followed her mind to where it had reached, found
his target, took hold, and pulled with all his strength. He
could not tell how long he strove against the weight of it—but suddenly pain
rose in a wave to engulf him, and he blacked out. He
found himself slumped over, with Elspeth shaking him as hard as she could. "All
of a sudden—you stopped breathing," she said fearfully. "I thought
you were dead! Oh, gods, Dirk—it— it's no good, is it?" ARROVTS
FALL 221 He
shook his head numbly. "I tried, Goddess save me, I tried- I found her all
right, but I can't pull her here. I just don't have the strength." He felt
hot tears splash on his hand from Elspeth's eyes, and decided they would make a
second attempt. He knew with conviction that he'd rather die in trying to bring
Talia back than live with the knowledge that he wasn't brave enough to make the
second trial. But
before he could say anything, the matter was taken out of his hands. :Man,:
said a voice in his mind. :Dirk—Herald.: The
voice was not Ahrodie's; it was masculine. He looked up to find three
Companions standing beside them; Ahrodie, Elspeth's Gwena, and leading them,
Rolan. They had moved up on them without so much as a twig stirring. Behind
them, at the edge of the enclosure that held Elspeth's tent, were gathered more
Companions— every Companion in the encampment, down to Cymry's foal. Rolan
looked ghostlike, gaunt, and seemed to glow, and the back of Dirk's neck
prickled at the sight of him. He looked like something out of legend, not a
creature of the solid, everyday world. :You
have the Gift and the will to use it. She has the Sight. We have the strength
you need. : "I—but—are
you saying—" :That
we may yet save her, if our love and courage are enough. But—be prepared—if we
succeed, it will not be without high cost to you. There will be great pain. You
may ate of it.: Wordlessly,
Dirk looked at Elspeth, and knew by her nod that Rolan had spoken to her as
well. Dirk
looked into Rolan's glowing eyes—and they were glowing, a sapphirine light
brighter than the starshine. "Whatever the cost is, we'll pay it," he
said, knowing he spoke for both of them. They
stood up and made room for the three Companions between them. They stood in a
circle; Rolan, Elspeth, Gwena, Ahrodie, and Dirk. Elspeth and Dirk clasped
hands and rested their arms over the backs of the Com- 222 Mercedes
Lackey panions,
obtaining the needed physical contact among the five of them in that way. It was
much easier for Elspeth to find her target the second time. "I
have her," she said softly when she'd touched Talia again, then sobbed,
"Dirk—I think she's dying!" Once
more Dirk sent his own mind along the path Elspeth had laid for him, took hold,
and pulled. Then a
second strength was added to his, and it built, and grew. Then another joined
the second, and another. For one awful, pain-wracked moment—or was it an
eternity?—Dirk felt like the object of a tug-of-war game, being pulled apart
between two forces far greater than his own. Only his own stubbornness kept him
to the task, as he felt his mind being torn in two. He held; then felt himself
being stretched thinner and thinner, tighter, and tighter, quivering like a
harpstring about to snap. All his strength seemed to flow out of him; he felt
consciousness fading again, fought back, and held on with nothing left to him
but his own stubborn will. Then, one of the two forces broke—and not theirs.
And together they pulled their target toward them, cushioning and protecting it
against further damage. Their
combined strength was enough. Barely, but enough. The
conference of war was proceeding in Selenay's tent, with Council members,
Officers of the Army and Guard, and Heralds perched wherever there was room.
Kyril was pointing out weak spots in their own defenses— places that appeared
to be candidates to be attacked—on the map laid over her table. Then a cry of
horror from someone standing just outside the tent flap made everyone look up
with startlement. Someone
shoved tent flap and those standing inside it abruptly out of the way, and
Elspeth stumbled inside, face paper-white and drained, pushing others from her
path. Following her was Dirk, who looked even worse. When those inside saw what
he bore in his arms, the cry of horror was echoed inside the tent as well—for
it was a ARROWS
FALL 223 mangled,
bloody wreck of a human body and it had Tafia's
face. Ho one
moved—no one but Dirk and the Heir. Elspeth emptied Selenay's bed of the five
Heralds perched on the edge of tt, pushing them out of the way without a word.
Dirk went straight to the bed and set Talia down gently on ft. Without even looking
around he reached out a Mood-smeared hand and seized the most senior Healer
present by the arm, pulling her to Talia's side. Then he straightened up with
exaggerated care, moved two or three steps out of the way, and passed out,
dropping to die ground tike a felled tree. When
the furor was over and Selenay had a chance to look around, she discovered that
Elspeth had done the same—but less dramatically and more quietly, in the comer. ElspettTs
recovery was rapid—which, as she remarked somewhat astringently, was fortunate
for the sanity of those who could not imagine how the impossible rescue had
been accomplished. She was
the center of attention for all those who were not involved with the attempt to
save Talia. Kyril was her particular demon, insisting on being told every
detail so many times she thought she could recite the tale in her steep, and
coming up with countless questions. Eventually Elspeth's patience reached a
breaking point, and she toW him, in a quiet, but deadly voice, that if he
wanted to know any more he should ask his own Companion about it—she was going
to see what she could do about helping the Healers with Talia and Dirk. Healer
Thesa was worried; Dirk's recovery was not as rapid. He was still unconscious
the next day, and it was some time before she and the other Healers diagnosed
the problem as a relapse of his pneumonia coupled with incredible psychic
strain. She had charge of his case; her old friend Devan had charge of Talia's,
though they shared every germ of expertise they had on both cases. Dirk had
inadvertently brought the bottle Talia had drunk the argonel out of with her;
and the traces of it within the 224 Mercedes
Lackey bottle
told Devan what it was they had to fight besides her terrible injuries. Within
a day or two he and Thesa decided between them that they had done all they
possibly could for both of the patients under the primitive conditions of the
encampment. They decided that while it was dangerous to move them, it was far
more dangerous to leave them there. There might be warfare waged there at any
moment, and they both badly needed the expert touch of the teachers at the
Healer's Collegium. Yet
there was no time to spare—and assuredly no Heralds to spare—to move them back
to the capital. Instead, after a hasty conference, Thesa and her colleague
decided to take the patients a few miles up the road, and install them in the
stone-walled home of the Lord Holder, who gladly gave up his dwelling to the
Queen—and was equally glad to move himself and his family well out of the way
of possible combat. The
Queen had called for all the Healers of the Collegium that could be spared. The
Lord Holder's residence was more than half fortress; it was readily defensible
at need. The Healers were installed there as soon as they arrived with Thesa
organizing them as soon as Dirk began showing signs of improvement. Thesa knew
with grim certainty that although they had only Talia and Dirk to treat now, if
there should be war, they would have other patients, and soon. Elspeth
spent most of her time there; her mother had asked her—asked her, and not
ordered her, a sign that Selenay trusted her good sense and was tacitly
acknowledging that she was becoming adult—to stay with the Healers and some
other of the officials of the Court who began arriving as she called them. "But—"
Elspeth began to protest, until the haunted expression in her mother's eyes
stopped her. "Never mind. What do you want me to do?" "I'm
giving you powers of regency," Selenay replied. "The rest of the
Kingdom isn't going to cease to exist while we wait here. You've sat through
enough Council meetings, catling; you have a good idea what to do. You handle
the day-to-<lay needs of the Kingdom unless you ARROWS
FALL 225 futve
to have a decision from me. And one other thing—if die worst happens, you and
the Council and whatever Heralds are left escape together into the west and
north; Sorrows should hold you safe." "But what about you?" she
asked, around a lump in "Elspeth—if
it goes that badly—you'll be their new Queen." That
was an eventuality Elspeth preferred not to contemplate. She had enough worries
as it was. Talia looked far more dead than alive, and the Healers were
obviously baffled and frightened by something about her condition, though they
would not reveal to Elspeth what it was. It was
stalemate at the Border, and stalemate in the sickroom, and in neither case
could Elspeth do anything about the matter. It was not a position she
enjoyed—and she began to realize just how often it was a position the Queen was
in. All she could do was pray. So she
did, with a fervor that matched that of her ancestor, King Valdemar—and she
hoped that fervor would make her prayers heard. Ten Dirk
came to himself shortly after being put in the Healers' hands, but he was
confused and disoriented, as well as fevered. And the reaction-backlash he was
suffering had him near-blind with a headache no amount of herb tea could
remedy. They had to darken his room almost completely until the pain ebbed. In
living memory—or so Healer Thesa told him multitudinous times—no Healer had
ever seen anyone suffering from a case of backlash as profound as his—not and
still be alive to tell about it. Once
again he found himself alone in a small room— but this time it was not in the
House of Healing. For several days it was all he could do to feed himself and
respond to the orders the Healers gave him. This time he was far too weak to
even protest at the regime the Healers directed for him—unlike his previous
encounter with them. For a while he remained pliant and well-behaved—but as he
recovered, he began to grow suspicious and worried when his questions about
Talia remained unanswered or were evaded. The
more they evaded the subject, the more frustrated and angry he became. He even
queried Gwena, as soon as his reaction-headache wore off. Gwena couldn't help;
she tried to tell him what was wrong with Tatia, but her answers were
frightening and confusing. She couldn't seem to convey more than that there was
something seriously ailing the Queen's Own. Finally he decided to take matters
into his own hands. 227 228 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 229 Little
Robin had been brought by Lord Orthallen— although he had the feeling that his
lord did not realize it. The boy was a part of his household, though Orthallen
seemed to have long since forgotten the fact; and when the order came to pack
up the household and move to the Border, Robin found himself in the tail of the
baggage train, with no small bewilderment. He'd been at a loss in the
encampment, wandering about until someone had seen him and realized that a
small child had no place in a camp preparing for warfare. So he was sent
packing; first off with Elspeth, then pressed into service by the Healers.
They'd set him to fetching and carrying for Dirk, thinking that the child was
far too young to be able to pick anything up from the casual talk around him,
and that Dirk wouldn't think to interrogate a child as young as he. They
were wrong on both counts. Robin
was very much aware of what was going on— not surprising, since it concerned
his adored Talia. He was worried sick, and longing for an adult to talk to. And
Dirk was kind and gentle with him—and had he but known it, desperate enough for
news to have questioned the rats in the walls if he thought it would get him
anywhere. Dirk
knew all about Robin and his adoration of Talia. If anyone knew where she was
being kept and what her condition was, that boy would. Dirk
bided his time. Eventually the Healers stopped overseeing his every waking
moment. Finally there came a point when they began leaving him alone for hours
at a time. He waited then, until Robin was sent in alone with his lunch—alone,
unsupervised, and more than willing to talk—and put the question to him. "Robin,
Dirk had no intention of frightening the boy, and his tone was gentle, "I
need your help. The Healers won't answer my questions, and I need to know about
Talia." Robin
had turned back with his hand still on the doorknob; at the mention of Talia's
name, his expression was one of distress. "I'll
tell you what I know, sir," he replied, his voice quavering a little.
"But she's hurt real bad and they won't let anybody but Healers see
her." "Where
is she? Do you have any idea who's taking e»e of her?" The boy
not only knew where she was, but the names and seniority of every Healer caring
for her—and the list nearly froze Dirk's heart. They'd even pulled old
Farnherdt out of retirement—and he'd sworn that no case would ever be desperate
enough for them to call on him. "Robin,
I've got to get out of here—and I need you to bete me, all right?" he said
urgently. ; Robin nodded, his eyes widening. "Check
the hall for me—see if there's anybody out there." Robin
opened the door and stuck his head out. "Nobody," he reported. "Good.
I'm going to get dressed and sneak out. You stood just outside, and if anybody
comes this way, knock on the door." Robin
slipped out to play guard, while Dirk pulled on his dothing. He waited just a
few moments more, then left his room, giving Robin a conspiratorial wink on the
way out, determined to discover the truth. The
Healer in charge was Devan. Though not the most senior, he was the one with the
most expertise and the strongest Gift for dealing with wounds and trauma. He
was also one of Talia's first and best friends among the Healers, and had
worked with her on many other cases where Heralds were involved. There were
times when loving care was more important than seniority—and Devan would have
been one of Dirk's first choices to care for her, had he been consulted. Dirk
had a fairly good idea of where to find him at this hour—and most castle-keeps
were of the same design; Devan would be in the still-room, just off the herb
garden neat the kitchen—snatching lunch with one hand while he worked with the
other. Dirk used all his expertise at shadow-stalking to avoid being caught
while making his way to the little first-floor workroom, redolent with the 230 Mercedes
Lackey odors—pleasant,
and not so pleasant—of countless medicines. He
heard someone moving about behind the closed door, and slipped inside quickly
and quietly, shutting it behind him and putting his back up against it. Devan,
his back to the door, didn't seem to notice his presence. "Devan,
I want some answers." "I've
been expecting you," the Healer said calmly, without taking his attention
from the task in front of him. "I thought you might not be satisfied with
what you were being told about Talia. I said so, but I wasn't in charge of your
case, and Thesa felt you shouldn't be worried." "Then—how
is she?" Dirk demanded and at the sight of the Healer's gloomy face, asked
fearfully, "Is she—?" "No,
Herald," Devan replied with a sigh, stoppering the bottle he'd been
decanting liquid into and turning to face him. "She's not dying; not yet,
anyway. But she isn't alive, either." "What's
that supposed to mean?" Dirk asked, becoming angry. "What do you
mean, 'she's not alive'?" "Come
with me, and you'll see for yourself." The
Healer led the way to a small room in the infirmary, one of several that were
interconnected, such as were used for patients that needed to be isolated.
There was little there besides a bedside table with a candle and the bed in
which Talia lay without moving. Dirk
felt his throat constrict; she looked as if she'd been laid out for a funeral. Her
face was pale and waxen. By watching very closely, Dirk could see that she was
breathing—but just barely. "What's
wrong with her?" His voice cracked with strain. Devan
shrugged helplessly—feeling a lot less helpless than he looked, now that Dirk
had finally approached him. "I wish we knew. We think we counteracted the
argonel in time—well, the pain she was in neutralized a great deal of it, and
if we hadn't taken care of the rest she would be dead; argonel doesn't allow
for mistakes. We've restored some of the blood loss, we're doing painblockages
on most of the major injuries—we've done ARROWS
FALL 231 everything
we can to restore her, but she simply doesn't wake. No, it's more than that —
it's as if 'she' wasn't there .
anymore, as if we were dealing with an unensouled body. •flic
body works, the reflexes are all there, it breathes, the heart beats — but
there's no one 'home.' And we don't have the slightest notion why. One of the
older Healers speculates that her soul has 'gone somewhere,' perhaps trying to
escape some kind of mental coercion. I suppose that's possible; tradition claims
many mages have had Gifts like ours, and used them for evil purposes. It may be
she encountered one of them, along with her other trials. It's possible that
now she fears returning to herself, not knowing she is in the hands of friends
again, We were willing to try almost anything—" "So?" "So
we asked Herald Kyril to help. He was here for a solid day, holding her hand
and Mindcalling her. He pushed himself to his limits, pushed himself until he
had a reaction that sent him into a state of collapse. It did no good at all.
Frankly, I don't know what else we could try — " he glanced sideways at
Dirk. Devan had some-tiling in mind, but from what he understood about this
young man, Dirk would have to be lured into it very carefully. " — unless—" "Unless
what?" Dirk snatched at the offered scrap. "As
you know, her Gift was Empathic. She did not Mindhear or Mindcall very well. It
may be that Kyril simply wasn't able to reach her. I suppose if someone Hho had
a strong emotional bond with her were to try calling her, using that bond, she
might hear. We tried communicating with her Companion, but he apparently had no
better luck than Kyril, and possibly for the same reasons. Herald Kris had a
strong emotional tie with her, hot ..." "Ycs." "And
no one can think of anyone else." Dirk
gulped and closed his eyes, then whispered, "Could ...I try?" Devan
almost smiled despite the grimness of the situation. Come on, little fishy, he
thought, trying to imbue his will with all the coercive force of a Farspeaking
Her- 232 Merceries
Lackey aid.
Take the nice bait. I know all about your lifebond. Keren told me about the
night you fell ill—and about your performance over the death arrows and how you
rescued her. But if you don't admit that lifebond exists you might as well be
calling into the hurricane for all she'll hear you. He
pretended to be dubious. "I just don't know, Herald. It would have to be a
very strong emotional bond." The
answer he was praying for came as a nearly inaudible whisper. "I love her.
Is that enough?" Devan
almost cheered. Now that Dirk had admitted the existence of the lifebond, the
idea stood a chance of working. "Then by all means, do your best. I'll be
just outside if you need me." Dirk
sat heavily in the chair next to the bed, and took one bandaged, unresisting,
flaccid hand in his own. He felt so helpless, so alone . . . how in the names
of all the gods could you call through emotions? And ... it would mean letting
down barriers to his heart he'd erected years ago and meant to be permanent. But
they couldn't have been permanent, not if she'd already made him admit that he
loved her. It was too late now for anything but complete commitment—and
besides, he'd been willing to die to save her, hadn't he? Was the lowering of
those barriers any greater a sacrifice? Was life really worth anything if she
wasn't sharing it? But—where
was he going to find her? Suddenly
he sat ramrod straight; he had no way of knowing how or where to call her from,
but Rolan must! He
blanked his mind, and reached for Ahrodie. She
settled gently into his thoughts almost as soon as he called her. :Chosen?: :1 need
your help—and Rolan's,: he told her. :Then
you've seen—you know? You think we can help to call Her back? Rolan has been
trying, but cannot reach Her, not alone. Chosen, my brother, I had been hoping
you would understand and try!: Then
the other came into his mind. :Dirk-Herald—she has gone Elsewhere. Can you
See?: And
amazingly, as Rolan projected strongly into his ARROWS
FALL 233 , he
could See—a kind of darkness, with something that flickered feebly at the end
of it. :Do you
call her. We shall give you strength and an anchoring. You can go where we
cannot.: He took
a deep breath, closed his eyes, and sent himself into the deepest trance he'd
ever managed, trying to send out his love, calling with his heart, trying to
use his need of her as a shining beacon to draw her back through the darkness.
And somewhere "behind" him Rolan and Ahrodie remained, a double
anchor to the real world. How
long he called, he had no way of knowing; there was no time in the currents
through which he dove. Certainly the candle on the table had burned down
considerably when the faint movement of the hand he held broke his trance and
caused his eyes to fly open in startlement. He
could see color coming back into her face. She moved a little, winced, and
moaned softly in protest. Her free hand reached for her temple; her eyes
opened, focused, and saw him. "You
. . . called me." It was
the faintest of whispers. He
nodded, unable to speak through a throat choked with conflicting joy and doubt. "Where—I'm
home? But how—" Then intelligence and urgency flooded into her eyes. And
fear; terrible fear. "Orthallen—oh, my God—Orthallen!" She
began struggling to rise, whimpering involuntarily in pain, but driven beyond
caring for herself by some knowledge only she possessed. "Devan!"
Dirk could see she had something obsessively important to impart. He knew better
than to try and thwart her if the need was that urgent—and her evident fear
coupled with that name could mean worse trouble than anyone but she knew. So
instead of trying to prevent her, he gave her the support of his arms, and
called for help. "Devan!" Devan
nearly broke in the door in his haste to respond to Dirk's call. As he stared
at Talia, dumbfounded, she demanded to know who was in authority. Devan saw she 234 Mercedes
Lackey would
heed nothing he told her until he gave her what she wanted, and recited the
all-too-brief list. "I
want—Elspeth," she said breathlessly, "And Kyril— the Seneschal—and
Alberich. Now, Devan." And would not be gainsaid. When
Devan sent messengers for the four she had demanded, she finally gave in to his
insistent urgings to lie quietly. Dirk
remained in the room, wishing passionately that he could take some of the
burden of pain from her, for her face was lined and white with it. The
four she had sent for arrived at a run, and within a few moments of one
another. From the despair on their faces, it was evident they had expected to
find Talia at least at Death's door, if not already gone. But their joy at
seeing her once again awake and aware was quickly turned to shock and dismay by
what she had to tell them. "So
from the very beginning it has been Orthallen?" Alberich's question
appeared to be mostly rhetorical. He didn't look terribly surprised. "I
would give much to know how he has managed to mindblock himself for so long,
but that can wait for a later day." Both
Kyril and the Seneschal, however, were staggered by the revelation. "Lord
Orthallen?" the Seneschal kept muttering. "Anyone else, perhaps;
treason is always a possibility with any highborn—but not Orthallen! Why, he
predates me in the Council! Elspeth, can you believe this?" "I
... I'm not sure," Elspeth murmured, looking at Alberich, and then at
Dirk. "There
... is a very simple way ... to prove my words." Talia was lying quite
still to harbor her strength; her eyes were closed and her voice labored, but
there was no doubt that she was very much alive to everything about her.
"Orthallen . . . surely knows . . . where I was. Call him here ... but do
not let him know . . . that I have . . . recovered enough to speak. Devan . . .
you will painblock . . . everything. Then ... get me propped up ... somehow. I
... must seem to be ... completely ARROWS
FALL 235 well.
His reaction . . . when he sees me with Elspeth . . . should tell us ... all we
need to know." "There
is no way I will countenance anything of the sort!" Devan said angrily.
"You are in no shape to move a single inch, much less—" "You
will. You must," Talia's voice was flat, implacable, with no tinge of
anger, only of command. But Devan folded before it, and the look in the eyes
she opened to meet his. "Old
friend, it must be," she added softly. "More than my well-being is at
stake." "This
could kill you, you know," he said with obvious bitterness, beginning to
touch her forehead so that he cook) establish the painblocks she demanded.
"You're forcing me to violate every Healing Oath I ever swore." "No—"
Dirk couldn't quite fathom the sad, tender tittle smile she wore. "I have
it ... on excellent authority ... that it isn't my time." She got
other protests from the rest when she decreed that only she and Elspeth should
receive Orthallen, With
total painblocks established she was able to speak normally, if weakly.
"It has to be this way," she insisted. "If he sees you, I think
he might be able to mask his reaction. At the least he'll be warned by your
presence. With us alone, I think it will be genuine; I don't think hell bother
trying to hide it initially from two he doesn't consider to be physically or
mentally threatening." She
relented enough to allow them to conceal themselves in the room next door,
watching all that went on through the door that linked the two, provided they
keep that door open only a bare crack. Once everyone was in place, they sent
for Orthallen. R
seemed an age before they heard his slow, deliberate footsteps following the
pattering ones of the page. Hie
door opened; Orthallen stepped inside, his head turned back over his shoulder,
dismissing the page before be dosed the door behind himself. Only then did he
turn to face the two that awaited him. TaUa
had set her stage most carefully. She was propped »p like an oversized doll,
but to all appearances was 256 Mercedes
Lackey sitting
up in bed normally. She was a deathly white, but the relatively dim light of their
single candle concealed that. Elspeth stood at her right hand. The room was
entirely dark except for the candle that illuminated both their
faces—concealing the fact that the door behind the two of them was propped open
a tiny amount. "Elspeth,"
Orthallen began as he turned, "This is an odd place for a meet—" Then he
truly saw who was in the room besides the Heir. The
blood drained swiftly from his face, and the condescending smile he had worn
faded. As he
noted their expressions, he grew even more agitated. His hands began trembling,
and his complexion took on a grayish tinge. His eyes scanned the room, looking
for anyone else who might be standing in the shadows behind them. "I
have met Ancar, my lord, and seen Hulda—" Talia began. Then
the staid, poised Lord Orthallen, who always preferred words over any other
weapon, did the one thing none of them would ever have expected him to do. He went
berserk. He
snatched his ornamental dagger from its sheath at his side, and sprang for
them, madness in his eyes, his mouth twisted into a wild rictus of fear. For the
men hidden behind the door, time suddenly slowed to an agonizing crawl. They
burst through it, knowing as they did so that by the time they reached the two
women, anything they did would be far too late to save them. But
before anyone else even had time to react, before Orthallen had even moved more
than a single step, ElspetrTs right hand flickered out sideways, then snapped
forward. Halfway
to them, Orthallen suddenly collapsed over Talia's bed with an odd gurgle, then
slid to the floor. Time
resumed its normal pace. Elspeth,
white-faced and shaking, reached out and rolled him over with her foot as the
four men reached her side. There was a little throwing dagger winking in the
candle- ARROWSFALL 237 light
that fell on Orthallen's chest. Blood from the wound it had made stained his
blue velvet robe black. It was, Dirk noted with an odd, detached corner of his
mind, perfectly placed for a heart-shot. "By
my authority as Heir," Elspeth said in a voice that quavered on the edge
of hysterics, "I have judged this man guilty of high treason, and carried
out his sentence with my own hand." She
held to the edge of the bed to keep her shaking legs from collapsing under her,
as Tatia touched her arm with one bandaged hand—in an attempt, perhaps, to
comfort and support her. Her eyes looked like they were going to pop out of her
head, and dilated with shock. When Devan threw open the door to the hall, she
looked at him pleadingly. "Ana
now," she said in a strained voice, "I think I'd tike to be sick.
Please?" Devan
had the presence of mind to get her a basin before she lost the contents of her
stomach; she retched until she was totally empty, then burst into hysterical
tears. Devan took charge of her quickly, leading her off to clean herself up
and find a quiet place where she could vent her feelings in peace. Kyril
and Alberich removed the body, quickly and efficiently. The Seneschal wandered
after them, dazed and shaken. That left Dirk alone with Talia. Devan
reappeared for a moment before he could say or do anything. The Healer removed
the cushions that had been propping her up, and got her lying down again to bis
own satisfaction. He pressed his hand briefly to her forehead, then turned to
Dirk. "Stay
with her, would you? I took some of the painblocks off before they do her an
injury, but all this would have been a heavy strain if she had been healthy. In
the shape she's in—I can't predict the effect. She may very well be perfectly
all right; she seems in no worse state than she was before. If she starts to go
into shock, or looks like she's relapsing—or really, if you think anything is
going wrong, call me. I'll be within hearing distance, getting Elspeth
calmed." 238 Mercedes
Lackey What
else could he do, except nod? When
Devan left, he turned hungry eyes back toward Talia. There was so much he
wanted to say—and had no idea of how to say it. Now
that the impetus of the emergency was gone, she seemed confused, disoriented,
dazed with pain. He could see her groping after coherent thought. Finally
she seemed to see him. "Oh, gods, Dirk—Kris is dead. They murdered him—he
didn't have a chance. I couldn't help him, I couldn't save him. And it's all my
fault that it happened—if I'd told him we had to turn back when we first knew
something was wrong, he'd still be alive." She
began to weep, soundlessly, tears trickling slowly down her cheeks; she was
plainly too exhausted even to sob. Then it
hit him— "Goddess—"
he said. "Kris—oh, Kris—" He
knelt beside her, not touching her, while his shoulders shook with the sobs she
was too weary to share— and they mourned together. He had
no idea how long they wept together; long enough for his eyes and throat to go
raw. But flesh has its limits; finally he got himself back under control,
carefully wiped her tears away for her, and took a seat beside her. "I
knew what happened to him," he said at last. "Rolan made it through
with your message." "How
did—how did I get here?" "I
Fetched you—" he groped for the right words. "I mean, I had to, I
couldn't leave you there! I didn't know if it would work but I had to try!
Elspeth, the Companions, we all Fetched you together." "You
did that? It—I've never heard of anything like that— It's like—like some tale.
But I was lost in the dark," She seemed almost in a state of shock now, or
a half-trance. "I could see the Havens, you know, I could see them. But
they wouldn't let me go to them—they held me back." "Who?
Who held you back?" ARROWS
FALL 239 "Love
and duty—" she whispered as if to herself. "What?"
She wasn't making any sense. "But
Kris said—" Her voice was almost inaudible. He had
feared before. Now he was certain. It had been Kris whom she loved—and he'd
prevented her from reaching him. He hung his head, not wanting her to see the
despair on his face. "Dirk—"
Her voice was stronger, not quite so contused. "It was you who called me.
You saved me from Ancar, then brought me out of the dark. Why?" She'd
hate him for it, but she deserved the truth. Maybe one day she'd forgive him. "I
had to. I love you," he said helplessly, hopelessly. He stood up to leave,
his eyes burning with more tears— tears he dared not shed—and cast one longing
glance back at her. Talia
heard the words she'd been past hoping for— then saw her hope getting ready to
walk out the door. Suddenly everything fell into place. Dirk had thought that
Kris was the one she'd been in love with! That
was why he'd been acting so crazy—wanting her himself, yet fearing to try to
compete with Kris. Havens, half the time he must have loathed himself for a
very natural anger at his best friend who had turned rival. No wonder he'd been
in such a state! And now
Kris was gone, and he thought that she'd want no part of him, the constant
reminder, the second-best. Damn
the man! Stubborn as he was, there would be no reasoning with him. He would
never believe anything she toW him; it could take months, years to straighten
it all out. Her
mind felt preternaturalty clear, and she sought frantically for a way out of
her predicament—and found (Hie in memory. ".
. . just like with a Farspeaker." Ylsa's words were dear in her memory.
"They almost always begin by hearing first, not speaking. You're feeling
right now—but I suspect rfwf one day you'll learn how to project your own
feelings in such a way that others can read them, can share them. 240 Mercedes
Lackey That
could be a very useful trick—especially if you ever need to convince someone of
your sincerity!" Yes,
she'd done that without really thinking about it already. There was the forced
rapport, and the kind of rapport she'd shared with Kris and Rolan. And the
simpler tasks of projecting confidence, reassurance—this was just one step
farther along— She
reached for the strength and the will to show him, only to discover that she
was too drained, too exhausted. There was nothing left. She
nearly sobbed with vexation. Then Rolan made his presence felt, filling her
with his love—and more— Rolan—his
strength was there, as always, and offered to her with open-hearted generosity. And she
had the knowledge of what to do and how to doit. "Wait!"
she coughed, and as Dirk half-turned, she projected everything she felt into
his open mind and heart. All her love, her need for him—forcing him to see the
truth that words alone would never make him believe. Devan
heard a strange, strangled cry that sounded as if it were something torn from a
masculine throat. He whirled and started for Talia's room, fearing the worst. He
paused for a moment at the door, steeled himself against what he was likely to
see, and opened it slowly, words of comfort on his tongue. To his
total amazement, not only was Talia still living— but she was actually
clear-eyed and smiling, and trembling on the knife-edge between laughter and
tears. And Dirk was sitting on the side of her bed, trying his best to find
some way of holding her without hurting her, covering every uninjured inch of
her that he could reach with kisses and tears. Half
stunned, Devan slipped out before either of them noticed him, and signaled a
page passing in the hail. He absently noted that it was one whose face he had
seen often in this corridor, though he couldn't imagine why the child should
have spent so much time here. When the boy saw who it was that had summoned him
and what door he had come out of, he paled. ARROW'S
FALL 241 Incredible,
Devan thought wryly. Is there anyone who isn't worried to death about her? "I
need a messenger sent to the Queen, preferably a Herald-courier, since a Herald
is the only one likely to be able to find her without looking for hours, and
this is fairly urgent," he said. The
page's mouth trembled. "The Lady-Herald, sir," he said in an unsteady
treble. "Is she—dead?" "Lord
of Lights, no!" Devan suddenly realized that he felt like laughing for the
first time in days, and shocked the child with an enormous grin. "In fact,
while you're getting me that messenger, spread the news! She's very much with
us—and she's going to be very, very well indeed!" Eleven Dirk's
pure joy could not last for long: all too soon he recalled that there were far
more important issues at stake than just his happiness. Talia alone knew what
had transpired in Ancar's capital; might know what they could expect. Surely,
surely there was danger to Valdemar, and only she might be able to guess how
much. He
sobered; she caught his mood immediately. "Or-thallen isn't the only
enemy," he said slowly. .She
couldn't have gotten any paler, but her eyes widened and pupils dilated.
"No—how long—was I—" "Since
we Fetched you? Let me think—" he reckoned it up. He'd been unconscious
for two days; then spent six more recovering from backlash. "Just about
eight days." He guessed at what she'd ask next. "We're in Lord
Falthern's keep, right on the edge of the Border." "Selenay?" "Devan's
sent for her. You're in pain—" "No
choice, you know that." She managed a wan smile. "I—" She
forgot what she was about to say completely as Selenay fairly flew in the open
door, face alight with a fierce joy. "You
see, Majesty." Alberich was close on her heels. "It is only the truth
I told you." Dirk was astonished to see that the Armsmaster's face wore a
nearly identical expression. ^Talia,
Talia—" Selenay could manage no more before she was overcome with tears of
happiness. She took the hand that Dirk had not claimed gently in her own, 243 244 Mercedes
Lackey holding
it with every care, lest she cause more pain. Alberich stood beside her,
beaming as if it had all been his doing. Never in his entire life had Dirk seen
the Armsmaster smile so broadly. "Selenay—?" The
anxiety in Talia's voice penetrated even their joy, and brought them abruptly
back to earth. "There's
still danger?" Talia
nodded wearily. Dirk arranged the bedding so that she was spared as much pain
as he could manage, and she cast him a look that made him flush with pleasure.
"Ancar—has his own army." "And
he may attack with it?" "Will
attack. Has to, now. He meant to kill you. Then take Elspeth." "God
of Light—" "Last
I knew—planned to take Border. He—has to have—missed me. Can't guess his
reaction—but he has to assume—I lived long enough to talk." "So
we're in as much danger as before, maybe more," Selenay stood, jaw
clenched in anger. "He'll have a fight on his hands!" "Magicians.
He has magicians. Old magic. Kept me from Mindcalling—kept Heralds from knowing
Kris was dead; don't know what else they can do. Just know they can block us.
And Orthallen—kept him well informed." "Orthallen?"
Selenay lost some of her anger; now she looked bewildered. "Orthallen—Lady
help me, I still can't believe it of him—Goddess—he was Kris' uncle!" "He
was unpleased that you had sent the lad, Selenay," Alberich reminded her.
"I think that we know the reason, now. And his grief at hearing—that was
unfeigned." "But
over—perhaps a bit too soon," the Queen replied, biting her lip. "Though
he had never been one for making much of a show of feelings." "He
killed your father," Talia whispered, her eyes closed again, exhausted
with the effort of speaking for so long. "During the battle—sent an
assassin in the confusion." "He—"
Selenay went white. "I never guessed—I trusted him!" ARROW'S
FALL Silence
then; the silence before the tempest. 245 "Dirk?"
Talia opened her eyes very briefly, only to dose them quickly, as if she found
her vision wavering when she did so. He
needed no other clue than the dazed way she looked at him; he touched her cheek
gently and went looking for Devan himself. When he
came back, he brought with him not only Devan but three other Healers as well.
By then the tittle room was rather crowded; Kyril was back, and Elspeth with
him. The Seneschal had returned and had brought the Lord Marshal. Candles had
been brought, lighted and stuck on every available surface; the room was bright
and a little warm and stuffy. "I
hate to ask this of you and of her, Devan," Selenay said, looking guilty,
"But we haven't got the choice. Can you Healers hold her together long
enough for her to tell us what we need to know?" Dirk
wanted to protest—then his rebellion subsided. He knew what he'd be doing in
Talia's place; using his last breath to gasp out every bit of information he
could. Why should she be any different? "Majesty,"
Devan bowed his head in resignation. "I will say that I do not approve,
and we will not let her kill herself with exhaustion." "But
you'll do it?" "Like
Talia, we have no choice." The Healers surrounded her, touched her
lightly, and went into their Healing trances. She sighed; her pain-twisted
expression eased and she opened her eyes, which were alert and clear again. "Ask—quickly." "Ancar—what
can we expect from him?" the Lord Marshal spoke first. "How large is
this private army? What kind of men does he have in it?" "Prison
scum; about three thousand. No mercenaries I heard of. But they're trained,
well trained." "What
about the standing army? Will he use them?" "I
don't think yet. He murdered Alessandar; don't think he controls officers in
the regular army yet. Have 246 Mercedes
Lackey to put
down rebels in the corps before he can use them. Needs to replace al! officers
with his own puppets." "Do
you think—can we expect defections?" "I
think so. Whole Border Guard may come over when they learn what happened.
Welcome them, but Truth Spell them." "Where
was his own army last?" "Just
outside the capital." "Does
he know you know about his three thousand?" "No."
Her eyes were almost unnaturally bright. "He didn't ask any questions of
me, ever." "The
more fool, he. A bit overconfident, wouldn't you say, Alberich? So," the
Lord Marshal mused, stroking his beard, his black brows knitted in thought.
"Twelve to fourteen days of forced marching would get them here. Much
cavalry?" "I
don't think so; these were prison scum before he recruited them. But they're
trained to work together, been training for at least three years. He also has
magicians. Old magic, real magic, like in tales. If he thinks he'll come up
against Heralds, he'll use them." "How
good are they?" asked Kyril. "Don't
know. One of them kept me from Mindspeaking, from probing Ancar, from defending
myself, and kept Kris' passing from reaching you here—but he couldn't block
empathic link with Rolan. Gods—this is important— they can block us, but they
can't read us. Ancar let that slip—said something about 'damn Heralds and your
barriers.' " "Which
means they can't possibly use their magic to learn our plans, especially not if
we keep shields up?" Kyril asked, with hope in his eyes. "Think
so. Didn't even bother to try lo read me, and Hulda is a mage, too—taught
Ancar; I don't know how good they are. This isn't mind-magic; can't guess how
it works." "Orthallen,"
said the Seneschal. "How long has he been working against the Queen?" "Decades;
he had an assassin take the King during battle." "Who
was he working with?" ARROWS
FALL 247 "Nobody
then. Wanted the Throne for himself; just took advantage of Tedrel Wars."
"When did he change?" "When Hulda contacted him. He thought he
was using her." "
"That was years ago—! "Right.
She came to groom Elspeth as Ancar's consort. She found Orthallen, worked with
him. He warned her in time to escape. Later Ancar offered him the Throne in
exchange for information and internal help." "The
magicians—?" said Kyril, anxiously. "Not
much I can tell. Told you about the mindblock. Same mage kept Ancar shielded.
Hulda shielded herself, I think. She looked physically about twenty-five years
old. Could have been illusion, but don't think so. She's old enough to have
been actually Ancar's nurse—makes her at least forty. Saw her make a
witchlight—" Talia pulled her bandaged hand away from Dirk's for a moment,
and pulled her loose gown away from her shoulder. Selenay and Elspeth gasped,
and the Seneschal bit back an exclamation at what was revealed there—a
handprint, burned into the flesh of her chest as if with a branding iron.
"She did that, while they were—playing with me. Just laid her hand there,
casually. Like it was easy as breathing. Rumors were they can do worse; lots
worse." The
four Healers were beginning to look drawn; even with their aid, Talia was
visibly fading. "Tired—"
she said, begging with her eyes for a rest. "We've
got enough to go on for now," Selenay looked to each of the others and
they nodded in confirmation. "We can get our defenses organized, at least.
Rest, my brave one." She led
the others out; one by one the Healers disengaged themselves. As they did,
Talia seemed to wilt, and more than a little. Devan caught Dirk's shoulder
before he had a chance to panic. "Shell
live; she just needs rest and a chance to heal," he said wearily.
"And she's going to get at least some of both right now—if I have to post
guards to keep people out!" 246 Mercedes
Lackey Dirk
nodded, and returned to her side. She opened her eyes with an effort. "Love—you—"
she whispered. "My
own—" His throat closed for a moment, and he fought down a renewal of
tears. "I'm going to leave you for a while; Devan says you need rest. But
I'll be back as soon as he lets me!" "Make
it—soon—" He
left, walking backward; she keeping her eyes on him until the door closed. As
Alberich had suspected would be the case, when dawn came, the bivouac on the
Border as well as the smaller collection of Councillors and officials at the
Keep were in an uproar. Units of the Guard—heartbreakingly small—arrived every
hour. Tales, more or less garbled, of what had occurred the previous night were
spreading like oil from a shattered urn, and were just as potentially
flammable. Talia slept in an induced Healing-trance, blissfully unaware of the
confusion. The
Guard was easiest to deal with; the Lord Marshal simply called all the officers
together, and with Alberich present to verify exactly what had been said and
done, related to them the entire true story. The officers of the Guard, for the
most part, had never associated closely with Orthallen; thus, while they were
shocked by his betrayal, they took the tale at its face value. They were far
more worried about the army Ancar would bring against them, for they numbered
something around a thousand to Ancar's three thousand. The magicians they
dismissed out of hand. "My
lord," one veteran officer said, his face as scar-seamed as Alberich's
"Begging your pardon, but there's nothing we can do about mages. We'll
leave that in the hands of those that deal with magic—" His
gaze flickered to Alberich; the Armsmaster gave him a barely perceptible nod. "—we've
more than enough on our plate with what's coming at us." And
Ancar's army was on its way; Alberich and the Lord Marshal knew that for a
fact. There were two ARROW'S
FALL 249 Heralds
in Selenay's entourage gifted with Farsight who had also been in Hardorn on
more than one mission. They had bent their talents beyond the Border during the
Bight, at Alberich's urging. They had seen Ancar's army, plainly camped for a
few hours' rest. More disturbingly, they had "looked" again for that
army with the coming of dawn—and found nothing, nothing but empty countryside. "So
there's at least one mage with them," Kyril deduced, as the warleaders
conferred over breakfast. "And he's concealing their movements from our
Farsight somehow." Knowing what they now knew about mages being in Ancar's
entourage—however little that was—Kyril and Alberich had been made co-equal
with the Lord Marshal. Their task was to lead the assembled Heralds in
combat—either by steel or by Gift. One of the Heralds' most important tasks was
communications; each officer wottld have a Mindspeaking Herald with him at all
times, and Kyril would be with Selenay to coordinate all of them. That was the
trick that had won the Tedrel Wars far them, the one thing no other army could
match. "Doesn't
matter," the Lord Marshal replied, "at least not at the moment. We
know where they were; we know by that how fast they've come, and how soon
they're likely to get here. We also know those mages haven't been moving *em
somehow—else they wouldn't have needed all the horses your Heralds 'saw.'
" "My
lord?" One of his officers had appeared beyond the open tent flap,
saluting smartly. He was scarcely old enough to have grown a beard; morning sun
gilded his fair ban*, and he was having a difficult time repressing a grin.
"We're getting the recruits you warned us of." "Recruits?"
Kyril said, puzzled, as Alberich nodded. The Lord
Marshal gave a brief snort that might have been a laugh. "You'll see,
Herald. Bring them on up here, lad; we've got two here that can test
them." "AU
of them, sir?" "How
many are there?" The Lord Marshal was surprised now. "Over
a hundred, sir." 250 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 251 "Lady
Bright—aye, bring them all up. We'll get them sorted out, somehow." As the
three Warleaders left the tent to stand in the brilliant sunlight, there was a
small dust-cloud in the vicinity of the trade road. As those who made the cloud
neared, Kyril and Alberich saw that those at the front of the crowd that
approached afoot were wearing the black-and-gold uniforms of Alessandar's
regular army. It
appeared that the entire force guarding the Border, from officers to Healers
and all their dependents, had defected when they had learned of Alessandar's
murder. Elspeth
had the joyous task of breaking the news to the rest of the Council. There was
no such accord among the political leaders of Valdemar as there was among her
military leaders. Lord
Gartheser was speechless with outrage and shock; Bard Hyron was dazed. Lady
Kester and Lady Cathan, still seething over Orthallen's accusations of
complicity with the slavers, were surprised, but not altogether unhappy. Father
Aldon had closeted himself in the tiny chapel of the Keep; Lord Gildas was with
him. Healer Myrim made no attempt to conceal the fact that Orthallen's
treachery had not surprised her. Nor did she conceal that his demise gave her a
certain grim satisfaction. But then, she might well be forgiven such
uncharitable thoughts; she was one of the four Healers who were tending Talia's
wounds. Once
the bare bones had been told to the Councillors as a group, Elspeth went to
each of these Councillors in turn, privately. She gave a simple explanation of
what had occurred, but would answer no questions. Questions, she told them,
must wait until Talia had recovered enough to tell them all more. Long
before then, Ancar's army arrived. Alberich
was beginning to feel hopeful. The ranks of Valdemar's forces had been swelled
to nearly double the original size by deserters—partisans of Alessandar—from
across the Border. The Lord Marshal was fairly dancing with glee; with the
exception of the dependents, every one of
the men and women who sought sanctuary with them was a well-trained fighter or
Healer—and every one burned with hatred and anger for the murder of their
beloved King. For the
true tale had been spread to the countryside, from the capital westward, by a
most unexpected source— the members of Trader Evan's clan. Evan,
it seemed had taken to heart Talia's warning to flee—and done more than that.
He had spread the word among the traders of his own clan as he fled; they in
turn had carried the tale farther. Cose to the capital, the people were cowed
and afraid, too frightened to dare even escape; but close to the Border where
Ancar's hand ted not yet fallen so heavily, and where Alessandar had been
served out of love, feelings ran high. High enough, that when two or three
Border officers decided to defect to Valdemar's side of the Border, nearly the
entire con-tingent of the regular army stationed in the area chose to come with
them. Ancar
surely had not anticipated this, nor would Ancar have any way of knowing they
had gone. A small group of volunteers had remained behind at the signal towers
and continued to send messages and information—all of it false. "They'll
fade into the villages when Ancar has gone by," the Captain who had hosted
Kris and Talia told Alberich. "They've got civilian clothing at hand now.
If ftey can, they'll come across to us, but all the men who volunteered have
families, and they won't leave 'em." "Understandable,"
Alberich replied. "If it is that we win this battle, we shall post
watchers to guide them here at every likely crossing. If not..." "Then
it won't matter a damn, because Ancar will have us all," the Captain
answered grimly. The
Lord Marshal, with his forces doubled, was in no doubt as to the outcome. "Randon,"
Selenay said anxiously, as they waited for some sign that Ancar was within
striking distance, "I know it's your job to be confident, but he still has
us OBtiwmbered three to two—" 252 Mercedes
Lackey They
were standing, as they had every day since the Border had been alerted, at the
top of the highest hill in the vicinity. Ancar's mages probably could mask the
movements of his troops from Farsight, but they'd be hard put to eliminate the
dust-cloud of their passing, or the disturbance of birds, or any one of a
number of other signs of the movement of many men. From this hill there was a
clear line-of-sight for miles into Hardorn. Trained watchers were posted here,
but Selenay and the Lord Marshal also spent most of their time not otherwise
occupied squinting into the bright sunshine alongside them. "My
lady, we have more on our side than he can guess at. We have a thousand trained
fighters besides our own that he knows nothing about. We have the choice of
battleground. And we have the Heralds to ensure that there are no botched
orders or misheard messages, or commands that come too late to be effective.
The only thing I fear are his mages." Now doubt did shadow the Lord
Marshal's eyes, and creep into his voice. "We have no way of knowing what
they can do, how many he has, or if we can counteract them. And they may turn
the day for him." "And
Heraldic Gifts for the most part are not much use offensively," Selenay
added, sobered by the thought of the mages. "If only we had one of the
Herald-mages alive today." "Lady-Queen,
will I do?" Selenay
whirled, startled. As she and Randon had been absorbed in watching the Border
and in their conversation, two Heralds had climbed the hill behind them. One
was Dirk, pale, but looking better than he had in days. The
other, so begrimed with dust that his Whites were gray, his face lined with
exhaustion, but sporting a self-conscious grin despite his weariness, was
Griffon. "I
brought him right here as soon as we'd pried him off his saddle, Majesty,"
Dirk said. "This lout just may be our answer to the mages—remember his
Gift? He's a Firestarter, Majesty." "Just
point out what you want to go up in flames—or ARROW'S
FALL 253 who,"
Griffon added. "I guarantee it'll go. Kyril hasn't found anything that'll
block me yet." •/That's
no boast, Majesty; I trained him, I know what be can do. He's limited to
line-of-sight, but that should be good enough." **But—you
were riding circuit up North," Selenay said, dazed with the sudden turn in
their fortunes that brought Griffon there when he was most needed. "How
did you even find out we were under threat, much less get here in toe?" ,
**Pure, dumb, Herald's luck," Griffon replied. "I ran into a Herald
Courier whose Gift just happens to be Foresight; her message was delivered and
we were—ah— passing an evening together. That night she got a really strong
vision; all but dragged me out of bed and threw me into the saddle stark naked.
She took over my circuit, I rode for the Border as fast as Hare vis could carry
me. And here I am. I just hope I can do you some good." The
setting sun was turning the clouds bloody when one of the lookouts reported the
first long-awaited sign of Ancar's army. Selenay prayed that the blood-red of the
sunset was not an ill omen for her forces, even while die and the Lord Marshal
issued the first of the orders {or die battle to come. The
Lord Marshal had chosen as the battlefield a low, bare hill just on the
Valdemar side of the Border. It had woods to the rear and the left of it, and
open fields to the right. What Ancar couldn't know—and what even now the scouts
and skirmishers heading into the woods intended to keep him from learning—was
that the woods to die rear of the hill had flooded with the bursting of an
earthen dam earlier this spring. Water lay two and three feet deep all through
them, and the hitherto-spongy ground was a morass of mud. Others
besides those skirmishers were moving into the woods to the left of the chosen
field—the thousand or so fighters who had defected to Valdemar. In groups of a
hundred or thereabouts, each with a mindspeaking Herald, they were taking
positions to lie in wait past any point where Ancar's scouts would be allowed
to penetrate. 254 /Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 255 Teren
slapped at another mosquito, and curbed his irritation. Tlie ground was high
enough here that they weren't up to their rears in mud, but the stinging
insects were having a rare old party—not only acres of new-made marsh to lay
eggs in, but this unexpected bonus of humans as refreshments! It was dark, the
air was damp, and it was chilly. Wythra didn't like it any better than he did;
he could hear his Companion blowing impatiently in the darkness to his right. :Twin?:
he mind-sent. -.We're in position, how about you?: :The
same,: was Keren's reply, with an overtone of exasperation, :and up to our
armpits in goddamn midges!: :Mosquitos
here. : •.Count
your blessings,: came her retort. :The midges are crawling into people's armor
and you beat yourself black and blue trying to get them.: -.They're
everywhere—: That had the unmistakable overtones of Keren's stallion Dantris,
and he was irritated. Unlike most other Heralds, the twins could Mindspeak as
well with each other's Companions as with their own. :Even fellis-oil isn't
helping,: Dantris concluded in annoyance. :Sounds
like you may have more casualties from the wildlife than in battle.: Teren
grinned to himself despite his discomfort. :Let's
all hope you're right,: his twin answered soberly. "Be
my eyes and ears, love," Talia had begged Dirk. "They're going to
need me—" "But—"
he'd protested. "Take
Rolan; you know you can link to him. And when they need me—" "Not
if?" He'd sighed. "No, never mind. I link to Rolan and he links to
you? Gods, can't you rest for a moment?" "Dare
I?" He'd
had no answer to give her. So here he waited, in the lines behind Selenay,
waiting for dawn. Praying she didn't kill herself—because if he lost her, now
that he'd just found her. . . . When
dawn came, Selenay's forces were formed up along the top of the hill, with
their backs to the woods. There was a heavy knot of Heralds in Whites at the
end of die left flank, hard against the woods to the side. With them was Jen,
wearing some of Elspeth's student Grays; they were hoping Ancar would mistake
her for Elspeth and drive for that part of the line. Elspeth herself was back
at the Keep, ready to flee at a moment's notice if the tide turned against
them. She had agreed to this reluctantly, but saw the sense in it, and she
wanted to be certain if everything went wrong that Talia was not left behffld.
During one of her brief moments of wakefulness, the Queen's Own had soberly
asked the Heir to personally be certain that she didn't fall back into Ancar's
bands, and Elspeth had promised just as soberly. Although Elspeth had a shrewd
notion that Talia meant she should see to it that the Queen's Own received coup
de grace, the Heir was determined to bring her along even if it meant carrying
the injured Herald herself! In the
pale light of dawn, Selenay's original thousand looked pitiful against Ancar's
three thousand. They
were a shade more heavily armored than the Guard; from the way they obeyed
their officers' orders, they were as well trained. About five hundred of the
three thousand were still mounted; cavalry then, but light cavalry, not heavy.
The good news was that their bows were all crossbows—in an open field battle,
virtually useless in combat once fired, and lacking the range of a longbow. Selenay's
forces waited, patiently, Ancar would have to come to them. "He's
a good commander, I'll give him that," the Lord Marshal growled, when
after an hour of waiting nothing had happened. "He's assessing his chances—and
I hope to Mazes we look like fools! Wait a minute, something's happening—
" : ;A
nder came forward from the ranks with a white flag. He rode to the exact middle
of the battle, and paused. 256 Mercedes
Lackey The
Lord Marshal rode forward three paces, his battle-harness jingling, and
thundered, "Speak, man! Or are you just here to look pretty?" The
rider, a slightly foppish fellow wearing highly ornamented plate with a helmet
that bore an outlandish crest, colored angrily and spoke up. "Queen
Selenay, your envoys murdered King Alessandar, clearly on your orders. King
Ancar has declared a state of war upon Valdemar for your heinous act. Your
forces are outnumbered—will you surrender yourself now to Ancar's
justice?" An
angry muttering went up along the line, as Selenay grimaced. "I wondered
what sort of tale he'd concoct," she murmured to Kyril, then called to the
rider: "And just what can I expect from Ancar's justice?" "You
must abdicate and give over your daughter Elspeth in marriage to Ancar. The
Heralds of Valdemar must be disbanded and outlawed. Ancar will rule Valdemar
jointly with Elspeth; you will be imprisoned in a place of Ancar's choosing for
as long as you live." "Which
will be about ten minutes once Ancar has me in his hands," Selenay said
loud enough for the envoy to hear. Then she stood up in her stirrups, removed
her helm so that the sun shone fully on her golden hair, and called aloud,
"What do you say, my people? Shall I surrender?" The
resounding "No!" that met her question rang across the hilltop and
caused the envoy's horse to start and shy. "Now
hear me—" she said, in a voice so clear and carrying that there was no
doubt that every one of Ancar's men could hear it. "Ancar murdered his own
father, and my envoy as well. He consorts with evil magicians, and dabbles in
blood-sacrifice, and I'd sooner set a blade across Elspeth's throat than have
her spend so much as five minutes in his company! Let him beware the vengeance
of the gods for his false accusations—and the only way he'll rule Valdemar is
when every one of her citizens is dead in her defense!" The
envoy turned his horse back to his own lines, the cheering that followed
Selenay's words seeming to push him along before it like a leaf before the wind. ARROW*
FALL 257 "Well,
now we're for it," Selenay said to her commanders, settling her sword a
little more comfortably at her side. She replaced her helm, and patted her
Companion's neck. "Now we see if our plans work, even at
three-to-two." "And,"
Kyril replied, "if a Firestarter's the equal of Ancar's mages." "Why
are they just sitting there?" Griffon asked, his expression perplexed.
"Why aren't they charging?" tie was
far back behind the first and second lines, with tfae bowmen. His Gift was far
too precious to risk him anywhere near the front, but he chafed at his enforced They
found out in the next few moments as fog seemed to begin rising from the earth
at a point between their fines and Ancar's. The fog was a sickly yellow, and the
breeze Mowing across the battle field did not disturb it at aft. Then it seemed
to writhe and curdle; there was an eerie green glow all about it. The breeze
brought a whiff of a sulfurous stench, the whole battlefield seemed to sfaift
sideways for an instant, and Griffon's stomach torched—and hi place of the fog
was a clutch of demonic monsters. They
were easily seven feet tall, with dark pits in their skulls in place of eyes,
in the depths of which a dim red fire seemed to flicker. Their mouths were
fanged: their leathery yellow hides, the color of rancid butter, seemed armor
enough. They each carried a double-bladed axe in one hand, a knife nearly the
length of a sword in the other. There were nearly a hundred of them. A fearful
murmuring arose from the ranks of Selenay's forces—a few arrows flew in the
direction of the things, but those that connected merely bounced off. As they
opened their fanged mouths to roar and began advancing on the center of
Selenay's lines, her own troops fell back a step or two involuntarily. Then,
without warning, one of the demon-warriors •tapped dead in its tracks, and let
out a howl that caused men to dap their hands to their ears; then it burst into
name. 258 Mercedes
Lackey It
howled again, and began staggering in circles, a walking pyre. Selenay's troops
cheered again; then the cheering died, for the rest of the demons were still
coming, oblivious to the fate of the burning one, which had fallen to the
ground, still afire. A
second and a third ignited—and still they kept coming. They moved fairly
slowly, but it was evident that they would reach Selenay's lines in a few
moments. And so
they did—and the slaughter they caused was hideous. The demons waded into the
line of fighters as a man might wade into a pack of yipping curs. TTiey swung
their heavy axes with deceptive slowness—and sheared through armor and the
flesh beneath as if the armor were paper and the flesh as soft as melted
cheese. There was no deflecting the blows of those vicious axes; a man in the
way of one of them went down with his shield split, and his skull split as
well. Incredibly, fighters pressed to replace those that had fallen, but their
bravery was useless. The axes continued to swing, and the replacements joined
their fellows, either in death or in mangled agony. The Guard swarmed to make a
protective wall around Selenay and her commanders, but the demons were
inexorably cutting through them. There was blood everywhere—some of it yellow,
but precious little compared to the amount of red, human blood flowing. Men
cried out in fear or in pain, the monsters roared, and under all was the
screech of blade-edge meeting armor and the stink of demon-flesh burning. Griffon,
standing far behind the lines, brow furrowed with concentration, was focusing
on yet another of the demons. As it, too, went up in flames, he looked for a
new target in despair. It seemed that he alone could kill these monsters—but
there were so many of them! "Herald—"
He tried to ignore the insistent voice in his ear, but the man would not go
away. He turned impatiently, to see that his persistant companion was the
Councillor, Bard Hyron. Hyron was enough of a trained bowman to have warranted
a place back here, alongside Griffon. "Herald—the
tales say these things are dependent on their sorcerer. If you kill him,
they'll vanish!" ARROWS
FALL 259 -.
"What if the tales are wrong?" "You
won't have lost anything," the Bard pointed out. "Look—the mage must
be in that knot of people back by the standard; just to the left of the center
and the rear of Ancar's lines." "Get
me a Farseer!" Before Griffon had finished speaking, the man was off,
running faster than Griffon would have guessed he could. The
Bard was back in an instant—too long for Griffon, who watched, sickened, as the
demons carved down another swath of the Guard. "I'm
looking, Grif—" It was Griffon's red-haired year-mate, Davan, who came
stumbling up in the Bard's wake— stumbling because he had one hand pressed to
his forehead, trying to "See" as he ran. "I've—bloody hell! I
know he's there, but they're blocking me! Damn you, you bastards—" Davan
went to his knees, face twisted and unrecognizable with the effort of fighting
the blockage the mages were putting on him. **Come
on, Davan—" Griffon glanced up; and swallowed bile and fear. The demons
were continuing to advance. He concentrated, and sent the nearest up in flames,
but another took its place. Hyron
froze for a moment, then ran off again. Griffon hardly noticed; he was doing what
he could—and it wasn't enough. Pounding
hooves and a flash of white that Griffon saw out of the corner of his eye
signaled the arrival of another Herald. Distracted, Griffon turned to see who
it was. Dirk—and
not Ahrodie, but Rolan! Dirk
slid off the stallion's bare back, and took Davan by the shoulder, shaking him.
"Break it off, little brother— that isn't going to get you anywhere,"
he shouted over the noise of battle. "You two—don't argue. Link with us—'; Griffon
did not even bother to think, much less argue. He linked in with Dirk, as he
had so often done as a student— To find
himself, not in a four-way linkage, but a five. 260 Mercedes
Lackey Dirk
was linked to Rolan—who in his turn was linked to—Talia? Yes, it was Talia. Dirk's
ability at Mindspeech was limited, but urgency made it clear and strong.
:Davan, follow Her. Mage used death to raise power—pain, despair—She can track
it to him. Grif, follow Davan—I hold here.: Davan
caught that; they all remembered how Talia had used Visa's dying to lead Kris'
Farsight to where her body lay. The thread of Talia's sending was faint, but
unmistakable. Davan caught and followed it, and Griffon, linked in as closely
as he dared, was hot on his "heels." :Yes—yes,
I've got him! I See him! He's dressed in a bright sky-blue velvet robe—Grif,
strike now, through me!: Clear
in Davan's mind, Griffon saw a wizened man in a robe of vivid blue just a
little to one side of the knot of people around Ancar's standard. And that was
all he needed. With
hatred and anger he hadn't known he could feel, born of the horror he felt
watching his fellows being slaughtered, he reached— And
found himself blocked, as he'd never been before. He
strove against the wall blocking him, fighting his way through it with every
ounce of energy he possessed, fueled by his rage— He felt
it yield just the tiniest amount, and dragged up new reserves of energy—from
where, he neither knew nor
cared. There
was an explosion in Ancar's lines. And a tower of flame rose next to Ancar's
standard— And the
demons vanished. Griffon's
eyes rolled up into his head, he fainted dead away, and Davan went with him;
Hyron and Dirk caught them as they fell. When
the demon-warriors vanished, Selenay's forces let out a cheer of relief.
Selenay cheered with them, but wondered if they were being a bit premature. When no
other arcane attacks manifested, then she ARROWS
FALL 261 truly
felt like cheering. There must have been only the one mage, and somehow the
Heralds had been able to defeat him. "Griffon
and Davan found the mage and burned him," Kyrfl said at Selenay's glance
of inquiry. "They both collapsed, after. Griffon's still passed out, but
it doesn't look as if he'll be needed again in a hurry." No, it
didn't; for now Ancar's regular troops were charging Selenay's tine. The bowmen
showered them with arrows—no few of which found their marks. Ancar's own
crossbowmen had long since expended their own bolts—uselessly, it might be
added—and had switched to charging with the rest, swords in hand. Selenay's
Guards-folk braced themselves for the shock, for now the first step of their
battle plan was about to take place. When
Ancar's line hit Selenay's with a clangor of metal on metal and cries of
battle-rage and pain, most of their force was concentrated on the middle, where
Selenay's standard was. She waited, ignoring the sight and sound of her people
killing and being killed, for several long moments—for she, not the Lord
Marshal, was the field commander. Her Gift of Foresight was not a strong one,
but it was an invaluable one, for it operated best on the battlefield. It would
not tell her what was to happen, but given that there were plans already made,
it would tell her when the exact instant occurred that those plans should be
set into motion. She
waited, listening for that insistent inner prompting. Tlien—"Tell the left
to pull in," she said to Kyril. He
Mindsent, with a frown of concentration, and almost instantly the troops on the
lefthand side of the standard began making their way toward the center. As
she'd hoped, Ancar sent his cavalry to the left, with foot following—supposing
that he could encircle their ftne at that point, or even capture the supposed
Heir. "Wheel—•"
she told Kyril. And relayed by the Heralds with each group, the entire force
pivoted on the center, wjjtfa the leftmost end being on the very edge of the
swanjp, where some of Ancar's cavalry were even now discovering the two and
three feet of water and mud. 262 Mercedes
Lackey She
waited another long moment, until all of Ancar's forces were between her line
and the woods on the left. Then—"Now,
Kyril! Call them in!" And
pouring from the woods came the troops that had hidden there all night—fresh,
angry, and out for blood; the defectors from Alessandar's army, and the Heralds
that were their link to the command post. The defectors looked a little odd,
for each of them had spent a few moments of his hours in waiting cutting away
the sleeves of his uniform tunic so that the sleeves of the white, padded
gambeson showed. There could now be no mistaking them on the battlefield for
Ancar's troopers. Caught
between two forces, with a morass in front of them, even Ancar's seasoned
veterans began to panic. After
that, it was a rout. Griffon
was the first to reach the Keep, half-blind with reaction-headache. He had
stayed only long enough to assure himself that the victory was indeed
Selenay's, then pulled himself onto his Companion's back and sought the
Healers. "We
did it; we pulled it off," he told Elspeth, downing a swallow of
headache-potion with a grimace. "Those extra troops from Hardorn turned
the tide. By now what's left of Ancar's army is probably being chased across
the border with its tail between its legs." "What
about Ancar himself?" "Never
got into the thick of battle; probably he's gotten away. And before you ask, I
don't know if Hulda was with him, but I'd guess not. From what I've been able
to pick up from you and Talia, I'd say she isn't one to put herself at any kind
of risk. She's probably safely back at the capital, consolidating things for
her 'little dear.' " "What
about—" "Elspeth,
my head is about ready to break open. I think I know why Lavan called the
Firestorm down on himself—it probably felt better than his reaction-headache!
I'm going to go pass out for a while. Thank Talia for me. We couldn't have done
it without her. And you stay ready; they'll be bringing battle casualties back
any minute now. The Healers will need every hand they can get, ARROWS
FALL 263 and
there'll be plenty of fellows eager for the privilege of having the Heir
listening to their boasts while they're being patched up." So it
proved . . . and Elspeth learned firsthand of the aftermath of battle. She grew
a great deal older in the next few hours. And never again would she think of
war as "glorious." Selenay
remained on the Border, as fresh troops came to help with mopping-up, but
Elspeth, the Councillors, tfee wounded, and most of the Heralds (including
Talia and Dirk) returned to the capital. Just
before the Councillors left, Selenay called them all together. I must
remain here," she said, feeling gray with exhaustion. "Elspeth has
full powers of regency; in my absence she heads the Council—with full
vote." Lord
Gartheser looked as if he was about to protest, then subsided, sullenly. The
Councillors who had been QrthaQen's advocates—with the exception of Hyron—were
angry and unhappy and would be Elspeth's first problem. "You
have no choice in this, my Councillors," Selenay told them, fixing her
eyes on Gartheser in particular. "In war the Monarch has right of decree,
as you well know. And should there be any trouble ..." She
paused significantly. "Be
certain that I shall hear of it—and act." .
Elspeth called a Council meeting as soon as they were all settled, but sent
messages that it would be held in Talia's quarters. / With
the more aged or slothful of the Councillors grumbling and panting their way up
the stairs to the top story, the meeting convened. Talia
was by no means well; she was healed enough to an hour or two undrugged, but no
more than was propped up on her little couch, positioned under her window. She
wore bandages everywhere except her head and neck; her ruined feet were encased
mood bootlike contraptions. She was nearly as white as 264 Mercedes
Lackey the
uniform she wore. Elspeth sat next to her, with one eye on her at all times. Lord
Gartheser (predictably) was the first to speak. "What has been going on
here?" he snapped angrily. "What's all this nonsense about Orthallen
being a traitor? I—" "It
is not nonsense, my lord," Talia interrupted him quietly. "I heard it
from his co-conspirators, and his own actions when confronted merely with their
names proves his guilt." Simply,
and without elaboration, she told the whole story of what she and Kris had
learned about Ancar, of the massacre at the banquet, of Kris' death, and her
confrontations with Hulda and Ancar. When she
paused, obviously tired, Elspeth took up the tale, relating what Talia had told
them after Dirk had brought her back, and the scene with Orthallen. Lord
Gartheser sat silently through it all, mouth agape, growing paler by the
moment. "So
you can see, Councillors," Elspeth finished, "why my very first act
as regent must be to ascertain your loyalty under Truth Spell. Kyril, would you
be willing to administer to your fellow Councillors? I have only one question
to put to all of us—where and with whom do your first loyalties lie?" "Certainly,
Elspeth," Kyril replied, nodding his gray head toward her obediently.
"And Elcarth can administer the test to me." "But—I—"
Gartheser was sweating profusely. "You
have some objection, Gartheser?" Lady Cathan asked with honeyed sweetness. "I—uh—" "If
you prefer not to take the test, you could resign your position—" Lord
Gartheser looked from face to face, hoping for a reprieve, and found none.
"I—Lady Elspeth, I fear the— the stress of my position is too much for me.
With your leave, I should prefer to resign it." "Very
well, Gartheser," Elspeth said calmly. "Does anyone else object? No?
Then, my lord, you may leave us. I would suggest you retire to your estates for
the ARROWS
FALL 265 quiet,
peaceful life you have so richly earned. I do not think, given the stress you
have been through, that it would be wise to entertain many visitors." She
watched Gartheser rise and stumble out the door with an impassive expression
not even Selenay could have matched. "Kyril,"
she said when he was gone, "you may begin with me." "And
after Elspeth, I should like to be tested," Hyron said, shamefacedly,
"being as I was one of Orthallen's stronger supporters." "If
you wish. Kyril?" The
testing took a very short time; not surprisingly, all "Next,
we have two Council seats to fill, speaker for the North, and speaker for the
Central districts. Any suggestions?" **For
the Central, I would suggest Lord Jelthan," said Lady Kester. "He's
young, he's got some good ideas, but he's been lord of his holdings for nearly
fourteen years— his father died young." "Anyone
else? No? And the North?" No one
spoke, until Talia's whisper broke the silence. "If no one has any other
notions, I suggest Mayor Loschal of Trevendale. He's quite able, he knows the
problems of tee North intimately, he has no private axe to grind that I am
aware of, and he has enough years to balance Lord Jelthan's youth." "Any
other suggestions? So be it—Kyril, see to it, will you? Now, the other matter
facing us is Hardorn and Ancar. We are going to have to increase the size of
the Guard; that means a tax increase—" "Why?
We beat them, right soundly!" '*There's
no need—" "You're
starting at shadows—" *1 know
for a fact your mother gave you no such •'
**Quiet!" Kyril thundered out over the bedlam. When stared at him
dumbfounded, he continued, "Herald wishes to speak, and she can't be heard
over your 266 Mercedes
Lackey "Elspeth
is right," Talia whispered wearily. "I know Ancar better than any of
you. He'll be back at us, again and again, until one of our lands lacks its
leader. And I tell you, this kingdom is in more danger now than we were before
the battle we just won! Now he knows some of what we can do, and what kind of
strength we can raise at short notice. The next time he comes for us, it will
be with a force he deems overwhelming; we must be ready to meet that
force." "And
that means a larger Guard; taxes to support it—" "And
your help, Councillors. Bard Hyron, the help of your Circle especially,"
Talia continued. "My
Circle? Why?" "Because,
as you ably demonstrated with Griffon, the Bardic Circle is the only source of
information we have on old magic." "Surely
you overestimate these mages—" Lady Wyrist began. "Look
here and tell me I overestimate!" Again Talia pulled gown and bandage from
her shoulder to display the handprint-brand, still livid and raw-looking.
"I will bear this mark until the day I die, and this was just a parlor-trick
for Hulda!" Lady Wyrist paled and turned her head away. "Ask the
widows and children and widowers of those slain by demons if I overestimate the
danger! I tell you now that what Ancar brought with him is likely to be one of
his lesser mages—he would not risk the greater in battle. And Hyron, your
Circle alone preserves the tradition of what we can expect and how we can
defend against it. If, indeed, we can." "We
can," Hyron said thoughtfully. "It's in some of the chronkles from
Vanyel's time—when the Gifts were superseding the mage-crafts. It may be that
you Heralds and your Companions are all that will be able to guard us from
Ancar's magicians." "Sounds
like a rare good reason to have them by us, if you ask me," said Lady
Kester wryly. "And
we'll need you and your Circle for your traditional reason as well,1' Elspeth
said, smiling at Hyron. ARROWS
FALL 267 "Especially
if we're not to end up conscripting for the Guard." "Rousing
patriotic fervor and spreading tales of what's happened and what we can expect?
Aye, Lady Elspeth, as always, the Circle is yours to command." "And
keeping the spirits of our people high." "Ever
in your service—" Elspeth
took a quick glance at Talia, as she lay back on her pillows, face pinched and
drained. "If there's no more business at hand?" "None
that can't wait," said Lord Gildas. "Then
I think we'd best dismiss, and let the Healers see to Talia." As the
Councillors filed out, Skif slipped in, Healer Devan and Healer Rynee with him. "Little
sister, Dirk's waiting downstairs—" Skif began. Talia's
face crumpled, and she began to cry. "Please— not now—I'm so tired.
..." "Usten
to me—listen—" He caught one of her hands in his own and knelt beside her
couch. "I know what's happening to you, I understand! I've seen you trying
not to wince away when he touches you. I've talked him into going home to tell
his parents about you; I'm going with him. By the tune we get back, you'll be
fine again, I know you will. Now gather your courage and give him a wonderful
good-bye to keep him going, eh?" She
shuddered; he wiped her tears, and she relaxed. "Is that why you brought
Rynee?" He
chuckled. "You've got it. She'll give you a little mental painblock, as it
were. Let her work while I fetch Dirk." She was
able to do all Skif had asked and more, but when the two of them left, she
crumbled again. "Rynee,
am I ever going to be able to—be whole again? I love him, I need him—but
whenever he touches me, I see Ancar and Ancar's guards—" "Hu*h,
now, hush," Rynee soothed her as if Talia wens twelve years her junior
instead of four her senior. "It
was fine at first, but after the battle it started to build every time a man
touched me, and it was worse 268 Mercedes
Lackey than that
when the man was him! Rynee, I can't bear it, I can't bear it!" "Talia,
dear friend, be easy. Yes, you'll be fine, just like Skif said. It's just a
matter of Healing, inside instead of out. Now sleep." "Will
she Heal?" Devan looked at Rynee somberly, as Talia dropped into
Healing-trance. "She
will," Rynee replied serenely. "And it'll be mostly her own doing.
You'll see." "I
pray you're right." "I
know I am." Twelve Skif
took the tower stairs at a run, though for all the sound he made, no one would
ever have known there was anyone on the stairs at all. He'd been back from the
North for several hours now, and he was more than impatient. "You can't
see Talia yet," they'd told him. "She's with the Healers every
morning, and they've left orders that they're never to be disturbed."
Well, all right, but that didn't make a fellow any less twitchy, not when he
was worried about her. He'd determined to get up to her room as soon as he'd
finished lunch; he'd all but bolted his food and nearly choked as a
consequence. He'd
evidently misjudged the timing by a bit, for as he approached the half-open
door at the top of the stairs, he'd heard voices inside. He shrank back into a
shadow on the landing, and peeked around the corner. From where he was hidden
he could see inside the room quite easily. There were two Healers there, both
easily identifiable by their Greens, one on either side of a lounge that held
someone in Herald's Whites—Talia, without a doubt. He
winced inside, for her face was distorted by pain and her eyes streamed tears,
although she did not utter so much as a single moan. "Enough,"
said the Healer on her right; and Skif recognized Devan. "That's
absolutely all for today, Talia." Her
face relaxed somewhat, and the woman on her left gave her a look of caring
sympathy and a handkerchief to dry her tears with. "You
really don't need to be enduring all this, you know," Devan said, a bit
crossly. "If you'd let us Heal 269 270 Mercedes
Lackey you at
the normal rate it could all be done quite painlessly." "Dear
Devan, I don't have time, and you know that perfectly well," Talia replied
softly. "Then
you ought to at least let us work under painblock! And I still don't understand
why you don't think you have time!" "But
if you worked under painblocks, I wouldn't be able to help—and if 1 can't help,
neither can Rolan. In that case, it would take six of you to do what one does
now." Her voice actually held a touch of amusement. "She's
got you there, Devan," the woman Healer— Myrim, the Healer's
representative on the Council—pointed out wryly. He
snorted with disgust. "Heralds! I don't know why we put up with you! If
you're not out killing yourselves, you're trying to get us to speed-Heal you so
that you can go back out and get yourselves ruined that much sooner!" "Well,
old friend, if you'll recall—the first time you ever saw me, I was your
patient. There'd already been an attempt to rid the world of me, and I was only
a student. You could hardly expect this tabbycat to change color after such an
auspicious beginning, could you?" The
Healer reached out and touched her cheek in a spontaneous gesture of affection.
"It's just that it hurts me to have to put you through such agony,
dearling." She
caught the hand and held it, smiling at him. The smile transformed her from a
simply pretty woman (swollen and red-rimmed eyes notwithstanding) to a lovely
one. "Take heart, old friend. There are not many more days of this to
come; then whatever Healing is left will all be bone-Healing—and you can't
speed that." She laughed. "As for why I don't have time, well, I
can't tell you, because I don't know myself. I only know it's true, just as
true as the fact that Rolan's eyes are blue. Besides, I know you. I'm a
cooperative patient; unlike Keren and Dirk, I do exactly what I'm told. Since
you can't complain of that, you have to find something to be annoyed
about!" Myrim
chuckled, as did Healer Devan. "Oh, you know ARROWS
FALL 271 him far
too well, milady," she said, standing and stretching. "And we will
see you on the morrow." Ifhey
left the room and passed Skif without ever noticing that he was there. IJut
Talia seemed to sense that someone was there. "Whoever's outside, please
come in," she called out. "It can't be comfortable on that cold, dark
landing." Skif
chuckled, and pushed the door open all the way, to see Talia regarding him with
her head tilted to one side and an expectant look on her face. "I never
could fool you, could I?" "Skif1'
she exclaimed with delight, and held out both arms to him. "I hadn't
expected you back this soon!" "Oh,
you know me—a box of soap and a spare uniform, and I'm ready to go." He
embraced her very carefully, and kissed her forehead, before sitting on the
floor next to her couch. "And where Skif is—seeing as we went to the same
destination—can Dirk be far behind?" MYou tell me." He was pleased to
see her eyes light with carefully contained joy. "Well,
he's not. Far behind, that is. He planned to stay one day longer, but if I'm
any judge, he'll have made that up on the road. I wouldn't be surprised to see
him here tins afternoon. Dear heart, I'm glad to see you want him again." Her
eyes glowed, and she smiled. "I didn't fool you either, did I?" "Not
a bit. That's why I came up with the notion of sending him home to tell his
family in person. I could see all that old fear of men—and worse—building up in
you every time he touched you, and you trying not to show it so that you
wouldn't hurt him." "Oh,
Skif—what ever did I do to deserve you? You were right; it was horrible, I felt
like I was at war with myself." "Dearling,
I served a Border Sector, remember? And my old home neighborhood was a pretty
rough place. You weren't the first woman I've seen that was suffering the
aftereffects of rape and abuse. I know what the reaction is. I take it
you're—" 272 Mercede*
Lackey "Fine.
Better than ever; and half-mad with wanting to see him again." "That's
the best news I've had for a long tune. Well, don't you want to know how it all
went?" "I'm
consumed with curiosity because if I know Dirk, he probably sent his family a
two-tine note—"I'm getting married. I'll be there in a week,"—and no
further explanation whatsoever." Skif
laughed, and admitted that that was just about what Dirk hod written, word for
word. "And a fine turmoil it sent them into, I can tell you! Especially
coming on top of the rest of it—well, let me take it from the beginning." He
settled himself a bit more comfortably. "We got to the farm just about a
week after we left here, and it was hard riding all the way. Dirk didn't want
to spend any more time traveling than he had to; well, I can't say as 1 much
blame him. When we got there, the entire clan was out waiting for us, since they'd
had the children playing lookout ever since his message. Holy Stars, what a
mob! You're going to tike them, heartsister, they're all as mad as he is. They
got us separated almost at once; the younglings plying me with food and drink
while Dirk's mother ana father dragged him off for a family conference. I could
tell that he'd had them fan* worried, especially after the last time—that bitch
Naril and the way she played with him—" "I
know all about that. I don't blame them for being worried." "It
didn't help much that he was still a bit thin and worn-looking, I'm sure. They
weren't easy to convince that everything was all right, because they had him
incommunicado for several hours, at least an hour past supper, and we got there
just at lunch. The poor youngsters were at their wit's end, trying to find
something to distract me with!" Skifs lips pursed in a mischievous smile.
"And I'm afraid I didn't help much. I wasn't cooperating at all. Well,
they all finally emerged; Father looked satisfied, but Mother still had doubts
in her eyes. They fed us all, then it was my turn to come under fire. Let me
tell you, Dirk's mother is a lovely lady, and she ARROWS
FALL 273 ought
to be put in charge of questioning witnesses; the Troth Spell would become
entirely superfluous! By the time she was done with me, she knew everything
I've ever known about you, including a lot of things I'd forgotten. We were up
practically all night, talking; one of the best conversations I've ever had. I
didn't mind in the least, she's such a dear. It was worth every yawn to see the
worry going out of her eyes, the more I told her." Talia
sighed, and Skif could feel her relief and gratitude as she wordlessly squeezed
his hand. "I can't tell you how glad I was that you insisted on going with
him. You're a good friend to both of us." "Hm—you'll
be even gladder, I think—none of them are going to be able to be here for the
wedding. That's what I meant by 'coming on top of all the rest of it.' "
"What's happened?" she asked anxiously. "His third sister is
having a real problem with this child she's bearing. She can't travel,
obviously, her older sisters don't want to leave her. Needless to say, her
mother, as Healer as well as parent, feels obligated to stay. And Dirk's father's
joint problem is so bad he can't even take long wagon journey^ anymore, never
mind riding. I did my best to assure them that you wouldn't feel slighted or
insulted if they didn't come, given the circumstances." "I'd
never forgive myself if they had come, and something had gone wrong at home
while they were here." "Well,
that's what I told them. By the next day, we were all good friends, and I was
part of the family. Then I had tte hardest task I've ever faced. They asked me
about Kris." He
looked at his hands, his voice fogged a little with tears. "I—they loved
him, little sister. He was like another son to them. I've never had to tell
anyone how their son died before." He felt
her hand lightly on his shoulder, and looked up. The sadness that never quite
left her face was plain in net eyes. A single tear slid slowly down her cheek,
and she aid not trouble to wipe it away. He reached up, and brushed it away
with gentle fingers. "I
miss him," she said simply. "I miss him every day. K it weren't for
what I felt when he—left—it would be 274 Mercedes
Lackey unbearable.
At least—I know he must be happy. I have that. They don't even have that much
comfort." "I'm
glad I got Dirk to go home for that reason, too," Skif replied quietly.
"Kris was something special to him— more than a friend, more than anyone
else could ever be, I think. When he finally let himself grieve, he needed his
family around him . . .." He took
both of her hands in his own and they sat in silence for long moments, mourning
their loss. "Well,"
he coughed a little, "I wish you had the leisure to wait on this until you
were entirely well again." "I
know. So do I," Talia sighed. "But as soon as I can use my feet
again, I Have to return to duty; in fact, Selenay wrote me herself yesterday
that if it weren't so damnably painful for me to move, she'd have me on duty
now." "I
know, too. Well, it can't be helped. Listen—I have got to tell you what that
tribe is like—" Skif launched into a series of affectionate descriptions
of the various members of Dirk's family, and had the pleasure of seeing some of
the sorrow leave her eyes. "So
that's the last of them," he concluded. Then he noticed a basket of sewing
beside her—and none of the garments were her own! "What's all this?"
he asked, holding up an enormous shirt with both sleeves pulling out. Talia
blushed a charming crimson. "I can't go anywhere except this couch or my
bed. I'm tired of reading, I can't handle my harp very long without hurting
myself, and I can't stand having nothing to do. I suppose it goes back to my
farmgirl days, when I wasn't even allowed to read without having a task in my
hands. So since my embroidery is bad enough to make a cat laugh, I made Elspeth
hunt out all of Dirk's clothing, and I've been mending it. I can't keep him
from looking rumpled, but at least I can keep him from looking like a
rag-bag!" Before
Skif could tease her further, the sound of a familiar footstep—taking the tower
stairs three at a time— caused her to direct all her attention to the open
door, her visitor momentarily forgotten. There
was no mistaking it—it could only be Dirk. Skif ARROWS
FALL 275 bounced
to his feet and took himself out of the way before Dirk reached the door, not
wanting to intrude on their greeting. Every time Dirk had spoken of Talia when
he'd been with his family, he'd practically glowed. It had been that, at least
in part, that had convinced them that all was well. Well, if Skif had thought
he'd glowed when he only spoke of Talia, he was incandescent when he saw her
waiting for him, with both her hands sttetched yearningly out toward him. A
quick glance at her proved that she was equally radiant. Dirk
was across the room in a few steps and went to one knee beside her, taking both
her hands in his and kissing them gently. What would have been a hopelessly
melodramatic scene for anyone else seemed natural for them. Talia drew his
hands toward her and laid her cheek against them, and the expression on her
face made Skif hold his breath and freeze absolutely still lest he break the
mood. "Has
it been very bad, my love?" Dirk asked, so softly Skif could barely make
out the words. "I
don't know—while you were gone, all I could think of was how I wished you were
here; and now you're here, I'm too busy being glad you're with me," she
replied teasingly. Why
then I must needs find a way to shrink thee, and carry thee in my pocket
always," he said tenderly, falling into the speech-mode of his childhood. Talia
freed one hand from his and laid it softly along his cheek. "Would not
having me in thy pocket soon make thee tired of my company?" "Not
so long as it spares thee any pain at all. Oh, have a care to thyself, little
bird!" he murmured. "Thou hast my soul in thy keeping, and without
thee, I would be nothing but an empty, dead shell!" His
tone was jesting, but the light in his eyes said that he spoke nothing less
than the truth. "Oh,
beloved, then we are surely lost beyond redemption," she whispered
"for in truth I find myself in the like case. Thou hast mine in trade for
thine." Their
joy hi each other seemed to brighten the very air around them. 276 Mercedes
Lackey Skif
soon realized, however, that it is only possible to go without breathing for a
limited amount of time. On the other hand, he couldn't bear the notion that his
interference would break the mood of the two before him. "Dearest,"
Talia said with laughter in her voice, "my brotherling Skif is trying to
decide between disturbing us and fainting from lack of air—" Dirk
chuckled, and turned his head slightly so that he could see Skif out of the
corner of his eye. "Thought I hadn't noticed you were there, did you? Come
out of your corner, and stop pretending you're here to pick pockets!" To
Skifs intense relief, the mood had not broken. Perhaps the glow had been dimmed
a little, but if so, it had been a deliberate action on their part, to make it
easier for him. As he took a chair and pulled it nearer to the couch, Dirk
removed the pillows behind Talia and took their place. Now she was leaning on
his chest and shoulder instead, one of his arms protectively circling her. The
vague shadow of anxiety was gone from his face, and the pain that had faintly
echoed in her eyes was gone as well. There was a "tightness" about
them that defied analysis. No
sooner were they all settled again when more footsteps could be heard running
up the stairs. Elspeth came bursting into the room, her arms full of glorious
scarlet silk. "Talia,
the dresses are done! Has—" She stopped short at the sight of Dirk, and
gave a whoop of joy. She threw the dress at Skif (who caught it gingerly), and
danced around to grab both of Dirk's ears and plant an enthusiastic kiss
squarely on his mouth. "Well!"
he said, when he could finally speak. "If that's how I'm going to get
greeted on my return, I'm going to go away more often!" "Oh,
horse manure," Elspeth giggled, then rescued Skif from the folds of the
dress, and planted an equally enthusiastic kiss on his mouth. "I'm just
glad to see you for Talia's sake. She's been drooping like a wilted lily since
you left!" ARROWS
FALL 277 "Elspeth!"
Talia protested. "I'm
just as glad to see Skif. More—he can help me. Or hadn't you heard, oh,
cloud-scraper? You get to help me with putting this wedding together. Talia
can't, and Dirk hasn't been here." "And
besides that, Dirk has no idea of what is supposed to go on at weddings,"
Dirk said ruefully. "If you told me I was supposed to suspend myself by my
knees from a treelimb, I'd probably believe you." "Oooh—what
a wonderful opportunity!" Elspeth sparkled with mischief. "Maybe I'll
do that. No, I'd better not. Talia might tell you to beat me." ,'Td do
worse than have Dirk beat you," Talia twinkled back. "I'd tell Alberich
that I thought you were shirking your practices." tfYou
ore a beast, aren't you? Are you safe to hug, dearling?" "As
of this morning, quite safe." With
that assurance, Elspeth bent over the Heralds and hugged Talia with warmth and
enthusiasm, then tweaked Dirk's nose with an impudent grin. "I
have been wanting to do that for eons," she said, snatching a pillow from
the pile that Dirk had displaced and seating herself on the floor at Talia's
feet. "The
hug, or the nose?" Dirk asked. "Both—but
the hug more," she turned to Skif. "You wouldn't know, since you were
gone, too—but you hardly knew where you could touch her, at first. Poor Dirk,
practically all he could touch were her fingertips before he left!" "Oh,
I found a few other places," Dirk chuckled, and Tafia blushed furiously.
"So tell me, what new and wonderful plans for this fiasco have you managed
to crush since I've been gone?" "You'll
adore this one—and it's new today. The Lord Marshal thought it would be a grand
idea to load Talia up on a flower-bedecked platform and carry her to the priest
oo the shoulders of half the Heralds in the Kingdom. You know, like the image
of the Goddess in a Midsummer pageant." 278 Mercedes
Lackey "Oh,
nor* Talia plainly was torn between laughter and embarrassment. "Oh,
yes! And once I'd managed to convince him that poor Talia would probably die of
mortification if anyone even suggested it, the Lord Patriarch came storming in,
demanding to know why the thing wasn't being held in the High Temple!" "Lord
of Lights!" "After
I'd told him that since the Companions had a big part in the rescue, they were
being invited, too, he agreed that the High Temple probably wasn't the best
site." "I
can just see Dantris helping himself to the Goddess' lilies out of sheer
mischief," Dirk muttered. "Dantris?
Bright Havens, love, Rolan and Ahrodie would probably decide to watch from the
choir loft and leave hoofmarks all over the hardwood floor!" Talia
replied. "And to think that all I ever wanted was a private pledging with
a few friends." "Then
you shouldn't have been Chosen Queen's Own," Elspeth told her sweetly.
"You're a figure of national importance, so you can't begrudge people
their fun any more than I can." "And
I suppose it's too late to back out now." "Out
of the wedding, or being Queen's Own?" Dirk chuckled. "Guess." "I'd
rather not. I might not like the answer." "Look,"
Elspeth interjected, "since Skif is right here now, why don't I drag him
off and tell him what I've gotten set up so far? That way we won't be
interrupted." "Good
idea," Dirk approved. Elspeth
gathered up her dress and drew Skif with her into the bedroom, shutting the
<toor after them. "I
really don't need any help in getting these things organized, but let's pretend
I do, all right? And let's take lots of time about it," Elspeth said in a
low voice. "Being Heir has some advantages. As long as it's me that's up
here, nobody is going to come bursting in on them the way they do when the
Healers aren't with her. You'd ARROWS
FALL 279 dank
people would give them a little time alone! But even though he's just gotten
back, they won't." "But—why?" "Why
are people always up here? A lot of reasons. The Lord Marshal always manages to
think up something more about Ancar he'd like to know. Kyril and Hyron are
always asking about Hulda. Only the gods know what her powers could mean. Even
her friends, Lady bless *e», are always coming in to 'make sure that she's all
right/ Havens, I'm as bad as they are! Here, as long as you're here, you can
help me—I want to show this off." She hid behind the wardrobe door for a
moment, emerging in the scarlet dress. "Lace me up, would you? Then
there's the emergencies, though gods be thanked we haven't had any really bad
ones, like the backlash of a Herald getting killed." Her face clouded,
"Except for poor Nessa. Well, Talia fixed that quickly enough, once she
was well enough to handle it." "Gods,
does everyone in the world pop in and out of here?" "Sometimes
it seems that way. You know, I don't think anyone ever really realized how many
lives she's touched until we thought we'd lost her. That dress, for
instance—have you ever seen anything like that fabric in your life?" "Never."
Skif admired the gown, with an eye trained by thieving to evaluate it; it was
of scarlet silk, and patterned through the scarlet of the main fabric were
threads of pure gold and deep vermilion. It was incredible stuff. "Neither
have I—and I have seen a lot of Court gowns. It came by special messenger,
after Dirk had them keep watch tot the trader who smuggled in the argonel and
the arrows to her, then got the message out to Rolan. Dirk was hoping he could
find him and thank him, and let him know she was ail right. Well, he managed to
get back acron the Border before Ancar closed his side, and he got Dirk's
message and sent this in reply. The note that went with ft said that among his
people the bride always wore scarlet, and while he knew that this would not be
tfc* case among us, he hoped his 'little gift' could be put 280 Mercedes
Lackey to good
use. 'Little gift!' Mother said that the last time she saw anything like this
it was priced at a rate that would purchase a small town!" Elspeth
finished tying up the laces in back. "Talia thought it would be lovely to
use it for attendants' dresses. / am not going to argue with her! Mother would
never get me anything like this unless they discovered diamonds growing on the
trees in Sorrows!" She wiggled sensuously. "Then there was the other
truly strange gift. Did she ever tell you about the woman she helped up in
Berrybay? The one they called 'Weatherwitch'?" "A
bit." "Out
of the blue came this really elderly Herald—I mean, he was supposed have
retired, that's how old. He came with a message from this Weatherwitch person—
the exactly perfect day to have the wedding, and you know fall weather. Since
we're having it outside, we'd been a good bit worried about that. Talia says
Maeven's never wrong, so that's why we're having it then." She
pressed her ear briefly against the door and giggled. "I think it's safe
enough to go out now, but I'll bet it wasn't a few minutes ago. Let's go show
off." As far
as Skif could tell, neither Talia nor Dirk had moved an inch since they'd left
them—although Talia's hair was a trifle mussed, and both of them wore
preoccupied and dreaming expressions. "Well,
what do you think?" Elspeth asked, posing dramatically. "I
think it looks wonderful. No one in their right mind is going to be watching me
with you and Jeri around," Talia said admiringly. "Well,
Elspeth and I are agreed; we'll take care of the wedding arrangements,"
Skif said with a proprietary air. "That will free you up a bit more,
Dirk—that is, if you don't mind." "I
don't mind at all, and I think it's very good of you," Dirk replied,
surprised. "Especially since you know very well that I don't have to be
freed up to do anything except spend more time up here." "That
was the general idea," Elspeth said mockingly. ARROW*
FALL 281 "Enough,
enough! It's settled then," he laughed, "and much thanks to you
both." "Remember
that the next time I do something wrong!" Etopeth giggled back. She
teased Dirk for a few moments longer — then her face clouded with anxiety when
she realized that Talia had fallen asleep. She'd been doing that a great deal
lately, sometimes right in the middle of a conversation. Ebpeth was afraid that
this was a sign that she would never be quite well again. But
Dirk and Skif just exchanged amused glances while Dirk settled the sleeping
Herald a little more comfortably on his shoulder. Elspeth heaved an audible
sigh of retief at this; surely if anyone would know if something were wrong,
Dirk would. : Dirk hadn't missed the anxious look or the sigh of "Ifs
nothing important," he told her; quietly, to avoid waking Talia. "He's
right— honestly!" Skif assured her. "Dirk's mother told us she'll be
dropping off like this. It's just a side-effect of speed-Healing. It has
something to do with all the energy you're using, and all the strain you're
putting on yourself. She says it's the same kind of effect you'd get if you ran
twenty or thirty miles, swam a river, and climbed a mountain or two, then
stayed up three days straight." "According
to mother," Dirk continued, "It has to do with— fatigue poisons? — I
think that's what she called them. When you speed-Heal, they build up faster
than the body can get rid of them, and the person you're Healing tends to fall
asleep a lot. When they atop the speed-Healing, she'll stop falling asleep all
the time." "Show-off,"
Skif taunted. Dirk
grinned and shrugged. "See all the useless information you pick up when
you're a Healer's offspring?" Elspeth
protested; "Useless, my eye! I thought for .sure there was something wrong
that nobody wanted to 252 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 283 tell me
about—like there was when she wouldn't wake up. Nobody ever thinks to tell me
anything anymore!" "Well,
imp," Dirk retorted, "That's the price you pay for poking your nose
into things all the time. People think you already know everything!" The
Border was officially closed, but refugees kept slipping across every night,
each of them with a worse tale to tell than the last. Selenay had had a premonition
that Ancar wasn't quite through with Valdemar, and had stayed on the Border
with a force built mainly of the defectors from Hardorn's army, now fanatically
devoted to her. She had been absolutely right. This
time the attack came at night, preceded by a storm Selenay suspected of being
mage-caused. There was a feint in the direction of the Border Guardpost, a
strong enough feint that it would have convinced most leaders that the attack
there was genuine. But
Selenay had Davan—a Farseer—and Alberich—a Foreseer—with her, and knew better.
Ancar meant to regain some of his lost soldiers—and plant some traitors in
Selenay's new Border Guards. And to do both, he was going to use some of the
other talents of what was left of his army of thieves and murderers. But the
force of black-clad infiltrators who attempted to penetrate the
stockade-enclosed village that housed the defectors and their dependents met
with a grave surprise. They
got all the way to the foot of the stockade, when suddenly— Light!
Blinding light burst above their heads, light nearly as bright as day. As they
cringed, and looked up through watering eyes, four white-clad figures appeared
above them, and out of the darkness at the top of the stockade fence rose
hundreds of angry men and women armed with bows, who in no way wished to return
to the man who called himself their King. Suspended from the trees by thin
wires were burning balls of some unknown substance that flamed with a white
ferocity. "You
could have knocked," Griffon called down to them, "We'd have been
glad to let you in." -
"But perhaps it is that this is no friendly visit—" Alberich dodged
as one of those below threw a knife at him in desperation. i
t*%*God, Alberich, I believe you might be right," Davan dodged a second
missile. "Majesty?" r^Take them," Selenay ordered shortly. If A
few were taken alive; what they had to tell was ttMetfesting. More interesting
by far was the assortment of drugs and potions they had intended to use on the
village *elTDrugs
that, according to those Selenay questioned aader Truth Spell, would open the
minds of those that took them to the influence of Ancar's mages—and Ancar
himself. Tbat
told them much about what Ancar was currently abte to accomplish. What happened
next on Ancar's side of the Border told them more. He
fortified it, created a zone a mile deep in which he allowed neither farm nor
dwelling place—then left it. Aad neither Foreseer nor Farseer could see him
doing aaything offensive for some time. So for
the moment, Ancar's knife was no longer at Valdemar's throat—and Selenay felt
free to come home to resume her Throne, and in time for Talia's wedding. Companion's
Field was the only suitable place within easy reach of the Collegium that could
hold all the people expected to attend. The wedding site had to be within easy
reach, because Talia's feet were still not healed. The Healers were satisified
that the bones had all set well (after so many sessions of arranging the tiny
fragments that nonHealers had begun to wonder if her feet would ever be usable)
but they had only begun to knit, and she had been absolutely forbidden to put
one ounce of weight on them. That meant that wherever she needed to go, die had
to be carried. The
Healers had chosen not to put the kind of plaster casts on her that they had
used to hold Keren's broken hip in place. This was mostly because they needed
to be awe to monitor the Healing they were doing on a much finer level than
they had with Keren, but also partially because such casts would have been a
considerable bur- 284 Mercedes
Lackey den on
a body already heavily taxed and exhausted. Instead they constructed stiff
half-boots of glue, wood strips, and hardened leather, all lined with lambswool
felt. These had been made in two halves that laced together and could be
removed at will. Talia had been much relieved by this solution, needless to
say. "Can
you imagine trying to bathe with those plaster things on your feet?" she'd
said with a comical expression. "Or trying to find some way of covering
them during the wedding? Or finding someone strong enough to carry me and all
that damned plaster as well?" "Not
to mention Dirk's displeasure at trying to deal with them afterward—"
Elspeth had teased, while Talia blushed. Elspeth
was waiting in Talia's room, watching Keren and Jeri put the final touches on
her hair and face. The Heir privately thought that Talia was lovely enough to
make anyone's heart break. She was still thin, and very pale from her ordeal,
but that only served to make her more attractive, in an odd way. It was rather
as if she'd been distilled into the true essence of herself—or tempered and
honed like an heirloom blade. They'd taken great pains with her dress of white
silk and silver, designing something that draped well when the wearer was being
carried and extended past her feet to cover the ugly leather boots. By the same
token, nothing would fall far enough to the floor that the person carrying her
would be likely to trip over it. Jeri had given her a very simple hairstyle to
complement the simplicity of the dress, and her only ornaments were fresh
flowers. "
'Nobody in their right mind is going to look at me with you and Jeri around,'
" Elspeth quoted to Keren under her breath, her eyes sparkling with
laughter. "Bright Havens, next to her I look like a half-fledged red
heron!" "I
hope after all this time you women are finally ready," Dirk announced as
he came through the door, for once in his life totally immaculate, and
resplendent in white velvet. "Dirk!"
Jeri laughed, interposing herself between him ARROWS
FALL 265 ffA
Talia. "Tradition says you're not supposed to see the bride until you meet
before the priest!" /Tradition be damned. The only reason I'm letting
carry her at all is because if I try and manage her t ring, Til drop one of the
two!" , all right. I can see you're too stubborn to argue . She stepped aside, and at the sight of one
another, they seemed to glow from deep within. *Two
hours I spend on her — " Jeri muttered under her 'breath, obviously
amused, " — and in two eyeblinks he nakes everything I did look
insignificant." Dirk
gathered her up carefully, holding her in his arms » if she weighed next to
nothing. "Ready, leveling?" he asked softly. : v;*Tve
been ready forever," she replied, never once taking her eyes from his. the
Held was alive with color; Healer Green, Bard Scarlet, Guard Blue — the muted
grays, pale greens and red-brown of the students moving among them, the gilded
and bejeweled courtiers catching the sun. Most prevalent, of course, was
Heraldic White, and not just because even more Heralds had managed to appear
for this occa-flion than had arrived for Elspeth's fealty ceremony. Hah* of the
white figures in the crowd were Companions, be-flowered and be-ribboned by the
loving hands of their Chosen, and looking for all the world as if it were they
who were being wedded. Even Cymry's foal had a garland— though he kept trying
to eat it. Hie
ceremony was a simple one, though it was not one that was often performed— lor
the wedding of a lifebonded couple was less of a promising than an affirmation.
Despite well-meaning efforts to the contrary, Skif and Elspeth had managed to
keep the pomp and ritual to an absolute - Dirk
carried his love as far as the priest, handing her very carefully to Skif, who
felt proud and happy enough when he did so to burst. Elspeth gave him Talia's
ring, and he supped it onto her finger. Skif and Elspeth both bit their lips to
keep from shedding a tear or two at that moment; partially because she'd moved
Kris' friendship 206 Mercedes
Lackey ring to
the finger next to it, and partially because the wedding ring was still so
large for her. Dirk
repeated his vows in a voice that seemed soft, but carried to the edge of the
crowd. Then Talia took his ring from Keren, slipped it onto his ring-finger and
made her own vows in her clear, sweet voice. Dirk
took her back from Skif—and as he did so, the massed Heralds cheered
spontaneously. Somehow,
it seemed totally appropriate. The
wedded couple was enthroned on a pile of cushions brought by every hand in the
Collegium, with Talia arranged so that she could see everything without having
to strain herself. Elcarth waited until most of the well-wishers had cleared
away, and Talia and Dirk were pretty much alone before strolling over to them. He
shook his head at the sight. "I hope you two realize this display of yours
is fevering the imaginations of an entire generation of Bards," he said
with mock-severity. "I hesitate to think of all the the truly awful
creations we'll have to suffer through for the next year from the students
alone—and every full Bard is going to be determined that he will be the writer
of the next 'Sun and Shadow.' " "Oh,
gods," Dirk groaned, "I never thought of that. D'you suppose I could
give her back?" Talia
eyed him speculatively. "We could always have a horrible fight here and
now." She hefted a wine bottle, appraising its weight. "This would
make a lovely dent in his skull—not to mention the truly spectacular effect it
will have when the bottle breaks and the red wine splashes all over that
spotless white velvet." She considered it and him for a long moment, then
sighed. "No, it just won't do. I might get some of the wine on me. And if
I knock him cold, how will I get back to my room?" "And
if I give her away, who will I sleep with tonight?" Dirk added, as Talia
giggled. "Sorry, Elcarth. You're just going to have to suffer. What can we
do for you?" "Actually,
there is something. I wanted to let you both know what the Circle has decided
about Dirk's assignments." ARROW'S
FALL 287 . ••
Mi* Tafia
stiffened a little, but otherwise gave no sign that ^16 was dreading what
Elcarth's next words might contain. ;s^SSrst of all—I am retiring as Dean. I
intend to stay on » Historian, but to handle both positions is a little more
than I can manage these days. I'm a lot older than I look, Fitt afraid, and I'm
beginning to feel the years. Teren is jBpiicing me. Dirk, you are replacing
Teren as Orientation instructor, as well as working with training students |K
their Gifts." Ttlia
was stunned; she'd expected to learn that he was being given a new partner, or
that he would be assigned Sector duty at the least. She had partially resigned
her-•etf to die idea, telling herself that having him part of the was a
distinct improvement over not having him at •K* "Elcarth—you
can't be serious—" Dirk protested. "I'm BO kind of a scholar, you
know that! If the Circle is ttying to do us a favor by giving us preferential
treat- we'd
rather you didn't," Talia finished for him. "My dear children! It is
not preferential treatment that you are getting. Dirk, you will still be
expected to take on die kinds of special jobs you used to, make no mistake
about it. Hie only thing we're really pulling you off B riding the problem
Sectors. We've picked you to replace Teren for the same reason we picked him to
replace Werda as Orientation instructor; your ability to handle children. Both
of you are able to take confused, {tightened children and give them warmth,
reassurance, and die certain knowledge that they are in a place where they
belong and have friends. Dirk, you have demonstrated that over and over in
training Gifts—the way you brought Griffon along, giving him confidence without
oace making him feel that his Gift was a frightening or dangerous one, was
nothing short of masterful—and look at the result' He trusted you so completely
that he linked Wkh you without asking die why or wherefore; he trusted
yoajsnougfa to follow your directions exactly, and now Griffon is the unsung
hero of the Battle of Demons. That kmd of ability in a teacher is much rarer
than scholasti- 208 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 289 cism,
and it's one we need. So let's bear no more about 'preferential treatment,'
shall we?" Dirk
sighed with relief, and his arm tightened around Talia. She thanked Elcarth
with her shining eyes; no words were necessary. "That
isn't quite all. You'll also be working with Kyril— Dirk on a regular basis,
Talia as time permits. This is the first we've ever heard of the Companions
augmenting anyone's abilities purposefully except in chronicles so old we can't
winnow fable from truth; we'd like to know if it's something that any Herald
can take advantage of, or if it's something peculiar to you two and Elspeth, or
even if it's peculiar to your Companions. Before KyriTs through with you, you
may wish yourself back in the field again!" They
laughed a little ruefully; Kyril drove himself mercilessly in the cause of
investigating Heraldic Gifts, and would expect no less from them. "Last
of all, I bring your wedding gift from the Circle; the next two weeks are yours
to do with as you like. We can all get along without either of you for that
long. Talia still has to have her sessions with the Healers, of course, but
barring that—well, if you should choose to vanish on a few overnight trips, no
one will come looking for you. After all, Talia, you may not be able to walk, but
you can certainly ride! Just make sure you schedule everything with your
Healers. The last thing I need or want is to have Devan after my head! That
mail can be positively vicious!" Talia
laughed, and promised; she could tell by the speculative glint in Dirk's eyes
that he already had a destination or two in mind. They traded a few more
pleasantries with Elcarth, then the Historian—Dean no longer, and that would
take some getting used to—took himself off. Dirk
shook his head. "I never, ever pictured myself as a teacher," he said
quietly. 'That was always Kr—" He
choked off the end of the name. "That
was what Kris wanted," Talia finished, watching him. "You've been
avoiding speaking about him, love. Why?" 'Tear,"
he replied frankly. "Fear that I'd hurt you— I'd be
hurt myself. I—I still don't really know how you feh about each other—" ''All
you ever had to do was ask," she said softly, and w him into rapport with
gentle mental fingers. After a moment he raised his eyes to hers and smiled.
"And you said emotions don't speak clearly. So that's ; Wle* it was?" ^':"/-
i .She nodded. "No more, no less. He tried to tell you, -x' but you
weren't hearing." C^v. "I
wasn't, was I?" He sighed. "Gods—I miss him. I miss
him so damn much. . . ." ;-
>;(, ««^e lost more than a friend
when we lost him," she •1ЈЈWad* hesitating over the words. "I think—I
think we lost jy fcpart of
ourselves." H? :.ffe was silent for a long moment.
"Talia, what hap-pened after he died? You said some very strange things
when you answered my call and came back to us." She
shook her head slightly, her brow wrinkled in thought. "Love, I'm not
sure. It's not very clear, and it's all mixed up with pain and fever and
drug-dreams. All I can tell you for certain is that I wanted to die, and I
should have died—but something kept me from dying." "Or
someone." "Or
someone," she agreed. "Maybe it was Kris. That's who my memories say
it was." "I
have a lot to thank him for, and not just that," he said thoughtfully. "Hm?" ^
"You learned from him about loving before those beasts hurt you." "It
helped," she said, after a long moment of thought. "Leveling, are you
ready to go through with this?" he asked after a pause. "Are you
sure?" For
answer she kissed him with rapport still strung V between them. When they came up for air he chuckled, nuch more
relaxed. "Hedonist," he said. "At
least/' she agreed, wrinkling her nose at him, then sobered again. "Yes,
there are scars—but you have them, too. The wounds are healed—I'm not the only
Healer of minds, you know—just the only one that's a Herald as 290 Mercedes
Lackey well.
Rynee—she's very good, as good as I am. Besides, I refuse to let what happened
ruin what's between us— and really, all they did was hurt my body, they didn't
touch me. What happened to you was worse—-Naril raped your soul." "That's
healed, too," he said quietly. "Then
leave it in the dead past. No one goes through life without picking up a scar
or two." She nestled closer to him as someone else came to offer their
congratulations. Then
suddenly sat up. "Gods!" "What?"
Dirk asked, anxious until he saw that there was no sign of pain on her face.
"What is it?" "Back
on my internship—that business with Maeven Weatherwitch—she ForeSaw something
for me, and I couldn't even guess what she meant, then. Now I know! She said
that I would see the Havens but that love and duty would bar me from
them—and—" She
faltered. "And?"
he prompted, gently. "That—my
greatest joy would be preceded by my greatest grief. Oh, gods—if only I'd
known—if only I'd guessed—" "You
could never have anticipated what happened," Dirk replied with such force
that she shook off her anguish to stare at him. "JVo one could. Don't ever
blame yourself. Don't you think that with all the ForeSeers among the Heralds
if there had been any way of preventing what happened it would have been
done?" She
sighed, and relaxed again. "You're right. . ." she said, slowly.
"You're right." The
celebrating continued on well past dusk, until at last, by ones and twos, the
wedding guests began to drift away. Some were heading for other gatherings—like
the one Talia and Dirk knew their fellow Heralds must be having somewhere. Some
had more private affairs in mind. Finally Talia and Dirk were left alone, a
state with which they were not at all displeased. She
rested contentedly on his shoulder, both of his arms lightly around her, and
watched the stars blossoming overhead. ARROWS
FALL 291 :r
**It's getting chilly," she said at last. F "Are you cold?" :/;?A
little." •r
"Well," he chuckled, "They've certainly made it easy fcr us to
depart unnoticed." :^-i*Tm
fairly certain that was on purpose. All that cheer-was embarrassing enough,
without chivaree, too." 'ft could have been worse. Think of the
flower-bedecked •m! Think of Companions in the High Temple! __ of the
life-sized sugar replicas of both of us!" ^ *Td rather not!" She
laughed. "Ready to go?" ••;.
"Yes," she said, putting her arms around his neck so that he could
lift her. r-He
took her up the stairs to her rooms—now their room*—this time taking them one
at a time, and slowly, so as not to jar her. To
their mutual surprise, they found Elspeth seated on the top step. •>•
"What on earth are you doing here?" he asked. "Guarding
your threshold, oh, magnificent one. It was the students' idea. We took it turn
and turn about since you left this morning. Except for during the ceremony
itself that is—we left the staircase booby-trapped then. Not that we're
suspicious of anyone, mind, but we did want to make certain no one could get in
to play any tittle tricks while you were gone. Some people have very rotten
ideas about what's funny. Anyway, that's our wedding present." With that,
she skipped down the stairs without waiting for thanks. "
The caring heart,' " Talia said softly. "She'll be a good Queen, one
day." Dirk
nudged the door open with his foot, placed Talia carefully on her couch inside,
then turned to close it and throw the latch. "Not
that I'm suspicious of anyone," he said with a gleam in his eye, "but
a certain earlier performance of yours makes me wish to be certain that we're
undisturbed." "Not
quite yet/' she said with a smile. "First I've got a bride-gift for you." "A
what?" 292 Mercedes
Lackey "One
good custom of my people. The bride always has a gift for her husband. It's
over there—on the hearth." "But—"
for a moment he was speechless. "Talia, that's My Lady. She's your harp, I
couldn't take her!" "Look
again." He
did—and realized that there was a second harp hidden in the shadows. He pulled
both of them out into the light and scrutinized them closely. "I
can't tell them apart," he admitted at last. "Well,
I can, but I've had My Lady for years, I know every line of her grain. No one
else can, though. They're twins, made by the same hand, from the same wood;
they're even the same age. No—" she held up a warning hand. "Don't
ask me where or how I found it. That's my secret. But in return for this one,
you'll have to promise to teach me to play My Lady as well as she deserves to
be played." "Willingly—gladly.
We can play duets—like—" "Like
you and Kris used to play," she finished for him when he could not.
"Love—I think it's time for one last gift—" and she touched his mind,
sharing with him the incredulous joy that had marked Kris' passing. "Gods—oh,
gods, that helps . . . you must know how much that helps," he managed
after a moment. "Now if only—I wish I could know for certain that he knows
about us—about now." He
lifted her from the couch to move to the bedroom. "If
I were to have one wish granted, that would be mine, too," she replied,
her cheek resting against the velvet of his tunic. "He told me once that
it was his own dearest wish to see the two people he loved most find happiness
with each other—" She
would have said more, but a familiar perfume wreathed around her, and she
gasped. "What's
wrong? Did you hurt something?" Dirk asked anxiously. "There—on
the bed—" Lying
on the coverlet, in the middle and heart-high, was a spray of the little
flowers known as Maiden's Hope. Dirk set her down on the bed and she picked it
up with trembling hands. ARROWS
FALL 293 "Did
you put this here?" she asked in a voice that shook. "No." MAnd no
one else has been here since we left—" In hushed tones she continued:
"When Kris gave me this jing, it was around a Midsummer bouquet of those
flowers. I'd never smelled anything like them before—and he promised he'd find
some for my wedding garland if he had to grow them himself—but I've never seen
them anywhere around here—" ^There's
more to it than that, little bird," Dirk said, taking the flowers from her
and regarding them with wondering eyes. "This flower only blooms for the
week before and after Midsummer. We're well into fall. They cant be grown in
hothouses. People have tried. To find even one bloom, much less as many as
this, would take a miracle. No human could do it." They
looked from the flowers to each other—and slowly m to smile; smiles that, for
the first time in weeks, „ no
underlying hint of sadness. Dirk
took her into his arms, with the flowers held between them. "We've had our
wish—shall we give him his?" She
carefully reached behind her, and inserted the blossoms into the vase on her
night stand. "Yes,"
she breathed, turning back to him, and beginning to touch him with her rapport
even as she touched her lips to his, "I think we should." APPENDIX Songs
of Valdemar HER
FATHER'S EYES Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover (Setenay:
Arrows of the Queen) How
tenuous the boundary between love and hate— How easy to mistake the first, and
learn the truth too late—
How hard to bear what brings to mind mistakes that we despise—
And when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. He
tried to steal away my throne—he tried to rule my life— And I
am not made to forgive, a cowed and coward wife! My love became my enemy who
sought his Queen's demise—
And when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. Poor
child, we battled over her as two dogs with a bone— I
should not see his treachery in temper-tantrums thrown—
I should not see betrayal where there's naught but childish
lies— But when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. Now how
am I to deal with this rebellion hi my soul? 295 296 Mercedes
Lackey I
cannot treat her fairly when my own heart is not whole. I truly wish to love
her—but I'm not so strong, nor wise— For when I look into her face, I see her
father's eyes— Only—her father's eyes. FIRST
LOVE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Frank Hayes (Jadus:
Arrows of the Queen) Was it
so long ago now that we met, you and I? Both held fast in a passion that we could
not deny? If my hands gave you life, then your voice woke my heart—
From such simple beginnings, how such wonder may start! Chorus: Through
my long, empty nights, through my cold, lonely days, How you
comfort and cheer me, delight and amaze— And your soft silver voice could charm
life into stone— My sweet mistress of music, My Lady, my own. With
your sweet song to guide me you have taught me to care How to
open my soul to both love and despair Though you're wood and bright silver, and
not warm flesh and
bone I think no one here doubts you've a soul of your own. And I
know my own journey will too soon reach its end— I must leave you with one I am
proud to call friend. How she opened my life when she opened my door! Give her
comfort, my dear one, when I am no more. ARROWS
FALL HOLDERKIN SHEEP-SONG 297 1^
Lvrics: Mercedes Lackey Music: Ernie
Mansfield "iSrfr'-V-'Tv (Talia:
Arrows of the Queen) sheep >
sleep will
watch around you keep the night be dark and deep past us dares to creep to
sleep. f|feWooly
heads t^:;
Have no dreads i^VThough
we'd rather seek out beds *
"' And our eyes are dull as leads And we long for hearths and Steads Have
no dreads. Do not
fear We are
here Though
this watch is lone and drear Lacking
in all warmth and cheer Till
the morn again draws near We are
here. In the
night Stars
shine bright And the
moon is at her height Lending
us her little light Nothing
comes to give you fright Stars shine
bright. With
the day We'll
away Leaving
you to greet the day Other
shepherds watch you play Keep
you safe from all that prey We'll
away. 298 Mercedes
Lackey Silly
sheep Go to
sleep. We will
watch around you keep Go to
sleep. Go to
sleep. IT WAS
A DARK AND STORMY NIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (Talia:
Arrows of the Queen) It was
a dark and stormy night—or so the Heralds say— And
lightning striking constantly transformed the night to day The
thunder roared the castle round—or thusly runs the tale— And
rising from the Northeast Tower there came a fearful wail. It was
no beast nor banshee that, the castle folk knew well, Nor
prisoner in agony, nor demon trapped by spell, No ghost
that moaned in penance, nor a soul in mortal fright— Twas
just the Countess "singing"—for she practiced every night. The
Countess was convinced that she should have been born a
Bard And thus she made the lives of those within her power hard.
For they must listen to her sing, and smile at what they heard,
And swear she had a golden voice that rivaled any bird. The
Countess was convinced that she had wedded 'neath her
state And so the worst lot fell upon her meek and mild mate. ARROWS
FALL 299 Not
only must the Count each night endure her every song But
suffer silent her abuse, be blamed for every wrong. It was
a dark and stormy night—or so the Bards aver— And so perhaps that was the
reason why there was no stir When suddenly the "music" ceased; so
when dawn raised his
head Within the Tower servants found the Countess stiff and dead. The
Heralds came at once to judge if there had been foul
play. The questioned all most carefully to hear what they would say.
And one fact most astounding to them quickly came to light—
That every moment of the Count was vouched for on that night. The
castle folk by ones and twos came forward on their own To
swear the Count had never once that night been all alone.
So though the Tower had been locked tight, with two keys to
the door, One his, one hers; the Count of guilt was plain absolved for
sure. At
length the Heralds then pronounced her death as "suicide." And all
within the district voiced themselves quite satisified. It was a verdict, after
all, that none wished to refute— Though no one could imagine why she'd try to
eat her lute. 300 Mercedes
Lackey MUSENGS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Mercedes Lackey (Selenay:
Arrows of the Queen) How did
you grow so wise, so young? Tell me
Herald, tell me. How did
you grow so wise, so young, Queen's Own? Where
did you learn the words to say That
take my pain and guilt away And
give me strength again today To sit
upon my throne? How
could you be so brave, so young? Tell
me, Herald, tell me. How
could you be so brave, so young, Queen's Own? How do
you overcome your fear? To know
my path was never clear While
knowing Death walks ever near Would chill
me to the bone. How can
you be so kind, so young? Tell
me, Herald, tell me. How can
you be so kind, so young, Queen's Own? To see
the best, and not the worst— To
soothe an anger, pain, or thirst— To
always think of others first And
never self alone. Where
did you learn to love so young? Tell me
Herald, tell me. Where
did you learn to love so young, Queen's Own? How did
you teach your heart to care— To
touch in ways I would not dare? Oh,
where did you find the courage? Where? Ah,
Herald—how you've grown! ARROWS
FALL 301 PHILOSOPHY Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover
(Skif: Arrows of the Queen) What's
the use of living if you never learn to laugh? Look at me, I grew up down among
the riff and raff But you won't catch me glooming 'round without a hint of
smile And when I have to do a thing, I do it right, with style! Chorus; 'Cause
if you're gonna be the one to take that tightrope walk, And if
you're gonna be the one to make the gossips talk,
If it's your job to be the one who always takes the chance,
And if you have to cross thin ice—then cross it in a dance! Now
take the time when I was "borrowing" a thing or two—
The owner of the house walked in—well, what was I to do?
I bowed and said, "Don't stir yourself," before he raised
a shout, "Thanks for your hospitality, I'll find my own way out!" I'd
just come up a chimney, I was black from head to toe— Climbed
to the yard to find a watchman—wouldn't you just
know! But in
the dark he took me for a demon, I would bet, 'Cause when I howled and went for
him—I think he's running
yet! Take my
Companion—did you know I thought to steal her too? 302 Mercedes
Lackey This
pretty horse out in the street, no owner in my view— I
grabbed her reins and hopped aboard, 1 thought I was
home free, Until I looked into her eyes—and now the joke's on me! 'Cause
now I've got to be the one to take that tightrope walk
And now I've got to be the one who'll make the gossips talk,
And it's my job to be the one who always takes the chance—
But when I have to cross thin ice, Til cross it in a dance! LAWS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (Skif:
Arrows of the Queen) The Law
of the Streetwise is "grab all you can For there's nothing that's
true—nothing lasts." The Law of the Dodger is "learn all the dirt—
The most pious of priests have their pasts." The Law of the Grifter is
"cheat the fool first Or the one who'll be cheated is you.'* But the Law
of the Herald is "give ail you can For some day you will need a gift
too." The Law
of the Liar is "there is no truth It is
all shades of meaning and greed." The Law
of the Hopeless is "never believe For all
faith is a hollowed-out reed." The Law
of the Empty is "there's nothing more, Life is
nothing but shadow and air." But the
Law of the Herald is "Seek out and find." And the
Law of the Heralds is "Care." ARROWS
FALL 303 The Law
of the Hunted is "guard your own back, For the
enemy strikes from behind." The Law
of the Greedy is "trust no one else, Hide
and hoard anything that you find." The Law
of the Hater is "crush and destroy," And the
Law of the Bigot is "kill." But the
Law of the Herald is "faith, hope and trust," And the
strength of the Herald is will. All
these Laws I have learned from the first to the last From
the ones who would teach me they're true— And full many the ones who taught
anger and fear, But the ones who taught hope—they were few. And I ask myself,
"Which is the Law I must take, Fitting truth as a hand fits a glove?"
Then I chose, and I never looked back from that day, For the Law of the Heralds
is "Love." THE
FACE WITHIN Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph
Klover and Larry
Warner (Dirk
and Kris: Arrow's Flight) The
Weaponsmaster has no heart; his hide is iron-cold His soul within that hide is
steel; or so I have been told. His
only care is for your skill, his only love, his own. And where another has a
heart, he has a marble stone. That's
what the common wisdom holds, but common is not
true. For there is often truth behind what's in the common view. V1WTV . And so
it is the Herald's task that hidden truth to win To see behind the face without
and find the face within. 304 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 3O5 He
goads his students into rage, he drives them into pain;
He mocks them and he does not care that tears may fall
like rain. He works them when they're weary, and rebukes them when
they fail— Cuts them to ribbons with his tongue, as they stand meek
and pale— And
will our enemies be fair, or come on us behind? And will they stay their
tongues or in their words a weapon
find? Or wait
till we are rested before making their attacks? Or will they rather beat us
down and then go for our backs? But he
has no compassion, does not care for man nor beast—
And when a student's gone, he does not notice in the least—
And no one calls this man their love, and no one calls him
friend And none can judge him by his face, or what he may intend. But I
have seen him speak the word that brings hope from
despair— Or drop the one-word compliment that makes a student care—
And I have seen his sorrow when he hears the Death Bell
cry— His soul-deep agony of doubt that nothing can deny— For on
his shoulders rests the job of fitting us for war With nothing to give him the
clue of what to train us for. And if
he foils it is not he that pays, but you and I— And so he dies a little when he
hears the Death Bell cry. And now
you know the face within hid by the face without
The pain that he must harbor, all the guilt and all the doubt. The
Weaponsmaster has a heart; so grant his stony mask For you and I aren't strong
enough to bear that kind of
task. ARROWS
FLIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Paul Espinoza
(Talia: Arrow's Flight) Finding
your center—not hard for a child— But I am a woman now, patterned and grown.
Thrown out of balance, my Gift has run wild; Never have I felt so lost and
alone. Now all the questions that I did not ask Come back to haunt me by day
and by night. Finding your center—so simple a task— And one that I fear I shall
never set right. Chorus: Where
has my balance gone, what did I know That I have forgotten in Time's ebb and
flow? Wrong or right, dark or light, I cannot see— For I've lost the heart of
the creature called "me." Doubt
shatters certainty, fosters despair; Guilt
harbors weakness and fear makes me blind— Fear of
the secrets that I dare not share— Lost in
the spiral maze of my own mind. Knowing
the cost to us all if I foil— Feeling
that failure breathe cold at my back— All I
thought strong now revealed as so frail That I
could not weather one spiteful attack. An
arrow in flight must be sent with control— 306 Mercedes
Lackey But all
my control was illusion at best. Instinct alone cannot captain a soul-Direction
must be learned and not merely guessed. Seeking with purpose, not flailing
about— Trusting in others as they trust in me— Starting again from the shadows
of doubt Gods, how I fear what I yet know must be! Chorus
2: Finding
my center, and with it, control; Disciplined knowledge must now be my goal.
Knowing my limits, out judging what's right— Till nothing can hinder the arrow
in flight. FUNDAMENTALS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover
(Kris: Arrow's Flight) Ground
and center; we begin Feel the shape inside your skin Feel the earth and feel
the air— Ground and center; "how" and "where." Ground
and center—don't just frown, Find the leaks and lock them down. Baby-games you
never learned Bring you pain you never earned. Ground
and center; do it, child If you'd tame that Talent wild-Girl, you learned it in
your youth— Life's not fair, and that's the truth. Ground
and center, once again; You're not finished--/'// say when. Ground and center
in your sleep Ground and center 'till you weep. ARROWS
FALL Ground
and center; that's the way— You might get somewhere, someday. Yes, I know I'm
being cruel And you're as stubborn as a mule! Ground
and center, feel the flow Can you tell which way to go? Instinct's not enough,
my friend— Make it reflex in the end. Ground
and center; hold it tight— Dammit, greenie, that's not right! (Every tear you
shed hurts me, But that's the way it has to be.) Ground
and center; good, at last! Once again; grab hard, hold fast. Half asleep or
half awake— Both of us know what's at stake. Ground
and center; now it's sure; What you have now will endure, Forgive me what I had
to do— Healing hurts—you know that's true. Ground
and center; lover, friend— You won't break, but now you bend. Costly lesson,
high the price— But you won't have to learn it twice! 307 OTHERLOVE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (TaUa:
Arrow's Flight) I need
you as a friend, dear one, I love you as a brother; And my body lies beside you 308 Mercedes
Lackey While
my heart yearns for another. I wonder if you understand— Beneath your careless
guise I seem to sense uneasiness When looking in your eyes. I need
your help, my friend, and I Had swom to stand alone; How foolish were the vows
I made My present plight has shown. But don't mistake my need for love However
strong it seems— For while I lie beside you Someone else is in my dreams. I wish
that I could know your thoughts; I only
sense your pain— Unease
behind the smile you wear— A
haunted, sad refrain. I would
not be the cause of grief— I've
often told you so— Yet
there's a place within my heart Where
you, love, cannot go. AFTER
MIDNIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Leslie Fish (Kris:
Arrow's Flight) In the
dead, dark hours after midnight When the world seems to stop in its place, You
can see a little more clearly, You can look your life in the face; You can see
the things that you have to— Speak the words too true for the day. In the dead,
dark hours after midnight, Little friend, will you listen—and stay? ARROWS
FALL 309 In the
time when I never knew you I could view the world as my own— I was God's own
gift to his creatures, And I wore an armor of stone. I was wise and faithful
and noble— I was pompous, pious and cold. I was cruel when I never meant it—
Far too cool to touch or to hold. It was
you who broke through my armor; It was
you who broke through the wall, With
your pain and your desperation— How
could I not answer your call? How
could I have guessed you would touch me, And in
ways I could not control? How
could I have known I would need you— Or have
guessed you'd see to my soul? For as
I taught you, so you taught me, Taught me how to love and to care— For your own
love melted my armor, Taught me how to feel and to dare. When I looked tonight,
I discovered I could not again stand apart— In the dead, dark hours after
midnight, I discovered I owe you my heart. SUN AND
SHADOW: MEETINGS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music; Leslie Fish (Kris:
Arrow's Flight) (When
the "long version" of "Sun and Shadow" is sung, this is
sung as a kind of prologue) She
dances in the shadows; like a shadow is her hair. Her eyes hold midnight
captive, like a phantom, fell and fair. 310 Mercedes
Lackey While
the wood] arks sing the measures that her flying feet
retrace She dances in the shadows tike a dream of darkling grace. He
sings in summer sunlight to the cloudless summer skies;
His head is crowned with sunlight and the heavens match his
eyes. All the wildwood seems to listen to the singer's gladsome voice
He sings in summer sunlight and all those who hear rejoice. She
dances in the shadows, for a doom upon her lies; That if once the sunlight
touches her the Shadowdancer dies.
And on his line is this curse laid—that once the day is sped In
sleep like death he lies until again the night has fled. One
evening in the twilight that is neither day nor night, The
time part bred of shadow, and partly born of light, A
trembling Shadowdancer heard the voice of love and doom That
sang a song of sunlight through the gathering evening gloom. A spell
it cast upon her, and she followed in its wake To where Sunsinger sang it, all
unheeding, by her lake. She saw the one that she must love until the day she died—
Bitter tears for bitter loving then Shadowdancer cried. One
evening in the twilight e'er his curse could work its
will, Sunsinger
sang of sunlight by a lake serene and still— When out among the shadow stepped
a woman, fey and fair— A
woman sweet as twilight, with the shadows in her hair. ARROW'S
FALL 311 He saw
her, and he loved her, and he knew his love was
vain For he was born of sunlight and must be the shadow's bane.
So e'er the curse could claim him, then, he shed one bitter
tear For he knew his only love must also be his only fear. So now
they meet at twilight, though they only meet to part.
Sad meetings, sadder partings, and the breaking of each heart.
Why blame them, if they pray for time or death to bring a cure?
For the sake of bitter loving, nonetheless they will endure. SUN AND
SHADOW Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Paul Espinoza
(Talia and Kris: Arrow's Flight) "What
has touched me, reaching deep Piercing my ensorceled sleep? Darkling lady, do
you weep? Am I the cause of your grieving? Why do tears of balm and bane Bathe
my heart with bitter rain? What is this longing? Why this pain? What is this
spell you are weaving?" "Sunlight
Singer, Morning's peer— How I long for what I fear! Not by my will are you here
How I wish I could free you! Gladly in your arms I'd lie But I dare not come
you nigh For if you touch me I shall die— K I were wise I would flee you." 372 Mercedes
Lackey "Shadowdancer,
dark and fell, Lady that I love too well— Won't you free me from this spell
That you have cast around me? Star-eyed maid beyond compare, Mist of twilight
in your hair— Why must you be so sweet and fair? How is it that you have bound
me?" "In
your eyes your soul lies bare Hope is mingled with despair; Sunborn lover do I
dare Trust my heart to your keeping? Sunrise means that I must flee— Moonrise
steals your soul from me; Nothing behind but agony, Nothing before us but
weeping." "Sun
and Shadow, dark and light; Child of day and child of night, Who can set our
tale aright? Is there no future but sorrow? Will some power hear our plea— Take
the curse from you and me— Great us death, or set us free? Dare we to hope for
tomorrow?" THE
HEALER'S DILEMMA Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Bill Roper (Devan:
Arrow's Fall) My
child, the child of my heart, though never of my name,
Who shares my Gift; whose eyes, though young, are mine—the
very same Who shares my every thought, whose skillful hands I taught
so well ARROWS
FALL 313 Now
hear the hardest lesson I shall ever have to tell. Young
Healer, I have taught you all I know of wounds and
pain— Of
illnesses, and all the herbs of blessing and of bane— Of all the usage of your
Gift; all that I could impart— And how you learned, young Healer, brought
rejoicing to my
heart. But
there is yet one lessoning I cannot give to you For you must find your own way
there—judge what is sound
and true This
lesson is the crudest ever Healer had to teach— It is—what you must do when
there are those you cannot reach. However
great your Gift there will be times when you will
fail There will be those you cannot help, your skill cannot prevail.
When you fight Death, and lose to Him, or what may yet be
worse You win—to find the wreck He left regards you with a curse. And
worst of all, and harder still, the times when it's a friend
Who looks to you to bring him peace and make his torment
end—-What will you do, young Healer, when there's nothing you can
do? I can give only counsel, for the rest is up to you. This
only will I counsel you; that if you build a shell Of armor close about you,
then you close yourself in Hell.
And if your heart should harden, then your Gift will fade and die
And all that you have lived and learned will then become a lie. 314 Mercedes
Lackey My
child, your Healing hands are guided by your Healing heart And
that is all the wisdom all my learning can impart. You take this pain upon you as
you challenge life unknown—
And there can be no answer here but one—and that's your
own. HERALD'S
LAMENT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: C. J. Cherryh (Dirk:
Arrow's Fait) A hand
to aid along the road— A laugh to lighten any load— A place to bring a burdened
heart And heal the ache of sorrow's dart— Who'd willing share in joy or tears
And help to ease the darkest fears Or my soul like his own defend— And all
because he was my friend. No
grave could hold so free a soul. I see him in the frisking foal— I hear him
laughing on the breeze That stirs the very tops of trees. He soars with falcons
on the wing— He is the song that nightbirds sing. Death never dared him captive
keep. He lies not there. He does not sleep. But—there
is silence at my side That haunts the place he used to ride. And my Companion
can't allay The loss I have sustained this day. How bleak the future now has
grown Since I must face it all alone. My road is weary, dark and steep— And it
is for myself I weep. ARROW'S
FAIL FOR TALIA 315 Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Larry Warner and Kristoph Klover (Dirk:
Arrow's Fall} The
lady that I cherish is enamored of a fool — A fool who lacks the wit to speak
his mind, A fool who often wears a mask indifferent and cool, A fool who's
often selfish, dense, and blind. lady
that I cherish is enamored of a fool — A fool too often wrapped in other cares,
Forgetting that his singlemindedness is wrong and cruel To lock her out who
gladly trouble shares. The
lady that I cherish is enamored of a fool Who
sometimes does not value what he holds Until
his loneliness confirms 'twere time his heart should rule
And the comfort of her love around him folds. But
though he must have hurt her without ever mean- ing to Her
temper never breaks and never frays, And she forgives whatever careless thing
that he may do And loves him still despite his thoughtless ways. She
only smiles and says that there is nothing to forgive
— And I
thank God she does so, for you see I fear without her love and care this poor
fool could not live —
The fool she loves and cherishes is me. 316 Mercedes
Lackey KEROWYN'S RIDE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Leslie Fish (This
is a fairly common song in Valdemar, although it originated several lands to
the south.) Kerowyn,
Kerowyn, where are you going, Dressed in men's clothing, a sword by your side,
Your face pale as death, and your eyes full of fury, Kerowyn, Kerowyn, where do
you ride? Last
night in the darkness foul raiders attacked us— Our
hah* lies in ruins below— They've
stolen our treasure, and the bride of my brother And to
her side now I must go To her
aid now I must go. Kerowyn,
Kerowyn, where is your father? Where is your brother? This fight should be
theirs. It is not seemly that maids should be warriors— Your pride is your
folly; go tend women's cares. This is
far more than a matter of honor And more than a matter of pride— She's only a
child, all alone, all unaided Though foolish and reckless beside, Still now to
her aid I must ride. Grandmother,
sorceress, I need a weapon— I'm one
against many—and I am afraid— For the
bastards have bought them a fell wizard's powers— I can't
hope to help her without magic aid. Kerowyn,
granddaughter, into your keeping I now
give the sword I once wore "Need"
is her name, yes, and great are her powers— She'll
serve you as many before— Though
her name be not found in men's lore. Grandmother,
grandmother, now you confuse me— ARROUrSFALL 317 Was
this a testing I got at your hand? Whence
comes this weapon of steel and of magic And why
do you put her now at my command? Kerowyn,
not for the weak or the coward Is the
path of the warrior maid. Yes my
child, you've been tested—now ride with my blessing And
trust in yourself and your blade. Ride now, and go unafraid! THREES Music:
Leslie Fish Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey (Again:
a similar song from the same region as "Kerowyn's Ride" that migrated
northward.) Deep
into the stony hills, miles from town or hold A troupe of guards conies riding,
with a lady and her gold She
rides bemused among them, shrouded in her cloak of fur Companioned
by a maiden and a toothless, aged cur. Three things see no end, a flower
blighted ere it bloomed, A message that miscarries and a journey that is
doomed. One
among the guardsmen has a shifting, restless eye And as they ride, he scans the
hills that rise against the sky He
wears a sword and bracelet worth more than he can afford And
hidden in his baggage is a heavy, secret hoard. Of three things be wary, of a
feather on a cat The shepherd eating mutton, and the guardsman that is fat. Little
does the lady care what all the guardsmen know— That bandits ambush caravans
that on these traderoads go. 318 Mercedes
Lackey In
spite of tricks and clever traps and alt that men can do The brigands seem to
always sense which trains are false or
true. Three things are most perilous—the shape that walks behind,
The ice that will not hold you and the spy you cannot find. From
ambush bandits screaming charge the packtrain and its
prize And all
but four within the train are taken by surprise And all but four are cut down
as a woodsman fells a log; The guardsman and the lady and the maiden and the dog. Three
things hold a secret—lady riding in a dream, The dog that sounds no warning,
and the maid who does not
scream. Then
off the tady pulls her cloak, in armor she is clad—
Her sword is out and ready, and her eyes are fierce and glad.
The maiden makes a gesture, and the dog's a cur no more— A
wolf, sword-maid and sorceress now face the bandit corps. Three
things never anger, or you will not live for long, A wolf with cubs, a man with
power, and a woman's sense
of wrong. The
lady and her sister by a single trader lone Were hired out to try to lay a trap
all of their own And no one knew their plan except the two who rode that
day For
what you do not know you cannot ever give away! Three things is it better, far,
that only two should know— Where treasure hides, who shares your bed, and how
to catch
your foe! The
bandits growl a challenge, and the lady only grins The sorceress bows
mockingly, and then the fight begins! ARROWS
FALL 319 When it
ends there are but four left standing from that horde— . The witch, the wolf, the traitor and the
woman with the sword! Three
things never trust in; the maiden sworn as pure, The vows a king has given, and
the ambush that is "sure." They
strip the traitor naked and then whip him on his wav Into
the barren hillsides, like the folk he used to slay— And what of all the
maidens that this filth despoiled, then
slew? Why, as
revenge, the sorceress makes him a woman too! Three things trust above all
else—the horse on which you ride,
The beast that guards your sleeping, and your sister at your
side. (These
songs can be heard on the tape Heralds, Harpers, and Havoc available from Off
Centaur Publications, P.O. Box 424, El Cerrito CA 94530) Prologue Long
ago—so long ago that the details of the conflict are lost and only the merest
legends remain—the world of Velgarth was wracked by sorcerous wars. With the
population decimated, the land was turned to wasteland and given over to the
forest and the magically-engendered creatures those peoples had used to fight
those wars, while the people that remained fled to the eastern coastline, for
only in those wilderness areas could they hope to resume their shattered lives.
In time, it was the eastern edge of the continent that became the site of
civilization, and the heartland tftat in turn became the wilderness. But
humans are cesilient creatures, and it was not overlong before the population
once again was on the increase, moving westward, building new kingdoms out of
the wilds. One
such kingdom was Valdemar. It had been founded by the once-Baron Valdemar and
those of his people who had chosen exile with him rather than face the wrath of
a selfish and cruel monarch. It lay on the very western-and-northeramost edge
of the civilized world, bounded on the north and northwest by wilderness that
still contained uncanny creatures, and on the far west by Lake Evendim, an
enormous inland sea. Travel beyond Valdemar was perilous and uncertain at the
very best of times, and at the worst a traveler could bring weird retribution
on innocents when the creatures he encountered back-trailed him to his point of
origin. In part
due to the nature of its founders, the monarchs of Valdemar welcomed fugitives
and fellow exiles, and 70 Mercedes Lackey the
customs and habits of its people had over the years become a polyglot
patchwork. In point of fact, the one rule by which the monarchs of Valdemar
governed their people was, "There is no 'one true way.' " Governing
such an ill-assorted lot of subjects might have been impossible—had it not been
for the Heralds of Valdemar. The
Heralds had extraordinary powers, yet never abused those powers; and the reason
for their forbearance—in fact for the whole system—was the existence of
creatures known as "Companions." To one
who knew no better, a Companion would seem little more than an extraordinarily
graceful white horse. They were for more than that. The first Companions had
been sent by some unknown power or powers at the pleading of King Valdemar
himself—three of them, at first, who had made bonds with the King, his Heir,
and his most trusted friend, who was the Kingdom Herald. So it came to be that
the Heralds took on a new importance in Valdemar, and a new role. It was
the Companions who chose new Heralds, forging between themselves and their
Chosen a mind-to-mind bond that only death could sever. While no one knew
precisely how intelligent they were, it was generally agreed that their
capabilities were at least as high as those of their human partners. Companions
could (and did) Choose irrespective of age and sex, although they tended to
Choose youngsters just entering adolescence, and more boys were Chosen than
girls. The one common trait among the Chosen (other than a specific personality
type: patient, unselfish, responsible, and capable of heroic devotion to duty)
was at least a trace of psychic ability. Contact with a Companion and continued
development of the bond enhanced whatever latent paranormal capabilities lay
within the Chosen. With time, as these Gifts became better understood, ways
were developed to train and use them to the fullest extent of which the
individual was capable. Gradually the Gifts displaced in importance whatever
knowledge of "true magic" was left in Valdemar, until there was no
record of how such magic had ever been learned or used. ARROWS
FALL 11 Valdemar
himself evolved the unique system of government for his land: the Monarch,
advised by his Council, made the laws; the Heralds dispensed the laws and saw
that they were observed. The Heralds themselves were nearly incapable of
becoming corrupted or potential abusers of their temporal power. In all of the
history of Valdemar, there was only one Herald who had ever succumbed to that
temptation. His motive had been vengeance—he got what he wanted, but his
Companion repudiated and abandoned him, and he committed suicide shortly
thereafter. The
Chosen were by nature remarkably self-sacrificing— their training only reinforced
this. They had to be—there was a better than even chance that a Herald would
die in the line of duty. But they were human for all of that; mostly young,
mostly living on the edge of danger—so, it was inevitable that outside of their
duty they tended to be a bit hedonistic and anything but chaste. They seldom
formed any ties beyond that of their brotherhood and the pleasures of the
moment—perhaps because the bond of brotherhood was so very strong, and because
the Herald-Companion bond left little room for any other permanent ties. For
the most part, few of the common or noble folk held this against them—knowing
that, no matter how wanton a Herald might be on leave, the moment he donned his
snowy uniform he was another creature altogether, for a Herald in Whites was a
Herald on duty, and a Herald on duty had no time for anything outside of that
duty, least of all the frivolity of his own pleasures. Still, there were those
who held other opinions. . . . Laws
laid down by the first King decreed that the Monarch himself must also be a
Herald. This ensured that the ruler of Valdemar could never be the kind of
tyrant who had caused the founders to flee their own homes. Second
in importance to the Monarch was the Herald known as the "King's (or
Queen's) Own." Chosen by a special Companion—one that was always a
stallion, and never seemed to age (though it was possible to kill him) —the
King's Own held the special position of confidant and most trusted friend and
advisor to the ruler. This 12 Mercedes Lackey guaranteed
that the Monarchs of Valdemar would always have at least one person about them
who could be trusted and counted on at all times. This tended to make for
stable and confident rulers—and thus, a stable and dependable government. It
seemed for generations that King Valdemar had planned his government perfectly.
But the best-laid plans can still be circumvented by accident or chance. In the
reign of King Sendar, the kingdom of Karse (that bordered Valdemar to the
south-east) hired a nomadic nation of mercenaries to attack Valdemar. In the
ensuing war, Sendar was killed, and his daughter, Selenay, assumed the throne,
herself having only recently completed her Herald's training. The Queen's Own,
an aged Herald called Talamir, was frequently confused and embarrassed by
having to advise a young, headstrong, and attractive female. As a result,
Selenay made an ill-advised marriage, one that nearly cost her both her throne
and her life. The
issue of that marriage, the Heir-presumptive, was a female child Selenay called
Elspeth. Elspeth came under the influence of a foreigner—the nurse Hulda, whom
Selenay's husband had arranged before he died to be brought from his own land.
As a result of Hulda's manipulations, Elspeth became an intractable, spoiled
brat. It became obvious that if things went on as they were tending, the girl
would never be Chosen, and thus, could never inherit. This would leave Selenay
with three choices; marry again (with the attendant risks) and attempt to
produce another, more suitable Heir, or declare someone already Chosen and with
the proper bloodline to be Heir. Or, somehow, salvage the Heir-presumptive.
Talamir had a plan—one that it seemed had a good chance of success. At this
point Talamir was murdered, throwing the situation into confusion again. His
Companion, Rolan, Chose a new Queen's Own—but instead of picking an adult or
someone already a full Herald, he Chose an adolescent girl named Talia. Talia
was of Holderkin—a puritanical Border group which did its best to discourage
knowledge of outsiders. ARROWS
FALL 13 Talia
had no idea what it meant to have a Herald's Companion accost her, and then
(apparently) carry her off. Among her people, females held very subordinate
positions, and nonconformity was punished immediately and harshly. She was
ill-prepared for the new world of the Heralds and their Collegium that she had
been thrust into. But the one thing she did have experience in was the handling
and schooling of children, for she had been the teacher to her Holding's
younger members from the time she was nine. She
managed to salvage the Brat—and succeeded well enough that Elspeth was Chosen
herself just before Talia was sent out on her internship assignment. During
that assignment she and Kris, the Herald picked to be her mentor, discovered
something frightening and potentially fatal—not only to themselves, but to
anyone who happened to be around Talia. Due to the chaos just after her initial
training in her Gift, she had never been properly trained. And her Gift was
Empathy—both receptive and protective—strong enough to use as a weapon. It
wasn't until it had run completely wild that she and Kris were able to retrain
her so that her control became a matter of will instead of instinct. She
still had moments of misgiving about the ethics of her Gift. She
also had moments of misgiving on another subject altogether; another Herald.
Dirk was Kris' best friend and partner—and Talia, after being with him only a
handful of times, none intimate, was attracted to him to the point of
obsession. There was a precedent for such preoccupation; very rarely, Heralds
formed a bond with one another as deep and enduring as the Herald-Companion
bond. Such a tie was referred to as a "lifebond." Kris was certain
that this was what Talia was suffering from. Talia wasn't so sure. This
was just one minor complication for an internship that included battle, plague,
intrigue, wildly spreading rumors about her, and a Gift that was a danger to
herself and others. At last
the year-and-a-hatf was over, and she was on her way home. 14 Mercedes
Lackey Home—to
an uncertain relationship, a touchy adolescent Heir, all the intrigues of the
Court—and possibly, an enemy; Lord Orthallen, who just happened to be Kris'
uncle. One Vie
could be brother and sister, Kris thought, glancing over at his fellow Herald.
Maybe twins— Talia
sat Rolan with careless ease—an ease brought about by the fact that they'd
spent most of their waking hours in the saddle during her internship up north.
Kris' seat was just as casual, and for the same reason. After all this time
they could easily have eaten, slept—yes, and possibly even made love a-saddle!
The first two they had accomplished, and more than once. The third they'd never
tried—but Kris had heard rumors of other Heralds who had. It did not sound like
something he really was curious enough to attempt. They
figured on making the capital and the Collegium by early evening, so they were
both wearing the cleanest and best of their uniforms. Heraldic Whites—those for
field duty—were constructed of tough and durable leather, but after eighteen
months they only had one set apiece that would pass muster, and they'd been
saving them for today. So
we're presentable. Which isn't saying much, Kris mourned to himself, surveying
the left knee of his breeches with regret. The surface of the leather was worn
enough to be slightly nappy—which meant it was inclined to pick up dirt. And
dirt showed on Whites—after riding all day they both were slightly gray. Maybe
not to the casual eye, but Kris noticed. Tantris
curvetted a little, and Kris suddenly realized that he and Talia's Rolan were
matching their paces. :On
purpose, two-footed brother,: came Tantris1 sending, tinged with a hint of
laughter. :Since you two are so 15 16 Mercedes
Lackey terribly
shabby, we thought we'd take attention off you. Nobody's going to notice you
when we're showing off: :Thanks—I
think.: :By the
way, you couldn't pass for twins; there's too much red in her hair, and she's
too little. But sibs, yes. Although where you got those blue eyes—: :Blue
eyes run in my family,: Kris replied with feigned indignation. :Both father and
mother have them.: -.Then
if you were going to be sibs, your mother must have been keeping a Bard in the
wardrobe for Talia to have hazel eyes and curly hair.: Tantris pranced and
arched his neck, and one of his sapphirine eyes flashed a teasing look up at
his Chosen. Kris
stole another glance at his internee, and concluded that Tantris was right.
There was too much red hi her hair, and it was too curly to have come out of
the same batch as his own straight, blue-black locks. And she barely came up to
his chin. But they both had fine-boned, vaguely heart-shaped faces—and more
than that, they both moved the same way. •Alberich's
training. And Keren's.: .•Probably.: :You'reprettier
than she is, though. The which you know.: Kris
was startled into a laugh, which made Talia glance over at him quizzically. "Might
one ask—?" "Tantris,"
he replied, taking a deep breath of the verdant air, and chuckling. "He's
twitting me on my vanity." "I
wish," she answered with more than a little wistful-ness, "that just
once I could Mindspeak Rolan like that." "You
ought to be glad you can't. You're saved a lot of back-talk." "How
far are we from home?" "A
little more than an hour." He took in the greening landscape with every
sign of satisfaction, now and again taking deep breaths of the flower-laden
air. "A silver for your thoughts." "So
much?" She chuckled, turning in her saddle to face him. "A copper
would be more appropriate." "Let
me be the judge of that. After all, I'm the one who asked." ARROWS
FALL 17 "So
you did." The
rode in tree-shadowed silence for several leagues; Kris was minded to let her
answer in her own time. The soft chime of bridle bells and their Companions'
hooves on the hard surface of the Trade Road made a kind of music that was most
soothing to listen to. "Ethics,"
she said at last. "Whoof—that's
dry thinking!" "I
suppose it is—" She plainly let her thoughts turn inward again; her eyes
grew vague, and he coughed to recapture her attention. "You
went elsewhere," he chided gently, when she jumped a little. "Now,
you were saying—ethics. Ethics of what?" "My
Gift. Specifically, using it—" "I
thought you'd come to terms with that." "In
a situation of threat, yes. In a situation where there was no appropriate and
just punishment under normal procedures." "That—child-raper." "Exactly."
She shivered a little. "I thought I'd never feel clean again after
touching his mind. But—what could I have done with him? Ordered his execution?
That . . .wouldn't be enough of a punishment for what he did. Imprison him? Not
appropriate at all. And much as I would have liked to pull him to bits slowly,
Heralds don't go in for torture." "What
did you do to him? In detail, I mean. You didn't want to talk about it
before." "It
was a—kind of twist on a mind-Healing technique; it depended on the fact that
I'm a projective Empath. I can't remember what Devan called it, but you tie a
specific thought to another thought or set of feelings that you construct.
Then, every time the person thinks that thought, they also get what you want them
to know. Like with Vostel—-every time he would decide that he was to blame,
he'd get what / put in there." "Which
was?" She
grinned. " 'So next time I won't be so stupid!' And when he'd be ready to
give up from pain, he'd get, 'But ft isn't as bad as yesterday, and it'll be
better tomorrow.' Not words, actually; it was all feelings." 18 Mercedes
Lackey "Better,
in that case, than words would have been," Kris mused, shooing a fly away
absently. "So
Devan said. Well, I did something like that with— that thing. I took one of the
worst sets of his stepdaughter's memories, and tied that in to all of his own
feelings about women. And I kept point-of-view, so that it would appear to him
as if he were the victim. You saw what happened." Kris
shuddered. "He went mad; he just collapsed, foaming at the mouth." "No,
he didn't go mad. He locked himself into an endless repetition of what I'd fed
him. It's an appropriate punishment; he's getting exactly what he put his
stepdaughters through. It's just, at least I think so, because if he ever
changes his attitudes he can break free of it. Of course if he does—" she
grimaced "—he might find himself dancing on the end of a rope for the
murder of his older stepdaughter. The law prevents the execution of a madman;
it doesn't save one who's regained his sanity. Lastly, what I did should
satisfy his stepdaughter, who is, after all, the one we really want to come out
of this thing with a whole soul." "So
where's the ethical problem?" "That
was a stress-situation, a threat-situation. But—is it ethical to—say—read
people during Council sessions and act on my information?" "Uh—"
Kns was unable to think of an answer. "You
see?" "Let's
go at it from another angle. You know how to read people's faces and
bodies—we've all been taught that. Would you hesitate to use that knowledge in
Council?" "Well,
no." She rode silently for a few more moments. "I guess what will
have to be the deciding factor is not if I do it but how I use the
information." "That
sounds reasonable to me." "Maybe
too reasonable," she replied doubtfully. "It's awfully easy to
rationalize what I want to do—what I have no choice about in some cases. It's
not like thought-sensing; I have to actively shield to keep people out. They go
around shoving their feelings up my nose on a regular basis, especially when
they're wrought up." ARROWS
FALL 19 Kris
shook his head. "All I can say is, do what seems best at the time. Really,
that's all any of us do." .-Verily,
oh, Wise One.: Kris
ignored his Companion's taunting comment. He was going to question her further,
but broke off when he caught the sound of a horse galloping full out, heading
up die road toward them, the hoofbeats having the peculiar ringing of a
Companion. "That—" "Sounds
like a Companion, yes. And in full gallop." he rose in his stirrups for a
better view. "Bright Lady, now what?" Steed
and rider came into sight as they topped the hill. :That's
Cymry—: Tantris' ears were pricked forward. .-She's slim. She must have foaled
already.: "It's
Cymry," Kris reported. "Which
means Skif—and since I'll bet she just foaled, it isn't a pleasure-ride that
takes them out here." The
last time they'd seen the thief-turned-Herald had been a bit over nine months
ago, when he'd met with them for their half-term briefing. Cymry had spent the
time frolicking with Rolan, and both she and her Chosen had forgotten about the
nearly-supernatural fertility of the Grove stallions. The result was
foregone—much to Cymry's chagrin as well as Skif s. Talia
knew Skif better than Kris did; they'd been very dose as students, close enough
that they'd sworn blood-brotherhood. They had been close enough that Talia
could read him better at a distance than Kris could. She
shaded her eyes with her hand, then nodded a tittle. "Well it isn't a
disaster; there's something serious afoot, but it isn't an emergency." "How
can you tell at tms distance?" "Firstly,
there's no emotional-surge. Secondly, if it were serious, he'd be absolutely
expressionless. He looks a bit worried, but that could be for Cymry." Skif
spotted them and waved wildly, as Cymry slowed her headlong pace. They hastened
theirs—to the dtsgrun-dement of the pack-mules. "Havens!
Am I ever glad to see you two!" Skif exclaimed as they came into earshot.
"Cymry swore you 20 Mercedes
Lackey were
close, but I was half-afraid I'd have to ride a couple of hours, and I hate to
make her leave the little one for that long." "You
sound like you've been waiting for us—Skif, what's the problem?" Kris
asked anxiously. "What are you doing out here?" "Nothing
for you; plenty for her. Mind you, this is strictly under the ivy bush; we
don't want people to know you've been warned, Talia. I slipped out on behalf of
a lady in distress." "Who?
Elspeth? Selenay? What—" "Give
me a minute, will you? I'm trying to tell you. Elspeth asked roe to intercept
you on your way in. It seems the Council is trying to marry her off, and she's
not overly thrilled with the notion. She wants you to know so you'll have time
to muster some good arguments for the Council meeting tomorrow," Skif
reined Cymry in beside them, and they picked up the pace. "Alessandar has
made a formal offer for her for Ancar. Lots of advantages there. Virtually
everybody on the Council is for it except Elcarth and Kyril—and Selenay.
They've been arguing it back and forth for two months, but it's been serious
for about a week, and it looks as if Selenay is gradually being worn down.
That's why Elspeth sent me out to watch for you; I've been slipping out for the
past three days, hoping to catch you when you came in and warn you what's up.
With you to back her, Selenay's got full veto—either to table the betrothal
until Elspeth's finished training, or throw the notion out altogether. Elspeth
didn't want any of the more excitable Councillors to know we were warning you,
or they might have put more pressure on Selenay to decide before you got
here." Talia
sighed. "So nothing's been decided; good. I can deal with it easily
enough. Can you get on ahead of us? Let Elspeth and Selenay both know we'll be
there by dinner-bell? I can't do anything now, anyway, but tomorrow we can take
care of the whole mess at Council session. If Elspeth wants to see me before
then—I'm all hers; she'll probably find me in my rooms." "Your
wish is my command," Skif replied. As all three ARROW'S
FALL 21 knew,
Skif knew more ways than one in and out of the capital and the Palace grounds.
He'd make far better time than they could. They
held their pace to that of the mules as Skif sent Cymry off at a diagonal to
the road, raising a cloud of dust behind him. They continued on as if they
hadn't met him; but Kris traded a look of weary amusement with her. They
weren't even officially "home" yet, and already the intrigues had
begun. "Anything
else bothering you?" "To
put it bluntly," she said at last, "Fm nervous about coming back
home—as nervy as a cat about to kitten." "Whyfor?
And why now? The worst is over. You're a full Herald—the last of your
training's behind you. What's to be nervous about?" Talia
looked around her; at the fields, the distant hills, at anything but Kris. A
warm spring breeze, loaded with flower-scent, teased her hair and blew a lock
or two into her eyes so that she looked like a worried foal. "I'm
not sure I ought to discuss it with you," she said reluctantly. "If
not me, then who?" She
looked at him measuringly. "I don't know. . . ." "No,"
Kris said, just a little hurt by her reluctance. "You know. You just
aren't sure you can trust me. Even after all we've shared together." She
winced. "Disconcertingly accurate. I thought blunt-ness was my besetting
sin." Kris
cast his eyes up to the heavens in an exaggerated plea for patience, squinting
against the bright sunlight. "I am a Herald. You are a Herald. If there's
one thing you should haver learned by now, it's that you can always trust
another Herald." "Even
when my suspicions conflict with ties of blood?" He gave
her another measuring look. "Such as?" "Your
uncle, Lord Orthallen." He
whistled through his teeth, and pursed his lips. "I thought you'd left
that a year ago. Just because of that little run-in you had with him over Skif,
you see him plotting conspiracy behind every bush! He's been very good to me,
and to half a dozen others I could name you, 22 Mercedes
Lackey and
he's been invaluable to Selenay—as he was to her father." "I
have very good reasons to see him behind every bush!" she replied with
some heat. "I think trying to get Skif in trouble was part of a long
pattern, that it was just an attempt to isolate me—" "Why?
What could he possibly gain?" Kris was fed up and frustrated because this
wasn't the first time he'd had to defend his uncle. More than one of his fellow
Heralds had argued that Orthallen was far too power-hungry to be entirely
trustworthy, and Kris had always felt honor-bound to defend him. He'd thought
Talia had dismissed her suspicions as irrational months ago. He was highly
annoyed to find that she hadn't. "I
don't know why—" Talia cried in frustration, clenching her fist on her
reins. "I only know that I've never trusted him from the moment I first
saw him. And now I'll be co-equal in Council with Kyril and Elcarth, with a
full voice in decisions. That could put us in more direct conflict than we've
ever been before." Kris
took three deep breaths and attempted to remain calm and rational. "Talia,
you may not like him, but you've never had any problems in keeping your dislike
out of the way of your decision-making that I've ever seen—and my uncle is very
reasonable. . . ." "But
I can't read the man; I can't fathom his motives, and I can't imagine why he
should feel antagonism toward me—but I know he does." "I
think you're overreacting," Kris replied, still keeping a tight rein on
his temper. "I told you once before that it isn't you that's offended
him—assuming that he really is offended—but because he's probably feeling like
a defeated opponent. He expected to take Talamir's place as Selenay's closest
advisor when Talamir was murdered." "And
cut out the role of Queen's Own?" Talia shook her head violently.
"Havens, Kris; Orthallen is an intelligent man! He can't have imagined
that was possible! He hasn't the Gift, for one thing. And I am not overreacting
to him." "Now,
Talia—;' "Don't
patronize me! You're the one who was telling me to trust my instincts, and now
you say my instincts ARROWS
FALL 23 can't
be trusted, because they're telling me something you don't want to
believe?" "Because
it's childish and silly." Kris snorted. Talia
took a deep breath and closed her eyes. "Kris, I don't agree with you, but
let's not fight about it." Kris
bit back what he wanted to say. At least she wasn't going to force him to stay
on the defensive. "If you want." ••It—it
isn't what I want. What I want is for you to believe and trust in my judgment.
If I can't have that— well, I just don't want to fight about it." "My
uncle," he said carefully, trying to be absolutely fair to both sides,
"is very fond of power. He doesn't like giving it up. That in itself is
probably the reason he's been displaying antagonism toward Heralds and you in
particular. Just be firm and cool and don't give an inch when you know you're
in the right. He'll settle down and resign himself; as you said, he's not
stupid. He knows better than to fight when he can't win. You'll never be
friends, but I doubt that you need to fear him. He may be fond of power, but he
has always had the best interests of the Kingdom at the forefront of his
concerns." "I
wish I could feel as confident about that as you do." She sighed, then
shifted in her saddle, as if trying to ease an uncomfortable position. Kris
began to make a retort, then thought better of it, and grinned. At this point a
change of subject was called for. "Why don't you worry about something
else—Dirk, for instance?" "Beast."
She smiled when she saw he was laughing at her. "So
I am. I'm sure he'll tell me the same. Oh, well, the best thing you can do for
that little trouble is to let affairs take their natural course. Soon or late,
he'll come to the point—if I have to push him myself!" "Callous,
too." She pouted mischievously at him. "Believe
it," he replied agreeably. "I'm going to enjoy teasing the life out
of both of you." Talia
schooled herself to remain calm. As she had told Skif, there was nothing to be
done right now. There were other things she wanted to find out before she took
that 24 Mercedes
Lackey Council
seat in the morning, too—like whether the rumors that she had
"misused" her Gift to manipulate others were still active. And who
was keeping them active, if they were. At this point, it was a bit too late to
try and find out who had originated them. As they
approached the outer city and its swirling crowds, she was made aware of just
how much more sensitive her Gift of Empathy had become. The pressure of all
those emotions ahead of her was so strong she found it hard to believe that
Kris could be unaware of it. She wished, not for the first time, that her Gift
included Mindspeech; it would have been comforting to consult with Rolan the
way Kris could with Tantris. She'd forgotten what living around so many people
was like—and having had her Gift go rogue on her had made her more sensitive
than she had been before she left. It wasn't going to be easy to stay tightly
shielded day and night, but her enhanced perception was going to demand just
that. She felt a flicker of reassurance from Rolan, and smiled faintly despite
her anxiety. They
made their way down the increasingly crowded road into the outer city, outside
the ancient defensive walls, which had sprung up over several generations of
peace. Hie inner city held the shops, the better inns, and the homes of the
middle class and nobility- The outer was given over to the workshops, markets,
rowdier hostels and taverns, and the homes of the laborers and poor. The
crowds of the outer city were noisy and cheerful. As when she had first ridden
into the capital, Tatia found herself assaulted on all sides by sight, scent,
and sound. Hie myriad odors of cookshops, inns, and food vendors vied with the
less savory smells of beasts and trade. The
pressure of all the varied emotions of the people around her threatened to
overwhelm her for one brief moment, until she firmed up her shields. No, she
thought with resignation, this is not going to be easy. The
road led through a riot of color and motion, and the noise was cacaphonic,
confusion without mirroring some of her own confusion within. The
leather-workers kept to a section here, outside the ARROWS
FALL 25 • North
Gate, and both Tatia and Kris were caught off ward by
a puff of acrid, eye-burning fumes that escaped from a vat somewhere nearby. '
"Whew!" Kris gasped, laughing at the tears in his eyes and Talia's,
"Now I remember why Dirk and I usually backtracked around to the Haymarket
Gate! Oh, well, too late now!" Hie
brief pause they made to clear their vision gave her a chance to finish making
her shielding automatic. Back in their Sector—once she'd gotten her shields
back— she'd tended to leave them down when it was only the two of them
together. Shielding expended energy, and at that point she hadn't any to spare.
Now she put in place the safeguards that would ensure that her shields stayed
up even when she was unconscious—and felt a brief surge of gratitude to Kris
for having re-taught her the right way to shield. Kris
kept a careful eye on her as they made their way through the crowds. If she
were going to break, now would be the time, under the pressure of aU these
emotions, .7
wasn't worried.: :You
weren't, hm? Maybe I should ask her to favor you with one of those emotional
backlashes: :No,
thank you, I had one. Remember? Rolan nearly brained me.: Tantris' sending took
on a serious coloration. :You know, you really shouldn't tease her about Dirk.
Lifebonds aren't easy to bear when the pair hasn't acknowledged it.: Kris
looked at his Companion's back-tilted ears in astonishment. : You re sure? I
mean, she certainly shows every symptom of lifebonding, but—: .-We're
sure.: :Do you
by any chance know when—?: he asked his Companion. :Dirk
was the first Herald she ever saw; Rolan thinks it might have been then.: :That
early? Lord and Lady, that would be one power-ful bond. . . .: Kris continued
to watch her with a little bemusement as the thought trailed away. Tradesmen
and their patrons screamed cheerfully at *.-- 26 Mercedes
Lackey one
another over the din of vehicles, squalling children, and bawling animals. Yet
for all that the populace seemed to ignore the presence of the two Heralds
passing through their midst, a path always seemed to clear itself before them,
and someone beckoned them on by a smile or a wave of a hat. The Guard at the
outer gate saluted them as they passed through; the Guardfolk were no strangers
to the comings and goings of Heralds. They rode through the tunnel that passed
under the thick, gray-granite walls of the old city, and the din lessened for
just a moment. Then they emerged into the narrower ways of the capital itself.
It lacked only an hour until the evening meal and the streets were as crowded
with people as Kris had ever seen them. It was not quite as noisy here in the
old city, but the streets were just as full. After months of small towns and
villages, Kris found himself marveling anew at the crush of people, and the
closely-built, multi-storied stone houses. For many months, the chime of bells
on their Companions' bridles had been the loudest sound they heard; now that
sound was completely engulfed in the babble around them. Hie
streets had been designed in a spiral; no one could move straight to the Palace
grounds—as in most older cities that had been built with an eye to defense.
Kris led them on a course that wound ever inward. The din died away behind them
as they left the streets of shops behind and entered the inner, residential
core. The modest houses of the merchant class gradually gave way to the more
impressive buildings owned by the wealthy or noble, each set apart from the
street by a private wall enclosing the manse and a bit of garden. Eventually
they made their way to the inner beige-brick wall surrounding the Palace and
the three Collegia—Bardic, Healer's and Herald's. The silver-and-blue-clad
Palace Guard stationed at the gate halted them for a moment, while she checked
them off against a list of those expected to be arriving. Careful records were
kept on when a Herald should come hi from the field—in the case of those
arriving from distant Sectors, this calculation was accurate within a stretch
of two or three days; in the case of those arriving from nearby Sectors,
expected arrival time was accurate ARROWS
FALL 27 to
within hours. This list was posted with the Gate Guard—so when a Herald was
overdue, someone knew it, and something could be done to find out why, quickly. "Herald
Dirk in yet?" Kris asked the swarthy Guards-woman casually when she'd
finished. . "Just arrived two
days ago, Herald," she replied, consulting the roster. "Guard then
notes he asked about you two." "Thank
you, Guard. Pleasant watch to you." Kris grinned, urging Tantris through
the gate she held open, with Rolan following closely behind. Kris continued
to watch Talia carefully, feeling a surge of gratified pride as he noted her
behavior. The past few months had been living hell for her. Control of her Gift
had been based entirely on instinct, rather than on proper training—and no one
had ever realized this. The rumors that she had used it to manipulate—worse,
that she had done so unconsciously—had pushed her off-balance. His own doubts
about the truth of those rumors had been easy for her to pick up. And for
someone whose Gift was based on emotions, and who was frequently prey to
self-doubt, the effect was bound to be catastrophic. It was
at least that. She'd lost all control over her Gift—which unfortunately
remained at full strength. She'd lost the ability to shield, and projected
wildly. She'd very nearly killed them both on more than one occasion. We were
just lucky that during the worst of it, we were mowed in at that Waystation. It
was just the two of us, and we were isolated long enough for her to get back in
charge of herself. And then
she'd met the rumors again—this time circulating among the common folk. More
than once they'd regarded her with fear and suspicion, yet she had never
faltered in the performance of her duties or given any indication to an
outsider that she was anything except calm, thoughtful, and controlled. She'd
given a months' long series of performances a trained player couldn't equal. It was
vital that a Herald maintain emotional stability under all circumstances. This
was especially true of the Queen's Own, who dealt with volatile nobles and the
mtrigues of the Court on a daily basis. She'd lost that 28 Mercedes
Lackey stability,
but after working through her trial had managed to get it back, and more. He
managed to catch her eyes, and gave her an encouraging wink; she dropped her
solemn face for a moment to wrinkle her nose at him. They
passed the end of the Guard barracks and neared the black iron fence that
separated the "public" grounds of the Palace from the
"private" grounds and those of the three Collegia. Another Guard
stood at the Gate here, but his position was mainly to intercept the
newly-Chosen; he waved them on with a grin. From here the granite core of the
Palace with its three great brick wings and the separate buildings of the Healer's
and Bardic Collegia was at last clearly visible. Kris sighed happily. No matter
where a Herald came from—this place, and the people in it, were his real home. Tali a
felt a surge of warmth and contentment at the sight of the Collegium and the
Palace—a feeling of true home coming. Just as
they passed this last gate, she heard a joyful shout, and Dirk and Ahrodie
pounded up the brick-paved pathway at a gallop to meet them. Dirk's straw-blond
hair was flying every which way, like a particularly windblown bird's nest.
Kris vaulted off Tantris' back as Dirk hurled himself from Ahrodie's; they met
in a back-pounding, laughing, bear hug. Talia
remained in the saddle; at the sight of Dirk her heart had contracted
painfully, and now it was pounding so hard she felt that it must be clearly
audible. Her anxieties concerning Elspeth and the intrigues of the Court
receded into the back of her mind. She was
tightly shielded; afraid to let anything leak through. Dirk's
attention was primarily on her and not on his friend and partner. Dirk
had been watching for them all day—telling himself that it was Kris whose
company he had missed. He'd felt like a tight bowstring, without being willing
to identify why he'd been so tense. His reaction on finally seeing ARROW®
FALL 29 them
had been totally unplanned, giving him release for "Jlfe pent-up emotion
in the exuberant greeting to Kris. Though he seemed to ignore her, he was
almost painfully aware of Talia's presence. She sat so quietly on her own Companion
that she might have been a statue, yet he practically counted every breath she
took. He knew
that he would remember how she looked right now down to the smallest hair.
Every nerve seemed to tingle, and he felt almost as if he were wearing his skin
inside out. When
Dirk finally let go of his shoulders, Kris said, with a grin that was bordering
on malicious, "You haven't welcomed Talia, brother. She's going to think
you don't remember her." "Not
remember her? Hardly!" Dirk seemed to be having a little trouble
breathing. Kris hid another grin. Talia
and Rolan were less than two paces away, and Dirk freed an arm to take Talia's
nearer hand in his own. Kris
thought he'd never seen a human face look so exactly like a stunned ox's. Talia
met the incredible blue of Dirk's eyes with a shock. It felt very much as if
she'd been struck by lightning. She came near to trembling when their hands
touched, but managed to hold to her self-control by a thin thread and smiled at
him with lips that felt oddly stiff. "Welcome
home, Talia." That was all he said—which was just as well. The sound of
his voice and the feeling of his eyes on her made her long to fling herself at
him. She found herself staring at him, unable to respond. She
looked a great deal different than he remembered; leaner, as if she'd been
fine-tempered and fine-honed. She was more controlled—certainly more mature.
Was there a sadness about her that hadn't been there before? Was it some pain
that had thinned her face? When
he'd taken her hand, it had seemed as if something—he wasn't sure what—had
passed between them; but if she'd felt it, too, she gave no sign. When
she'd smiled at him, and her eyes had warmed with that smile, he'd thought his
heart was going to stop. 30 Mercedes
Lackey The
dreams he'd had of her all these months, the obsession—he'd figured they'd pop
like soap bubbles when confronted with the reality. He'd been wrong. The
reality only strengthened the obsession. He held her hand that trembled very
slightly in his own, and longed with all his heart for Kris' silver tongue. They
stood frozen in that position for so long that Kris thought with concealed glee
that they were likely to remain there forever unless he broke their
concentration. "Come
on, partner." He slapped Dirk's back heartily and remounted Tan iris. Dirk
jumped in startlement as if someone had blown a trumpet in his ear, then
grinned sheepishly. "If
we don't get moving, we're going to miss supper— and I can't tell you how many
times I dreamed of one of Mero's meals on the road!" "Is
that all you missed? Food? I might have known. Poor abused brother, did Talia
make you eat your own cooking?" "Worse—"
Kris said, grinning at her, "-—she made me eat hersF He winked at her and
punched Dirk's arm lightly. When
Kris broke the trance he was in, Dirk dropped Talia's hand as if it had burned
him. When Talia turned a gaze full of gratitude on Kris, presumably for the
interruption, Dirk felt a surge of something unpleasantly like jealousy at the
thanks in her eyes. When Kris included her in the banter, Dirk wished that it
had been his idea, not Kris'. "Beast,"
she told Kris, making a face at him. "Hungry
beast." "He's
right though, much as I hate to agree with him," she said softly, turning
to Dirk, and he suppressed a shiver—her voice had improved and deepened; it
played little arpeggios on his backbone. "If we don't hurry, you will be
too late. It doesn't matter too much to me—I'm used to sneaking bread and
cheese from Mero—but it's very unkind to keep you standing here. Will you ride
up with us?" He
laughed to cover the hesitation in his voice. "You'd have to tie me up to
keep me from coming with you." ARROWS
FALL 31 He and
Kris remounted with a creak of leather, and they rode with Talia between them;
that gave Dirk all the excuse he needed to rest his eyes on her. She gazed
straight ahead or at Rolan's ears except when she was answering one or the
other of them. Dirk wasn't sure whether he should be piqued or pleased. She
wasn't favoring either of them with a jot more attention than the other, but he
began to wish very strongly that she'd look at him a little more frequently
than she was. A
dreadful fear was starting to creep into his heart. She had spent the past year
and a half largely in Kris' company. What if— He
began scrutinizing Kris' conduct, since Talia's was giving him no clues. It
seemed to confirm his fears. Kris was more at ease with Talia than he'd ever
been with any other woman; they laughed and traded jokes as if their friendship
had grown through years rather than months. It was
worse when they reached the Field and the tackshed, and Kris offered her an
assist down with mock gallantry. She accepted the hand with a teasing
haughteur, and dismounted with one fluid motion. Had Kris' hand lingered in
hers a moment or two longer than had been really necessary? Dirk couldn't be
sure. Their behavior wasn't really loverlike, but it was the closest he'd ever
seen Kris come to it. They
unsaddled their Companions and stowed the tack safely away in the proper places
after a cursory cleaning. Dirk's was pretty much clean; but Talia's and Kris'
needed more work than could be taken care of in an hour—after being in the
field for so long, it would all have to have an expert's touch. Dirk kept Talia
in the corner of his eye while she worked, humming under her breath. Kris kept
up his chatter, and Dirk made distracted, monosyllabic replies. He wished he
could get her alone for just a few minutes. He had
no further chance for observation. Keren, Sher-rill, and Jeri appeared like
magicians out of the thinnest air, converged on her, and carried her off to her
rooms, baggage and all, leaving him alone with Kris. "Look,
I don't know about you, but I am starved," Kris said, as Dirk stared
mournfully after the foursome, 32 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
carrying her harp "My Lady" and the rest sharing her packs.
"Let's get the four-feets turned loose and get that dinner." "Well?"
Keren asked, her rough voice full of arch significance, when the three women
had gotten Talia and her belongings safely into the privacy of her room. "Well,
what?" Talia replied, glancing at the graying Riding Instructor from under
demure lashes while she unpacked in her bedroom. "What?
What! Oh, come on, Talia—" Sherrffl laughed, "—you know exactly what
we mean! How did it go? Your letters weren't exactly very long or very
informative." Talia
suppressed a smile, and turned her innocent gaze on Keren's lifemate.
"Personal or professional?" Jeri
fingered the hilt of her belt-knife significantly. 'Talia," she warned,
"If you don't stop trying our patience, Rolan just may have to find a new
Queen's Own tonight." "Oh,
well, if you're going to be that way about it—" Talia backed away,
laughing, as Sherrill, hazel eyes narrowed in mock ferocity, curled her long
fingers into claws and lunged at her. She dodged aside at the last moment, and
the tall brunette landed on her bed instead. "—all right, I yield, I
yield! What do you want to know first?" Sherrill
rolled to her feet, laughing. "What do you think? Skif hinted that you and
Kris were getting cozy, but he wouldn't do more than hint." "Quite
cozy, yes, but nothing much more. Yes, we were sharing blankets, and no, there
isn't anything more between us than a very comfortable friendship." "Pity,"
Jeri replied merrily, throwing herself onto Talia's couch in the outer room,
then twining a lock of her chestnut hair around one finger. "We were
hoping for a passionate romance." "Sorry
to disappoint you," she replied, not sounding sorry at all, "Though
if you're thinking of trying in that direction—" "Hm?"
Jeri did her best not to look too eager, but didn't succeed very well. "Well,
once he's managed to shake Nessa loose—" "Ha!" ARROWS
FALL 33 "Don't
laugh, we think we know a way. Well, once she's no longer hot on the hunt, he's
going to be quite unpartnered, and he's just as—um—pleasant a companion as
Varianis claims. Jeri, don't lick your whiskers so damned obviously, he's not a
bowl of cream!" Jeri
looked chagrined and blushed as scarlet as the couch cushions, as Sherrill and
Keren chuckled at her discomfiture. "I wasn't that bad, was I?" "You
most certainly were. Keep your predatory thoughts to yourself if you don't want
to frighten him off the way Nessa has," Keren admonished with a wry grin.
"As for you, tittle centaur, he seems to have cured your man-shyness
rather handily. I guess I owe Kyril and Elcarth an apology. I thought assigning
him to you was insanity. Well, now that our prurience has been satisfied, how
did the work go?" "It's
a very long story, and before I go into it, have you three eaten?" Three
affirmatives caused her to nod. "Well / haven't yet. You have a choice;
you can either wait until I'm done with dinner for the rest of the
gossip—" They
groaned hi mock-anguish. "Or
you can check me in and bring me something from the kitchen. If Selenay or
Elspeth need me, they'll send a page for me." "I'll
check her in." Jeri shot out the door and down the spiral staircase. "I'll
go fetch you a young feast. You look like you've lost pounds, and when Mere
finds out it's for you, he'll probably ransack the entire pantry."
Sherrill vanished after Jeri. Keren
stood away from the wall she'd been leaning against. "Give me a proper
greeting, you maddening child." She smiled, holding out her arms. "Oh,
Keren—" Talia embraced the woman who had been friend, surrogate-mother and
sister to her—and more—with heartfelt fervor. "Gods, how I've missed
you!" "And
I, you. You've changed, and for the better." Keren held her closely, then
put her at arm's length, surveying her with intense scrutiny. "It isn't
often I get to see my hopes fulfilled with such exactitude." 34 Mercedes
Lackey "Don't
be so silly." Talia blushed. "You're seeing what isn't there." "Oh,
I think not." Keren smiled. "The gods know you are the world's worst
judge when it comes to evaluating yourself. Dearling, you've become all I hoped
you'd be. But—you didn't have the easy time we thought you would, did
you?" "I—no,
I didn't." Talia sighed. "I—Keren, my Gift went rogue on me. At full
power." "Great
good gods!" She examined Talia even more carefully, gray eyes boring into
Talia's. "How the hell did that happen? I thought we'd trained—" "So
did everyone." "Wait
a moment; let me put this together for myself. You finished Ylsa's class; now
let me remember . . .*' Keren's brow creased hi thought. "It does seem to
me that she mentioned something about wanting to send you to the Healers for
some special training, that she didn't feel altogether happy about handling an
Empath when her own expertise was Thought-sensing." Keren
turned away from Talia and began pacing, a habit the younger woman was long
familiar with, for Keren claimed she couldn't think unless she was moving. "Now—I'd
assumed she'd taken care of that because you spent so much time with the
Healers. But she hadn't, had she? And then she was murdered—" "As
far as Kris and I could figure, the Heralds assumed that the Healers were
giving me Empath training, and the Healers assumed the Heralds had already done
so because I seemed to be in full control. But I wasn't; it was all instinct
and guess. And when control went—" "Gods!"
Keren stopped pacing and put both of her hands on Talia's shoulders.
"Little one, are you sure you're all right now?" Talia
remembered only too vividly the hours of practice Kris had put her through; the
painful sessions with the two Companions literally attacking her mentally.
"I'm sure. Kris is a Gift-teacher, after all. He took me all the way
through the basics, and Rolan and Tantris helped." "Oh,
really? Well, well—that's an interesting twist!" ARROW'S
FALL 35 Keren
raised an eloquent eyebrow. "Companions don't intervene that directly as a
rule." **I
don't think they saw any other choice. The first month we were all snowed in at
that Waystation—then we found out that those damned rumors had made it up to
our Sector and we didn't dare look for outside help. It would have just
confirmed the rumors." "True—true.
If I were on the Circle, I think I would be inclined to keep all this under the
ivy bush. Letting the world know that we blundered that badly with you won't do
a smidgin of good, and would probably do a lot of harm. Selected people, yes;
and this should certainly go down in the annals so that we don't repeat the
mistake with the next Empath—but—no, I don't think this should be generally
known." "That
was basically Kris' thinking, and I agree. You're the first person to know
besides the two of us. We'll both be telling Kyril and Elcarth, and I think
that's all." "Ye-es,"
Keren said slowly. "Yes. Let those two worry about who else should know.
Well, what ends well is well, as they say." "I
am fine," Talia repeated emphatically. "I have absolute control now,
control not even Rolan can shake. In a way, I'm glad it happened; I learned a
lot—and it's made me think about things I never did before." "Right,
then. Now, let's take these rags of yours down to the laundry chute—yes, all of
them; not even one outfit for tomorrow. After being in the field, they'll all
need refurbishing. Here—" she dug into Talia's wooden wardrobe, and
emerged with a soft, comfortable lounging robe. "Put that on. You won't be
going anywhere tonight, and in the morning Gaytha will have left a pile of new
ones at your doorstep—though from the look of you, they'll be a bit loose,
since she'll have had them made up from the old measurements. We've all got a
lot of news to catch up on. Oh, and I've got a message from El-speth; Thank the
Lady, and I'll see you in the morning.' " "Well,
my old and rare, we have got a lot of news to catch up on." Dirk nodded,
his mind so fully occupied with things 36 Mercedes
Lackey other
than his dinner that be never noticed that he was munching his way through a
heap of ustil greens, a vegetable he despised with passion. Kris
noticed, and had a difficult time in keeping a straight face. Fortunately the
usual chaos of the Collegium common room at dinner gave him plenty of
opportunity to look in other directions when the urge to break into a howl of
laughter became too great. It was the height of the dinner hour, and every
wooden bench was full of students in Grays and instructors in full Heraldic
Whites, all shouting amiably at one another over the din. "So,
how did your stint go? We greatly appreciated that music, by the way, both of
us. We've got a goodly portion of it memorized by now." "Sh—you
did? You do? That's—" Dirk suddenly realized he was beginning to babble,
and ended lamely, "—that's very nice. I'm glad you liked it." "Oh,
yes; Talia especially. I think she values your present more than anything
anyone else sent her. She certainly has been taking very good care of it—but
that's tike her. I'm giving her highest marks; she is one damn fine
Herald." Now
Dirk took advantage of the noise and clatter at the tables all about them to
cover his own confusion. "Well," he replied when he finally managed
to clear his head a bit of the daze he seemed to be in, "It sounds like
you had a more entertaining trainee than I did. And a more interesting round.
Mine was so dull and normal Ahrodie and I sleepwalked through most of it.'* "Lord
of Lights—I wish I could claim that! Don't forget, 'May your life be
interesting* happens to be a very potent curse! Besides, I seem to remember you
claiming that young Skif had you worn to a frazzle before the circuit was
over." "I
guess I did," Dirk chuckled. "Did you know his Cymry dropped a foal,
and he blames it all on you two?" "No
doubt, since neither of them have an ounce of shame to spare between
them." Kris ducked as a student burdened with a stack of dirty dishes
taller than he was inched past them. "Lord, I hope that youngling's got
one of the Fetching Gifts, or he's going to lose mat whole ARROW'S
FALL 37 stack
in a minute—yes, Skif and Cymry deserve what they got. Poor Talia would have
been ready to skin both of them given the chance. ..." "Oh?" Kris
was more and more pleased by Dirk's reactions, He needed no further urging, and
related the tale with relish, stopping short of the fight—which had been
caused, in an obscure sort of way, by Dirk—and the swimming match that
followed. He insisted then that they ought to take themselves out of the way of
those students assigned to clearing tables. "Fine;
my room or yours?" Dirk was doing his damnedest to keep his feelings from
showing. Unfortunately, Kris knew him too well; that deadpan dicing face he was
putting on only proved he was considerably on edge. "Good
gods, not yours—we'd be lost in there for a week! Mine; and I still have some
of that Ehrris-wine, I think. . . ." The
tales continued over the wine and a small fire, both of them lounging at full
length in Kris' old, worn green chairs. And every other sentence Kris spoke
seemed to have something to do with Talia. Dirk tried his best to seem
interested, but not as obsessed as he actually was. Kris let the shadows hide
his faint smile, for he wasn't fooled a bit. But not
once did Kris let fall the information Dirk really wanted to know—and finally,
emboldened by the wine, he came out and asked for it. "Look,
Kris—you're the soul of chivalry, but we're blood-brothers, you can tell me
safely! Were you, or weren't you?" "Were
we what?" Kris asked innocently. "S-sleeping
together, you nit!" "Yes,"
Kris answered forthrightly. "What did you expect? We're neither one of us
made of ice." He figured that it was far better for Dirk to hear the
truth—and to hear it in such a way that he took it for the matter-of-fact thing
that it was. Talia and Dirk were probably tied neck-and-neck for the position
of his "best friend." And that was all he and Talia meant to each
other. He could 38 Mercedes
Lackey no more
conceive of being in love with her than with the close friend he now faced. He
watched Dirk covertly, weighing his reaction. "I—I suppose it was sort of
inevitable—" "Inevitable—something more. Frankly, during that first
winter it was too blamed cold to sleep alone." He launched into the whole
tale of their blizzard-ordeal—with editing, He didn't dare reveal how Talia's
Gift had gotten out of control. Firstly, it wasn't anything Dirk needed to know
about. Secondly, he was fairly certain it was something that should be known by
as few as possible. Elcarth and Kyril, certainly—but he was pretty well certain
it just wouldn't be ethical to go around telling anyone else without Talia's
express permission. He
concluded the tale with a certain puzzlement; Dirk seemed to have suddenly gone
dumb, and very soon pled exhaustion and left for his own room. Oh,
Lord. Of all the damned situations to be in—his very best friend in the entire
world with his hooks quite firmly in the first woman Dirk had even wanted to
look at in years. It
wasn't fair. It wasn't any damned fair. No woman in her right mind was even
going to want to look at him with Kris around. And Kris— Kris—was
he in love with Talia? And if he were . . . Gods,
gods, they certainly belonged together. No,
dammit! Kris could have any female he wanted, Herald or no, without even
lifting a finger! By all the gods, Dirk was going to fight him for this one! Except
that he hadn't the faintest idea how to go about fighting for her. And—Kris was
like a brother, more than a brother. This wasn't any kind of fair to him— He lay
sleepless for hours that night, staring into the darkness, tossing and turning
restlessly, and cursing the nightjar that was apparently singing right outside
his window. By dawn he was no closer to sorting out his own feelings than he
had been when he threw himself down to rest. Two "Talia!" Elspeth
greeted Talia's appearance at breakfast with a squeal, and a hug that
threatened to squeeze the last bit of breath out of her. The last year and a
half had added inches to the young Heir's height; she stood a bit taller than
Talia now. Time had added a woman's curves to the wraithlike child as well.
Talia wondered, now that she'd seen Elspeth, if her mother truly realized how
much growing she'd done in the time Talia had been gone. The
wood-paneled common room was full of youngsters in student Grays, as most of
the instructors had eaten earlier. The bench-and-table-filled room buzzed with
sleepy murmuring, and smelled of bacon and porridge. Except for the fact that
she recognized few of the faces, and the fact that the room was completely
full, it all looked the same as it had when Talia was a student; she slid into
the warm, friendly atmosphere like a blade into a well-oiled sheath, and felt
as if she had never left. "Bright
Lady, catling, you're going to break all my ribs!" Talia protested,
returning the hug with interest. "I got your message from Keren—I take it
Skif did tell you I got in last night, didn't he? I rather expected to find you
on my doorstep." "I
had foal-watch last night." One of the duties imposed on the students was
to camp in Companion's Field around the time of a foaling, each taking the
watch in turn. Companions did not foal with the ease of horses, and if there
were complications, seconds could be precious in preserving the life or health
of mare and foal. 39 40 Mercedes
Lackey "Skif
told me you were here, and that he'd given you my screech for help—-so I knew I
didn't need to worry anymore, and I certainly didn't need to disturb your
sleep." "I
heard Cymry dropped. Who else?" "Zaleka."
Elspeth grinned at Talia's bewildered look of nonrecognition. "She Chose
Arven just after you left. He's twenty if he's a day, and when Jillian was here
during break between assignments—well, you know Jillian, she's as bad as
Destria. Seems her Companion was like-minded. We haven't half been giving Arven
a hard time over it! Zaleka hasn't dropped yet, but she's due any day." Talia
shook her head, and slipped an arm around the Heir's shoulders. "You
younglings! I don't know what the world's coming to these days—" Elspeth
gave a very unladylike snort, narrowed her enormous brown eyes, and tossed her
dark hair scornfully. "You don't cozen me! I've heard tales about you and
your year-mates that gave me gray hairs] Climbing in and out of windows at the
dead of night with not-so-ex-thieves! Spying on the Royal Nursemaid!" "Catling—"
Talia went cold sober. "Elspeth—I'm sorry about Hulda." She met
Elspeth's scrutiny squarely. Elspeth
grimaced bitterly at the name of the nursemaid who had very nearly managed to
turn her into a spoiled, unmanageable monster—and came close to eliminating any
chance of her being Chosen. "Why?
You caught her red-handed in conspiracy to keep me from ever getting to be
Heir," she replied with a mixture of amusement and resentment—the
amusement at Talia's reaction, the resentment reserved for Hulda. "Sit,
sit, sit! I'm hungry, and I refuse to have to crane my neck up to talk to
you." "You—you
aren't angry at me?" Talia asked, taking a seat beside Elspeth on the worn
wooden bench. "I wanted to tell you I was responsible for her being
dismissed, but, frankly, I never had the courage." Elspeth
smiled a little. "You didn't have the courage? Thank the Lady for that! I
was afraid you were perfect!" "Hardly,"
Talia replied dryly. ARROWS
FALL 41 "Well,
why not tell me your end of it now? I just got it secondhand from Mother and
Kyril." "Oh,
Lord—where do I begin?" "Mm—chronologically,
as you found it out." Elspeth seized a mug of fruit juice from a server
and plumped it down in front of her seatmate. "Right.
It really started for me when I tried to get to know you. Hulda kept blocking
me." "How?" "Carrying
you off for lessons, saying you were asleep, or studying, or whatever other
excuse she could come up with. Catling, I was only about fourteen, and a fairly
unaggressive fourteen at that; / wasn't about to challenge her! But it just
happened too consistently not to be on purpose. So I enlisted Skif." Elspeth
nodded. "Good choice. If there was anybody likely to find out anything, it
would be Skif. I know for a fact he still keeps his hand in—" "Oh?
How?" Elspeth
giggled. "Whenever he's in residence he leaves me sweets hidden in the
'secret' drawer of the desk in my room. With notes." "Oh,
Lord—you haven't told anybody, have you?" Elspeth
was indignant. "And give him away? Not a chance! Oh, I've told Mother in
case he ever gets caught— which isn't likely—but I swore her to secrecy
first." Talia
sighed in relief. "Thanks be to the Lady. If anybody other than Heralds
found out... " Elspeth
sobered. "I know. At worst he could be killed before a Guard knew he was a
Herald and it was a prank. Believe me, I know. Mother was rather amused— and
rather glad, I think. It can't hurt to have somebody with skills like that in
the Heralds. Anyway, you recruited Skif . . ." "Right;
he began sneaking around, and discovered that Hulda, rather than being the
subordinate as everyone thought, had taken over control of the nursery and your
education. She was drugging old Melidy, who was supposed to be your primary
nurse. Well, that seemed wrong to me, but it wasn't anything I could prove because
Melidy had been ill—she'd had a brainstorm. So I 42 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW®
FALL 43 had
Skif keep watching. That was when he discovered that Hulda was in the pay of
someone unknown—paid to ensure that you could never be Chosen, and thus, never
become Heir." "Bitch."
Elspeth's eyes were bright with anger. "I take it neither you nor he ever
saw who it was?" Talia
shook her head regretfully, and took a sip of fruit juice. "Never. He was
always masked, cloaked, and hooded. We told Jadus, Jadus told the Queen—and
Hulda vanished." "And
I only knew that I'd lost the one person at Court I was emotionally dependent
on. I'm not surprised you kept quiet." Elspeth passed Talia a clean plate.
"Oh, I might have gotten angry if you'd told me two or three years ago,
but not now." There
was a great deal of cold, undisguised anger in the Heir's young brown eyes.
"I still remember most of that time quite vividly." Talia
lost the last of her apprehension over the indignation in Elspeth's voice. "There's
more to it than just my being resentful, though," Elspeth continued,
"Looking back at it, Talia, I think that woman who called herself my
'nurse' would quite cheerfully have strangled me with her own hands if she
thought she could have profited and gotten away with it! Yes, and enjoyed every
minute of it!" "Oh,
come now—you weren't that much of a little monster!" "Here,
you'd better start eating or Mero'll throw fits at us when we get downstairs to
clean; he's fixed all your favorites." Elspeth took some of the platters
being passed from hand to hand, and heaped Talia's plate with crisp oatcakes
and honey, warm bacon, and stir-fried squash, totally oblivious to the
incongruity of the Heir to the Throne serving one who was technically an underling.
She had indeed come a long way from the Royal Brat who had been so very touchy
about her rank. "Talia, I lived with Hulda most of my waking hours. I know
for a fact she enjoyed frightening me. Hie bedtime stories she told me would
curl the hair of an adult, and I'd bet my life that she got positive pleasure
out of my shivers. And I can't
tell you why I feel this way, but I'm certain she was the most coldly
self-centered creature I've ever met; that nothing mattered to her except her
own well-being. She was very good at covering the fact, but—" "I
don't think I doubt you, catling. One of your Gifts is Mindspeech, after all,
and little children sometimes see things we adults miss." "You
adults? You weren't all that much older than me! You saw a fair amount
yourself, and you'd have seen more if you'd been able to spend more time with
me. She was turning me into a little copy of herself, when she wasn't trying to
scare me. Once she'd cut me off from everyone else so that there was no one to
turn to as a friend, she kept schooling me in how I shouldn't trust anyone but
her—and how I should fight for every scrap of royal privilege, stopping for no
one and nothing on the way. There's more, something that turned up after you
left. When they told me the truth, I got very curious." "Which
is why I call you 'catling'—" Talia interrupted with a grin, "—since
you're fully as curious as any cat." "Too
true. Curiosity sometimes pays, though; I started going through the things she
left, and doing a bit of discreet correspondence with my paternal
relatives." "Does
your mother know this?" Talia was a bit surprised. "It's
with her blessing. By the way, I get the feeling that Uncle-King Faramentha
likes me as much as he disliked my father. We've gotten into quite a cozy
little exchange of letters and family anecdotes. I like him, too—and it's
rather too bad we're so closely related; he's got a whole tribe of sons, and I
think anybody with a sense of humor like his would be rather nice to get to
know. . . ." Elspeth's voice trailed off wistfully, then she got back to
the subject at hand with a little shake of her head. "Anyway, now we're
not altogether certain that the Hulda who left Rethwellan is the same Hulda who
arrived here." "What?" "Oh,
it's so much fun to shock you. You look like somebody just hit you in the face
with a board!" 44 Mercedes
Lackey "Elspeth,
I may kill you myself if you don't get to the point! "All
right, I'll be good! It's rather late in the day to be checking on these things
now, but there was a span of about a month after Hulda left the Royal Nursery
in Rethwellan to come here where she just seems to have vanished. She wasn't
passed across the Border, and no one remembers her in the inns along the way.
Then— poof!—she's here, bag and baggage. Father wasn't among the living anymore
through his own stupid fault, and she had all the right papers and letters;
nobody thought to doubt that she was the 'Hulda' he'd sent for. Until now, that
is." "Bright
Lady!" Talia grew as cold as her breakfast, thinking about the multitude
of possibilities this opened up. Had the unknown "my lord" she and
Skif had seen her conspiring with brought her here? They had no way of knowing
if that one had been among those traitors uncovered and executed after Visa's
murder, for neither of them had ever seen his face. They thought he had been,
for there were no other stirrings of trouble after that, but he might only have
gone to ground for an interval. Had even "my lord" guessed that she
was not what she seemed? And where had she vanished to after she was unmasked?
No one had seen her leave; she had not passed the Border, at least by the roads
(and that was an echo of what Elspeth had just detailed), yet she was most
assuredly gone before anyone had a chance to detain her. And who—or what—had
given her warning that she had been uncovered? A danger that Talia had long
thought safely laid to rest had suddenly resurrected itself, the cockatrice
new-hatched from the dunghill. "Mero
is going to have my hide," Elspeth warned, and Talia started guiltily and
finished her meal. But she really couldn't have told what she was eating. "—and
that was the last incident," Kris finished. "The last couple of weeks
were nothing but routine; we finished up, Griffon relieved us, and we headed
home." He met
the measuring gazes of first Elcarth, then Kyril. Both of them were shocked
cold sober by his ARROW'S
FALL 45 revelation
of the way Talia's Gift had gone rogue—and why. They had evidently assumed this
interview was going to be a mere formality. Kris' tale had come as an
unpleasant surprise. "Why,"
Kyril asked, after a pause that was much too long for Kris' comfort,
"didn't you look for help when this first happened?" "Largely
because by the time I knew something was really wrong, we were snowed into that
Waystation, Senior." "He's
got you there, brother." Elcarth favored the silver-haired Seneschal's
Herald with a wry smile. "By
the time we got out, she was well on the way to having her problems
solved," Kris continued doggedly. "She had the basics, had them down
firmly. And once we got in with people again, we found that those rumors had
preceded us. At that point, I reckoned we'd do irreparable harm by leaving the
circuit to look for other help. We'd only have confirmed the rumor that there
was something wrong by doing so." "Hm.
A point," Kyril acknowledged. "And
at that point, I wasn't entirely certain that there was anyone capable of
training her." "Healers—"
Elcarth began. "Don't
have Empathy alone, nor do they use it exactly the way she does—the way she
must. She's actually used it offensively, as I told you. They rarely invoke the
use of it outside of Healing sessions; she is going to have to use it so
constantly it will be as much a part of her as her eyes and ears. At
least," Kris concluded with an embarrassed smile, "that's the way I
had it figured." "I
think that in this case you were right, young brother," Kyril replied
after long thought, during which time Kris had plenty of leisure to think about
all he'd said, and wonder if he'd managed to convince these two, the most
senior Heralds in the Circle. Kris
let out a breath he didn't even realize he'd been holding. "There
was this, too," he added. "At that point, letting out word that we,
and the Collegium, had failed to 46 Mercedes
Lackey properly'
train the new Queen's Own would have been devastating to everyone's
morale." "Bright
Goddess—you're right!" EIcarth exclaimed with consternation, his eyebrows
rising to meet his gray cap of hair. "For that to become well known would
be as damaging to the faith of Heralds as it would to that of nonHeralds. I
think, given the circumstances, you both deserve high marks. You, for your good
sense and discretion, and your internee for meeting and overcoming trials she
should never have had to face." "I
agree," Kyril seconded. "Now, if you'll excuse us, Elcarth and I will
endeavor to set such safeguards as to ensure this never happens again." With a
polite farewell, Kris thankfully fled their presence. In the
hour after breakfast, Talia covered a great deal of ground. She first left the
Herald's Collegium and crossed to the separate building that housed Healer's
Collegium and the House of Healing. The sun was up by now, though it hadn't
been when she'd gone to breakfast, and from the cloudless blue of the sky it
looked as if it were going to be another flawless spring day. Once within the
beige-brick walls, she sought out Healer Devan, to let him know of her return,
and to learn from him if there were any Herald-patients in the House of Healing
that needed her own special touch. She
found him in the still-room, carefully mixing some sort of decoction. She
entered very quietly, not wanting to break his concentration, but somehow he
knew she was there anyway. "Word
spreads quickly; I knew you'd gotten back last night," he said without
turning around. "And most welcome you are, too, Talia!" She
chuckled a little. "I should know better than to try and sneak up on
someone with the same Gift I have!" He set
his potion down on the table before him, stoppered it with care, and turned to
face her. As a smile reached and warmed his hazel eyes, he held out
brown-stained hands in greeting. ARROWS
FALL 47 "Your
aura, child, is unmistakable—and right glad I am to feel it again." She
took both his hands in her own, wrinkling her nose a little at the pungent
odors of the still-room. "I hope you're glad to see me for my own sake,
and not because you need me desperately," she replied. Much to
her relief, he assured her that there were no Heralds at all among his patients
at the moment. "Just
wait until the Midsummer storms South, or the pirate-raids West, though!"
he told her, his dark eyes rueful. "Rynee will have her Greens by winter;
she's got every intention of going back South to be stationed near her home.
You're back in good time; you'll be the only trained mind-Healer besides Patris
here when she leaves, and it's possible we may need you for patients other than
Heralds." Next
she returned to the Herald's Wing for an interview she had not been looking
forward to. She
knocked hesitantly on the door to Elcarth's office; and found that not only was
Elcarth there, but that the Seneschal's Herald was with the Dean. During
the next hour she reported, as dispassionately as she could, all that had
happened during her internship. She did not spare herself in the least,
admitting fully that she had concealed the fact that she was losing control over
her Gift; admitting that she did not confess the fact until forced to by Kris.
She told them what Kris had not; that she had nearly killed both of them, They
heard her out in complete silence until she had finished, and sat with her
hands clenched in her lap, waiting for their verdict on her. "What
have you concluded from all this?" Elcarth asked unexpectedly. "That—that
no one Herald can stand alone, not even the Queen's Own," she replied,
after thought. "Perhaps especially the Queen's Own. What I do reflects on
alt Heralds, and more so than any other just because I'm so much in the minds
of the people." "And
of the proper usage of your Gift?" Kyril asked. "I—I
don't really know, entirely," she admitted. "There 48 Mcrcedes
Lackey are
times when what I need to do is quite clear. But most of the time, it's so—so
nebulous. It's going to be pretty much a matter of weighing evils and
necessity, I guess." Elcarth
nodded. "If
I have time, I'll ask advice from the Circle before I do anything irrevocable.
But most of the time, I'm afraid I won't have that luxury. But if I make a
mistake . . . well, I'll accept the consequences, and try and make it
right." "Well,
Herald Talia," Elcarth said, black eyes bright with what Talia finally realized
was pride, "I think you're ready to get into harness." "Then—I
passed?" "What
did I tell you?" Kyril shook his head at his colleague. "I knew she
wouldn't believe it until she heard it from our lips." The iron-haired,
granite-faced Herald unbent enough to smile warmly at her. "Yes, Tafia,
you did very well; we're quite pleased with what you and Kris have told us. You
took a desperate situation that was not entirely of your own making, and turned
it around, by yourselves." "And
we're satisfied with what you told us just now," Elcarth added.
"You've managed to strike a decent balance in the ethics of having a Gift
like yours, I think. So now that you've had the sweet compliments, are you
ready for the bitter? There's a Council meeting shortly." "Yes,
sir," she replied. "I've been . . . warned." "About
more than just the meeting, I'll wager." "Senior,
that would be compromising my sources—" "Lord
and Lady!" Elcarth's sharp features twitched as he controlled his urge to
laugh. "She sounds like Talamir already!" Kyril
just shook his head ruefully. "That she does, brother. Well enough,
Talia—we'll see you there. You'd best be off; I imagine Selenay is wanting to
discuss a few things with you before the Council meeting itself." Talia
knew a dismissal when she heard one, and took her leave of both of them, with a
light foot to match her lightened heart. ARROWS
FALL 49 "Talia—"
Selenay forestalled all formality by embracing her Herald warmly. "—Bright
Lady, how I have missed you! Come in here where we can have a little
privacy." She
drew Talia into a granite-walled alcove holding a single polished wooden bench,
just off the corridor leading to the Council chamber. As usual, she was dressed
as any of her Heralds, with only the thin circlet of royal red-gold that rested
on her own golden hair proclaiming her rank. "Let
me get a good look at you. Havens, you look wonderful! But you've gotten so
thin—" "Having
to eat my own cooking," Talia replied, "that's all. I would have
tried to see you last night—" "You
wouldn't have found me," Selenay said, blue eyes dark with affection.
"I was closeted with the Lord Marshal, going over troop deployments on the
Border. By the time we were finished, I wouldn't have been willing to see my
resurrected father, I was that weary. All those damn maps! Besides, the first
night back from internship is always spent with your closest friends, it's
tradition! How else can you catch up on eighteen months of news?" "Eighteen
months of gossip, you mean." Talia grinned. "I understand Kris and I
caused a little ourselves." "From
your offhand manner can I deduce that my thoughts of a deathless romance are in
vain?" Her eyes danced with amusement and she pouted in feigned
disappointment. Talia
shook her head in mock exasperation. "You, too? Bright Havens, is everyone
in the Collegium determined to have us mated, whether we will or no?" "The
sole exceptions are Kyril, Elcarth, Skif, Keren, and—of all people—Alberich.
They all swore that if you ever lost your heart, it wouldn't be to Kris' pretty
face." "They
. . . could be right." Selenay
noted her Herald's faintly troubled expression, and deemed it prudent to change
the subject. "Well, I'm more than happy to have you at my side again, and
I could have used you for the past two months." 50 Mercedes
Lackey "Two
months? Is it anything to do with what Elspeth sent Skif out to us for?" "Did
she? That minx! Probably—she hasn't been any more pleased over the Council's
actions than I have. I've gotten an offer for Elspeth's hand, from a source
that is going to be very difficult for me to refuse." "Say
on." Selenay
settled back on the bench, absently caressing the arm of it with one hand.
"We received an envoy from King Alessandar two months ago, a formal
request that I consider wedding Elspeth to his Ancar. There's a great deal to
be said for the match; Ancar is about Kris' age, not too great a discrepancy as
royal marriages go; he's said to be quite handsome. This would mean the
eventual joining of our Kingdoms, and Alessandar has a strong and well-trained
army, much larger than our own. I'd be able to spread the Heralds into his
realm, and his army would make Karse think twice about ever invading us again.
Three quarters of the Councillors are for it unconditionally, the rest favor
the idea, but aren't trying to shove it down my throat like the others
are." "Well,"
Talia replied slowly, twisting the ring Kris had given her, "you wouldn't
be hesitating over it if you didn't feel there was something wrong. What is
it?" "Firstly,
unless I absolutely have to, I don't want Elspeth sacrificed in a marriage of
state. Frankly, I'd rather see her live unwedded and have the throne go to a
collateral line than have her making anything but a match that is at least
based on mutual respect and liking." Selenay played with a lock of hair,
twisting it around one of her long, graceful fingers, thereby betraying her
anxiety. "Secondly, she's very young yet; I'm going to insist she finish
her training before making a decision. Thirdly, I haven't seen Ancar since he
was a babe in arms; I have no idea what kind of a man he's grown into, and I
want to know that before I even begin to seriously consider the match. To tell
the truth, I'm hoping for her to have a love-match, and that with someone who
is at least Chosen if not a Herald. I saw for myself the kind of problems that
can come when the Queen's consort is not co-ruler, yet has been trained to the
idea of rule. And you know very ARROWS
FALL 51 well
that Elspeth's husband will not share the Throne unless he, too, is
Chosen." "Good
points, all of them—but you have more than that troubling you." Talia had
fallen into reading the Queen's state of mind as easily as if she'd never been
away. "Now
I know why I've missed you! You always manage to ask the question that puts
everything into perspective!" Selenay smiled again, with delight.
"Yes, I do, but it wasn't the kind of thing I wanted to confess to the
Council, or even to Kyril, bless his heart. They'd put it down to a silly
woman's maunderings and mutter about moon-days. What's bothering me is this:
it's too pat, this offer; it's too perfect. Too much like the answer to
everyone's prayers. I keep looking for the trap beneath the bait, and wondering
why I can't see it. Perhaps I'm so in the habit of suspicion that I can't trust
even what I know to be honest." "No,
I don't think that's it." Talia pursed her lips thoughtfully. "There
is something out of kilter, or you wouldn't be so uneasy. You've Mindspeech and
a touch of Foreseeing, right? I suspect that you're getting foggy Foresight
that something isn't quite right about the idea, and your uneasiness is being
caused by having to fight the Council with no real reasons to give them." "Bless
you—that's exactly what it must be! I've been feeling for the past two months
as if I were trying to bail a leaky boat with my bare hands!" "So
use Elspeth's youth and the fact that she has to finish her training as an
excuse to stall for a while. I'll back you; when Kyril and Elcarth see that I'm
backing you, they'll follow my lead," Talia said with more confidence than
she actually felt. "Remember, I have a full vote in the Council now.
Between the two of us we have the power to veto even the vote of the full
Council. All it takes is the Monarch and Queen's Own to overturn a Council
vote. I'll admit it isn't politic to do so, but I'll do it if I have to." Selenay
sighed with relief. "How have I ever managed all these years without
you?" "Very
well, thank you. If I hadn't been here, I expect 52 Mercedes
Lackey you'd
have managed to stall them somehow—even if you had to resort to Devan
physicking Elspeth into a phony fever to gain time! Now, isn't it time to make
our entrance?" "Indeed
it is." Selenay smiled, with just a hint of maliciousness. "And this
is a moment I have long waited for! There are going to be some cases of chagrin
when certain folk realize you are Queen's Own in truth, vote and all, and that
the full Council will be in session from now on!" They
rose together and entered the huge, brass-mounted double doors of the Council
chamber. The
other members of the Council had assembled at the table; they stood as one as
the Queen entered the room, with Talia in her proper position as Queen's Own,
one step behind her and slightly to her right. The
Council Chamber was not a large room, and had only the horseshoe Council table
and the chairs surrounding it as furnishings, all of a dark wood that age and
much handling had turned nearly black. Like the rest of the Palace, it was
paneled only halfway in wood; the rest of the room, from about chin-height to
the ceiling, being the gray stone of the original Palace-keep. A downscaled
version of Selenay's throne was placed at the exact center of the Council
table, behind it was the fireplace, and over the fireplace, the arms of the
Monarch of Valdemar; a winged, white horse with broken chains about its throat.
On the wall over the door, the wall that her throne faced, was an enormous map
of Valdemar inscribed on heavy linen and kept constantly up-to-date; it was so
large that any member of the Council could read the lettering from his or her
seat. The work was exquisite, every road and tiny village carefully delineated.
The chair to the immediate right of the Queen's was Talia's; to the immediate
left was the Seneschal's. To the left of the Seneschal sat Kyril, to Talia's
right, the Lord Marshal. The rest of the Councillors took whatever seat they
chose, without regard for rank. Talia
had never actually used her seat until this moment; by tradition it had to
remain vacant until she completed her training and was a full Herald. She had ARROW'S
FALL 53 been
seated with the rest of the Councillors and had done nothing except voice an
occasional opinion when asked, and give her observations to Selenay when the
meetings were over. While her new position brought her considerable power, it
also carried considerable responsibility. The
Councillors remained standing, some with visible surprise on their faces;
evidently word of her return had not spread as quickly through the Court as it
had through the Collegium. Selenay took her place before her chair, as did
Talia. The Queen inclined her head slightly to either side, then sat, with
Talia sitting a fraction of a second later. The Councillors took their own
seats when the Queen and Queen's Own were in their places. "I
should like to open this meeting with a discussion of the marriage envoy from
Alessandar," Selenay said quietly, to the open surprise of several of her
Councillors. Talia nodded to herself; by taking the initiative, Selenay started
the entire proceedings with herself on the high ground. One by
one each of those seated at the table voiced their own opinions; as Selenay had
told Talia, they were uniformly in favor of it, most desiring that the match be
made immediately. Talia
began taking stock of the Councillors, watching them with an intensity she had
never felt before. She wanted to evaluate them without using her Gift, only her
eyes and ears. First
was Lord Gartheser, who spoke for the North— Orthallen's closest ally, without
a doubt. Thin, nervous, and balding, he punctuated his sentences with sharp
movements of his hands. Though he never actually looked directly at Orthallen,
Talia could tell by the way he oriented himself that his attention was so bound
on Orthallen that no one else made any impression on him at all. "There
can be no doubt," Gartheser said in a rather thin and reedy voice,
"that this betrothal would bring us an alliance so strong that no one
would ever dare dream of attacking us again. With Alessandar's army ready to
spring to our rescue, not even Karse would care to trifle 54 Mercedes
Lackey with
us. I venture to predict that even the Border raids would cease, and our
Borders would be truly secure for the first time in generations." Orthallen
nodded, so slightly that Talia would not have noticed the motion if she had not
been watching him. And she wasn't the only one who caught that faint sign of
approval. Gartheser had been watching for it, too. Talia saw him nod and smile
slightly in response. Elcarth
and Kyril were next; Elcarth perched on the edge of his chair and looking like
nothing so much as a gray snow-wren, and Kyril as nearly motionless as an
equally gray granite statue. "I
can see no strong objections," Elcarth said, his head slightly to one
side, "But the Heir must be allowed to finish her training and her
internship before any such alliance is consummated." "And
Prince Ancar must be of a suitable temperament," Kyril added smoothly.
"This Kingdom—forgive me, Highness—this Kingdom has had the bitter
experience of having a consort who was not suitable. I, for one, have no wish
to live through another such experience." Lady
Wyrist spoke next, who stood for the East; another of Orthallen's supporters.
This plump, fair-haired woman had been a great beauty in her time, and still
retained charm and magnetism. "I
am totally in favor—and I do not think this is the time to dally! Let the
betrothal be as soon as possible— the wedding, even! Training can wait until
after alliances are irrevocable." She glared at Eicarth and Kyril.
"It's my Border the Karsites come rampaging over whenever they choose. My
people have little enough, and the Karsites regularly reive away what little
they have! But it is also my Border that would be open to new trade with our
two Kingdoms firmly united, and I can see nothing to find fault with." White-haired,
snowy-bearded Father Aldon, the Lord Patriarch, spoke up wistfully. "As my
Lady has said, this alliance promises peace, a peace such as we have not
enjoyed for far too long. Karse would be forced to sue for a lasting peace,
faced with unity all along two of its borders. Renewing our long friendship
with Hardorn can ARROWS
FALL 55 only
bring a truer peace than we have ever known. Though the Heir is young, many of
our ladies have wedded younger still—" "Indeed."
Bard Hyron, so fair-haired that his flowing locks were nearly white, was
speaker for the Bardic Circle. He echoed Father Aldon's sentiments. "It is
a small sacrifice for the young woman to make, in the interests of how much we
would gain." Talia
noted dubiously that his pale gray eyes practically glowed silver when
Orthallen nodded approvingly. The
thin and angular Healer My rim, spokeswoman for her Circle, was not so
enthralled. To Talia's relief she actually seemed mildly annoyed by Hyron's
hero worship; and something about Orthallen seemed to be setting her ever so
slightly on edge. "You all forget something—though the child has been
Chosen, she is not yet a Herald, and the law states clearly that the Monarch
must be a Herald, There has never b^een a reason strong enough to overturn that
law before, and I fail to see the need to set such a dangerous precedent
now!" "Exactly,"
Kyril murmured. "The
child is just that; a child. Not ready to rule by any stretch of the
imagination, with much to learn before she is. Nevertheless, I am—cautiously—in
favor of the betrothal. But only if the Heir remains at the Collegium until
after her full training is complete." Somewhat
to Talia's surprise, Lord Marshal Randon shared Myrim's mild dislike of
Orthallen. Talia wondered, as she listened to that scarred and craggy warrior
measuring out his words with the care and deliberation of a merchant measuring
out grain, what could have happened while she'd been gone to so change him. For
when she'd last sat at the Council board, Randon had been one of Orthallen's foremost
supporters. Now, however, though he favored the betrothal, he stroked his dark
beard with something like concealed annoyance, as if it galled him, having to
agree with Orthallen's party. Horselike
Lady Kester, speaker for the West, was short and to the point. "I'm for
it," she said, and sat herself down. Plump and soft-spoken Lord Gildas for
the South was equally brief. 56 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 57 "I
can see nothing to cause any problems," said Lady Cathan of the Guilds
quietly. She was a quiet, gray, dovelike woman, of an outer softness that
masked a stubborn inner core. "And much that would benefit every member of
the Kingdom." "That,
I think, is a good summation," Lord Palinor, the Seneschal, concluded.
"You know my feelings on the matter. Majesty?" The
Queen had held her peace, remaining calm and thoughtful, but totally
noncommittal, until everyone had spoken except herself and her Herald. Now she
leaned forward slightly, and addressed them, a hint of command tingeing her
voice. "I
have heard you all; you each favor the match, and all of your reasons are good
ones. You even urge me to agree to the wedding and see it consummated within
the next few months. Very well; I can agree with every one of your arguments,
and I am more than willing to return Alessandar's envoy with word that we will
be considering his offer with all due gravity. But one thing I cannot and will
not do—I will never agree to anything that will interrupt Elspeth's training.
That, above all other considerations, must be continued! Lady forbid it, but
should 1 die, we cannot risk the throne of Valdemar in the keeping of an
untrained Monarch! Therefore I will do no more than indicate to Alessandar that
his suit is welcome— and inform him in no uncertain terms that serious
negotiations cannot begin until the Heir has passed her internship." "Majesty!"
Gartheser jumped to his feet as several more Councillors started speaking at
once; one or two growing angry. Talia stood then, and rapped the table, and the
babble ceased. The argumentive ones stared at her as though they had forgotten
her presence. "My
lords, my ladies—forgive me, but any arguments you may have are moot. My vote
goes with the Queen's decision. I have so advised her." It was
fairly evident from their dumbfounded expressions that they had forgotten that
Talia now carried voting rights. If the situation had not been so serious,
Talia would have derived a great deal of amusement from some of
the dumbfounded expressions—Orthallen's in particular. "If
that is the advice of the Quoen's Own, then my vote must follow," Kyril
said quickly, although Talia could almost hear him wondering if she really knew
what she was doing. "And
mine," Elcarth seconded, looking and sounding much more confident of
Talia's judgment than Kyril. There
was silence then, a silence so deep one could almost hear the dust motes that
danced in the light from the clerestory windows falling to the floor. "It
seems," said Lord Gartheser, the apparent leader of those dissenting,
"that we are outvoted." Faint
grumbling followed his words. At the
farthest end of the table, a white-haired lord rose; the faint grumbling
ceased. This gentleman was the one Talia had been watching so closely, and the
only one who had not spoken. Orthallen; Lord of Wyvern's Reach, and Kris'
uncle. He was the most senior Councillor, for he had served Selenay's father.
He had served Selenay as well, throughout her entire reign. Selenay often
called him "Lord Uncle," and he had been something of a father-figure
to Elspeth. He was highly regarded and respected. But
Talia had never been able to warm to him. Part of the reason was because of
what he had attempted to do to Skif. While he did not have the authority to
remove any Chosen from the Collegium, he had tried to have the boy sent away
for two years' punishment duty with the Army. His ostensible reason was the
number of infractions of the Collegium rules Skif had managed to acquire,
culminating with catching him red-handed in the office of the Provost-Marshal
late one night. Orthallen had claimed Skif was there to alter the Misdemeanor
Book. Talia, who had asked him to go there, was the only one who knew he had
broken into the office to investigate Hulda's records. He was going to try to
see who, exactly, had sponsored her into the Kingdom, in an attempt to ferret
out the identity of her co-conspirator. Talia
had saved her friend at the cost of a lie, saying that she had asked him to
find out whether her Holderkin 58 Mercedes
Lackey relatives
were claiming the Privilege Tax allowed those who had produced a child Chosen, Since
that time she had been subtly, but constantly, at loggerheads with Orthallen;
when she first began sitting on the Council it seemed as if he had constantly
moved to negate what little authority she had. He had openly belittled so many
of her observations (on the grounds of her youth and inexperience) that she had
very seldom spoken up when he was present. He always seemed to her to be just a
little too careful and controlled. When he smiled, when he frowned, the
expression never seemed to go any deeper than the skin. At
first she had chided herself for her negative reaction to him, putting it down
to her irrational fear of males; handsome males in particular, for even though
past his prime, he was a strikingly handsome man—there was no doubt which side
of Kris' family had blessed him with his own angelic face. And there was no sin
in being a trifle cold, emotionally speaking, yet for some reason, she was
always reminded of the wyvern that formed his crest when she saw him. Like the
wyvern, he seemed to her to be thin-blooded, calculating, and quite ruthless—
and hiding it all beneath an attractively bejewefed skin. But
there was more to her mistrust of him now—because she had more than one reason
to suspect that he was the source of those rumors about her misusing her Gift,
and she was certain that he had started them because he knew how such vile
rumors would affect an Empath who was well-known to have a low sense of
self-esteem. She was equally certain that he had deliberately planted doubts in
Kris' mind—knowing that she would feel those doubts and respond. But
this time she had cause to be grateful to him; when Orthallen spoke, the rest
of the Councillors paid heed, and he spoke now in favor of the Queen's
decision. "My
lords, my ladies—the Queen is entirely correct," he said, surprising Talia
somewhat, for he had been one of those most in favor of marrying Elspeth off
with no further ado. "We have only one Heir, and no other candidates in
the direct line. We should not take such a risk. The Heir must be trained; I
see the wisdom of that, ARROWS
FALL 59 now. I
withdraw my earlier plea for an immediate betrothal. Alessandar is a wise
monarch, and will surely be more than willing to make preliminary agreements on
the strength of a betrothal promised for the future. In such ways, we shall
have all the benefits of both plans." Talia
was not the only member of the Council surprised by Orthallen's apparent
about-face. Hyron stared as if he could not believe what he had heard. The
members of his faction and those opposed to him seemed equally taken aback. The
result of this speech was the somewhat reluctant— though unanimous—vote of the
Council to deal with the envoy just as Selenay had outlined. The vote was,
frankly, u'ttle more than a gesture, since together Selenay and Talia could
overrule the entire Council. But though the unanimous backing of her stance
gave Selenay a position of strong moral advantage, Talia wondered what private
conversations would be taking place when the Council session concluded—and who
would be involved. The
remaining items on the Council's agenda were routine and mundane; rescinding
tax for several villages hard hit by spring floods, the deployment and
provisioning of extra troops at Lake Evendim in the hope of making life
difficult enough this year that the pirates and raiders would decide to turn to
easier prey, the fining of a merchant-clan that had been involved in the
slave-trade. The arguments about just how many troops should be moved to Lake
Evendim and who would fund the deployment went on for hours. The Lord Marshal
and Lady Kester (who ruled the district of the fisherfolk of the lake) were
unyielding in their demands for the extra troops; Lord Gildas and Lady Cathan,
whose rich grainlands and merchant-guilds would supply the taxes for the
primary support of the effort, were frantic in then-attempts to cut down the
numbers. Talia's
sympathy lay with the fisherfolk, yet she could find it in her heart to feel
for those who were being asked to delve into their pockets for the pay and
provisioning of extra troops who would mostly remain idle. It seemed that there
was no way to compromise, and that the 60 Mercedes
Lackey arguments
would continue with no conclusion. That would be no solution for the
fisherfolk, either! Finally,
as the Lord Marshal thundered out figures concerning the numbers needed to keep
watch aiong the winding coastlines, a glimmering of an idea came to her. "Forgive
me," she spoke into one of the sullen silences "I know little of
warfare, but I know something of the fisherfolk. Only the young, healthy, and
whole go out on the boats in season; unless my memory is incorrect, the old,
the very young, pregnant women, those minding the young children for the rest
of the family, and the crippled remain in the temporary work-villages. Am I
right?" "Aye—and
that's what makes these people so damned hard to defend!" the Lord Marshal
growled. "There isn't a one left behind with the ability to take
arms!" "Well,
according to your figures, a good third of your troopers would be spending all
their time on coastwatch. Since you're going to have to be feeding that many
people anyway, why not provision the dependents instead, and have them doing
the watching? Once they're freed from having to see to their day-to-day food
supplies, they'll have the time for it, and what does a watcher need besides a
pair of good eyes and the means to set an alert?" "You
mean use children as coastwatchers?" Gartheser exclaimed.
"That—that's plainly daft!" "Just
you wait one moment, Gartheser," Myrim interjected. "I fail to see
what's daft about it. It seems rare good sense to me." "But—how
are they to defend themselves?" "Against
what? Who's going to see them? They'll be hidden, man, in blinds, the way
coastwatchers are always hidden. And I see the girl's drift. Puttin' them up
would let us cut down the deployment by a third, just as Gildas and Cathan
want," Lady Kester exclaimed, looking up like an old gray warhorse hearing
the bugles. "Ye'd still have to provision the full number, though, ye old
tightfists!" "But
they'd not have to pay 'em," one of the others chuckled. "But—children?"
Hyron said doubtfully. "How can ARROWS
FALL 61 we put
children in that kind of vital position? What's to keep them from running off
to play?" "Border
children are not very childlike," Talia said quietly, looking to Kester,
and the Speaker for the West nodded emphatic agreement. "Silverhair,
lad, the only thing keepin' these children off the boats is size," Kester
snorted, though not unkindly. "They're not your soft highborns; they've
been working since their hands were big enough to knot a net." "Aye,
I must agree." Lady Wyrist entered this argument for the first time.
"I suspect your fisherfolk are not unlike my Holderkin—as Herald Talia can
attest, Border-bred children have little time for childish pursuits." "All
the more chance that they'll run off, then," Hyron insisted. "Not
when they've seen whole families burned out by the selfsame pirates they're
supposed to be watching for," said Myrim. "I served out there. I'd
trust the sense of any of those 'children' before I'd trust the sense of some
highborn graybeards I could name." "Well
said, lady!" Kester applauded, and turned sharp eyes on the Lord Marshal.
"Tell ye what else, ye old wardog—an ye can persuade these troopers of
yours to turn to and lend a hand to a bit of honest work now and again—" "Such
as?" The Lord Marshal almost cracked a smile. "Taking the landwork;
drying the fish and the sponge, mending the nets and lines, packing and
crating, readying the longhouses for winter." "It might be possible;
what were you planning to offer?" "War-pay; with the landwork off my
people's hands, and knowing their folk on land are safe, we should be able to
cover the extra bonus ourselves, and Mill bring in a proper profit." "With
careful phrasing, I think I could manage it." "Done, then. How say
you, Cathan, Gildas?" They were only too happy to agree. The Council
adjourned on this most positive note. Selenay and Talia stood as one, and
preceded the rest out; Kyril a pace behind them. 62 Mercedes
Lackey "You
have been learning, haven't you?" Kyril said in Talia's ear. "Me?" "Yes,
you; and don't play the innocent," Elcarth joined his colleague as they
stood in a white-clad knot outside the Council Chamber door, waiting for
Selenay to finish conferring with the Seneschal on the agenda for the
afternoon's audiences. He pushed a lock of gray hair out of his eyes and
smiled. "That was cleverly done, getting the Border Lords on your
side." "It
was the only way to get a compromise going. Cathan and Gildas would have agreed
to anything that saved them money. With the Borderers and those two, we had a
majority, and everybody benefited." Talia smiled back. "It was just a
matter of invoking Borderer pride, really; we're proud of how tough we are,
even as littles." "Lovely.
Truly lovely." Selenay joined them. "AU those sessions of dealing
with hardheaded Borderers in the middle of feuds taught you more than a little!
Now tell me this; what would you have done if you hadn't absorbed all that
fisherfolk lore from Keren, Teren, and Sherrill? Sat dumb?" "I
don't think so, not when it was obvious that there'd never be agreement."
Talia thought for a moment. "I think ... if one of you hadn't done so
first... I would have suggested an adjournment until we could dig up an expert
on the people of the area, preferably a Herald who has done several circuits
there." "Fine—that's
what I was about to do when you spoke up; we are beginning to think as a team.
Now I have a working lunch with Kyril and the Seneschal. I don't need you for
it, so you can go find something to gulp down at the Collegium. At one I have
formal audiences, and you have to be there. Those will last about three hours;
you're free then until seven and Court dinner. After dinner, unless something
comes up, you're free again." "But
Alberich is expecting you at four—" Elcarth grinned at Talia's groan.
"—and Devan at five. Welcome home, Talia!" "Well,"
she said with a sigh, "It's better than shovel- ARROWSFALL 63 ing
snow, I guess! But I never thought I'd begin missing field work so soon!" "Missing
field work already?" Talia
turned to find Kris standing behind her, an insolent grin on his face. "I
thought you told me you'd never miss field work!" She
grinned back. "I lied." "No!"
He feigned shock. "Well, what of the Council meeting?" She
wanted to tell him everything—then suddenly, remembered who he was—who his
uncle was. Anything she told him would quite likely get back to Orthallen, and
Kris would be telling Orthallen in all innocence, never dreaming he was handing
the man weapons to use against her by doing so. "Oh—nothing
much," she said reluctantly. "The betrothal's being held off until
Elspeth's finished training. Look, Kris, I'm sorry, but I'm rather short on
time right now. I'll tell you later, all right?" And she
fled before he could ask anything more. Lunch
was a few bites snatched on the run between the Palace and her room; audiences
required a slightly more formal uniform than the one she'd worn to the Council
session. Talia managed to wash, change, and get back in time to discuss the
scheduled audiences with the Seneschal. Talia's role here was as much bodyguard
as anything else, although her duties included assessing the emotional state of
those coming before the Queen and giving her any information that seemed
appropriate. The
audience chamber was long and narrow; the same gray granite and dark wood as
the rest of the old Palace. Selenay's throne was on a raised platform at the
far end. Behind the throne the wall had been carved into the Royal arms; there
were no curtains for assassins to hide behind. The Queen's Own spent the entire
time positioned behind the throne to the Queen's right, from which position the
Queen could hear her least whisper. Petitioners had to travel the length of the
chamber, giving Talia ample time to "read" their emotional state if
she thought it necessary to do so. 64 Mercedes
Lackey The
audiences were quite unexciting; petitioners ranged from a smallholder seeking
permission to establish a Dyer's Guildhouse on his property to two noblemen who
had called challenge on each other and were now trying desperately to find a
way out of the situation without either of them losing face. Not once did she
deem the situation grave enough to warrant "reading" any of them. When
the audience session concluded, Talia sprinted back to her room to change into
something old and worn for her weapons drill with Alberich. Walking
into the salle was like walking into the past; nothing had changed, not the
worn, backless benches against the wall, not the clutter of equipment and
towels on and beneath the benches, not the light coming from the windows. Not
even Alberich had changed so much as a hair; he still wore the same old
leathers, or clothing like enough to have been the same. His scar-seamed face
still looked as incapable of humor as the walls of the Palace; his long black
hair held neither more nor less gray than it had the last time Talia had seen
him. Elspeth
was already there, going full out against Jeri under Alberich's critical eye.
Talia held her breath in surprise; Elspeth was, (to her judgment, at least)
Jen's equal. The young weapons instructor was not holding anything back, and
more than once only saved herself from a "kill" by frantically
wrenching her body out of the way of the wooden blade. Both of them were sodden
with sweat when Alberich finally called a halt. "You
do well, children; both of you," Alberich nodded as he spoke. Both Elspeth
and Jeri began walking slowly in little circles to keep their muscles from
stiffening, while drying their faces with old towels. "Jeri, it is more
work you need on your defense; working with the students has made you sloppy.
Elspeth, if it was that you were not far busier than any student should be, I
would make you Jeri's assistant." Elspeth
raised her head, and Talia could see she was flushed with the praise, her eyes
glowing. "However,
you are very far from perfect. Your left side is too weak and you are
vulnerable there. From now on you are to work left-handed, using your right
only ARROWS
FALL 65 when I
tell you, to keep from losing your edge. Enough for today, off to the bath with
you—it is like your Companions you smell!" He
turned to Talia, who bit her lip, then said, "I have the feeling I'm in
trouble." "In
trouble? It is possible—" Alberich scowled; then unexpectedly smiled.
"No fear, little Talia; it is that I am well aware how few were the
chances for you to keep in practice. Today we will start slowly, and I will
determine just how much you have lost. Tomorrow you will be in trouble." Talia
was thanking the gods an hour later that Kris had insisted they both keep in
fighting trim as much as possible, Alberich was reasonably pleased that she had
lost so tittle edge, and kept his cutting remarks to a minimum. Nor was she the
recipient of more than one or two bruising thwacks from his practice blade when
she'd done something exceptionally stupid. On the whole, she felt as if she'd
gotten off very lightly. Another
run, this time to wash and change yet again, and she was back at Healer's
Collegium, going over the past eighteen months with Devan and Rynee. Both were
blessedly succinct; there had not been any truly major mental traumas for Rynee
to deal with among the Heraldic Circle. As a result, Talia was able to flee to
Companion's Field just as the warning bell for supper sounded at the Herald's
Collegium. Rolan
was waiting at the fence, and she pulled herself onto his back without
bothering with going for a saddle, "I
think," she told him, as he walked off into a quiet copse, "that I
may die of exhaustion. This is worse than when I was a student." He
lipped her booted foot affectionately; Talia picked up a projection of
reassurance and something to do with time. "You
think I'll get used to it in a few days? Lord, I hope so! Still—" She
thought hard, trying to remember just what the Queen's schedule was like.
"Hm. Council sessions aren't more than three times a week. Audiences,
though, they're every day. Alberich will torture me every 66 Mercedes
Lackey day,
too. But I could reschedule, say, Devan before breakfast and just after
lunch—save weapons drill for just before dinner, so I'm only changing twice a
day. You, my darling, whenever I can squeeze a free moment." Rolan
made a sound very like laughing. "True,
with the tight bond we have, I don't have to be with you physically, do I? What
did you think of the audiences?" To
Talia's delight, he hung his head and did a credible imitation of a human
snore. "You,
too? Lord and Lady, they're as bad as State banquets! Why did I ever think
being a Herald would be exciting?" Rolan
snorted, and projected the memory of their flight across country to get help
for the plague-stricken village of Waymeet, following that with the fight with
the raiders that had attacked and fired Hevenbeck. "You're
right; I think I can live with boredom. What do you think of how Elspeth's
coming along?" To her
surprise, Rolan was faintly worried, but could give her no clear idea why he
felt that way. "Is
it important enough to trance down to where you can give me a clearer
idea?" He
shook his head, mane brushing her face a little. "Well,
in that case, we'll let it go. It's probably just the usual rebelliousness—and
I can't say as I blame her. Her schedule is as bad as mine. / don't like it,
and I can't fault her if she doesn't either." Talia
dismounted beside a tiny, spring-fed poof, and sat in the grass, watching the
sun set, and emptying her mind. Rolan stood beside her, both of them content
with a quiet moment in which to simply be together. "Well,
I'm into it at last," she said, half to herself. "I thought I'd never
make it, sometimes. . . ." This
had been the first day she had truly been Queen's Own—with all the duties and
all the rights; from the right to overrule the Council to the right to overrule
Selenay (though that was one she hadn't exercised, and still wasn't sure she
had the nerve for!); from her duty to ease the fears of her fellows in the
Circle to the duty to see to the Heir's well-being. ARROWS
FALL 67 It was
a frightening moment in a way, and a sobering one. On reflection, it almost
seemed as if the Queen's Own best served the interests of Queen and country by
not being too forward; by saving her votes for the truly critical issues and
keeping her influence mostly to the quiet word in the Queen's ear. That suited
Talia; she hadn't much enjoyed having all eyes on her this afternoon—especially
not Orthallen's. But Selenay had been more at ease just because Talia was
there; there had been no mistaking that. In the long run, that was what the job
was all about—giving the Monarch one completely honest and completely
trustworthy friend. . . . The
dying sun splashed scarlet and gold on the bottoms of the few clouds that hung
in the west, while the sky above them deepened from blue to purple, and the
Hounds, the two stars that chased the sun, shone in unwinking splendor. The
tops of the clouds took on the purple of the sky as the sun dropped below the
horizon, and the purple tinge soaked through them like water being taken into a
sponge. The light faded, and everything began to lose color, fading into cool
blues. Little frogs began to sing in the pool at Talia's feet; night-blooming
jacinth flowers opened somewhere near her, and the cooling breeze picked up the
perfume and carried it to her. And
just when she was feeling totally disinclined to move, a mosquito bit her. "Ouch!
Damn!" She slapped at the offending insect, then laughed. "The gods
remind me of my duty. Back to work for me, love. Enjoy your evening." Three As if
that tiny insect bite had been an omen, things began to go wrong, starting with
the weather. The
perfect spring turned sour; it seemed to rain every day without a letup, and
the rain was cold and steadily dismal. The sun, when Talia actually saw it,
gave a chill, washed-out light. Miserable, that was what it was; miserable and
depressing. The few flowers that managed to bloom seemed dispirited, and hung
limply on their stems. The damp crept into everything, and fires on the hearths
all day and all night did tittle to drive it out. The whole Kingdom was
affected; there were new tales reaching the Court every day of flooding,
sometimes in areas that hadn't flooded in a hundred years or more. This
was bound to have an effect on the Councillors. They worked like heroes at all
hours to cope with emergencies, but the grim atmosphere made them quarrelsome
and inclined to snipe at each other at the least opportunity. Every Council
session meant at least one major fight and two ruffled tempers to be soothed.
The names they called each other would have been ample cause for dueling
anywhere else. At
least they treated Talia with that same lack of respect—she came in for her
share of sniping, and that was a positive sign, that she had been accepted as
one of them, and their equal. The
sniping-among-equals was something she could cope with, though it was
increasingly difficult to keep her temper when everyone around her was losing
theirs. Far harder to deal with in any rational way were Orthallen's 69 70 Mercedes
Lackey subtle
attempts at undercutting her authority. Clever, those attempts were;
frighteningly clever. He never said anything that anyone could directly
construe as criticism; no, what he did was hint—oh, so politely, and at every
possible opportunity—that perhaps she was a bit young and inexperienced for her
post. That she might be going overboard because of the tendency of youth to see
things always in black and white. That she surely meant well, but. . . and so
on. It made Talia want to scream and bite something. There was no way to
counteract him except to be even more reasonable and mild-tempered than he. She
felt as if she were standing on sand, and he was the flood tide washing it out
from under her. Things
were not going all that well between herself and Kris either. "Goddess,
Talia," Kris groaned, slumping back into his chair. "He's/usf doing
what he sees as his duty!" Talia
counted to ten, slowly, counted the Library bookshelves, then counted the rings
of the knothole in the table in front of her. "He was claiming / was
overreacting at the same time that Lady Kester was calling Hyron a pompous
peahrain at the top of her lungs!" "Well—" "Kris,
he's said the same damn things every Council session and at least three times
during each session! Every time it looks as if the other Councillors are
beginning to listen to what I'm saying, he trots out the same speech!" She
shoved her chair away from the table, and began pacing restlessly, up and down
the length of the vacant Library. This had been a particularly bad session, and
the muscles of her neck felt as tight as bridge cables. "I
just can't see* anything at all sinister in my uncle's behavior—" "Dammit,
Kris—" "Talia
he's old, he's set in his ways—you're frighteningly young to him, and likely to
usurp his position! Have some pity on the man, he's only human!" "So
what am I?" She struggled not to shout, but the argument was giving her a
headache. "I'm supposed to like what he's doing?" ARROW*
FALL 71 "He's
not doing anything!" Kris scowled, as if he had a headache, too.
"Frankly, I think you're hearing insult and seeing peril that isn't there." Talia
turned abruptly, and stared at him, tight-lipped, fists clenched. "In that
case," she replied, after a dozen slow, careful breaths of dust-laden air,
"maybe I should take my irrational fantasies elsewhere." "But—" She
turned again and all but ran down the staircase. He called something after her,
in a distressed voice. She ignored it, and ran on. So now
they didn't talk about much of anything anymore. And Talia missed that; missed
the closeness they used to have, the way they used to be able to confide their
deepest secrets to each other. Truth to be told, she missed that more than the
physical side of their relationship—though now that she was no longer used to
being celibate she missed that, too. . . . Then
there was her relationship—or more accurately, lack of one—with Dirk. His
behavior was baffling in the extreme; one moment he would seem determined to
get her alone somewhere, the next, he shied away from even being in the same
room. He would be lurking in the background everywhere she went for a day or
two, then just as abruptly would vanish, only to reappear in a few days. Half
the time he seemed determined to throw Kris at her, the other half, equally
determined to block Kris from getting anywhere near her— Talia
saw her elusive quarry leaning on the fence surrounding Companion's Field. He
was staring, broodingly, off into the far distance. For a wonder, it wasn't
raining, although the sky was a dead, dull gray and threatening to pour any
moment. "Dirk?" He
jumped, whipped about, and stared at her with wide, startled eyes. "W-what
are you doing here?" he asked, somewhat ungraciously, his back pressed
hard against the fence as if 72 Mercedea
Lackey that
barrier was all that was keeping him from running away. "The
same as you, probably," Talia replied, forcing herself not to snap at him.
"Looking for my Companion, and maybe somebody to ride with." "In
that case, shouldn't you be looking for Kris?" he asked, his expression
twisted as if he'd swallowed something very unpleasant. She
couldn't think of a reply, and chose not to answer him. Instead she moved to
the fence herself, and stood with one booted foot on the first railing and her
arms folded along the top, mimicking the pose he had held when she saw him. "Talia—"
He took one step toward her—she heard his boot squelch in the wet grass—then
stopped. "I—Kris is—a very valuable friend. More than friend. I—" She
waited for him to say what was on his mind, hoping that this time he'd finish
it. Maybe if she didn't look at him, he'd be able to speak his piece. "Yes?"
she prompted when the silence went on so long she'd almost suspected him of
sneaking away. She turned to catch his blue, blue eyes staring almost
helplessly at her before he hastily averted them. "I—I've
got to go—" he gasped, and fled. She was
ready to scream with frustration. This was the fourth time he'd pulled this
little trick, starting to say something, then running away. And with things
somewhat at odds between herself and Kris, she really didn't feel as if she
wanted to ask Kris to help. Besides, she hadn't seen Kris much since their last
little set-to. With an
exasperated sigh she Mindcalled Rolan. They both needed exercise—and he, at
least, would be a sympathetic listener. Kris
was avoiding Talia on purpose. When
he'd first returned, his uncle had taken tune out to give him familial
greetings; that was only to be expected. But Orthallen lately seemed to be
going out of his way to speak to his nephew two or three times a week, and the
conversation somehow always turned to Talia. ARROW'S
FALL 73 Not by
accident, either. Kris was mortally sure of that. Nor were they pleasant
conversations, though they seemed to be on the surface. Kris was beginning to
get an impression that Orthallen was looking for something— weaknesses in the
Queen's Own, perhaps. Certainly, whenever he happened to say something
complimentary about Talia, his uncle would always insinuate a "Yes, but
surely . . ." in a rather odd and confiding tone. Like
the latest example. He'd
been on his way back from a consultation with Elcarth about some of his latest
Farseeing pupils, when Orthallen had just "happened" to intercept
him. "Nephew!"
Orthallen had hailed him, "I have word from your brother—" "Is
anything wrong?" Kris had asked anxiously. The family holdings were in the
heart of some of the worst flooding in a generation. "Does he need me at
home? I'll be free in a few weeks—" "No,
no; things are far from well, but it's not an emergency yet. T^e smallholders
have lost about a tenth of their fields, in total; obviously some are worse off
than others. They've lost enough livestock that the spring births are barely
going to make up for the losses—oh, and your brother lost one of his Shin'a'in
cross-bred stallions." "Damn—he's
not going to find another one of those in a hurry. Are we needing any outside
help?" "Not
yet. There's enough grain in storage to make up for the losses. But he wanted
you to know exactly how things stood, so that you wouldn't worry." "Thank
you, uncle. I appreciate your taking the time to let me know." "And
is your young protegee settling in, do you think?" he then asked smoothly.
"What with all the emergencies that have come up lately, I wonder if she
has more than she can cope with, sometimes." "Havens,
Uncle, I'm the last one to ask," Kris had said with a little impatience.
"I hardly see her anymore. We both have duties, and those duties don't let
us cross paths too often." "Oh?
Somehow I had gotten the impression that you 74 Mercedes
Lackey Heralds
always knew what was happening in each others' lives." Kris
really hadn't been able to think of a response to that; at least not a
respectful one. "I
only asked because I thought she looked a bit careworn, and I thought perhaps
she might have said something to you," Orthallen continued, his cold eyes
boring into Kris'. "She has a heavy burden of responsibility for one so
young." "She's
equal to it, Uncle. I've told you that before. Rolan wouldn't have Chosen her
otherwise." "Well,
I'm sure you're correct," Orthallen replied, sounding as if he meant the
opposite. "Those rumors of her using her Gift to manipulate—" "Were
absolutely unfounded. I told you that. She has been so circumspect in even
reading others that she practically has to be forced to it—" Kris broke
off, wondering if he was saying too much. "Ah,"
Orthallen said after a moment. "That is a comfort. The child seems to have
a wisdom out of keeping with her years. However, if she should feel she's
having problems, I would appreciate it if you'd tell me. After all, as the
Queen's eldest Councillor, I should be aware of possible trouble. I'd be only
to happy to help her in any way I can, but she still seems to be carrying over
that grudge from her student days, and I doubt she'd ever give me the correct
time of day, much less confide in me." Kris
had mumbled something noncommittal, and his uncle had gone away outwardly
satisfied—but the whole encounter had left a very bad taste in Kris's mouth. He
was regretting now the fact that he'd confided to his uncle in one of those
early conversations his belief that Talia and Dirk were lifebonded; the man had
seized on the tidbit as avidly as a hawk on a mouse. But at the same time, he
didn't want to have to face Talia herself with these suspicions awakened; she'd
get it out of him, no doubt of it. And while she wouldn't say, "I told you
so," she had a particular look of lowered eyelids and a quirk at one
corner of her mouth that spoke volumes, and he wasn't in the mood to deal with
it. ARROWS
FALL 75 Besides,
it was only too possible that she'd infected him with her paranoia. If only
he could be sure of that—but he couldn't. So he avoided her. Dirk
straddled an old, worn chair in his room, staring into the darkness beyond the
windowpane. It was nearly dusk—and as black as midnight out there. He felt as
if he were being torn into little bits. He
couldn't make up his mind what he wanted to do; part of him wanted to battle
for Talia by all means fair or foul, part of him felt that he should be
unselfish and give Kris a clear field with her, part of him was afraid to find
out what she thought of all this, and a fourth part of him argued that he
really didn't want any commitments to females anyway—look what the last one had
gotten him. The
last one. Lady Naril—oh, gods. He
stared at the sullen flickers of lightning in the heart of the clouds above the
trees. It had been so long ago— and not long enough ago. Gods, I
was such a fool. He and
Kris had been posted to the Collegium, teaching their specialties—Fetching and
Farsight. It had been his first experience of Court and Collegium as a full
Herald. / was a
stupid sheep looking for a wolf. Not
that he hadn't had his share of dalliances, even if he'd always had to play
second to Kris. He hadn't minded, not really. But he'd been feeling a little
lost; Kris had been born to Court circles, and flowed back into them
effortlessly. Dirk had been left on the outskirts. Then
Naril had introduced herself to him— /
thought she was so pure, so innocent. She seemed so alone in the great Court,
so eager for a friend. And she was so young—so very beautiful. How
could he have known that in her sixteen short years she'd had more men in her
thrall than a rosebush had thorns? And how
could he have guessed she intended to use him to snare Kris? Gods, I
was half out of my mind with love for her. 76 Mercedes
Lackey He
stared at the reflection in the window, broodingly. / saw only what / wanted to
see—that's for certain. Lost most of my few wits. But
there had been just enough sense left to him that when she'd asked him to
arrange a private meeting between herself and his friend, he'd hidden where he
could overhear her. The artificial grotto in the garden that she had chosen was
secluded—but had ample hiding space in the bushes to either side of the
entrance. Dirk
probed at the aching memory as if it were a sore tooth, taking twisted pleasure
from the pain. / could hardly believe my ears when I heard her issuing Kris an
ultimatum: come to her bed until she tired of him, or she would make my life a
living hell. He had
burst in on them, demanding to know what she meant, crazy-wild with anger and
pain. Kris
had slipped away. And Naril turned to him with utter hatred in her enormous
violet eyes. When she'd finished what she had to say to him, he'd wanted to
kill himself. Again
he stared at his reflection. Not everything she said was wrong— he told himself
sadly. What woman with any sense would want me? Especially with Kris in reach.
. . . It had
been a long time before he'd stopped wanting to die—and a longer time before
life became something he enjoyed instead of something he endured. Now—was
it all happening again? He was
doing his level best to come to terms with himself, and being stuck at the
Collegium with Talia in sight at least once a day wasn't helping. The whole
situation was comical, but somehow when he tried to laugh it off, his
"mirth" had a very hollow sound even to his ears. He had thrown
himself into his work, only to find that he was watching for her constantly out
of the corner of his eye. He couldn't help himself; it was like scratching a
rash. He knew he shouldn't, but he did it anyway, and it gave him a perverse
sort of satisfaction. And even though it troubled him to watch her, it troubled
him more not to. Gods,
gods—what am I going to do? ARROW'S
FALL The
reflection gave him no answer. 77 After
three weeks of rain, the weather had cleared for a bit. To Talia's great
relief, things were emotionally on a more even keel, at least where the tempers
of Court and Collegium were concerned. The evening had been warm enough to
leave windows open, and the fresh air had made a gratifying change in the
stuffiness of her quarters. Talia was fast asleep when the Death Bell shattered
the peace of the night with its brazen tolling. It woke
her from a nightmare of flame, fear, and agony. That nightmare had held her in a
grip so tenacious that she expected to open her eyes to find her own room an
inferno. She clutched the blankets to her chest, as she slowly became aware
that the air she breathed was cool and scented with night mist, not
smoke-filled and choking. It took several moments for her to clear her mind of
the dream enough to think clearly again, and when at last she did, it was to
realize that the dream and the Death Bell's tolling had related causes. Fire—her
nails bit into her palms as she clenched her hands. When fire was involved, the
Herald most likely to be involved with it was—Griffon! Dear gods—let it not be
Griffon, not her year-mate, not her friend— But as
she stared unseeing into the darkness and forced herself into a calmer frame of
mind, she knew without doubt that it was not Griffon, after all. The name and
the face that hazed into her now-receptive mind were those of a student of the
year following hers—Christa, whom she remembered as one of Dirk's pupils in the
Gift of Fetching. And in
many ways, this was an even greater tragedy, for Christa had still been on her
internship assignment. When
the pieces were all assembled from the various fragments the Heralds at the
Collegium had "read" when the Death Bell began ringing, the result
was almost as confusing as having no information at all. This much alone they
knew; Christa was dead; the Herald assigned as her counselor, the cheerfully
lascivious Destria, was 78 Mercedes
Lackey badly
hurt, and the cause had something to do both with raiders and a great fire. The
information they received from the Heralds stationed with the Healing Temple to
which Destria had been carried was nearly as fragmentary. Their Gifts of
Mindspeech weren't nearly as strong as Kyril's or Sher-rill's. But they made it
plain that Destria needed more help than they could provide—and that there was
urgent need of a different kind of aid. They were sending Destria back to
Healer's Collegium and the Palace, and with her would come clarification. Within
the week they came; one uninjured Herald, Destria (a pitiful thing carried on a
titter swung between two Companions, one of them Destria's Soft), and a
battered and bruised farmer whose clothing still bore the smoke stains and ash
of a fire. All three of them had to have traveled day and night with scarcely a
pause to rest to reach the capital so quickly. Selenay
called the Council into immediate session, and the petitioner came before them.
He sagged wearily into the chair they set for him, his eyes sunken deeply into
their sockets, his hair so full of ash it was hard to tell what color it was.
It was plain he had wasted not even a single hour, but had gotten on with the
journey without taking time for his own comfort. And the tale he told, of
well-armed, organized raiders, and the near-massacre of everyone in his town,
was enough to chill the blood. They
had given him a seat, since he was plainly too weary to stand for very long,
and he seemed like an omen of doom, sitting before the Council Table, both
hands bandaged to the elbow. The taint of smoke had so permeated his clothing
that it was carried even to the Councillors, and the smell of it brought his
message home with terrible force. "It
was slaughter, pure and simple,*' he told the Council in a voice roughened by
the smoke. "And we walked into it like silly sheep. Up until this spring
we've had so much problem with brigands, little bands of them, pecking away at
us, that we'd come to expect them, like spring floods. Then, when they all
vanished this winter— gods, you'd think we'd have had the sense to realize ARROWS
FALL 79 something
was up. But we didn't; we just thought they'd gone off to richer pickings. Ah,
fools, fools and blind!" He
dropped his face into his hands for a moment, and when he lifted it again,
there were tears on his cheeks from eyes already red. "They'd gotten
together, you see; one of the wolves had finally proved the strongest, and
they'd gotten together. We'd prided ourselves on having put the village in an
unassailable valley; sheer rock to our back and sides, and only one narrow pass
that let into it. We couldn't be starved or forced out from thirst; we had our
own wells, and plenty of food stockpiled. Well, they had an answer to that. A
handful of them killed the sentries, and poisoned the dogs that patrolled the
heights, then rained fire arrows down on the village by night. We build with
wood and thatch, mostly; the buildings went up like pitch torches. The rest
waited outside the pass, and picked off those of us that got as far as the
cleft. Have you ever seen rabbits running before a grass fire? That was us—and
they were the hungry wolves waiting for dinner to leap into their jaws. Men
I've known all my life I watched getting their legs shot out from underneath
them. Children hardly old enough to be wearing knives, too—even graybeards and
grannies. Anybody likely to be able to take up a weapon. They shot to cripple,
not to kill; dead mouths can't tell where they've hid their little treasures,
y'see. A good half of those they shot may never walk right again. A good
quarter bled to death where they lay. And a full quarter of the children burned
to death in the houses they set fire to." A muted
murmur of horror crept around the table; Lady Kester hid her own face in her
hands. A beam
of late afternoon sunlight spotlighted the speaker as it poured in through the
high windows. It touched him with a clear gold that made his eyes seem even
more like burned-out pits in his face. "Your Heralds were not far;
overnighting in a Waystation, I think. How they knew our plight, I'll never
know—must've been more of your magic, I guess. They came charging up on the
backs of the raiders, two of 'em like a blessed army. Those white horses—the
Companions—they were damn near an army by themselves. They broke up the 90 Mercedes
Lackey ambush
at the head of the pass, got them scattered off into the woods for a bit. Then
the older one started getting us organized, got us clearing the snipers off the
heights; the younger one took off into the burning buildings, hearing cries and
looking for somebody to save, I guess. The older one didn't even notice she was
gone— until—" He
swallowed hard, and his hands were shaking. "I heard screaming, worse than
before; the older Herald, she jerked like she'd been shot. She shouted at us to
take the brigands before they got themselves over their fright, then she headed
into the fires herself; I followed-—my hands were too burned to hold a weapon,
but I thought I might be able to help with the fires. The younger one had
gotten trapped on the second floor of one of the houses; I was right behind the
older one and I could see her against the fire. Calm as you please, she's
tossing younglings out to their parents. At least I think she was tossing 'em—she'd
have a little one in her hands one moment, then the next, his mum or dad would
be holding it. The older one ran up, started shouting at her to jump. She just
shook her head, and turned back one more time—the floor collapsed then. That
damn horse of hers crashed through the wall and went in after her—the other
Herald was right on his heels. She'd no sooner cleared the door when the whole
roof caved in. We got her out, but the other—" One of
Selenay's pages brought him wine, and he drank it gratefully, his teeth
chattering against the rim of the tankard. "That's
what happened. For us, we beat 'em back, but we didn't get more than a handful
of them compared to the numbers we know they've got. They're comin' back, we
know they are. 'Specially since they must know the Heralds are—gone. We lost
hah* the town—most of the able-bodied. I was about the only one that could make
the ride here. We need help, Majesty, m'lords—we need it bad-" "You'll
have that help," Selenay pledged, her eyes hard and black with anger as
she stood. 'This isn't the first incursion of these bastards we've heard of,
but it's ARROWS
FALL 81 by far
and away the worst. It's obvious to me that there is no way we can expect you
folk to handle brigands as organized as these are. Lord Marshal, and good sir,
if you'll come with me we'll mobilize a company of the Guard." She looked
inquiringly at the rest of the Council. Lady
Cathan spoke for all of them. "Whatever is needed, Highness. You and the
Lord Marshal are the best judge of what that is. We'll stand surety for
it." Talia
nodded, with all the other Councillors. What Setenay had told the man was true;
for the past few months there had been tales of bandits growing organized in
Gyrefalcon's Marches. Sporadic raids had occurred before this—but never had the
brigands dared to put an entire town to the sword! It was obviously more than
local militia could handle; the entire Council was agreed on that. Talia
slipped away then, knowing with certainty that Selenay did not need her at the
moment, and that another most definitely did. The tug at her was unmistakable.
She opened the door to the Council chamber just enough to slip through—and once
she wa§ out into the cool, dark hallway, broke into a run. She ran
out through the old Palace and passed the double doors of Herald's
Collegium—then down the echoing main hall, heading for the side door and for
Healer's. She felt the pull of a soul in agony as clearly as if she were being
called by voice. She all but collided with Devan, who was on his way to look
for her. "I
might have known you'd know," he said gratefully, hitching up his green
robes so that he could run with her. "Talia, she's fighting us, and we
can't get past her shielding to do even the simplest painblocks. She blames
herself for Christa, and all she wants to do now is die. Rynee can't do
anything with her." "That's
what I thought; Lord and Lady, the guilt is so thick I can almost see it. Well,
let's see if 1 can get through to her." They
had accomplished a certain amount of Healing at the site of the battle, while
Destria was still unconscious; enough to enable moving her safely. She still
was a most unpretty sight, lying on a special pad in one of the rooms 82 Mercedes
Lackey reserved
for burn patients. The room itself was bare stone; scrubbed spotless twice a
day when unoccupied, and not so much as a speck of dust was ever allowed to
settle there. The one window was sealed tight so that nothing could blow in.
Everything that was brought in was removed as soon as it was no longer needed,
and scalded. It was
a tribute to the onsite Healers that Destria was still among the living. The
last person Talia had seen with burns like hers had been Vostel, who had taken
the full fury of an angry firebird on his fragile flesh. Where her burns had
been relatively light—though the skin was red, puffed, and blistering—she was
unbandaged. But her arms and hands were wrapped in special poultices of herbs
and the thinnest and most fragile of tanned rabbit and calfskin, and Talia knew
that beneath those bandages the skin was gone, and the flesh left raw. They had
laid her on a pallet of lambskin, tanned with the wool on; the fibers would
cushion her burned skin and prevent too much pressure from being exerted on it.
Talia knelt at the head of the pallet and rested both her hands on Destria's
forehead. Destria's face and head were the only portions of her that were
relatively untouched. As Talia reached into the whirlwind of pain, delirium,
and guilt with her Gift, she knew that this was likely to be the hardest such
fight she'd ever faced. Guilt,
black and full of despair, surrounded Talia from all directions. Pain, physical
and mental, lanced through the guilt like red lightning. Talia knew her first
priority was to find out why the guilt existed in the first place, and where it
was coming from— That
was easy enough; she simply lowered her shielding a fraction more, and let
herself be drawn in where the negative emotions were the thickest. The
fading core that was Destria spun an ever-tightening cocoon of bleakness around
herself. Talia reached for that cocoon with a softly glowing mental
"hand" and withered it until that which was Destria stood cringing
before her. Talia
paid no heed to her attempts at escape, but drew ARROWS
FALL 83 her
into a rapport in which nothing was hidden; not from her—and not from Destria.
And she let Destria read her as she strove to begin the Healing of the other
Herald's mental hurts. I
failed— that was the most overwhelming. They counted on me, and I failed. But
there was something more, something that kept the guilt feeding on itself until
Destria loathed her own being. And Talia found it, hiding underneath,
festering. And I failed because I wanted something for me. I failed because I
was selfish; I don't deserve my Whites—I deserve to die. This
was something Talia was only too familiar with; and was something Rynee
wouldn't understand. Healers were firm believers in a little honest
selfishness; it kept a person sane and healthy. Heralds, though—well, Heralds
were supposed to be completely unselfish, totally devoted to duty. That was
nonsense, of course; Heralds were only people. But sometimes they started to
believe in that nonsense, and when something went wrong, because of their
natures, the first people they tended to blame were themselves. So now
Talia had to prove to Destria that there was nothing wrong with being a Herald
and human. No small task, since Destria's guilt was akin to doubts she shared about
herself. How
often had she berated herself for wanting a little comer of life to call her
own—some time when she didn't have to be a Herald—when she had been so tired of
having to think first of others before taking the smallest action? How many times
had she yearned for a little time to be lazy, a chance for a bit of privacy—and
then felt guilty because she had? And
hadn't she had been ready to assume that she was guilty of unconsciously using
her Empathy to manipulate others? Hadn't
she been angry enough to strangle someone more than once, and then been angry
at herself for giving in to the weakness of rage? Oh, she
understood Destria's self-loathing, only too well. 84 Mercedes
Lackey Rynee
and the rest of the Healers watched soberly, sensing the battle Talia fought,
though (except for the perspiration beading Talia's brow) there were no outward
signs of a struggle. They all remained in the same positions they had first
taken as the shadows cast through the window lengthened almost imperceptibly
and the light slowly faded; and still there was no outward indication of
success or failure. Then,
after the first half-hour, Rynee whispered to Devan, "I think she's
getting somewhere; Destria threw me out after the first few minutes and
wouldn't let me in again." When a
full hour had passed, Talia sighed, then carefully broke her physical contact
with the other Herald, and slumped with exhaustion, her hands lying limply on
her thighs. "Go
ahead; I've got her convinced for now. She won't fight you at the moment." As she
spoke, the waiting Healers converged on Destria tike worker-bees on an injured
queen. Rynee, whose Gift of Healing was (like Talia's) for minds rather than
bodies, helped Talia to her feet. "Why
couldn't / get through to her?" she asked plaintively. "Simple;
I'm a Herald, you're not," Talia said, edging past the Healers and out
into the hall. "She reacted to you the way you would react to a nonHealer
trying to tell you that a gut-stab was nothing to worry about. Gods, I'm tired!
And I'll have it all to do again tomorrow, or she'll fight you again. And then,
when I finally convince her permanently that it wasn't her fault, I'll have to
convince her she isn't going to revolt men with—the way she'll look when you're
done. And that the scarring isn't some punishment set on her for being a bit
randy," "I
was afraid of that." Rynee bit her lip. "And she is going to scar; I
can't tell you how badly yet, but there's no getting around it. Her face wasn't
touched, but the rest of her—some of it isn't going to be at all pretty. The
only burn victim I've ever heard of that was as bad was—" ARROVTSFALL 85 Despite
her weariness, Talia's eyes lighted when she saw an idea begin to form behind
Rynee's frown. "Out with it, milady—you've the same Gift as I have, and if
you've gotten a notion it's probably going to work." She paused in the
hallway and leaned against the wood-paneled wall; Rynee rubbed the bridge of
her long nose with her finger. "Vostel—what
does he do now? Could he be recalled here for a while?" she asked finally,
hope in her cloud-gray eyes. "Relay
at the Fallflower Healing Temple; and yes, anyone on relay work can be
replaced. What are you thinking of?" "That
he'll be the best 'medicine' for her; he went through it all himself. He knows
how it hurts, and when it'll stop, and how you have to force yourself to work
through the pain if you intend to get the full use of your limbs back. And he's
a Herald, so she'll believe what he says. Besides all that, despite the old
scars he's still a better-than-passable-looking man. And he doesn't believe in
the fates dealing out arbitrary punishments for a little healthy
hedonism." Talia
chuckled in spite of herself. "Oh, very good! If we have him at her side
coaxing and encouraging, he'll do half our work for us! You're right about his
beliefs, too. All I had to do was keep reassuring him that the pain would end,
and that he wasn't being a coward and a whiner for occasionally wanting to give
up. I've no doubt they'll find each other quite congenial when Destria's back
to something like her old self and her old appetites. I'll see Kyril and get
Vostel sent here as soon as he can be replaced; he'll be here by the time she
starts to need him." Talia
moved away from the wall and stumbled as her knees wobbled a little. They had
only gotten a few feet down the hall, and already her exhaustion was
threatening to overwhelm her. Rynee steered her toward a soft and
comfortable-looking padded bench, one of many placed at intervals along the
walls, for Healers were apt to catch oddments of rest wherever and whenever
they could. 86 Mercedes
Lackey "And
you—you get yourself down onto that couch and take a short nap. I'll wake you,
but if you don't take some recovery time you won't be of any use to any of us.
You know the saying—never argue with a Healer—" "And
I never do!" "See
that you keep it that way." About a
week later Talia was on her way from the Audience Chamber to her own room to
change for arms practice, and her mood was a somber one. The audiences were no
longer dull, and that was unfortunate. More and more often those seeking
audience with the Queen were from Gyrefalcon's Marches reporting the
depredations of what was obviously a small army of bandits. It was the wild and
rocky character of the countryside that had let them organize without anyone
realizing it; that same wild countryside enabled them to vanish before the
Guard could pin them down. Orthallen
was using the existence of these bandits as a political tool—a tactic that
disgusted Talia, considering the suffering that they were causing, not to
mention that they were preying on some of the lands supposedly in his
jurisdiction. She had
just endured one such session. There
were six Heralds out there now—along with the Guard company Selenay had sent.
The Heralds were organizing the common folk to their own defense, since the
Guard could not be everywhere at once. One of those Heralds, Herald Patris,
sent a messenger that had only arrived today. "
"They seem to know exactly where the Guard is at all times/ Patris had
written. 'They strike, and are away before we can do anything. They know these
hills of stone and the caves that honeycomb them better than we guessed; I
suspect them of traveling a great deal underground, which would certainly
answer the question of how they move about without being spotted. At this
point, we are beyond saving the livestock or the harvest; Majesty, I must be
frank with you. It will be all we can do just to save the lives of these
people. And I must tell you worse yet—having stripped them of all possessions, ARROWS
FALL 87 the
bastards have taken to carrying off the only thing these folk have left. Their
children.' " "Great
Goddess!" Lady Wyrist had exclaimed. "I'm
on it, Majesty,'* Lady Cathan had said grimly at almost the same moment.
"They won't get children out past my Guildsmen—not after that slaver
scandal—with your permission?" Selenay
had nodded distractedly, and Lady Cathan sprinted from the room in a swirl of
colorful brocades. "Majesty,"
Orthallen said then, "It is as I have been saying. We need a larger
standing army—and we need more autonomy in local hands. If I had been given two
or three companies of the Guard and the power to order them, this emergency
would never have become the disaster it is!" Then
the debate had broken out—yet again. The Council had split on this issue of
granting power at the local level and increasing the size of the Guard; split
about equally. On Orthallen's side were Lord Gartheser, Lady Wyrist, Bard
Hyron, Father Aldon and the Seneschal. Selenay—who did not want the size of the
army increased, because to do so would mean drafted levies and possibly
impressment—preferred to keep the power where it was, with the Council, and was
lobbying for hiring professional mercenaries to augment the existing troops.
Backing her were Talia, Kyrit, Elcarth, Healer My rim, and the Lord Marshal.
Lady Kester, Lord Gildas, and Lady Cathan remained undecided. They weren't
especially pleased with the notion of foreign troops, but they also weren't
much in favor of hauling folk away from their lands and trades either. Talia
was pondering the state of things when her sharp ears caught the sound of a
muffled sob. Without hesitation she unshielded enough to determine the source,
and set out to find out was wrong. Her
sharp ears led her into a seldom-used hallway near the Royal Library, one lined
with alcoves which could contain statues or suits of plate-mail or other large
works of art, but which were mostly vacant and screened off by velvet curtains.
This was a favored place for courting 88 Mercedes
Lackey couples
during great revels, but the lack of seating tended to confine assignations to
those conducted standing. She had
a little problem finding the source of the sob, as it was hiding itself behind
the curtains in one of those alcoves along this section of hall. Only a tiny
sniffle gave her the clue as to which of three it was. She
drew the heavy velvet curtain aside quietly; curled up on a cushion purloined
from a chair in the audience chamber was a child. He was
a little boy of about seven or eight; his eyes were puffy from crying, his face
was smeared where he'd scrubbed tears away with dirty fingers, and from the
look of him, he hadn't a friend in the world. She thought that he must have
been adorable when he wasn't crying, a dark-haired, dark-eyed cherub; the
uniform Selenay's pages wore, sky-blue trimmed in dark blue, suited his fair
complexion. He looked up when the curtain moved, and his face was full of woe
and dismay, his pupils dilated in the half-light of the hall. "Hello,"
Talia said, sitting on her heels to bring herself down to his level. "You
look like you could use a friend. Homesick?" A fat
tear trickled slowly down one cheek as he nodded. He looked very young to have
been made one of Selenay's pages; she wondered if he weren't a fosterling. "I
was, too, when I got here. There weren't any girls my age when I first came, just
boys. Where are you from?" "G-g-gyrefalcon's
Marches," he gulped, looking as if her sympathy had made him long for a
comfortable shoulder to weep on, but not daring to fling himself on a strange
adult. "Can
I share that pillow?" she asked, solving the problem for him. When he
moved aside, she settled in with one arm comfortingly around his shoulders,
projecting a gentle aura of sympathy. That released his inhibitions, and he
sobbed into the velveteen of her jerkin while she soothingly stroked his hair.
He didn't need her Gift, really. All he needed was a friend and a chance to cry
himself out. While she gentled him, she pummeled her memory for who he could
be. ARROW'S
FALL 89 "Are
you Robin?" she asked finally, when the tears had slowed a bit. At bis
shaky affirmative she knew she'd identified him correctly. Robin's parents, who
held their land of Lord Orthallen, had prevailed on Orthallen to take their
only child to the safest haven they knew— Court. Understandable, even laudable,
but poor Robin didn't see their reasoning. He only knew that he was alone for
the first time in his young life. "Haven't
you found any friends yet?" Robin
shook his head and clutched her sleeve as he looked up to read her expression.
When he saw that she was still sympathetic and encouraging he took heart enough
to explain. "They—they're
all bigger an' older. They call me 'tag-along' an' they laugh at me ... an' I
don't tike their games anyway. I—I can't run as fast or keep up with 'em." **Oh?"
She narrowed her eyes a little hi thought, trying to remember just what it was
she'd seen the pages playing at. You took them so for granted, they were almost
invisible—then she had it, "You
don't like playing war and castles?" That was understandable enough, when
fighting threatened his parents. Hie
flicker of the oil-lamp opposite their alcove showed her his sad, lost eyes.
"I—I don't know how to fight. Da said I wasn't old enough to learn yet.
That's all they want to do—an' anyway, I'd rather r-r-read—but all my books are
still at h-h-home." And if
she knew the Seneschal, he'd strictly forbidden the pages to enter the Palace
Library. Not too surprising, seeing as most of them would have played catapults
using the furniture, with the books as ammunition. She hugged his slight
shoulders, and made a quick decision. "Would
you like to be able to read and take lessons at the Herald's Collegium instead
of with the pages?" Selenay had all of her pages schooled, but for most of
them it was a plague to be endured or a nuisance to be avoided. He nodded, his
eyes round with surprise. "Well, my master Alberich is going to have to
wait a tittle; you and I are going to go see Dean Elcarth." She 90 Lackey rose
and offered her hand, he scrambled to his feet and clutched it. Fortunately
there were plenty of other youngsters being schooled at die Collegia—though few
were as young as this one. They were the unaffiliated students—the
"Blues" —who belonged to no Collegium, but were attending classes
along with the Bardic, Healer and Heraldic students. They, too, wore uniforms,
of a pale blue, and not unlike the page's uniform. A good many of them were
well-born brats, but there were others that were well-intentioned—those
studying to be builders, architects, or scholars in many disciplines. They'd be
well pleased to welcome Robin into their ranks, and they'd probably adopt him
as a kind of mascot. Talia knew she'd have no trouble in arranging with Selenay
for this little one to spend most of his time at the Collegium when he wasn't
standing his duty—and at his age, his "duty" was probably less than
an hour or two a day. She was pretty certain she'd be able to convince Elcarth
as well. She was
right. When she took the child to Elcarth's cramped office, piled high with
books, the Dean seemed to take to Robin immediately; Robin certainly did to
him. She left him with Elcarth, the gray-haired Herald explaining some of the
classes, Robin snuggled trustingly against his chair, both of them oblivious to
the dust and clutter about them. It seemed that she'd unwittingly brought
together a pair of kindred spirits. So it
proved; she met Robin from time to time thereafter—once or twice when he'd
unthinkingly sought her out as a never-failing wellspring of comfort for homesickness,
the rest of the time trudgingly merrily about the Collegium, his arms loaded
with a pile of books almost as tall as he—and more than once, in the Library,
with Elcarth. Once she found both of them bent over an ancient tome of history
written in an archaic form of the language that little Robin couldn't read
himself, but just knew Elcarth could—and said so. He was convinced that Elcarth
was the original fount of all knowledge. He was bringing Elcarth all his
questions, as naturally as breathing. Until
now Talia frequently found both of them immersed in something so dry that she
needed a drink just thinking about it! Kindred souls, indeed. Four Dirk
sprawled in his favorite chair in his quarters, a battered old piece of
furniture long ago faded to indeterminate beige, but one that was as
comfortable as an old boot. He wished that he could be as comfortable inside as
he was outside. He
stared at the half-empty glass in his hand morosely. He shouldn't be drinking
on such a fine night. He was drinking far too much of late, and he knew it. But
what's a man to do when he can't sleep? When all he thinks of is a certain pair
of soft brown eyes? When he doesn't know whether to betray his own heart or his
best friend? The
only cure for his insomnia was to be found at the bottom of a bottle; so that's
where he usually was at day's end. Of
course the cure had its drawbacks; wretched hangovers, increasingly ill temper,
and the distinct feeling that avoiding problems was the coward's way out. He longed
for a field assignment—oh, gods, to get away from the Collegium and Her! But
nothing of the kind was forth-coming—and anyway, they wouldn't assign anything
to Kris or him until their current batch of students was fully trained in the
use of their Gifts. Their
students—gods, there was another reason to drink. He
finished the glass without even noticing he'd done so, eyes burning with unshed
tears. Poor
little Christa. He wondered if anyone else had figured out she had been using
her Gift to save the little ones in that fire. 91 92 Mercedes
Lackey Any
tune I close my eyes, I can almost see her— The
self-conjured vision was horrific. He could picture her only too easily;
surrounded by an inferno, steadfastly concentrating with all her soul—because
moving anything alive by means of the Fetching Gift was hard; hard and
dangerous—while the building went up in flames around her. And it was all his
fault that she'd sacrificed herself that way. He
raised his glass to his lips, only to discover that it was empty already. I'm
drinking this bottle too fast— And the
way she'd died—it was all his fault. Before
Christa had finished training with him she'd asked him if it was possible to
move living things by Fetching. Anyone else he'd have told "no"—-but
she was so good, and he was so infernally proud of her. So he told her the
truth, and what was more, done what he'd never done before and and showed her
how; how to move live creatures without smothering them, without twisting them
up inside. And he'd told her (gods, how well he remembered telling her) that
when it had to be done, it was far safer to move a living thing from your bands
to where you wanted it to go, than from where it was to your hands. / am
definitely drinking this too fast—the bottle's half empty already. That
was why she'd gone in to send the babies out, not Fetched them out to her. If
only he'd known when he'd taught her what he'd discovered since, researching in
the Library—that under great stress it was often possible for someone with
their Gift to transport themselves short distances. He'd meant to tell her—but
somehow he never found the time. Now
she's dead, horribly, painfully dead, because I "never found the
time." He
shook the bottle, surprised to find it empty already. Oh,
well, there's another where that one came from. He
didn't even have to get up; the second bottle was cooling on the windowsill. He
reached out an unsteady hand and somehow managed to grab the neck of it. He'd
already taken the cork out when he was sober, then stuck ARROWS
FALL 93 ft back
in loosely. If he hadn't, he'd never have gotten the bottle open. Gods,
I'm disgusting. He knew
this was not the way to be handling the problem; that he should be doing what
his heart was telling him to do—find Talia, and let her help him work it all
out. But he couldn't face her. Not like this. / can't
let her see me like this. I can't. She'll think I'm—I'm worse than what Naril
called me. Besides,
if he did go to her, she'd read the rest of what was on his mind, and then what
would he do? Gods, what a tangle he'd gotten himself into. I—I
need her, dammit. But—do I need her more than Kris does? I don't know. I just
don't know. He
couldn't ask Kris for help, not when Kris was the other half of the problem.
And music was no longer a solace, not when every time he played he could hear
her singing, haunting every line. Damn
the woman.' She steals my friend, she steals my music, she steals my peace of
mind-In the next instant he berated himself for even thinking such things. That
wasn't fair, it wasn't her fault. She hadn't the least notion of what she'd
done to him. And so
far as he'd been able to tell, she really hadn't been spending all that much
time with Kris since she'd gotten back. Maybe there was hope for him, after
all. She and Kris surely weren't behaving like lovers. But
what would he do if they were in love? For
that matter, what would he do if they weren't? The
level in the bottle continued to go down as he tried—and failed—to cope. Robin
trotted happily down the hall to the Herald's quarters. He adored the Heralds,
and was always the first to volunteer when someone had a task that would
involve his helping them in any way. In this case it was twice the pleasure,
for the Queen's Own, Herald Talia, had come looking for a page to return some
manuscripts she'd borrowed from Herald Dirk for copying. Robin loved Herald
Talia better than all the others put together— excepting only EIcarth. Heralds
were wonderful, and 94 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
was even more than usually wonderful; she always had time to talk, she never
told him he was being a baby (like Lord Orthallen did) when he was homesick.
His Mama had told him how important Lord Orthallen was, but so far as Robin was
concerned, Talia was worth any twelve Orthallens. He had often wished he could
make her smile the way she could cheer him up. She wasn't looking very happy
lately and anything he could do to make her brighten a little, he would, and
gladly. There
was a swirl of somber robes ahead of him—one of the Great Lords. Maybe even his
own Lord. Robin kept his eyes down as he'd always been told to do. It wasn't
proper for a little boy to gawk at the Great Lords of State, especially not when
that little boy was supposed to be running an errand. If it was Orthallen, it
was important for him to see that Robin was properly doing his duty. So it
was rather a shock, what with the fact that he was watching where he was going
and all, when he tripped and went sprawling face-first, all his scrolls flying
about him. If the
one ahead of him had been a fellow page, he would immediately have suspected
he'd been tripped a-purpose. But a Great Lord could hardly be suspected of a
childish prank like that. The
Great Lord paused just a moment, papers fluttering around his feet, then went
on. Robin kept his eyes down, blushing scarlet in humiliation, and began
collecting them. Now
that was odd. That was very odd. He'd had fourteen scrolls when he'd been sent
on this errand. He knew, because he'd counted them in Talia's presence twice.
Now he had fifteen. And the fifteenth one was sealed, not just rolled up like
the others. He
could have gotten muddled, of course. But he
could almost hear Dean Elcarth's voice in his ear, because he'd asked Elcarth
just this very week what he should do if he was asked to do something that
didn't seem quite right, or if something happened in the course of his duties
that seemed odd. One of the older boys had been sent on a very dubious errand
by one of the ladies of the Court, and there'd been trouble afterward. The ARROWS
FALL 95 page
involved hadn't had the nerve to tell anyone until it was too late, and by then
his memory was all confused. So Robin had asked the wisest person he knew what
he should do if he found himself in a similar case. "Do
it, don't disobey—but remember, Robin," Elcarth had told him,
"remember everything; what happened, who asked you, and when, and why, and
who was with them. It may be that what you're being told to do is perfectly
legitimate. You could have no way of knowing. But if it isn't, you could be the
only person to know the real truth of something. You pages are in a very
special position, you know, people look at you, but they really don't see you.
So keep that in mind, and if anything ever happens around you that seems odd,
remember it; remember the circumstances. You may help someone that way." "Isn't
that being a little like a sneak?" Robin had asked doubtfully. Elcarth
had laughed and ruffled his hair. "If you ask that question, you're in no
danger of becoming one, my little owl. Besides, it's excellent training for
your memory." Very
well then. Robin would remember this. There
was no answer when Robin tapped at Herald Dirk's half-open door. When he peeked
inside, he could see Herald Dirk slumped in a chair at the farther end of the
room by his open window. He seemed to be asleep, so Robin slipped inside, quiet
as a cat, and left the scrolls on his desk. Talia
didn't need a summons that morning; anyone with the vaguest hint of her Gift of
Empathy would have come running to the Queen's side. Emotional turmoil— anger,
fear, worry—was so thick in the air Talia could taste it, bitter and metallic. She
caught the first notes of it as she was dressing, and ran for the royal
chambers as soon as she was decent. The two Guards outside the door looked very
uncomfortable, as if they were doing their level best to be deaf to the
shouting behind the double doors they guarded. Talia tapped once, and cracked
one door open. Selenay
was in her outer chamber, dressed for the day, 96 Mercedes
Lackey but
without her coronet. She was sitting behind her work-table in her
"public" room; there was a sealed scroll on the table before her.
With her were Lord OrthaUen (looking unbearably smug), a very embarrassed Kris,
an equally embarrassed Guardsman, and an extremely angry Dirk. "I don't
give a fat damn how it got there—/ didn't take Ur Dirk was shouting as Talia
glanced at the sentry outside and entered. She shut the door behind her
quickly. Whatever was going on here, the fewer people there were who knew about
it, the better. "Then
why were you trying to hide it?" Orthallen asked smoothly. "I
wasn't trying to hide it, dammit! I was looking for my headache-powders when
this idiot barged in without a by-your-leave!" Dirk did look slightly ill;
pale, with a pain-crease between his brows, his sapphire-blue eyes thoroughly
bloodshot, his straw-blond hair more than usually tangled. "We
have only your word for that." "Since when—" Talia said clearly
and coldly "—has a Herald's word been subject to cross-examination? Your
pardon, Majesty, but what in the Haven's name is going on here?" "I
discovered this morning that some rather sensitive documents were missing/'
Selenay answered, looking outwardly calm, though Talia knew she was anything
but untroubled. "Lord Orthallen instigated a search, and he found them in
Herald Dirk's possession." "I
haven't been anywhere near the Palace wings for the past week! Besides, what
use could I possibly make of the damned things?" Dirk's mental anguish was
so intense that Talia wanted to weep. "Look,
Uncle, you know my quarters are just down the hall from his. I can pledge the fact
that he didn't leave them all last night." "Nephew, I know this man
is your friend." "If I have to be brutally frank, then I will
be," Kris said, flushing an angry and embarrassed red. "Dirk couldn't
have moved anywhere because he wasn't in any shape to move. He was dead drunk
last night, just like he's been every night for the past couple of weeks." ARROWS
FALL 97 Dirk
went almost purple, then deathly white. "So? Since when has inability to
move physically pered anyone with his Gift?" Now it was Kris' turn to
pale. "I
haven't heard an answer to a very good question— Orthallen, what on earth would
Dirk want with those documents?" Talia asked, trying to buy a little time
to think. "They
would put someone hi this Court in a rather indelicate position,"
Orthallen replied, "And let us say that the person is entangled with a
young lady with whom Herald Dirk was at one time very much involved himself.
Their parting was somewhat acrimonious. His motivation could be
complex—revenge, perhaps. Blackmail, perhaps. The Queen and I have been
attempting to keep this situation from escalating into scandal, but if anyone
excepting us saw the contents of these letters, it could throw the entire Court
into an uproar." "I
can't believe I'm hearing a Councillor accuse a Herald of blackmail!"
Talia cried out indignantly. "You
just heard my nephew—his best friend—-say he's been drinking himself insensible
every night for the past few weeks. Does that sound like normal behavior for a
Herald?" Orthallen turned to the Queen. "Majesty, I am not saying
that this young man would have purloined these documents were he in his proper
mind, but I think there is more than enough evidence to indicate that—" "OrthaUen,"
the queen interrupted him, "I—" "Wait
just a moment—don't anyone say anything." Talia held one hand to her
temple, feeling pain stab through her head. The hot press of the emotions of
those around her was so intense she was getting a reaction-headache from trying
to shield herself. "Let's just assume for one moment that Dirk is telling
the absolute truth, shall we?" "But—" "No,
hear me out. Under that assumption, in what way—other than someone deliberately
going into his room and planting them there—could those documents have gotten
where they were found? Dirk, were they there after dinner?" 98 Mercedes
Lackey "Before
I started drinking, you mean?" Dirk replied bitterly. "No. My desk
was perfectly clean, for a change. When I woke up this morning, there were
about a dozen scrolls there, and this was one of them." "Fine.
I know if someone had gone into your room that normally didn't belong there,
you'd have woken up, no matter what. I can tell you that / sent Robin to you
last night with those poems I borrowed. There were exactly fourteen scrolls,
and that wasn't one of them. Now unless Lord OrthaUen would like to accuse me
of purloining those documents—" "I
still had them after you left, Talia," the Queen said, a distinct edge to
her voice. "I
also know that none of the Heralds would wake up for a page entering their room
unless the page deliberately woke them. The little devils are too ubiquitous;
practically invisible, and we all know they're harmless. So, it is possible
that some tune between when Robin left me and when he got to your room, Dirk,
an extra scroll got added to his pile." "Guard,"
Selenay addressed the fourth person in the room, and the Guardsman turned to
the Queen with gratitude suffusing his face, "Fetch Robin, please, would
you? He'll be having breakfast in the page's room about now. Just ask for
him." The
Guard left, plainly happy to be out of the situation. When he
returned with Robin, Talia took the child to one side, away from the others,
and closer to the Queen than to Orthallen. She spoke quietly and encouragingly,
taking the initiative before Orthallen had a chance to try and bully him. "Robin,
I gave you some papers to take to Herald Dirk last night. How many were
there?" "I—"
He looked troubled. "I thought there were fourteen, but—" "But?" "I
fell down, and when I picked them up, there were fifteen. I know, because Dean
Elcarth told me to remember things that were funny, and that was funny." "When
did you fall down?" "Near
the staircase, by the lion tapestry." ARROWS
FALL 99 "Was
anyone else nearby? Did you run into anyone?" "I
wasn't running," he said indignantly. "There was a m'lord,
but—m'lady, Mama always told me not to stare at m'lords, so—I didn't see who it
was." "Bright
Stars!" Orthallen suddenly looked shamefaced— almost
horror-stricken—though somehow Talia had the feeling that he was putting on an
act. Certainly there was nothing she could sense empathically behind his
expression. "That was me—and I had the scroll at the time. Stars, I must
have dropped it, and the child picked it up!" He turned to Dirk, a faint
flush creeping over his face, and spread his hands with an apologetic grimace.
"Herald Dirk, my most profound apologies. Majesty, I hardly know what to
say." "I
think we've all said quite enough for one morning," Selenay replied
tiredly. "Dirk, Kris, I am terribly sorry. I hope you'll all put this down
to an excess of zeal. Talia—" Talia
just shook her head a little, and said, "We can all talk about it when
we've cooled down. Right now is not the time." Selenay
gave her a smile of gratitude as Orthallen used this as a cue to excuse
himself. Talia
was not sorry to see him leave. Selenay
detailed the Guard to escort Robin back, and asked Talia, "Have you had
anything to eat yet? I thought not. Then go do so, and I'll see you in
Council." The
three Heralds left together, the Guardsman right behind them, escorting a
mystified Robin back to the page's quarters. Talia could feel Dirk seething,
and braced herself for the explosion. As soon
as they were a sufficient distance from the Queen's chambers that they were
likely to have no audience, it came. "Thanks
a lot, friendr Dirk all but hissed. "Thanks ever so much, brother! How I
ever managed without your help, I'll never know!" "Look,
Dirk—I'm sorry—" "Sorry!
Dammit, you didn't even believe me! My best friend, and you didn't believe a
single word I said!" "Dirk!" "Then
telling everyone I'm some kind of drunken fool—" 100 Mercedes
Lackey "I
didn't say that!" Kris was beginning to get just as angry as Dirk was. "You
didn't have to! You implied it very nicely! And gave your precious uncle more
ammunition to use on me!" "Dirk,
Kris has every right to worry about you if you've been acting oddly. And Kris,
Dirk's right. Even I could tell you didn't believe him without having to read
you." Talia knew she should have kept her mouth shut, but couldn't help
herself. "And he's right about Orthallen." They
both turned on her as one, and spoke in nearly the same breath. "And
I don't need any more help from you, 'Queen's Own'—" "Talia,
I'm getting very tired of listening to your childish suspicions about my
uncle—" She
went white-lipped with anger and hurt. "Fine, then—" she snarled,
clenching her fists and telling herself that she would not deliver a pair of
hearty blows to those stubborn chins. "I wash my hands of both of you! You
can both go to Hell in a gilded carriage for all of me! With purple
cushions!" Unable
to get another coherent word out, she spun on her toe and ran to the closest
exit, and didn't stop running until she reached the Field and the sympathetic
shoulder of Rolan. "Now
look what you've done!" Dirk sneered in triumph. "What
I've done?" Kris lost what little remained of his temper and groped
visibly for words adequate to express his anger. "Gods, I hope you're
satisfied—now that you've managed to get her mad at both of us!" In
point of fact, a nasty little part of him Dirk hadn't dreamed existed was
pleased, for now, at least, they were on an equally bad footing with Talia. He
could hardly admit it, though. "Me? All / did was defend myself—" "I,"
Kris interrupted angrily, "have had just about enough of this. Til talk to
you about this mess if and when you decide to stop behaving like a damn fool
and when you quit drinking yourself into a stupor every night. Until
then—-" ARROWS
FALL 101 "This
is just a little too public a place for you to start making threats." Kris
bit back the angry words that he knew would put any hope of reconciliation out
of reach. "Far too public," he replied stiffly, "and what we
have to say to each other is far too private, and can and should wait until
then." Dirk
made an ironic little bow. "At your pleasure." There
didn't seem to be any way to respond to that, so Kris just nodded abruptly, and
stalked off down the corridor. Dirk
found himself standing alone in the deserted corridor, temples pounding with a
hangover, feeling very much abused. He wanted to feel vindicated, and all he
really felt like was a fool. And very much alone. By the
time Talia arrived for her weaponry lesson, Alberich had heard the rumors that
Kris and Dirk had had a falling-out. He was not too terribly surprised when
Talia appeared for her practice session wearing an expression so coldly
impassive it might have been a mask. Few even at the Collegium would have
guessed how well he could read the Queen's Own, or how well he knew her. She
had quite won his heart as a student—so very alone, and so determined to do
everything perfectly. She seldom tried to make excuses for herself, and never
gave up, not even when she knew she had no chance of success. She had reminded
him of times long past, and a young and idealistic student-cadet of Karse—and
his sympathy and soul had gone out to her. Not that he would ever have let her
know. He never betrayed his feelings to his students while they were still
students. He had
a shrewd idea of how matters stood with.her in regard to her feelings about
Dirk and Kris. So he had a fairly good idea what her reaction to the quarrel
might be. This
afternoon the lesson called for Talia to work out alone against the Armsmaster.
She did not hold back hi the least—began attacking him, in fact, with blind
fury as soon as the lesson began. Alberich let her wear herself 102 Mercedes
Lackey out for
a bit, scar-seamed face impassive, then caught her with a feint not even a
beginner would have fallen for and disarmed her. "Enough—quite
enough," he said, as she stood white and drained and panting with
exhaustion. "Have I not told you many times, it is with your intellect you
fight, not with your anger? Anger you are to leave at the door. It will kill
you. Look how you have let it wear you out! Had this been a real fight, your
anger would have done half your enemy's work for him." Talia's
shoulders sagged. "Master Alberich—" "Enough,
I have said it," he interrupted, picking up her blade from the floor. He
took three soundless steps toward her, and placed one callused hand on her
shoulder. "Since the anger cannot be left at the door, you will confide
it?" Talia
capitulated, letting him push her gently toward the seats at the edge of the
floor. She slumped dispiritedly down onto a bench pushed up against the wall as
he seated himself beside her. After a long moment of silence, she gave him a
brief outline of the morning's events. She kept her eyes for the most part on a
beam of the late afternoon sunlight that fell upon the smooth, sanded,
gray-brown wooden floor. No sound penetrated into the salle from the outside,
and the ancient building smelled of dust and sweat. Alberich sat beside her,
absolutely motionless, hands clasped around the ankle that rested on his right
knee. Talia glanced at him from time to time, but his harsh, hawklike face
remained unreadable. Finally
when she had finished, he stirred just a little, raising his hand to rub the
side of his nose. "I
tell you what I have never admitted," he said after a long pause, tapping
his lips with one finger, thoughtfully. "I have never trusted Lord
Orthallen. And I have served Valdemar fully as long as he." Talia
was taken aback. "But—" "Why?
Any number of small things. He is too perfect the servant of the State, never
does he take for himself any reward. And when a man does not claim a reward
visibly, I look for a reward hidden. He does not openly oppose the Heraldic
Circle, but when others do, he is ARROWS
FALL 103 always
just behind them, pushing, gently pushing. He is everyone's friend—and no one's
intimate companion. Also, my Companion does not like him." "Rolan
doesn't either." "A
good measure by which to judge the man, I think. I believe that your suspicions
are correct; that he has been striving to undermine your influence with
Selenay. I think that since he has failed at that, he turns to eliminating your
friends, to weaken your emotional base. I think he well knows how it hurts you
to see young Dirk injured." Talia
blushed. "You
are the best judge of the truth of what I say." He shifted on the hard,
worn bench and recrossed his legs, ankle over knee. "My guess—he knows
Kris is your partisan; he could not get Kris to repudiate you so he decided to
set the two great friends at odds with each other in hopes you would be caught
in the middle." "Me?
But—" "If
he is of the mind to undermine your authority, this is one way of it,"
Alberich added quietly, hands clasped thoughtfully over one knee. "To chip
away at those supporting you until they are so entangled in their own
misfortune that they can spare no time for helping you." "I
see what you're getting at, now. He's removing my support in such a way that
I'm set off-balance. Then, when I'm in a particularly delicate position, give
me a little shove—" Talia flicked out a finger, "—and with no one to
advise me or give me backing, I vacillate, or start making mistakes. And all
the things he's been whispering about my not being quite up to the job look
like something more than an old man's mistrust of the young. I thought you
didn't deal with Court politics . . ." She smiled wanly at her instructor. "I
said I do not play the game; I never said I did not know how the game was
played." His mouth turned up a little at one corner. "Be advised,
however, that I have never told anyone of my suspicions because I seemed to be
alone in them—and I did not intend to give Lord Orthallen a reason to gaze in
my direction. It is difficult enough being from Karse—without earning
high-placed enemies." 704 Mercedes
Lackey Talia
nodded with sympathy. It had been hard enough on her during her first years at
the Collegium. She could hardly imagine what it had been like for someone
hailing from the land that was Valdemar's traditional enemy. "Now
I do think he has miscalculated, perhaps to his eventual grief. It is that he
has badly underestimated the unity of the Circle, I think, or it is that he
cannot understand it. Among the courtiers, such a falling out as is between
Kris and Dirk would be permanent—and woe betide she caught between them!" Talia
sighed. "I know they'll make up eventually—Lord of Lights, though, I'm not
sure I can deal with the emotional lightnings and thunders till they do! Why
couldn't Ahrodie and Tantris get their hooves into this and straighten it
out?" "Why
do you not?" Alberich retorted. "They are our Companions and friends,
deiinda, not our overseers. They leave our personal lives to ourselves, nor
would any of us thank them for interfering. Yes, they will most probably be
whispering sensible things into their Chosen's minds, but you know well they
will not force either of the two into anything." She
sighed wistfully. "If I were a little less ethical, I'd fix both of
them." "If
you were a little less ethical, you would not have been Chosen," Alberich
pointed out. "Now, since the anger is gone, shall we return to the
exercise of the body in place of the tongue?" "Do
I have a choice?" Talia asked, as she rose from her place on the bench. "No,
deiinda, you do not—so guard yourself!" Elspeth
had encountered Orthallen during one of her rare moments of leisure; she was
dawdling a bit on her way back to her suite in the Palace to dress for dinner
with the Court. She took dinner with the Court once a week—"to remind
everyone" (in her own wry words) "that they still have a Heir." She was
standing before an open second-story window; some of the gardens were directly
below her. She was wearing a rather wistful expression and hadn't realized ARROWS
FALL 105 there
was anyone else in the corridor with her until Orthallen touched her elbow. She
jumped and started back (one hand brushing a hidden dagger) when she realized
who it was and relaxed. "Havens,
Lord-Un—Lord Orthallen, you startled me out of a year's life!" "I
most sincerely hope not," he replied, "But I do wish you would
continue to call me 'Lord-Uncle' as you started to. Surely now that you're
nearly through your studies you aren't going to become formal with me!" "AH
right, Lord-Uncle, since you ask it. Just remember to defend me for my
impudence when Mother takes me to task for it!" Elspeth grinned, and
leaned back on the window-frame a little. "Now
what is it that you were watching with such a long face?" he asked
lightly, coming close enough to look out of the window himself. Below
the window were some of the Palace gardens; in the gardens a hatf-dozen
couples—children of courtiers or courtiers themselves—ranging from Elspeth's
age upward to twenty or so. They were involved in the usual sorts of activities
that might be expected from a group of adolescents in a sunny garden in the
spring. One couple was engaged in a mock-game of "tag," one girl was
embroidering while her gallant read to her, two maids were giggling and gasping
at the antics of two lads balancing on the basin of a fountain, one young
gentleman was peacefully asleep with his head in the lap of his chosen lady,
two couples were simply strolling hand in hand. Elspeth
sighed. "And
why aren't you down there, my lady?" Orthallen asked quietly. "Havens,
Lord-Uncle, where would I get the time?" Elspeth's reply was impatient and
a touch self-pitying. "Between my classes and everything else—besides, I
don't know any boys, at least not well. Well, there's Skif, but he's busy
chasing Nerissa. Besides, he's even older than Talia." "You
don't know any young men—when half the swains of the Court are near dying just
to speak to you?'* 106 Mercedes
Lackey OrthaUen's
expression of incredulity held as much of bitter as playful mockery, though
Elspeth was so used to his manners that she hardly noted it, "Well
if they're near-dying, nobody told me about it, and nobody's bothered to
introduce us." "If
that's all that's lacking, I will be happy to make the introductions.
Seriously, Elspeth, you are spending far too much of your time among the
Heralds and Heraldic Students. Heralds make up only a very small part of
Valdemar, my dear. You need to get to know your courtiers better, particularly
those of your own age. Who knows? You may one day wish to choose a consort from
among them. You can hardly do that if you don't know any of them." "You
have a point, Lord-Uncle," Elspeth mused, taking another wistful glance
out the window, "But when am I going to find the time?" "Surely
you have an hour or two in the evenings?" "Well,
yes, usually." "There's
your answer." Elspeth
smiled. "Lord-Uncle, you're almost as good at solving problems as
Talia!" Her
race fell a trifle then, and Orthalien's right eyebrow rose as he took note of
her expression. "Is
there some problem with Talia?" "Only—only
that there's only one of her. Mother needs her more than I do, I know
that—but—I wish I could talk to her the way I used to when she was still a
student. She doesn't have the time anymore." "You
could talk to me," Orthallen pointed out. "Besides, Talia's first
loyalty is to your mother; she might feel obliged to tell her what you confided
in her." Elspeth
did not reply to this, but his words made her very thoughtful. "At
any rate, we were speaking of those young gentlemen who are perishing to make
your acquaintance. Would you care to meet some of them tonight, after dinner?
In the garden by the fountain, for instance?" Elspeth
blushed and her eyes sparkled. "I'd love to!" "Then,"
Orthallen made her a sweeping bow, "it shall be as my lady commands." ARROW'S
FALL 107 Elspeth
thought a great deal about that conversation as she sat through dinner. On the
one hand, she trusted Talia; on the other, if there were a conflict of
loyalties there was no doubt who her first allegiance was due. She hadn't
thought about it before—but the idea of her mother knowing everything about her
wasn't a comfortable one. Especially
since Selenay didn't appear to be taking Elspeth's maturity very seriously. But
Elspeth had gained inches since Talia had gone— and with the inches, a woman's
curves. She was taking more care with her appearance; she'd seen the glances
given some of her older friends by the young males of the Collegium and
recently those glances had seemed very desirable things to collect. She found
that lately she was looking to the young men of Collegium and Court with an eye
less bemused and more calculating. And to the eyes of a stranger— She'd
looked at herself in her mirror before dinner, trying to appraise what she saw
there. Lithe, taller than Talia by half a head, wavy sable hair and velvety
brown eyes—the body of a young goddess, if certain people were to be believed,
and the look of one more than ready to know more of life—yes. There was no
doubt that to a stranger, she looked more than ready to be thinking about
wedding or bedding, certainly old enough by the standards of the Court. Or so
Elspeth thought, setting her chin stubbornly. Well, if her mother wouldn't see
on her own that Elspeth was quite fully grown now, perhaps there were ways to
to bring that knowledge home to her. And,
she thought, catching sight of Lord Orthallen among a group of quite
fascinating-looking young men, it just might be rather exciting as well. . . Five The
weather, which had briefly taken a turn for the better, soured again. Talia's
mood was none too sweet either. The
rains returned, and with them, spoiled tempers among the Councillors. Again
Talia found herself spending as much time intervening in personal quarrels as
helping to make decisions. Orthallen, strangely enough, seemed content now to
let her alone. He brooded down at his end of the Council table like some huge
white owl, face blank and inscrutable, pondering mysterious thoughts of his
own. This alarmed her more than it reassured her. She took to examining every
word she intended to say, and weighing it against all the possible ways
Orthallen might be able to use what she said against her at some later date. Dirk
split his free time either lurking in her vicinity or hiding out in the wet.
The one was as frustrating as the other. Either she didn't see him at all, or
she saw him but couldn't get near him. For whenever she tried to approach him,
he turned pale, looked around—wearing a frantic expression—for the nearest
exit, and escaped with whatever haste was seemly. He seemed to have a sixth
sense for when she was trying to catch him; she couldn't even trap him in his
rooms. Either that, or he somehow knew when she was at the door, and pretended
he wasn't there. Kris
all but hibernated in his room. And Talia was determined not to see him until
he apologized for what he'd said to her. While then: quarrel of itself was of
no 109 no Mercedes
Lackey great
moment, she was tired to death of having to justify her feelings about his
uncle. After her little talk with Alberich, she was certain—with a surety that
came all too seldom—that in the case of Orthallen she was entirely in the
right, and he was entirely in the wrong. And this time she was going to hold
out until he acknowledged the fact! Meanwhile
she made up for the absence of both of them by trying to be everywhere at once. She was
shorting herself of sleep to do so, and still felt there was much she wasn't
doing. But there was just so much work; Selenay had asked her to take on the
interviews of petitioners from the flooded areas, Devan needed her with three
profoundly depressed patients, and there were all those quarrels among the
Councillors. It was
with heartfelt gratitude that she found the sessions with Destria going well;
Vostel's arrival put the cap on their success. It was plain to Talia that his
reaction to Destria's appearance comforted her immensely. It helped that he
regarded her scars as badges of honor and told her so in as many words. And as
Rynee had thought, he was of tremendous aid when they began Destria's
rehabilitative therapy—for he had gone through all this himself. He coaxed her
when she faltered, bolstered her courage when it ran out, goaded her when she
turned sulky, and held her when she wept with pain. He was doing so much for
her that she needed Talia's Gift less with every day. Which
was just as well, for Selenay needed it the more. As soon as one crisis was
solved, another sprang up like a noxious weed, and Selenay's resources were
wearing thin. And when some of the choices she made turned out to be the wrong
ones—as, soon or late, happened—Talia found herself exercising her good sense
and Gift to the utmost. A
drenched and mud-splattered messenger from Herald Patris stood before the
Council; when the door-Guard had learned his news, he'd interrupted the session
to bring him there himself. "Majesty,"
the man said, with a blank expression that Talia found very disconcerting, and
which made her very ARROW'S
FALL 111 uneasy,
"Herald Patris sends this to tell you that the outlaws are no more." He held
out a sealed message pouch as those at the Council board erupted in cheers and
congratulations. Only the Queen, Kyril, and Selenay did not join in the
rejoicing. There was something about the messenger's expression that told them
there was much he had not said. Selenay
opened the message and scanned it, the blood draining from her face as she did
so. "Goddess—"
the parchment sheet fell from her nerveless fingers, and Talia caught it. The
Queen covered her face with trembling hands, as the tumult around the Council
table died into absolute silence. Her
Councillors stared at their monarch, and at an equally pale Queen's Own, as
Talia read Patris' grim words in a voice that shook. "
'We ran the brigands to earth, but by the time they were brought to bay, the
temper of the Guard was fully aroused. We cornered them at their own camp, a
valley overlooked by Darkfell Peak. It was then that they made the mistake of
killing the envoy sent to parley. At that point the Guard declared "no
quarter." They went mad— that is the only way I can describe it. They were
no longer rational men; they were blood-mad berserkers. Perhaps it was being out
here too long, chasing phantoms—perhaps the foul weather—I do not know. It was
hideous. Nothing I or anyone else could say or do was able to curb them. They
fell on the encampment—and the outlaws were slaughtered to the last man.'
" Talia
took a deep breath, and continued. " 'It was not just the outlaws
themselves; the Guard slew every living thing in their bolt-hole, be it man,
woman, or beast. But that was not the worst of the horrors, though that was
horror enough. Among the dead—* " Talia's
voice failed, then, and Kyril took the message from her, and continued in a
hoarse half-whisper. "
'Among the dead were the very children we had hoped to save. All—all of them,
dead. Slain by their captors when it became obvious that they would get no
mercy from the Guard.' " 112 Mercedes
Lackey The
Councillors stared in dumb shock, as Selenay wept without shame. Selenay
blamed herself for not replacing the Guard companies with fresher troops or for
not sending someone who could have controlled the weary Guardsmen no matter
what strain the troops were under. Nor was
the murder of the children the only tragedy, although it was the greatest.
Vital intelligence had been lost in that slaughter—who their leader had been,
and whether or not he had been acting under orders from outside the Kingdom. It took
days before Selenay was anything like her normal self. The one
blessing, so far as Talia was concerned, was that Orthallen exercised a little
good sense and chose to back down on his militant stance for more local
autonomy; just as well, for Lady Kester's people began having the expected
troubles with pirates and coastal raiders, and the promised troops had to be
shifted to the West. But before they could reach their deployments, Herald
Nathen was seriously hurt leading the fisherfolk in beating off a slaving raid. And
that opened up another wonder-chest of troubles. Nathen
himself came before them, although the Healers protested that he was not yet
well enough to do so. He was a sharp-featured man, not old, but no longer
young; brown-haired, brown-eyed—quite unremarkable except for the intensity in
those eyes, and an anger that kept him going when nothing else was left to him.
He sat, rather than stood, facing the entire Council. He was heavily bandaged,
with his arm bound against his side, and still physically so weak he could
scarcely speak above a whisper. "My
ladies, my lords—" he coughed,"—I did not dare trust this to anyone
but myself. Messengers can be waylaid, documents purloined —" "My
lord Herald," Gartheser said smoothly, "I think you may be
overreacting. Your injuries ..." "Did
not cause me to hallucinate what I heard," Na- ARROWS
FALL 113 than
snapped, his anger giving him a burst of strength. "We captured a
prisoner, Councillors; I interrogated him myself under Truth Spell before I was
hurt. The brigands are serving those slavers we thought banished!" "What?"
Lady Cathan choked out, as she half-stood, then collapsed back into her seat. "There
is worse. The slave-traders are not working unaided. I have it by my prisoner's
confession and by written proofs that they have been aided and abetted by Lord
Geoffery of Helmscarp, Lord Nestor of Laverin, Lord Tavis of Brengard, and
TradeGuildsmen Osten Deveral, Jerard Stonesmith, Petar Ringwright, and Igan
Horstfel." He sank
back into his own chair, eyes still burning with controlled rage, as the
Council erupted into accusation and counter-accusation. "How
could this have occurred without your knowledge, Cathan?" Gartheser
demanded. "By the gods, I begin to wonder just how assiduous you were in
rooting out the last lot—" "You
were right up there in the front ranks to accuse me the last time,
Gartheser," Cathan sneered "but I seem to remember you were also the
one who insisted I do all the dirty work. I am only one woman; I can't be
everywhere at once." "But
Cathan, I cannot see how this could have escaped your knowledge," Hyron
protested. "Those four named are of first-rank." "And
the other three are Kester's liegemen," added Wyrist, suspiciously,
"I'd like to know how they managed to operate a slaving ring under
Kester's nose." "And
so would I," Lady Kester snapped. "More than you, I reckon." And so
it went, as Selenay mediated the strife among her Councillors. Talia had her
hands full seeing that she remained sane during all of it. All
this, of course, meant that she had no time to pay heed to her own
problems—most particularly that of the rift between Dirk and Kris, Kris and
herself, and Dirk and herself. 114 Mercedes
Lackey It was
bad enough that the quarrel existed—but to add yet another pine-bough to the
conflagrations, Rolan was causing her considerable discomfort. He was
the premier stallion of the Companion herd and while Talia had been on
internship, had only had another stallion—Kris' Tantris—for company. Now he was
making up for his enforced celibacy with a vengeance—and the partner he dallied
with most often was Dirk's Ahrodie. And
Talia shared it—couldn't block it if she tried. Not that she blamed Rolan;
Ahrodie was sweet, attractive, and a most cooperative partner. She ought to
know; she was on the empathic receiving end of all of it. But to have this
going on, two and three times a week, while she positively ached for Ahrodie's Chosen—well,
it was unpleasantly like torture. Rolan evidently had no notion of what he was
doing to his Chosen, and Talia refused to spoil his pleasure by letting him
know. So she
lost further sleep at night; either in suffering through what Rolan was unknowingly
inflicting on her or in dreams in which she worked desperately to knit up some
undefined but important object that kept unraveling. She
didn't see Elspeth except at training sessions with Alberich, occasional meals,
or now and again with Gwena out in the Field. She seemed a little distracted,
and maybe a touch shy, but that was normal for a girl just into puberty, and
besides, Talia had her hands full to overflowing. So Talia never once worried
about her— until one day she realized with a chill of foreboding that she
hadn't seen the girl in several days, not even at arms practice. Well,
that could have been simple circumstance, but it was a situation that needed
rectifying. So Talia went looking for her. She
found the Heir in the garden, which was not a place where Elspeth usually spent
any time. But she was reading, so she could have decided simply that she needed
some fresh air. "Hello,
catling," Talia called cheerfully, seeing Elspeth's ARROW'S
FALL 115 head
snap up at the sound of her voice. "Are you waiting for someone?" "No—no,
just got tired of the Library—" Had she hesitated a fraction of a second
before denying that? "Say, you've been so busy, I'll bet you haven't heard
the latest scrape Tuli's gotten himself into, and I'll bet you could use a good
laugh—" With
that, Elspeth kept the conversation on Collegium gossip, and then pled tasks
elsewhere before Talia could gain control of the situation. The
incident left Talia very disconcerted, and when she began seeking the girl out
on a regular basis, she only got repetitions of the same. Then Talia began to
take note of the specific changes in the girl's behavior. She was
secretive—which was unlike her. There was just the vaguest hint of guilt in the
way she evaded Talia's questions. Talia
took an indirect approach then, and began checking on her through her
year-mates and teachers. What she found made her truly alarmed. "Havens,"
Tuli said, scratching his curly head in puzzlement. "/ don't know where
she is. She just sort of vanishes about this time of day." "Uh-huh,"
Gerond agreed, nodding so hard Talia thought his head was going to come off.
"Just lately. She's swapped me chores a couple times so she had the hour
free—an' she hates floorwashing! Somethin' wrong?" "No,
I've just been having trouble finding her today," Talia replied, taking
care to seem nonchalant. But she
was unnerved. These two were Elspeth's closest friends among her year-mates,
and they only confirmed what Talia had begun to fear. There were gaps of an
hour or so in Elspeth's day during which she was vanishing, and no one seemed
to have any idea of where she was. It was
time she checked her other sources—the Palace servants. Talia
perched herself on a settle, next to the cold fireplace in the Servant's Hall.
She had come to her 176 Mercedes
Lackey friends—for
many of the servants were her friends, and had been since she was a
student—rather than raise anyone's attention by having them come to her. Seated
about her were a half-dozen servitors she had found to be the most observant
and most trustworthy. Two of them, a chambermaid called Elise and a groom named
Ralf, had pinpointed the guilty parties when a group of the "Blues"
(or unaffiliated students) had tried to murder her as a student by attacking
her and throwing her into the ice-covered river. Elise had seen several of
Talia's attackers coming in mucky, and thought it more than odd; Ralf had
spotted the entire group hanging about the stable earlier. Both had reported their
observations to Elcarth when word spread of the attempt on Talia's life. "All
right," Talia began, "I have a problem. Elspeth is going off
somewhere about midafternoon every day, and I can't find out where or why. I
was hoping one of you would know." From
the looks exchanged within the group, she knew she'd found her answer. "She's—this
goes no farther, young Talia—" this from Jan, one of the oldest there. He
was a gardener, and to him, she would always be "young" Talia. Talia
nodded and he continued. "She's hangin1 about with young m'lord Joserlin
Corby's crew. Them as is no better'n rowdies." "Rowdies!"
Elise snorted. "If 'tweren't for their highborn da's, they'd been sent
home long ago for the way they paw over every girl they can catch unawares."
"Girl" here meant "female servant"; if Elise had intended
to say that the young men had been mishandling other females, she'd have said
"m'ladies." Not that this difference was very comforting; it meant
that they were only confining unwanted attentions to the women who dared not
protest overmuch. "It's
said," added another chambermaid, "that at home they gets t' more'n
pawings." "Such
as?" Talia replied. "You know I won't take it elsewhere." "Well—mind,
m'lady, this is just tales, but it's tales I hear from their people—this lot is
plain vicious." Besides
forcing their attentions on the servants of their ARROWS
FALL 117 estates,
it seemed that "Corby's Crew" was given to so-called pranks that were
very unfunny. A cut saddle-girth before a rough hunt was no joking matter, not
when it nearly caused a death. And some of these same adolescents were the
younger brothers and sisters of those who had tried to murder Talia. But
thus far—that anyone knew—Elspeth had not been a participant in any of their
activities. It seemed that at the moment she was simply being paid elaborate
court to—something new to her that she evidently found very enjoyable. But it
could well be only a matter of time before they lured her into some indiscretion—then
used that indiscretion to blackmail her into deeper participation. Elspeth's
good sense had probably protected her so far, but Talia was worried that it
might not be enough protection for very much longer. This
required active measures. She tried
to set a watch on the girl, but Elspeth was very clever and kept eluding her.
She tried once or twice to read her with a surface probe, but Elspeth's shields
were better than Talia's ability to penetrate without forcing her. Something
was going to have to be done, or among the three of them, Elspeth, Dirk, and
Kris were going to drive her mad in white linen. So she
decided to try to do something about Dirk first, as being the easiest to get
at—and since he wasn't talking to Kris, the way to him was through her
blood-brother Skif. "I'm
as baffled as you are, little sister," Skif confessed, running a nervous
hand through his dark curls, "I haven't got the vaguest notion why Dirk's
making such an ass of himself." "Lord
and Lady," Talia moaned, rubbing her temple and collapsing onto an old
chair in Skifs room, "I'd hoped he'd have said something to you—you were
my last hope! If this doesn't clear up soon, I think I'm going to go rather
noisily mad!" When
she had finally given up on trying to manage the problem of Dirk by herself,
and had sought out Skifs 118 Mercedes
Lackey aid,
he'd invited her up to his quarters. He'd been to hers a time or two, but this
was the first time she'd seen his. Skif s room was much like Skif himself; neat,
decked with odd weapons and thick with books. Lately Talia hadn't had much time
to devote to picking her own rooms up, and she found his quarters a haven from
chaos. He had only one window, but it looked out over Companion's Field—always
a tranquilizing view. "First
things first—this bond you've got. Kris was right. It's a lifebond—and he's got
it, too. I have no doubt whatsoever of that. I can tell by the way he looks at
you." "He
looks at me? When? I never see him anymore! Since the fight he spends all of
his tune out in the mud." "Except
at meals—any meal you take at the Collegium—he spends so much time watching you
that he hardly eats. And I think he knows your schedule by heart. Any time you
might be passing under a window, he's got an excuse to be near that
window." Skif paced the length of the room restlessly as he spoke, his
arms folded. "He's wearing himself to a thread. That's why I wanted to
talk to you alone here." "I
don't know how I'm supposed to be able to help when the man won't let me near
him." "Oh,
great!" "He
acts like I was a plague-carrier. I've tried to get him alone; he won't let me.
And that was before all this mess with the argument with Kris. Now it's twice
as bad." "Havens,
what a mess." Skif shook his head ruefully. "He hasn't said anything
to me. I can't imagine why he's acting this way. I've had it though, and I know
you're at your wits' end. It's about time we brought this out into the
sunlight. Since he won't talk to you, I'm going to make damned sure he talks to
me. I'm going to have it out with him as soon as I can corner him, and I'll do
it if I have to trap him in the bathing-room and steal his clothes! I'm going
to get things settled between him and Kris and him and you if I have to tie you
all together in a bundle to do it!" Neither
of them had reckoned on the whims of Fate. ARROW'S
FALL 119 Dirk
had been fighting what he thought was a slight cold—one of the many varieties
that were currently decimating Court and Collegium alike—for about a week.
Perversely he refused to care for it; continuing to escape Talia and Kris by
retreating into the dismal weather out-of-doors. In a bizarre way, he didn't
really mind feeling miserable; concentrating on his symptoms kept him from
thinking about Her and Him. Physical misery provided a relief from emotional
misery. So he
ducked in and out of the cold and rain, day after day, getting soaked to the
skin more often than not, but not doing much about it except to change his
clothing. Added to that, the emotional strain was taking a greater toll on him
than anyone—including himself—realized. It was
midweek, and Talia was taking dinner with the Collegium instead of the Court.
She was watching Dirk out of the corner of her eye the entire time, and hoping that
Skif was going to be able to fulfill his promise. She was worried—very worried.
Dirk was white to the ears; he kept rubbing his head as if it ached. She could
see him shiver, although the common-room was warm. He seemed to be unable to
keep his mind on what anyone was saying, and he couldn't speak more than two
words in a row without going into a fit of coughing. She
could also see that Kris was watching him, and looking just as concerned. He
pushed his food around without eating much. Kris finally seemed to come to some
conclusion, visibly steeled himself, and walked over to sit down next to him. Kris
said something to him, which he answered with a shake of his head. Then he
stood up—and Kris had to catch him as he started to crumple. Kris had
decided he'd had enough. He couldn't stand watching his dearest friend fret
himself to pieces—and he'd come to some unhappy conclusions over the past
couple of weeks. He'd gone over to sit next to Dirk before the Herald was aware
that he was even in the 720 Merceries
Lackey common
room, and spoke his piece before Dirk had a chance to escape. "I
was wrong; I was wrong to put so much trust in my uncle, wrong to have doubted
you, and wrong to have said anything about your private life. I apologize. Are
you going to forgive me, or will I have to throw myself from the battlements in
despair?" Dirk
had started a little when Kris first began speaking in his ear, but hadn't
moved away. He'd listened with a mixture of relief and bemusement, then shook
his head with a weak smile at Kris' last sally. Then he stood up— And the
room faded from before his eyes, as he felt his legs give under him. Half a
dozen instructors and field Heralds made a rush for him as Kris caught him.
They lowered him back down into his seat, as he protested weakly that he was
all right. "I—"
he coughed, rackingly. "I just was dizzy a minute—" he bent over in a
fit of coughs, unable to continue, hardly able to catch his breath. "Like
Hell!" replied Teren, one hand on his forehead, "You're on fire, man.
You're for the Healers, and I don't want to hear any nonsense out of you about
it." Before
he could regain enough breath to object, Teren draped one of his arms over his
own shoulders, while a very worried Kris did the same on Dirk's other side. The
rest surrounded the three of them, allowing no opportunity to escape, and
escorted them out the door. By the
time they'd reached their goal, his breath was rattling in his chest and there
was little doubt of what ailed him. The Healers isolated him and ran everyone
else off, and there was very little that anyone could do about it. Talia
had turned ashen when he'd collapsed, and had left her dinner uneaten, waiting
for Kris' return. Kris
finally reappeared, to be engulfed by everyone who'd been present, demanding to
know what the Healers had said. "They
tell me he has pneumonia, and it's going to get a lot worse before it gets
better," he replied, his voice ARROWS
FALL 121 carrying
easily across from the doorway to the bench where Talia sat. "And they
won't let anyone see him for at least a day or two." Talia
made a little noise like a strangled sob, stood quickly, and pushed blindly
away from the table. The knot of people surrounding Kris had blocked the door
nearest her; she stumbled against benches twice as she fled to the door
opposite and to her room. She ran all the way down the corridors of the
Collegium and through the double doors leading to the Herald's Wing. She hurled
herself up the darkened spiral staircase of the tower that held her room,
pushed the door open and flung herself down on the couch in the outer room of
her suite, sobbing with a lost despair she hadn't felt since that awful moment
in the Waystation. . . . She
hadn't closed the door behind her hi her flight, and wasn't in much shape to
pay attention to sounds around her. She only realized that she was not alone
when she heard someone settle beside her, and somehow knew it was Keren and
Sherrill. She
tried to get herself back under control, but Keren's first words, spoken in a
tone of such deep and unmistakable love that Talia hardly believed her ears,
completely undid her. "Little
centaur, dearheart, what cause tha' greeting?" Keren
had slipped into the dialect of her home, something she only did on the rarest
of occasions, and then mostly with her twin or her lifemate—moments of profound
intimacy. That
broke down the last of her reserve, and she turned with gratitude into Keren's
arms and wept bitterly on her ready shoulder. "Everything's
gone wrong!" she sobbed, "Elspeth isn't talking to me anymore, and I
know there's something going on—something she doesn't want either Selenay or me
to know about—but I can't find out whatl And Dirk— and Kris—we fought, and now
they won't talk to me either and—and—now Dirk's sick, and I can't bear it! Oh,
gods, I'm a total failure!" Keren,
wisely, said nothing, and let the hysterical words and tears wear themselves
out. Sherrill meanwhile went 122 Mercedes
lackey quietly
about the room, closing the door and fighting candles against the growing
darkness. That done, she seated herself at Keren's feet to wait. "For
tha' problem of Elspeth I can think of no solution," Keren said
thoughtfully when Talia was in a better state to listen. "But if there was
anything truly wrong, her Gwena would surely seek out Rolan—and thee would
know." "I
hadn't even thought of that." Talia looked up into Keren's eyes from where
she rested on her shoulder, crestfallen at her own stupidity. "Why
should thee? She's never given thee anxiety before." Keren almost-smiled. "I'm
not thinking very clearly. No, that's not true. I'm not thinking at ail. It's
wrong of me, but—Keren, I don't know how much longer I can bear this trouble
with Dirk without flying to pieces. Keren, I want to be with him so much
sometimes I think it would be easier to die!" Keren
sighed. "Lifebond, then, is it? And with Dirk— gods, what a tangle! Well,
that explains his madness, for certain. Lady only knows what cracked notion the
lad has in his head, and 'tis sure the thing's got him all turned round
about." "We
know how it can be—an agony." Sherrill rose from her place, sat next to
Talia, and slipped her arm around Talia's waist, joining Keren in supporting
her. "It's hellish, being pulled inside out by something that can't be
denied and won't be turned to anything else. Is anyone trying to help you get
this straightened out?" At
Talia's nod, Keren pursed her lips thoughtfully. "I can't think of
anything at all to help thee, little centaur. First it's a matter of getting
Dirk and Kris speaking, then getting Dirk's mind made up about thee. Hopefully
the first is done already. But the second—my best guess is that he's gotten
confused somewhere, and has been chasing his own tail. Time, dearling. That's
all it will take. Time." "If
I can just hold out a little longer—" Talia relaxed herself with an effort
while Keren and Sherrill held her in a circle of love and comfort for long
moments. "You
know we understand, dearling," Sherrill said at ARROW®
FALL 123 last
for both of them. "Who better? Now, let's change the subject. We're
determined to make you smile again." With
that she and Keren took turns telling her the most hilarious stories that they
could think of—mostly of some of the goings-on at the Collegium during her
absence. No few of them were libelous; all of them were at least undignified.
Talia wished profoundly that she had been present to witness the grave and
aloof Kyril picking himself out of the fish pond with a strand of waterweed
behind his ear. Between the two of them, they soon had her laughing again, and
had drained at least some of the tension from her. Finally,
Keren nodded to her lifemate and gave Talia a comforting hug. "I think
you're cheered enough to survive the night, dear one," the older woman
said. "Yes?" "I
think so," Talia replied. "Then
let tomorrow take care of tomorrow, and have a good long sleep," Keren
advised, and she and Sherrill departed as quietly as they had come. Talia
wandered back into her bedroom to shed her uniform. She dressed for bed, then
changed her mind and wrapped a robe about herself and settled down on her couch
with a book. She must have dozed off without meaning to, because the next thing
she knew, Kris was standing beside her and touching her arm lightly to wake
her, and the candles were burned down to stubs in their holders. He was
hardly what she expected to see. "Kris!" she exclaimed joyfully, then
fear took the place of joy. "Is Dirk—worse?" she asked, feeling the
color drain from her face. "No,
little bird, he's no worse. I've just come from there. He's asleep, and the
Healers say he'll be all right in a week or two. And we're friends again. I
thought you'd want to know—and I wanted to make up with you, too." "Oh,
Kris—I—I've never been so miserable in my life," she confessed. "I
was so angry with you, that I swore I wasn't going to speak to you until you
came to me and apologized, but my pride isn't worth wrecking our friendship
over." 124 Mercedes
Lackey His
expression softened a little, and she realized he'd been tensed against her
answer. "I've never been so miserable either, little bird. And I've never
felt like quite so much of an idiot." "You
aren't an idiot. Your uncle is—" "My
uncle is—not what I thought," he interrupted. "I have to apologize to
you, like I apologized to Dirk. I was wrong about my uncle. I'm not certain
what his problem is, but he is trying to undermine you. And he's trying to wean
me away from you. I've extracted information from the unwary often enough that
I ought to have recognized it when he was doing it to me—but I didn't until
just recently. He became a little too eager, and failed to cover his
trail." Kris' expression was troubled. "I hope that what he did to
Dirk was unintentional, but I'm afraid I can't be certain anymore. I wish I
knew what his game is. At the moment if I were to hazard a guess, it would be
this: he wants the postion he had as Seienay's closest advisor, and he wants me
slightly disaffected from the Heralds so that my family loyalty is just a
trifle stronger than my loyalty to the Circle. You were right; I was
wrong." "I—I'm
almost sorry to hear you say that." A little breeze from the open window
behind her made the candles flicker and stirred locks of his hair as she
assessed his rueful expression. "What happened to change your mind?" "Mostly
that he tried too hard after the squabble; as I said, he tried to pump me for
information about you, and made one too many slighting remarks about Dirk. You
were right, that he has a grudge against you, though why, I have no idea. And I
think he used that incident with the scrolls as a chance to get at you through
Dirk . . . and as a chance to come between me and Dirk. I can only hope he
didn't manufacture it, too." She
almost said angrily that the dropped scroll was no accident, that Orthallen had
manufactured the incident, but decided to hold her tongue. He was in a
receptive mood, but the quickest way to close his mind would be to make further
accusations. "I have to admit I'm of two minds about this. I'm glad you're
coming around to my ARROWS
FALL 125 way of
thinking, but I'm sorry to have changed your faith in your uncle." "Don't
be, it isn't you that has problems, it's him." "Well,
this is the first time anything has gone right in weeks. Kris, I'm glad we're
friends again." He
dropped easily to the floor beside her couch. "So am I. I've missed
talking to you. But as for things not going right ... I don't know about
that." He grinned ironically. "That advice you gave me on how to deal
with Nessa certainly worked." "I
meant to ask you about that," she said, grateful for the way they dropped
back into easy conversation, and dad of his company. "I noticed she seems
to be pursuing Skif these days." He
sighed, and drooped like a mime displaying dejection. "Once she had her
way with me, she was off to other conquests. Oh, the perfidy of women! When
will I ever learn? My heart is forever broken!" **That's
the first time I ever heard that forever' equaled the time it takes to boil an
egg," she replied wryly. "Oh,
less, I assure you. I had a chance to drop Skif a word on the subject of the
fair Nessa. Now he happens to be very appreciative of Nerissa's quite real
charms. So now that he knows the means of keeping her attention— which is to
play hard-to-get—she may very well find herself in the position of
hunter-turned-hunted." "Like
the old man said about that handfasted couple in Fivetree ... do you
remember?" Kris
screwed his face up into a fair imitation of the old man's age-twisted
countenance. "Lor' help you, Herald!" he croaked. "Chased 'er?
'Deed he did, in very .deed. Chased 'er till she caught Aim!" Talia
smiled wistfully. "We had some good times out there, didn't we?" "There'll
be more. Don't worry, little bird. I'll get this tangle straightened as soon as
the Healers will let me near to talk to Dirk. You know, this illness may be a
blessing in disguise; he won't be able to avoid me or find something that
urgently needs his attention, and hopefully he'll believe the things I tell
him." 726 Mercedes
Lackey He
stood to leave, and Talia gently touched his hand in thanks. "Take
heart, little bird. Things will get better. I can always slip Dirk love-potions
with his medicines!" He winked, and ran lightly down the staircase. She
laughed, feeling much eased, and rose; laving her book down on the table beside
the couch. She went slowly about the room and extinguished her lights, and then
went to bed with a happier heart and mind. By the
next morning Talia felt far more optimistic— and far readier to tackle her
problems face on. And since Dirk was out of reach, the logical problem to
tackle was Elspeth. Now she
was determined to corner Elspeth and confront her about her behavior. Council
and Court kept her occupied most of the day, she missed the girl at arms
practice by scant moments. Finally she tried tracking her down after dinner—but
Elspeth managed to elude Talia again. She had no doubt this time that it was no
accident, but a purposeful avoidance. Talia
was badly worried. All her instincts told her that things were about to come to
a head. She opened her shields and was unsuccessfully trying to locate the girl
when she felt an urgent and unmistakable summons from Rolan. With a sinking
heart she left the Collegium and ran for the Field. When she reached the fence
that surrounded it she saw her worst fears realized. Waiting with Rolan was
Elspeth'$ Gwena, both of them like marble statues in the moonlight. The
images she received from both of them—especially Gwena—were blurred and
chaotic, though there was no mistaking Gwena's anxiety. Tafia touched both
their necks and concentrated in an effort to make some sense of the images.
Finally she got a series that came clear . . . and Orthallen was at the center
of them. Orthatlen, and a young courtier who was his creature, one of
"Corby's Crew"—and they were planning Elspeth's disgrace! She
threw herself onto Rolan's back without a moment's hesitation. He galloped at
full speed to the fence that separated the Field from the barn and stables of
the ARROW'S
FALL 127 ordinary
horses, with Gwena barely keeping up beside him. They vaulted the fence like a
pair of great white birds, and headed straight for the haybarn. Talia flung
herself off Rolan's back before they had fully stopped. As she
sprinted for the barn, she heard a young male voice murmuring something in the
darkness, and she flung open the great door with a strength she never even knew
she had. Moonlight
poured in on the pair disclosed, and Talia saw with relief that matters had not
yet had a chance to proceed very far between Elspeth and her would-be lover. He
was rattled considerably by Talia's sudden appearance. If Elspeth was, she
wasn't showing it. "What
do you want?" Elspeth asked flatly, refusing pridefully to snatch her
jerkin closed where it was unlaced. "To
prevent you from making the same mistake your mother did," Talia replied
just as coldly. "The mistake of thinking that fine words mean a lofty
mind, and a pretty face goes with a noble heart. This young peacock has little
more in his mind except to put you in a position where you have no choice but
to take him as your consort or disgrace yourself, your mother, and your
Kingdom." "You're
wrong!" Elspeth defended him passionately. "He loves me! He told me
so!" "And
you believed him, even when your own Companion would have nothing to do with
him?" Talia was white-hot with anger now. Elspeth was not willing to
listen to reason. Very well then, she should have evidence that she would
accept—in plenty. Talia
ruthlessly forced rapport on the young courtier. His petty evil was no match
for some of the minds Talia had been forced to touch, though his slimy slyness
made her skin crawl. Before Elspeth had a chance to shield herself, Talia
pulled her in as well—and forced her to see for herself the true thoughts of
one who had claimed that he cared for her. With a
cry of revulsion, Elspeth tore herself away from him and fled to the opposite
side of the barn, while Talia released her mind from the enforced union. She
was less gentle with the young popinjay. She had him in a crush- 128 Mercedes
Lackey ing
mental grip, and fed his fear without compunction as he gazed at her in dumb
terror. "You
will say nothing of this to anyone," she told him, burning each word into
his mind. "Because if you dare, you'll never sleep again—for every time
you shut your misbegotten eyes, this is what you'll see—" She
tore the memory of his worst nightmare out of the bowels of recollection and
flung it in his face, brutally invoking terror and forcing that on him as well.
He whimpered and groveled at her feet until she threw him violently out of rapport. "Get
out of here," she growled. "Get out, go back to your father's
holding, and don't come back." He fled
without a single backward glance. She
turned to face Elspeth, trying to control her anger by slowing her breathing.
"I thought better of you than that," she said, each word built of
ice. "I thought you would have had better taste than to let a creature
like that touch you." Elspeth
was crying, but as much out of anger as unhap-piness. "Fine words from the
Herald Vestal," she spat. "First Skif, then Kris—and now who? Why
shouldn't I have my lovers as well as you?" Talia
closed her hands into fists so tightly that her nails cut her palms. "I
think I hear the Brat speaking," she replied. "The little bitch who
wants all the glory of being the Heir, but none of the responsibilities. Oh,
Hulda taught you very well, didn't she? Grab and take—snatch all you can, think
only of yourself, and never mind what repercussions your actions may have on
others. Others don't matter. Oh, no, not now that you're Heir. After all, your
word is law, right? Or it should be. And if somebody tries to make you see
reason, well, dredge up the worst you can about mem and throw it in their
faces— then they'll be afraid to try and stop you from doing what you want. Well,
that doesn't work with me, young woman. For alt the importance it has, I could
be sleeping with men, women, or chirras, because I'm not the Heir. You seem to
have conveniently forgotten that you will sit on the Throne when your mother
dies. You may have to make a marriage of state to save us from a powerful ARROWS
FALL 129 enemy.
That was what this business with Alessandar and Ancar was all about, or have
you forgotten that, too? No one will want you or respect you outKingdom after
dallying with a petty schemer like he is. And I, at least, have never been
intimate with anyone that I didn't know, and who wasn't willing to let me
inside his thoughts. He wouldn't let you do that, would he? Didn't that make
you the least bit suspicious? Lady's Breasts, girl—where was your mind? Your
own Companion wouldn't have anything to do with him! Didn't that tell you
anything? If you're so hot to have a man between your legs, why the hell didn't
you choose a fellow student or someone from the Circle? They will at least
never betray you and they know when to keep their mouths shut!" Elspeth
burst into frantic tears. "Go away!" she wailed. "Leave me
alone! It wasn't like that at all! I thought—I thought—he loved me! I hate
you—I never want to see you ever again!" "That
pleases me very well," Talia snapped. "I'm ashamed that I wasted so
much of my time trying to help a damned fool." She
stalked out of the barn, vaulted onto Rolan's back, and returned to the Palace
without a backward glance. But
before she was halfway there, she was already rueing half of what she had said. She
reported to Selenay in an agony of self-accusation. The
Queen was in her private quarters, which were as Spartan as her public rooms
were opulent. She had wrapped herself in a robe of old and shabby brown
velveteen, nearly the same age and color as the couch she curled up on. Talia
stood before her, unable to look her in the eyes, as she related the entire
bitter tale. "Goddess,
Selenay, I couldn't have made a bigger mess of the situation if I'd planned it
out in advance,1* she finished, nibbing one temple and very near to weeping
with vexation. "I'm as big an idiot as I accused Elspeth of being. I let
all my training go flying merrily out the window, let my own problems get the
better of me, 130 Mercedes
Lackey and
completely lost my temper. Maybe you'd better send me back through the
Collegium with the babies again." "Just
wait a moment. I'm not sure that your reaction was the wrong one, and I'm not
sure that you didn't do the right thing," the Queen replied thoughtfully,
candlelight reflecting in her wide eyes. "Sit down, little friend, and
hear me out. Firstly, we've been very gentle with Elspeth up until now insofar
as exposing her to the kind of emotional blackmail and double-dealing perfidy
that we both know is fairly commonplace at Court. Well, now she's learned that
deceit can arrive packaged very attractively, and that isn't a bad thing. She
was hurt and frightened—but that will send the lesson home the more deeply. I
believe you were correct in thinking that this experience will prevent her from
making the same kind of mistake I made. That's not to say that you didn't
overreact and say some things you shouldn't have, but on the whole, I think the
good will outweigh the mistakes." "How
can you say that after the way I've alienated her? I'm supposed to be her
friend and counselor!" "And
when, in all the time you've known her, have you ever lost your temper with
her? Not once. So she learns something else—that it's possible to go too far
with you, and that you're as human and fallible as the rest of us. I doubt
she'll ever provoke you that far again." "There
isn't likely to be another chance," Talia said bitterly. "Not the way
I've fouled things up." "I
disagree." Selenay shook her head emphatically. "Since you've been
gone I've gotten to know my daughter very well. She meant what she said ... for
now. She has a temper, but once it cools she doesn't hold a grudge. And when
she realizes that you were right—and acting in her defense—she'll come around.
If you were to disappear for a while, I think she'll eventually realize that
while you did overreact, so did she." The
Queen pondered for a moment. "I think I have the perfect solution.
Remember Alessandar's marriage proposal? I intended to make a state visit there
in the next few weeks, and I wanted to send an envoy on ahead to look the
prince over. As my own personal advisor you would be perfect for that, the more
especially as I intend ARROW'S
FALL 131 to send
Kris as well. I heard about the quarrel between Kris and Dirk, and I had
figured on giving them a bit of time for things to cool as well. I was going to
send Dirk and Kyril, until Dirk fell ill last night, so I'll separate the pair
by sending Kris off." "That's
mended," Talia sighed. "I
still want to send Kris; he has the manner and the blood to be acceptable, and
I would as soon keep Kyril here. You and Kris worked outstandingly well as a
team, and I trust your judgment completely. I think that rather than canceling
the visit, I'll move the date up and send the two of you on ahead to spy things
out for me. I'll take Elspeth with me. And I'll have a word with Orthallen
about those protege's of his." Selenay's eyes grew cold. "It's about
time he stopped being their defender and stopped letting them use his good name
to get away with whatever they please." Talia
realized then that she had not told Selenay her belief that Orthallen had put
the boy up to the attempted seduction. But—what proof did she have? Nothing,
except the vague image of Orthallen in the boy's mind— and that could have been
because he was hoping to escape punishment by sheltering behind his protector.
Best not to mention it, she thought wearily. I'm not up to going through the
same arguments I faced with Kris. "By
the time we all meet again," Selenay was saying, "Elspeth will have
had time to think. Do you think you could be ready in the morning? The sooner
you drop out of Elspeth's sight, the better." "I
could be ready in an hour," Talia replied. "Although I'm not sure you
should be so quick to trust me after tonight." "Talia,
I trust you even more," Selenay replied, as Talia seemed to read
understanding in her eyes. "You've come to me hot from the quarrel to
claim it was all your fault—how many people, how many Heralds, even, would have
done the same? But you haven't told me what has set you so on edge. Is it
something to do with Kris? Did you get caught in the middle of his feud with
Dirk? If you have problems with Kris, I'll send a different Herald with
you." 132 Mercedes
Lackey "Kris?"
Talia's honest surprise seemed to relieve the Queen. "No, thank the Lady,
we've more than made up our differences, just as he and Dirk made up. Bright
Havens, if anything he'll help straighten out this awful tangle! It's nothing
that can't be worked out with time, just like this row with Elspeth; it's just
that the time it's taking to set everything straight is driving me out of
patience and out of temper." "Good.
Then the plan stands. You and Kris will leave in the morning." "Selenay,
if you don't think it's a bad idea ..." Talia began hesitantly. "I
doubt that it would be. What is it you'd like to do?" "I'd
like to write a note of apology to Elspeth and leave it with you. There's no
doubt in my mind that I was partially in the wrong, that I overreacted, and
that I said a great many hurtful things because I was unhappy and I wanted to
hurt someone else. I certainty was far too hard on her. You can use your own
judgment whether or not to give it to her, and when." "It
sounds reasonable to me," Selenay replied, '"although a bit
unnecessary. We'll be following a week or two behind you, and apologies are
always more effective in person." "That's
quite true—but you never know what's likely to happen, and you may to want to
give it to her before you start off. I don't like the idea of leaving
unfinished business behind me, especially something as wretched as this. Who
knows? I might never get another chance." "Bright
Havens, dear! I should hire you out as my official doomsayer!" Selenay
laughed, but it was a little uneasy. Talia
shook her head with a vague smile. "Gods, I'm seeing everything miserable
just because I'm miserable. I will leave that note with you, but because the
catling may well decide to be a human being again once I've left. Now—are they
expecting any two Heralds, or Dirk and Kyril? Will there be any problem with me
showing up?" "The
underlings are probably just expecting two Heralds," Selenay said. "I
hadn't specified. I'll send the appropriate papers with you, of course. The
guards on ARROWS
FALL 133 Aiessandar's
side of the Border will send the specifics on ahead of you. I've heard he has
some special way of relaying messages, faster than birds or couriers. I would depends from
allies or not—or whether it's a secret at all. We'll do our best," Talia
managed half a smile. "You know, having the two of us on this assignment
will work rather well at ferreting secrets out. Anybody involved with state
secrets will be nervous; I can pick that up, and Kris can follow my anchor to
Farsee what's going on. My Queen, you are very sly." "Me?"
Selenay contrived to look innocent, then caught her eyes squarely. "Are
you sure you're ready for this? I won't send you if you don't feel capable of
political intrigue and all the rest that this will entail. It is likely to be
simple and straightforward, but it could involve ferreting out secrets, and at
the very least you'll be dealing with the same amount of scheming you have
here." "I'm
ready," Talia sighed. "It can't be worse than the mess I've already
been dealing with." Six "I
feel like I'm running away." Talia's
voice was quiet, but in the hush of pre-dawn Kris had no trouble hearing her. "Don't,"
Kris replied, tightening Tantris' girth with a little grunt. Their
Companions stood patiently side by side in the tackshed, as they had so many
times during Talia's internship, waiting for their Chosen to finish harnessing
them. The rain mat had blown up just past midnight had died away to nothing,
but the skies were still overcast; both Heralds wore their cloaks against the
chill damp. Tantris and Rolan were being decked out in full "formal"
array; the silver brightwork gleamed in the light from the lantern just above
Tantris' shoulder and the bridle bells tinkled softly as the Companions
shifted. The homey scent of leather and hay made Talia's throat ache with tears
she refused to shed. "Look,
there isn't anything either of us can do here at tile moment, right?" Kris
threw his saddlebags over Tantris' hindquarters and fastened them to the
saddle's skirting. "Elspeth won't talk to you, and Dirk can't. So you
might as well be doing something useful—something different. There won't be
anybody who's going to need you during the few weeks we'U be gone, will
there?" "No,
not really." TaUa had been very busy this past evening; her lack of sleep
was apparent from the dark circles under her eyes. "Destria is doing fine;
anything she needs now Vostel is more than competent to give her. I talked to
Alberich; he took me to see Kyril. They 135 136 Mercedes
Lackey promised
me that they'd keep an eye on your uncle—I'm sorry, Kris. ..." "Don't
apologize; I'm just a little surprised you managed to convince Kyril he needed
watching. Tantris, stand, dammit!" "I
didn't, really, Alberich did." "Huh.
Alberich? Nobody convinces him of anything; he must have had reasons of his own
to agree with you." He digested this in silence for a moment. Tantris
shifted over another step. "Alberich
is going to have a word or two with Elspeth, too," she continued after the
silence had become a little uncomfortable. She ran her hands down Rolan's legs
to confirm that the bindings on his pasterns and fetlocks were firm. "And
Keren promised to beard Dirk in his lair as soon as she can bully her way past
the Healers. So did Skif." "Skif
said as much to me. Poor Dirk, I could almost feel sorry for him. He's not
likely to get much sympathy from either of those two." Tantris' bridle
bells tinkled as he shifted again. "Sympathy
isn't what he needs," she replied a little waspishly, straightening up.
"He's been wallowing in self-pity long enough ..." her voice trailed
off, and she concluded shamefacedly: "for that matter, so have I." "Work
is the best cure I know for self-pity, little bird," Kris said,
self-consciously. "And—hey!" With
that last step Tantris had managed to shift over far enough that Kris and Talia
were trapped between the two Companions, breast-to-breast. :Kiss
and make up, brother-mine. And be nice. She's having a hard time.: Kris
sighed with exasperation, then looking down at Talia's wistful eyes, softened. "It'll
be all right, little bird—and you have every reason to feel sorry for
yourself." He kissed her softly on the forehead and the lips. She
relaxed just a Tittle, and leaned her head for a short moment on his shoulder.
"I don't know what I've done to deserve a friend tike you/' she sighed,
then took hold of herself. "But we have a long road ahead of us—" ARROW'S
FALL 137 Tantris
had moved away so that they were no longer trapped, and Kris could hear him
laughing in his mind. "—and we've got a limited time to cover it,"
Kris finished for her. "And since my Companion has decided to cooperate
again, wrought to get moving." He gave Tantris' harness a final tug and
swung into the saddle. "Ready to go?" "As
ready as I'll ever be." They
took with them only what Tantris and Rolan could carry. They needed to carry no
supplies; they would be housed and fed at inns along the way until they reached
the Border, and thereafter would be using the hostels of King Alessandar. They
also needed to bring a minimum in the way of personal belongings. The Queen and
her entourage would be following at a pace geared to her baggage train, and
they would bring whatever might be required for the term of official visits.
Selenay and Alessandar were long-time allies; he and her father had been that
rarest of things among rulers—personal friends. Although it was a slim chance,
the possibility of Elspeth being willing to make a marriage with Alessandar's
own heir was not to be dismissed offhand. Alessandar had not been discouraged
by Selenay's initial reply to his offer— rather he had urged this visit on her,
so that she and Elspeth could see Ancar for themselves. He had argued
convincingly that such marriages took years to arrange; even were they to agree
now, Elspeth would be past her internship when it became a reality. Since
Selenay had not seen the young man since he was an infant, on the occasion of
his naming and her last state visit, she agreed. This would be the ideal time
for such a visit. Since the Collegium was about to go into summer recess, she
could bring Elspeth with her. She was still determined that Elspeth would not
be forced into any marriage unless the safety of the entire realm rested on it.
She was equally determined that any young man that Elspeth chose, be he royal
or common, would at least be of the frame of mind to agree with the principles
that governed her Kingdom. If possible, he should be of Heraldic material
himself. Ideally, Elspeth's consort would be someone who was either Chosen
already 138 Mercedes
Lackey or who
would be Chosen once he was brought to the attention of the Companions. If this
came to pass, it would fulfill Selenay's highest hopes, for the Heir's consort
would be co-ruler if also a Herald. Besides
preceding their Monarch and making certain all was in readiness for her, Kris'
and Talia's primary duty was to examine the proposed bridegroom—and to
determine how his own people felt about him—for themselves; and then give
Selenay their opinions of his character. It was no small trust. This
was all in the back of Talia's mind as they rode away in the darkness before
dawn. Troubling her thoughts was her feeling that, in spite of the importance
of this mission, she was running away from unfinished business by accepting it. She had
labored for hours over the simple note to Elspeth, tearing up dozens of false
starts. It stitl wasn't right; she wished she'd been able to find better words
to explain why she had overreacted, and nothing she could say would unspeak
some of the hurtful things she'd said. The incident was evidence that she and
Elspeth had drawn apart during Talia's interning, and the rift that had come
between them needed to be healed, and quickly. She couldn't help but berate
herself for not seeing it when she'd first returned. Then
there was Dirk . . . She couldn't
help but think she was being cowardly. Anyone with any courage at all would
have remained, despite everything. And yet—what could she truly do back there
besides fret? Kris was right; Elspeth would refuse to speak with her, and Dirk
was out of bounds in the Healers' hands. It
seemed appropriate that they rode away through darkness, and that the sky was
so gloomy and overcast there was no bright dawn at all, merely a gradual
lightening of the dark to gray, leaden daylight. Kris
was not very happy with himself at the moment, ,7 haven't been doing too well
by my friends lately, have I?: he sent to Tantris' backward-pointing ears. ;Not
little brother, you haven't,: his Companion agreed. ARROW'S
FALL 139 He
sighed, and settled himself a little more comfortably in the saddle. Now that
he looked back on it, there were things he should have done. He should have
told Dirk right off about the way Talia felt—about Dirk, and about himself.
When Dirk started acting oddly, he should have had it out with him. He should
never have let things get to the point where Dirk was leaning on the bottle to
cope. Lord
and Lady, I'd be willing to bet gold he thinks its me Talia's in love with.
Gods, gods, I've been tearing his heart and soul into ragged bits and I never
even noticed. No wonder he picked a fight with me, no wonder he was drinking.
Ah, Dirk, my poor brother—I did it to you again. How am I going to make it up
to you? Then
there was Talia. He should have believed that Talia wasn't indulging in a
grudge. He should have known, what with all the time he'd spent with her, that
she wasn't inclined to hold grudges, even though she wasn't inclined to forgive
a hurt too easily. He should have believed that her feeling about his uncle was
rooted in fact, not dislike. Alberich obviously believed her—and the Armsmaster
was hardly noted for making hasty judgments. :Might-have-beens
don't mend the broken pot,: Tantris said in his mind. .-Little brother, why
didn't you do these tilings?: Good
question. Kris thought about that one while the road passed under Tantris'
hooves. There weren't many folk out this early, so they had the road to
themselves, and there was nothing to distract him. One
thing at a time. Why hadn't he done anything about Dirk? He came
to the sobering conclusion that he hadn't done anything because he hadn't seen
the problem until Dirk was drinking himself to sleep every night. And he hadn't
seen it because he was so pleased with himself for the completion of a
successful assignment on his own—so wrapped up in a glow of
self-congratulation—that he hadn t noticed anything else. He'd been like a
child on holiday; selfishly intent only on his own pleasures now that the
onerous burden of school was done with for the 740 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 141 nonce.
Teaching the classes in Farseeing was so very easy for him that it was like
having no duty at all, and he'd been spending the rest of his time up to his
eyebrows in his own pleasures. ;Very
good,: Tantris said dryly. :Now don't go overboard in beating your breast about
it. I wasn't too remiss in enjoying myself, either. It had been a long lime to
be out—and Ahrodie and I missed each other. : :Hedonist,:
Kris sent, a little relieved that his Companion was being so reasonable. :Not
realty. We're as close as you and Dirk—in a slightly different fashion. More
like you and Talia, really.: Yes,
Talia—it was easy to figure out why he'd been so slow to see her plight.
Orthallen was, in all honesty, a politician, a schemer, and power-hungry. Kris
had been forced to defend his uncle's actions to other Heralds more than once,
although never against an accusation of deliberate and malicious wrongdoing.
Kris knew Orthallen never did anything for just one reason; yes, he might well
manage to gain a little more power, influence, or put someone in his debt by
the things he did, but there was always a profit for the Kingdom as well.
Heralds though— the use of authority for personal benefit bothered them,
probably because such usage was forbidden them, both by training and by
inclination. Most Heralds weren't highborn, and didn't grow up with the
intrigue and politics that were a part of the rhythm of Court life. Things Kris
accepted matter-of-factly disgusted them. But the fact was that Heralds were
very sheltered creatures—except the ones who lived and worked in the Court, or
were highborn. Court politics were a reality most Heralds could remain
blissfully unaware of, for they dealt only with the highest level of Court life—the
Queen, her immediate entourage, and the Seniors—where for all intents and
purposes, the politicking didn't exist. It was at Orthallen's level, the
mid-to-upper level nobility, that the competition was fiercest. And it was very
possible he had seen only the political implications of the ascension of the
new Queen's Own. More than possible. Most likely . . . Which
meant he'd seen Talia as a political rival to be trimmed down; seen her only as
a political rival. Her duties
and responsibilities as a Herald—Orthallen probably didn't understand them, and
certainly discounted them as irrelevant. Old Talamir had been no threat to
Orthallen, but this quick, intelligent, young woman was. All of
which boiled down to the fact that Talia was likely dead-accurate in reading
Orthallen's motives toward her. Yes,
Kris had dealt with fellow Heralds' censure of his uncle before. But Talia's
accusations had been different— and he had been as shocked by the idea that a
member of his family could be suspected of real wrongdoing as Talia had been
that a Herald was accused of it. He'd taken it almost as an attack on himself,
and had reacted just as unthinkingly. .7 wish
you'd spoken your mind to me before this,: Kris told Tantris, just a hint of
accusation flavoring the thought. :It
doesn't work that way, little brother,: Tantris replied, :and you know that
perfectly well. We only give advice when we're asked for it. It isn't our job
to interfere in your personal lives. How do you think poor Ahrodie was feeling,
with her Chosen making a muck of things and not even talking to her, hm? And
Rolan can't even properly talk with his Chosen. But now that you are finally
asking—: ilmpari
to me your deathless wisdom.: :Now,
now, there's no need to be sarcastic. As it happens, I don't like Orthallen
either, but he's never given anyone any real evidence of iU-will before this.
All I've ever had to go on were my instincts.: .-Which
are far better than any human's,: Kris reminded him. :Weti,
don't blame yourself for not seeing anything,: Tantris continued. :But when
someone like Talia insists on a thing, it's probably a good idea to lay aside
your feelings about it and consider it as dispassionately as possible. Now that
she's got that Gift of hers in full control, her instincts in these matters are
as good as mine.: :Yes,
graybeard,: Kris thought, his good humor somewhat restored by the fact that
Tantns wasn't trying to make him feel guilty about the mess. :Graybeard,
am I?: Tantris snorted and shook his mane. 'fit. 142 Mercedes
Lackey :We'll
see about that.: And he performed a little caracole, a half-buck that shook
Kris* bones, and a kick or two before settling back down to his original steady
pace. While
Rolan could not Mindspeak Talia as Tantris could Kris, he was making his
feelings abundantly clear. It was quite plain to Talia that her Companion
thought she was indulging in a good deal more self-pity than the occasion
warranted. Perversely, his disapproval made her feel all the sorrier for herself. Eventually
he gave up on her, and let her wallow in her misery to her heart's content. The
weather, unseasonable for the edge of summer, was certainly cooperating; it was
a perfect day for being depressed. The chill, leaden skies threatened rain, but
it never quite made up its mind to fall. The few people they met on the roadway
were taciturn and scant in their greetings. The threat of rainfall made folk in
the villages they passed inclined to stay indoors. Because
they were traveling light, they would make the best possible time to the
Border, even though they would be stopping to rest at night. According to
Kyril, it was probable that they would proceed still on their own as far as the
capital, since the Companions would be able to make far better time than any
steeds the King could send with an escort. Which meant, given the probable
speed of Selenay and her entourage, they would have several days at least to
assess the prince and the situation before one of them rode back to meet the
Queen on the Border. That
likeliest would be Kris; Talia, as Queen's Own, was the better choice for
envoy. Although her reason acknowledged the wisdom of this, her emotions
rebelled, wanting it to be her who made that first contact with Selenay—and
with Elspeth—and possibly, with Dirk, if he were well enough by then. Nothing
was going as she would have chosen; and on top of it all, she had been
experiencing an odd foreboding about this trip from the moment Selenay
mentioned it. There was no reason for it, yet she couldn't shake it. ARROWS
FALL 143 It was
as if she were riding from bad into worse, and there was no way to stop what
was coming. Talia
remained turned inward, determined to control her own internal turmoil by
herself. Weeping on Kris' shoulder would accomplish nothing. Rolan was a
solace— but this was a matter of dealing with her own emotions and her own
control. A Herald, she told herself for the thousandth time, was supposed to be
self-sufficient, able to cope no matter how difficult the situation. She would,
by the Havens, control herself—there was no excuse for her own emotional
weakness. She had learned to control her Gift—she would learn to school her
emotions to the same degree. The
hard pace they were setting left little opportunity for conversation, but Kris
was very aware of her unhap-piness. Talia had told him in detail about the
confrontation with the Heir as they were saddling up. He was sadly aware that
there was little he could do to help her; it was extremely frustrating to see
her in such emotional pain and be unable to do anything constructive about it.
Not long ago, he would have fled the prospect of emotional demands. Now in the
light of this morning's introspection his sole regret was that he could not
find some way to help. When
she'd lost control over her Gift, there had been something he could do. He was
a teacher; he knew the fundamentals of training any Gift, and he had Tantris
and Rolan to help him with the specifics of hers. Now .. . Well,
maybe there was one small way in which he could help her. If he talked to his
uncle, perhaps he could make him understand that Talia was not a political
threat. With that pressure off, the problem of dealing with Elspeth and Dirk
might assume more manageable proportions. They
stopped for a brief lunch at an inn, but mindful of the time constraints they
were under, they ate it standing in the stable-yard. "How
are you doing so far?*' he asked around a mouthful of meat pie. "I'm
all right," she replied. She'd already bolted down 744 Merccdcs
Lackey her
portion so fast she couldn't have tasted it. Now she was giving Rolan a brisk
rubdown, and was putting far more energy into Rolan's currying than was
strictly necessary. "Well
I know you haven't ridden much at forced pace; if you have any problems, let me
know." "I
will," was her only reply. He
tried again. ((I hope the weather breaks; it's bad for riding, but I would
think it's worse for crops." "Uh-huh." "We'll
have to ride right up until dark to make Trevale, but the inn there should make
up for the ride. I've been there before." He waited. No response.
"Think you can make it that far?" "Yes." "Their
wine is good. Their beer is better." "Oh." "Their
heartbeats have two tails." "Uh-huh." He gave
up. They
stopped long after dark when Kris was beginning to go numb in his legs, and
staggered into an inn neither of diem really saw. The innkeeper saw that both
of them were exhausted, and wisely kept his other customers away from them,
giving them a table right on the hearth and a good dinner. The inn
was a big one, and catered to traders, carters, and other mercantile travel.
The common room was nearly full, and noisy enough that Kris did not attempt
conversation. Talia was just as glad; she knew she wasn't decent company at the
moment, and she rather hoped he'd ignore her until she was. After a meal which
she did not even taste and choked down only because she needed to fuel her
body, they went straight to their beds. She was able to force herself to sleep,
but she could do nothing about her dreams. They were tortured and nightmarish,
and not at all restful. They
again left before dawn, rising before any of the other guests of the inn,
breaking their fast with hot bread ARROWS
FALL 145 aad
milk before swinging up into their saddles and resuming the journey. Talia,
having found no answers within, began resolutely turning her attention without.
The sides had begun clearing, and by late morning they were able to roll up
their cloaks and fasten them behind their saddles. When birds began voicing
their songs, her spirits finally began to lighten. By noon she had managed to
regain enough of her good humor to speak normally with Kris, and the whole mess
she'd left behind her began to assume better proportions. She was still
conscious of a faint foreboding, but in the bright sunlight it seemed hardly
more than the remnants of her nightmares. Toward
midday Talia suddenly perked up and became more like her old self, for which
Kris was very grateful. Riding next to a person who strongly resembled the
undead of the tales was not his idea of the way to make a journey. Diplomatic
missions were not entirely new to Kris, though he'd not been senior Herald
before. This was Tatia's first stint as an envoy, and they really needed to
talk about it while it was possible to do so unobserved. Kris
was relieved by her apparent return to normal, and ventured a tentative
prompting. She responded immediately with a flood of questions, and that was
more like the Talia he knew, but he could not help but note (with a feeling of
profound sympathy) her dark-circled eyes. While he was no Empath, he knew her
sleep must have been scant. By the
time they reached the Border itself at the end of a week of hard riding, things
were back on their old footing between them. They had discussed every
contingency that they could think of between them (ranging from the possibility
that Ancar should seem to be perfect in every way, to the possibility that he
was a worse marital prospect than Selenay's late consort) and talked over
graceful ways to get them all out if the latter should be the case. Kris was
fairly sure she was ready to face whatever the fates should throw at her. 746 Mercedes
Lackey As they
rounded a curve, late in the afternoon of the fourth day of the journey, Talia
got her first sight of the Border. The Border itself, here where two civilized
and allied countries touched, was manned by small outposts from each Kingdom. On the Valdemar
side stood a small building, a few feet from the road, and a few feet from the
simple bar that marked the Border itself. It served as dwelling and office for
the two pairs of Guardsfolk stationed there. The pair on duty were checking the
papers of an incoming trader; they looked up at the sound of hoofbeats, and
grinned to see the two Heralds. The taller of the two left the trader's wagon
and took down the bar for them, waving them through with an elaborate mock bow. A few
lengths farther on was a proper gate, marking Alessandar's side of the Border.
It was manned by another pair of guards, this time in the black-and-gold
uniforms of Alessandar's army. With them was a young man in a slightly more
elaborate uniform; a Captain of Alessandar's army. The
Captain was young, friendly, and quite handsome; he passed them in without more
than a cursory glance at their credentials. "I've
been waiting for you," he told them, "but I truly didn't expect you
here this soon. You must have made very good time." "Fairly
good," Kris replied, "and we started out a bit sooner than planned.
We've been out in the field for the last year or so. Field Heralds are used to
being ready to go at a moment's notice." "As
opposed to folks with soft bunks at Court, hm?" the Captain grinned.
"Same with us. That lot stationed at Court couldn't have a half-day of
maneuvers without a full baggage train and enough supplies to feed a town.
Well, I do have some basic orders about what to do with you . . ." "You
do?" Talia said, raising her eyebrows in surprise. "Oh,
it isn't much—just wait until you arrive, then inform the capital." Talia
recalled then what Selenay had said, that Ales-sandar was rumored to have some
new system of passing ARROWS
FALL 147 messages
swiftly. She also remembered that Selenay had asked her to find out what she
could about it. Evidently
Kris had gotten similar instructions. "Now
how are you going to get further instructions about us in any reasonable amount
of time?" Kris asked. "I know the nearest authority is several days
away on horseback, and you don't have Heralds to carry messages quickly." The
young Captain smiled proudly. "It's no secret," he replied, his brown
eyes frank. "In fact, I would be honored to show you, if you aren't too
tired." "Not
likely—not when you're offering to show us what sounds like magic!" The
Captain laughed. "From what / understand, you're fine ones to talk about
wonders and magic! Well, one man's magic is another man's commonplace, so they
say. Come along then, and I'll show you." Out of
courtesy to him, since he was afoot, Talia and Kris dismounted and walked with
him up the packed-gravel roadway to his outpost; a building much bigger man the
one on the Valdemar side, and shaded on three sides by trees. "WiU
it interest you to know that I may very well get my orders within a matter of
hours, if someone is found of high enough rank to issue them before the sun
sets?" "That's
amazing! We can't even do that," Talia replied. "But what does the
sun setting have to do with it?" "You
see the tower attached to the outpost?" He shook dark hair out of his eyes
as he pointed to a slim, skeletal edifice of gray wood. This tower rose several
feet above the tree tops, and was anchored on one side to the mam barracks of
the Border station. It had had both of them puzzled since it seemed to have no
real use except perhaps as a lookout point. "I
must admit we were wondering about that," Kris told him. "Are forest
fires that much of a danger around here? I wouldn't have thought so, what with
all the land under cultivation." "Oh,
it's not a firetower, though that's where the design is from." The young
Captain laughed. "Come up 740 Mercedes
Lackey to the
top with me, and I'll show you something to set you on your ears." They
followed him up the series of ladders that led to the broad platform on the
top. Once there, though, Talia didn't see anything out of the ordinary—just two
men in the black uniform tunics of Alessandar's army, and an enormous concave
mirror, as wide as Talia was tall. Although it was not quite perfect, its
surface a bit wavering, it was an impressive piece of workmanship. Talia
marveled at the skill that had gone into first producing and then silvering such
an enormous piece of glass. The
mirror stood on a pivoting pedestal, and as they watched, one of the two men
turned it until it reflected a beam of the westering sunlight at the
southwestern corner of the platform. When he'd done that, the second man picked
up a smaller mirror about three handspans across and took his position in the
beam of reflected light. That
was when Talia realized just how they were going to pull off the trick. It was
a very clever variant on the old scheme of signaling across distance by means
of the sun flashing off a reflective object. It was clever because in this case
there was no need to hope that the sun was in the correct position when you
needed to send a message. The
Captain smiled broadly as he saw understanding in their faces. "It was the
idea of some savant in A near's entourage. We started building these towers
last year at all the outposts; when we realized how useful they are we sped up
the building and put towers up as fast as we could get the mirrors for them. We
have relay towers all across the Kingdom now," he continued, with cheerful
pride. *'We can transmit a message from one end of the Kingdom to the other in
a matter of hours. That's rather better than you Heralds can do, from what I
understand." "That's
quite true, but anyone who knows your code has no trouble in learning the
content of any messages you send," Kris pointed out. "That makes it a
bit difficult to keep anything secret, doesn't it?" The
Captain laughed. "In that case, the couriers need never fret that there
will be no job for them, true? Solan," he addressed the man holding the
smaller mirror, "tell them down the line that Queen Selenay of ARROWS
FALL 149 Valdemar's
two envoys are here, and waiting for instructions on how to proceed." "Sir!"
The signalman saluted smartly, and carried out his orders. In the far distance
the Heralds could just barely make out what might be the top of another tower
above the treetops. Shortly after their man had completed his message, a series
of flashes winked back at them from this point. "He's
repeating our entire message back to us," the Captain explained. "We
started this check after a few too many misreadings had caused some serious
tangles. Now if he's mistaken any of it, we can correct him before he sends it
on." "Sir.
Message correct, sir," the signalman replied. "Send
the confirmation," the Captain ordered, then continued his commentary.
"Now the closer you get to any of the major cities, especially the
capital, the more men we have on each tower. That makes sure that several
incoming messages can be handled at once. If the originator doesn't get
confirmation, he assumes that there was a momentary jam-up, and keeps sending
until he does." "It's
really brilliant," Talia said, and she and the Captain exchanged a grin at
her pun, "but what do you do on cloudy days or at night?" He
laughed. "We go back to the old, reliable courier system in bad weather.
We back it up by making our posting stations part of the tower system, so as soon
as the clouds break or the sun rises, the message can be relayed. Even when
conditions have been at their worst the towers usually still manage to beat the
courier. At night, of course, we can signal with lanterns, but that won't be of
any help in this case, since no one is going to want to trouble envoys with
orders after they've presumably retired. That's assuming anyone highborn enough
to issue those orders is willing to take the time to do so after the sun
sets!" They
followed him back down the ladders. Once back on the ground, since neither of
them showed any signs of fatigue, he gave them a tour of the post that lasted
until darkness fell. Talia was intrigued, and not just by the 150 Mercedes
Lackey signal
towers. This was more than simply a Border-guard station; there was a company
of Alessandar's army on permanent duty here. When not patrolling the road for
bandits or standing watch on the relay tower, the men (there were no women in
Alessandar's army) performed policing functions for local villages. It was
an interesting contrast to ttye Valdemar system, where Selenay's soldiery was
kept in central locations, and shifted about at need. But then, Alessandar had
a much larger standing army. In
addition to the army company, there were four Healers—all women—permanently
assigned here. There were three buildings, not including the tower; the
barracks, the Border station where the Healers lived and where Customs checks
were made and taxes collected from those passing across the Border, and a kind
of all-purpose building that included the kitchen and storage facilities. "Well,"
the Captain said with resignation, when the tour was over and no one had
appeared from the tower with a message. "It looks like the folks at the
other end couldn't find anyone with enough authority to issue orders about you
before it became too late. That means you'll have to spend the night
here—unless you'd rather recross the Border?" "Here
will be fine, providing it's no imposition," Kris answered. The Captain
looked doubtfully from Kris to Tatia and back again, and coughed politely. "I
haven't got private quarters for you," he said a bit awkwardly. "I
could easily find you space in the barracks, of course, and the young lady
could take a bed with the Healers, since they re all women. But if you'd rather
not be separated. ..." "Captain,
Herald Tali a and I are colleagues, nothing more." Kris looked sober
enough, but Taha could read his amusement at the Captain's embarrassment. "Your
arrangements are perfectly fine," Talia said smoothly. "We're both
used to barracks-style quarters; I promise you that they're quite a luxury
compared with some of the Waystations I've spent my nights in." ARROWS
FALL 151 Talia
had been careful to use "I" instead of "we" in speaking of
the Waystations. She saw out of the corner of her eye Kris winking at her to
congratulate her on her
tact. "If
that's the case, I'll escort you to the officer's mess for some dinner,"
the Captain replied, apparently relieved that they'd made no awkwardness over
the situation. His attitude made Talia wonder if other guests at this outpost
had been less than cooperative, or if it was simply that he'd heard some of the
more exaggerated tales about Heralds. While
somewhat restrained by the presence of outsiders, the officers were a very
congenial lot. They were terribly curious about Heralds, of course, and some of
the questions were as naive as any child's. If all of Alessandar's people were
as open-handed and content with their lot as these men were, Talia was inclined
to think he was every bit as good a ruler as Selenay. Although
Kris got a real bed, Talia had to make do with a cot in the Healer's quarters.
She didn't mind in the least. The nightmares that had plagued her nightly all
the way here had left her so weary she thought that she could quite probably
sleep on a slab of stone. This
night, however, the nightmares seemed to have been partially thwarted. That
might have been due to the soothing presence of the Healers bedded all around
her. After all, she was an Empath; Kris was not. There had been enough bad
fortune this spring that it was possible she might well have been picking up
the general air of disaster everyone was sharing lately. She'd thought she'd
made her shields strong enough to block just about anything, but she had been
stressed, and that put a strain on her shielding. Or the
fact that the nightmares went away might have been just because she had worn
herself out past the point of being disturbed by them. For whatever reason, she
slept soundly for the first time since leaving, and had only the vaguest
memories of disturbing dreams in the morning. Seven K Kris
had been deaf, he might have been able to sleep through the noise of the night
guards coming in and the day guards getting up. Since he wasn't, he made a
virtue of the inevitable and got up with them. He found Talia, still
sleepy-eyed, waiting for him in the mess hall; she'd had the foresight to claim
two breakfasts from the cook. Their host put hi an appearance just as they were
finishing. "Well,
I've got your instructions. Fm to give you maps, and you're not to wait for an
escort but to go on to the capital. You're to check in with relay stations at
sunset before you stop for the night." "Sounds
simple enough," Kris replied. "I really wanted to get on—not that
your hospitality isn't appreciated, but I'd rather not strain your resources.
Just as well we're not going to have to wait for an escort." "I'll
admit I was glad to hear I didn't need to supply you with one," their host
said frankly. "I'm shorthanded enough, and if half of what I've heard is
true, none of our beasts could ever hope to keep pace with yours, •Byway." "It's
true enough," Kris replied with pardonable pride. "There isn't a
horse born that can match the speed and endurance of a Companion." "All
right, what you'll do is follow the main road to the capital—it's easy
enough—and stay overnight at Alenandar's hostels. They'll always be on the main
square of town; there'll be a Guardpost nearby, and they'll look Wee inns. The
only difference between a hostel and an inn 153 154 Mercedes
Lackey is that
the sign outside will have a wheat sheaf in a crown. Oh—you do speak our
language, don't you?" "Perfectly,"
Kris replied in Hardornen. "Oh,
good—I thought they wouldn't have sent anybody that didn't, but you never
know—and once you get a few miles off the Border nobody speaks
Valdemaren." "I
can't say that surprises me too much," Talia put in, in slow, clear
Hardornen. "Once you get a few miles off our Border no one except Heralds
speaks yours!" "Right
then, you can be on your way as soon as you're ready. Here's your map," he
handed Kris a folded packet "and best of luck to you." "Thanks,"
Kris said, both of them rising and heading for the door. "And
don't forget," he called after them as they headed for the stables,
"Check in with the relay towers every night. The capital wants to be able
to keep track of you." The
first day passed without incident. Alessandar's people seemed as content as
Seienay's; they were friendly, and looked quite prosperous, at least from a
distance. "Isn't
there supposed to be a village along here soon?" Talia asked around noon. Kris
pulled the map they'd been given out of his beltpouch and consulted it.
"Assuming I haven't been misreading this—let's see if we can find a
native." One
more turning of the road brought them to a grove of trees in the road-side
corner of a fenced field. Beneath those trees was a group that could have been
exchanged for farmers of Vaidemar without anyone noticing the difference. They
were stolidly munching their way through a dinner of thick, coarse bread and
cheese, but when one of them noticed that the two Heralds were approaching them
with purpose, he stood, brushed crumbs off his linen smock, and met them
halfway. "Eh,
sir, and can I be of any help to ye?" he asked, as friendly as the Captain
had been. "I'm
not quite used to this map," Kris replied, "And I wonder if you could
tell me how far it is to Southford?" "That
be just a league or so a-down the road; there's that hill yonder in the way, or
ye could see it from here." ARROW?
FALL 155 man
grinned. "A'course, if the hill bain't there, ye wouldn't have to ask,
eh?" Kris
laughed along with him. "That's only true," he said, "And thank
you." **Nice
man," Talia commented when Kris returned to her side. "He could have
been one of ours." She squinted across the fields of swiftly-growing green
grain, and Kris followed her gaze. "They seem to be thriving, too. So far
Alessandar gets high marks from me." "Ah,"
Kris replied, "But it isn't Alessandar that's the prospective
bridegroom." '"That's
true." The face she turned toward him was a sober one. "And I wish I
didn't know so many tales of Mack-sheep sons. . . ." They
were to stay only at the hostels, or so their orders went, so as sunset neared
they checked the map for the first town ahead of them likely to have one. Tlw
hostels were an innovation of Alessandar's, and were meant to serve as a
courtesy to those moving about his Kingdom on official business. They were
rather like well-run inns, save that there was no fee. Court officials, envoys
of other Kingdoms, and clergy were permitted unlimited use of these facilities. They
first reported their progress to one of the relay stations in a village along
the way, as had been requested. The station was easy enough to find, as it
towered over every other structure in the village. "Will
ye be stayin' here, or movin' on past dark?" asked the grizzled veteran
who greeted them. "Moving
on," Talia replied, "We plan on making-Keeper's Crossing, was
it?" She looked to Kris for confirmation. He
checked the map and nodded. "That's
a ways—but you know best. Guess the tales *bout them horses o' yours must be
true." He looked over Rolan and Tantris with an appraising and approving
eye. "Useta be cavalry, meself. Can't say I've ever seen neater beasts. Ye
came all the way from the Border since this mornin*?" Rolan
and Tantris preened under his admiring gaze 156 Mercedes
Lackey and
curvetted a little, showing off. "That we did, sir," Kris answered
with a smile. "Don't
look winded—don't even look tired—just exercised a mite. Lord Sun, I'd not have
believed it if I hadn't a' seen it. Well if ye can make that kinda time, ye'll
be at the Crossings 'bout a candlemark after sunset. Hostel's in the town
square, right-hand side as you come in." "Many
thanks," Talia called as they turned the Companions' heads back to the
road. "Fair
wind at yer back!" he called after them, his admiring gaze following them
until they were out of sight. The
hostel was indeed like an inn, complete with innkeeper. They had been told that
the accommodations were as plain as the food, but adequate. They
showed their credentials to the businesslike Hostelmaster when they dismounted
at the door. He examined them quite carefully, paying close attention to the
seals of Valdemar and Hardorn. When he was satisfied that they were genuine, he
summoned a stabieboy with a single word. The lad came at a run to take the
Companions, and the Hostelmaster waved them inside. The
common room was hot, smoky, and crowded, and it took them a little tune to find
themselves places at smooth, worn wooden trestle-tables. Finally Talia squeezed
in beside a pair of travelers in priestly garb—apparently from the rival sects
of Kindas Sun-Kindler and Tembor Earth-Shaker. They were having a spirited
discussion of the deficiencies of their various congregations and simply nodded
to her as she took her place on the very end of the bench. Kris sat opposite
her, with his neighbor a thin, clerkly-looking sort with ink-stained fingers,
whose sole interest was the contents of the stoneware platter in front of him. A
harried serving girl placed similar platters before the two Heralds; meat,
bread, and stewed vegetables. A boy followed her with a tray of wooden mugs of
thin ale, and the keys to their rooms. They
ate quickly; the food wasn't anything to linger over, and Talia's bench, at
least, was so crowded she had ARROW'S
FALL 157 barely
enough room to perch. And there were more people coming in, waiting with
expressions of impatience for seats. With their hunger appeased, they took
their keys and their mugs to the other side of the lantern-lit room, where
there was a fire and a number of benches and settles scattered about. Talia
felt curious eyes on them—not hostile, just curious. She decided that they were
the only foreigners among the guests, for she couldn't detect any accents among
those speaking. She picked a seat, and took it quickly, feeling very conspicous
in her white uniform that stood out so sharply in the otherwise dark room. "Heralds
out of Valdemar, be you?" asked a portly fellow in brown velvet as Kris
took a comer of a bench. "You
have us rightly, good sir," Talia answered him. "Don't
see Heralds often," His inquisitive glance left no doubt but that he was
curious about what brought them. "You
should be seeing more before summer's over," Talia replied with what she
hoped was just enough friendliness. "Queen Selenay will be making a visit
to your King. We're here to help get things ready for her." "Ah?"
he replied, his interest piqued. "That so? Well-maybe things be taking a
turn for the better, after all." "Have
things been bad lately?" she asked as casually as possible.
"Valdemar's had its share of troubles, what with floods and all." "Oh,
aye—floods and all," he replied, a bit too hastily, and turned to the men
on the other side of him, joining the conversation in progress. "'Scuse
me, milady, but could you tell me what the grain prices look to be on your side
of the Border?" A tall, thin merchant interposed himself between Talia and
die man she had first spoken to, and it would have been plain rudeness to
ignore him. He kept her engaged with so many questions that she had no chance
to ask any of her own. Finally she'd had enough of being monopolized, and
signaled Kris that she was ready to leave. When
Kris yawned, pled fatigue, and rose to head for his room and bed, Talia
followed. The guest rooms were monklike cells arranged along the walls; they
had no 158 fireplaces
or windows, but slits in the walls near the ceiling gave adequate ventilation.
Kris raised one eyebrow interrogatively at her as he unlocked his door; she
gave him the little nod that meant she'd learned something interesting, and the
hand motion that meant they'd talk about it later. Even
without a window, Talia knew when it was sunrise. She wasn't much surprised to
discover that Kris had beaten her to breakfast by a few minutes. No one else
was even stirring. She didn't pay much attention to what she was eating; some
kind of grain porridge with nuts and mushrooms, she thought. It was as bland as
the dinner had been. "The
boy is harnessing for us," Kris said around a mouthful. "We can be on
the road as soon as you're ready." She
washed down the last bite of the gluey stuff with a quick gulp of unsweetened
tea. "I'm ready." "Then
let's get going." They
cantered out the village until they reached the outskirts before settling back
to a slower pace. "Well?"
Kris asked, when they were well out earshot of the village. "There's
something not quite right around here," Talia replied, "but I can't
put my finger on anything. All I've got is a feeling—and that no one wants to
talk about 'bad times' around here. It may just be an isolated case of
discontent—" She
shook her head, suddenly feeling dizzy. "What's
the matter?" "I
don't—know. I feel a little funny all of a sudden." "You
want to stop a minute?" Kris asked, sounding concerned. She was
about to say "no" when another wave of disorientation hit. "I
think I'd better—" Their
Companions moved over to the grassy verge of the road on their own. Rolan
braced all four legs and stood rock-still, while waves of dizziness washed over
her. She didn't dismount—she didn't dare; she was afraid ARROW*
FALL 159 sue
wouldn't be able to get back up again. She just clung lo the saddle, and hoped
she wouldn't fall off. "Want to go back?" Kris asked anxiously.
"Think you need a
Healer?" "N-no.
I don't think so. I don't know—" The disorien-tation didn't seem quite so
bad, after a bit. "I think it's going away by itself." Then,
as the dizziness faded, so did the empathic awareness of those around her; an
awareness she always had, no matter how tightly shielded. "Goddess!"
Her eyes snapped open and she looked frantically around her, as Kris grabbed
her elbow, anxiously. "It's—" She unshielded. It was the same. She
could sense nothing, not even Kris, beside her. "It's gone! My Gift—" Then it
was back—redoubled. And she, unshielded and wide open, bent over in physical
pain at the mental clamor of what seemed to be thousands of people. Hastily she
shielded back down— Only to have the clamor vanish again, She remained bent
over, head in hands. "Kris—Kris, what's happening to me? What's
wrong?" He was
steadying her as best he could from his saddle. "I don't know," he
said tightly, "I—wait—wasn't there some kind of mushroom in that glop they
fed us?" "^" she tried to think. "Yes. Maybe."
"Goatsfoot," he said grimly. "It has to be. That's why you're
getting hit and I'm not." "Goatsfoot?
That—" She sat up slowly, blinking tears away. "That's the stuff that
scrambles Gifts, isn't it? I thought it was rare—" "Only
Thoughtsensing and Empathy and yes, it is rare in most places. It's not common
around here, but it's not rare either, and it's been a wet spring, just what
goatsfoot likes. The damned fools must have gotten hold of a lot and just
chucked it in the food without checking beyond seeing that it was edible." She was
able to think a little clearer now. "This is going to make anything I read
pretty well worthless for rae next couple of days, isn't it? * He grimaced.
"Don't even try; it'll make you sick. 160 Mercedes
Lackey Those
damned fools were just lucky they didn't have a Healer overnighting there! If
you can ride, I think we'd better go back—" "I
can ride, if we take it easy. Why?" He had
already turned Tantris' head back the way they had come. "What if they
have more of that stuff—and a Healer as a guest tonight?" "Great
good gods!" She let Rolan follow in Kris' wake. It
wasn't more than a league back; they hadn't traveled far before the effect of
the fungus hit her. She fought off successive waves of dizziness and
disorientation, and was vaguely aware that they'd stopped and Kris was giving
someone a sharp-tongued dressing-down. She caught frantic apology; it seemed
genuine enough—what her Gift was feeding at her was anything but a reliable
gauge. Waves of paralyzing fear, apprehension, guilt—followed immediately by
waves of delirious joy, intense sexual arousal, and overwhelming hunger. Finally,
another "blank" moment, and she drew a shuddering breath of relief. "Little
bird?" She
opened her eyes to look down on Kris standing at her right stirrup. "Do
you want to stay here? I can go back to the signal tower and get them to send a
message that you've been taken ill—and whose fault it is." "No—no,
ni be better—better away from people. You can shield; they can't. I won't fall
off; Rolan won't let me." "If
that's the way you want it..." "Please—"
She closed her eyes. "Let's get out of here—" She
heard him mount; felt Rolan start off after him. She didn't open her eyes; the
disorientation didn't seem so bad when she could keep them closed. And she was
right; as distance increased between herself and the village, the worst of the
effects decreased. She felt a second shield snap up around her—Kris*—then a
third—Rolan's— She
opened her eyes cautiously. It was like looking ARROWS
FALL 161 op
through water, but bearable. She felt Kris touch her arm, and saw that he was
riding beside her. "This
couldn't have been on purpose," she asked, slowly, "Could it?" He gave
the idea serious thought; she could tell by the blank expression on his face.
"I don't think so," he said at last. "They couldn't have known
what hostel we'd overnight in, and they couldn't have counted on goatsfoot
being available. They swore they only had that one batch, that it was in a lot
of edible fungus some boy sold them tins morning. I made them dump the rest of
the porridge in the pig trough. No, I think it's just a damned bad accident.
Can you go on?" She
dosed her eyes, and took a kind of internal tally. MYes.M "All
right, then let's get on with it. I'd tike to get you to bed as early as we
can." But
Talia wondered—because with the relay towers, someone could have known what
hostel they intended to stay in—and as a former fannchild, she knew that some
mushrooms could be preserved indefinitely when dried.. . . Kris
pushed both of them to the limit, hoping to get Tana into the haven of a bed
long before sundown. He managed; better still, that night they were the only
travelers making use of the hostel. The quiet did her some good; so did the
rest. Unfortunately, he knew from old lessons that there was no remedy for
goatsfoot poisoning except time. The
accident was more than annoying; he really needed her abilities on this trip.
Without them, they'd have to go on wit alone. With a
good night's sleep she was back to normal— except that her Gift was completely
unreliable. She was either completely blocked, or so wide open she couldn't
sort out what emotion was coming from whom. Neither
one of them wanted her to try projecting under these conditions. They couldn't
predict what would happen and didn't really want to find out. So he
pushed to make the best time they could to the 162 Mercedes
Lackey next
hostel—and hoped they could make training, wit, and skills serve. When
Kris stopped to try to inquire about hostels at noon, people seemed overly
quiet, and not inclined to talk much beyond the simple courtesy of answering
their questions. And the townspeople in the hamlet they finally reached were
the same; hurrying to be about their business and showing only furtive
curiosity about the strangers who had ridden in. That
night the Guard at the relay station they reported to was cold and somewhat
brusque, and advised them against changing their plans for stopping at
Ilderhaven. "Them
at the capital need to know where ye be; they'll be takin* it amiss if they
can't find ye should they need ye," he said, making it sound as if
"they" would be taking it more than "amiss" if the Heralds
changed their stated plans. Kris
exchanged a flickering, sober glance with his partner, but made no retort. At the
hostel, which held a scant handful of travelers, they split up, each taking a
likely prospect, and began trying to eke a little more information out of them. Talia
had chosen a shy priestess of one of the Moon-oriented orders, and hoped she
could get something useful out of her without her Gift. She began her
conversation with ordinary enough exchanges; the difficulties women faced when
making long journeys, commiseration over tiie fact that men in authority seemed
to take them lightly—Hostelmasters serving the men in the room first, no matter
what the order of their arrival was, and much more in the same vein. Carefully,
over the entire evening, she began steering the talk to the topics that seemed
to be the most sensitive. "Your
King—I must say, he certainly seems to be a good ruler," Talia said
casually, when the topic of Alessandar came up. "From what I can see,
everyone seems to be prospering. That ought to be making for good days with
your temple." "Oh,
yes ... Alessandar is a fine ruler to us; things ARROWS
FALL 163 have
never been better . . ." The priestess trailed off into hesitant
uncertainty. "And
he has a fine, strong son to follow him? Or so rmtold." "Yes,
yes, Ancar is strong enough ... has there been much flooding in Valdemar? We've
never seen the like of it this spring." Had
there been uneasiness when the woman spoke Ancar's name? "Flooding,
for fair. Crops and herds wiped out, rivers ^hanging course even. Young Elspeth
has been at the Queen to let her be about the countryside doing what she
can—but of course that's out of the question while she's still in schooling.
Once she's older though, I've no doubt sheTl be the Queen's own right hand.
Surely Ancar has been seeing to things for his father?" "No
... no, not really. The ... the factors take care of all that, you know. And
... we really don't want to be seeing Ancar ... it isn't fitting for someone in
his station to be going among the common folk. He has his own Court-—has since
he came of age, you know. He has—other interests." "Ah,"
Talia replied, and allowed the conversation to turn to another topic. "Not
very conclusive," Kris mused. "But it's looking odd." Talia
nodded; they'd waited again until they were on the road before talking. "I've
gotten a similar sort of impression," he began. "As
if things were reasonably well now, but that folk are not entirely sure of what
the morrow might bring." "Damn
that goatsfoot! If we could just have some idea bow deeply this goes—if it's
more than just the usual worries about 'better the straw king than the lion
king' —gods, we need your Gift!" "Ifs
still not reliable," she told him regretfully. "Well,
we just have to muddle along on our own." He sighed, t-Ґhis is exactly the
kind of reason we've been Sent on ahead, and we have to have clearer
information than we've got. Selenay can't act on anything this vague." 164 Mercedes Lackey "I
know," she said, biting her lip. "I know." That
night Talia tackled an elderly clerk. When she brought up the topic of the
King, he was voluble in his praise of Alessandar. "Look
at these hostels—wonderful idea, wonderful! I remember when I was just a lad,
my first post as tax-collector—Lord Sun, the inns I had to stay in, verminous,
filthy, and costing so high you wondered why they didn't just put a knife to
your throat and have done with it! And he's cleaned out most of the brigands
and robbers, him and his Army; Karse daren't even think about invading anymore.
Oh, aye, he's a great King—but he's old . , ." "Surely
Ancar—" "Well,
that's as may be. The Prince is a one for protocol and position; he doesn't
seem to be as open-handed as his sire. And there's the rumors. . . ." "Oh?" "Oh,
you know, young m'lady—there's always rumors." Indeed
there were rumors; and now Kris actually suspected listeners, so he signaled
Talia to wait to talk until they were on an open stretch of road the next day,
with no one else near. She
told him what she'd gotten, and what she'd guessed. "So
Ancar has his own little Court, hm?" Kris mused. "And his own circle
of followers and hangers-on. I can't say as I like the sound of that. Even if
the Prince is innocent and fair-minded, there's likely to be those that would
use him in a situation like that." "He
doesn't sound innocent or fair-minded from the little I've pried out of
anyone," Talia replied. "Granted in fairness—he may just be a
naturally cold and hard man. Goddess knows he's seen enough warfare at his age
to have turned him hard." "Oh?
This is news to me—say on." "At
fourteen he participated in a series of campaigns that wiped out every trace of
the Northern barbarians along therr North Border. That set of campaigns lasted
almost two years. At seventeen he led the Army against ARROWS
FALL 165 the last
raid Karse ever dared make on them—and again, the raiders were utterly wiped
out. At twenty he personally mounted a campaign against highwaymen, with the
result that nearly every tree from here to the capital was bearing gallows'
fruit that summer." "Sounds
like he should be regarded as a hero." "Instead
of with fear? It was apparently the way he conducted himself that has people
afraid. He makes no effort to hide the fact that he enjoys killing—and he's
utterly, utterly ruthless. He hanged more than a few of those 'highwaymen' on
merest suspicion of wrongdoing, and lingered with a winecup in his hand to
watch while they died." "Lovely
lad. Sounds like just the mate for our Elspeth." "Don't
even say that as a joke!" Talia all but hissed. "Or haven't you been
granted any of the tales of his conduct with women? / was told it isn't a good
idea to attract his attention, and to stay out of his sight as much as
possible." "Probably
more than you; if you believe what you hear, young Ancar's taste runs to rape,
and the younger, the better, so long as they're nubile and attractive. But
that's the tale only if you read between the lines. Nobody's told me anything
about that straight out." :They
haven't said anything straight out about the wizards he keeps either,: Tantris
put in unexpectedly. "What?"
Kris replied in surprise. :Fve
been keeping my ears open in the stable. The hostelkeepers have been
frightening the stablehands into line with threats about turning them over to
Ancar's wizards if they don't move briskly and keep to their work.: "So?
That's an old wives' trick." :Not
when it's being used on "stableboys" old enough to have families of
their own. And not when the threat genuinely terrified them.: "Lord
of Light, this is beginning to look grim—" Kris relayed Tantris' words to
Talia. "We've
got to find someone willing to speak out," she replied. "We daren't
turn back with nothing in our hands but rumors. Selenay needs facts—and if we
turned back now, we might well precipitate a diplomatic incident." 166 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 167 "I
agree," Kris replied, even more firmly. "And if we're being watched,
welt—-we just might not reach the Border again." "You
think it's possible? You think he'd dare?" "I
think he would, if what the rumors hint at is true, and enough was at stake.
And the only way we're going to get any idea of what Ancar is like and what his
plans are, is to get in close to him. And I'm afraid we need that information;
I'm afraid more than Elspeth's betrothal hinges on us now." "That,"
she replied, "is what I feared you'd say." A day
from the capital they finally found someone who would discuss the
"rumors." It was pure luck, plainly and simply. As they
rode into town, Talia spotted a trader's caravan that she thought she
recognized. Traders' wagons were all built to the same pattern, but their gaudy
painting was highly individual. The designs rarely included lettering, since
most of a trader's customers were far from literate, but they were meant to be
memorable for the selfsame reason. And Talia thought she remembered the design
of cheerful blue cats chasing each other around the lower border. A few
moments later, she saw the shaggy black head of the bearded owner, and couldn't
believe her good fortune. This trader, one Evan by name, was a man who owed
Talia his life. He had been accused of murder; she had defended him from an
angry mob and found out the real culprit. Having cast Truth Spell on him and
touched his mind, she knew she could trust not only his words, but that he
would not betray them to anyone. His
wagon was parked in a row of others, in the stable-yard of the "Crown and
Candle,1" an inn that catered to trade. When
they reached the hostel, and settled down to dinner, Talia tapped Kris' toe
with her own. They didn't like to use this method of communicating; it was
awkward and very easy to detect unless their feet were hidden. But the hostel
was nearly empty, and they'd been given a table to themselves in the back; she
reckoned it was safe enough this tune. Follow
my lead, she signaled. He
nodded, eyes half closed, as if in response to a thought of his own. "I
saw an old friend today," she said—and tapped Trader—Truth Spell—knowing
that he would readily remember the only circumstance that combined those two
subjects. "Really?
Wonder if we could get him to stand us a drink?" And—Information
source?—he tapped back. "Oh,
I think so," she replied cheerfully. Yes. "Good!
I could stand a drop of good wine. This stuff is not my idea of a drink."
Reliable? "Then
I'll see if we can't talk him into a round or two.'* Yes—Debt of honor. "Hm."
He pushed his stew around with a bit of bread. Gods—your Gift? Back. Doit. She
summoned one of the little boys that hung around the hostel hoping for just
such an opportunity to earn a coin, and sent a carefully worded message to
Evan. He replied by the same messenger, asking her to meet him, not at his inn,
but at his wagon. He did
not seem surprised to see Kris with her. He opened the back of the wagon and
invited both of them inside the tiny living area. The three of them squeezed
into seats around a tiny scrap of a table, and Evan poured three cups of wine,
then waited expectantly. Talia
let down her shields with caution, and searched about the wagon for any human
presence near enough to hear anything. There was nothing, and no one. "Evan—"
she said quietly, then, "traders hear a lot. To come straight to the
point, I need to know what you've heard about Prince Ancar. You know you can
trust me—and I promise we aren't being spied on. I'd know if we were." Evan
hesitated, but only a moment. "I ... expected something of this sort. If I
did not owe you so very much, Lady Herald—but there it is. And you have the
right of it, a trader hears much. Aye, there's rumors, black ru- 166 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 169 mors,
about young Ancar. Five, six years agone, when he first came of age and
warranted his own court, he began collecting some unchancy sorts about him.
Scholars, he calls 'em. And, aye, some good has come of it—like the signal
towers, some aqueducts and the like. But in the last year his scholars have
gotten more of a reputation for wizardry and witchcraft than they have for knowledge." "Well,
now, isn't that what they say of Heralds here, too?" Kris smiled uneasily. "But
I never heard anyone say your witchcraft was anything but of the Light, young
man," Evan replied, "And I've never heard anything but darksome tales
of late where Ancar's friends are concerned. I've heard tales that they raise
power with the spilling of blood—" "How
likely?" Kris asked. Evan
shrugged. "Can't say. To be fair, I've been places where the same is said
of the followers of the One, and you of Valdemar know how wrong that is. This I
can tell for true—he has in the past year turned to wenching. Wenching of the
nastier sort. He has his way with any poor young maid that catches his eye,
highborn or low, and none dare gainsay him—and his tastes run to leaving them
with scars. Well, and that isn't all. He has men of his own about the
countryside these days—'intelligencers' they call themselves. They claim to be
like you twain, being the King's eyes and ears, to see that all's well—but I
misdoubt that they're speaking their information in any ears but Ancar's, and I
doubt the King knows they exist." "I
don't like that," Talia whispered. "I
don't either. I've been questioned by 'em fair often since I crossed the
Border, and I mislike some of the questions they're asking. Who bought like
they'd gotten prosperous, who'd told me aught, who bends knee to what god—aye,
you can believe old Evan the Shrewd became Evan the Stupid 'round 'em." His
expression changed to one of thick-headed opacity. "Aye, milord, no,
milord, talk t' me milord?" He wiped the look from his face. "Even
let 'em cheat me right royally t' convince 'em. That's not the end of it. I've
heard from those I trust that Ancar has raised his own private Army; at least
three thousand men, and all of when
Ancar takes the throne. Oh, yes," he shook his head, "I pity
them." They
rode away from their hostel the next morning with grim faces, and paused in a
little copse of trees just outside of town, where they could see anyone
approaching, but no one could see them. "I
don't like it," Talia said flatly. "My vote is to turn around and
head back for the Border—but there's the fact that a move like that could be
construed as an insult." She
wanted badly to run; she was more afraid now than she'd ever been except when
she'd lost control over her Gift. She was feeling very like she was walking
into something she couldn't handle now, too—but this was exactly why Selenay
had sent them in the first place—to uncover anything that might threaten
Valdemar. And there was just the faintest of premonitions that some of this
might lead back to Orthallen. "All
the more reason to stick it out," Kris replied soberly. "We've heard
the rumors; we need to learn exactly how much danger there is, or we can't
properly advise the Queen of the situation. We don't learn the depth of the
problem by turning tail and running. And like I said before—if we turn now,
they might decide we've learned something, and stop us before we made it back
across the Border. If we stick, we should be able to bluff our way out." "Kris,
it's dangerous; we're playing with fire, here." "I
know it's dangerous, but no more dangerous than any number of other missions
Dirk and I pulled off. And we have to find what his long-term plans are, if
there's any chance at all to do so." "I
know, I know," Talia shivered. "But Kris, I don't like it. I feel
like I'm walking into a darkened room, knowing that as soon as I tight a candle
I'll discover I've walked into a den of serpents and the door's been locked
behind me." 170 Mercedes
Lackey "You're
the ranking Herald, little bird. Do we go on and find out exactly what the
situation is and whether or not there's immediate threat to the Kingdom, or do
we head back to Selenay with what we know now—running like our tails are on
fire and hope they can't stop us?" "How
could we get back if they come after us?" Kris
sighed. "I wouldn't give very good odds. What we'd have to do is cut
across country, avoiding roads— unfamiliar country, I might add, and we'd have
to go night and day. Or we send Rolan and Tantris back alone, with messages,
get rid of our rather conspicuous uniforms, steal disguises, try to get back
afoot. With accents that damn us and every 'intelligencer' in the country knowing
our exact descriptions. Frankly, the odds are with playing stupid and bluffing
our way out." "Could
I pretend to be sick again?" "Then
they'd expect us to go straight to the capital and the King's Healers, not head
back to our Border." Talia
shut her eyes and weighed all the possible consequences; then bit her lip, and
steeled herself for the decision she knew she had to make. "We
go on," she said, unhappily. "We haven't got a choice." But
when they met their escort just outside the capital at the end of a six-day
journey from the Valdemar Border, Talia almost heard the click of the lock
behind her. They
announced their arrival at the gates of the city, and were asked, courteously
enough, to wait. After about an hour, spent watching the usual sort of
foot-and-beast traffic pass in and out of the city, there was a blast of
trumpets and the common folk vanished from the vicinity as if whisked away by a
speil. Talia
had expected an official escort; she had not expected that they would be met by
what amounted to a royal procession. For that was exactly what emerged from the
city gates. Prancing
out of the gateway came a procession of dozens of brightly-bedecked nobles and
their liveried attendants, all mounted on high-bred palfries. Prince
Ancar and his entourage rode at the head of it. ARROWS
FALL 171 Talia
had definitely not expected him—and from the very brief flash of surprise on
his face, neither had Kris. Ancar
rode toward them through a double row formed by his mounted courtiers and his
guards; it was all very staged, and meant to impress. It impressed Talia, but
hardly in the way she assumed he intended. On seeing him for the first time,
Talia felt like a cat that has suddenly been confronted by a viper. She wanted
to arch her back, hiss, and strike out at him. "Greetings,
from myself, and my honored Father," he said coolly, bowing slightly but
not dismounting. "We nave come to escort the envoys of Queen Selenay to
the palace." Talia
was mortally certain that the "we" he used was the royal plurality,
and noted that his horse was at least two hands higher than either Companion,
allowing his head to be that much higher than theirs. Gods—I
don't think he's left anything to chance— There
was no superficial reason for the violent feeling of animosity that struck her;
as they exchanged courtesies the Prince seemed perfectly amiable. He was darkly
handsome with smooth, even features and a neat black beard and mustache. He
spoke to them fairly enough and accorded them every honor. As he rode beside
them, back into the city and toward the palace, he discoursed on neutral
topics—the harvest to come, the recent spring floods that had occurred in both
countries, his wish for continuing good relations between the two Kingdoms. All
perfectly natural topics, and all spoken in tones of good-will. None of
this made the slightest bit of difference to Talia. There was something
indefinably evil about the man, something cold and calculating, like a snake
judging when it would be best to strike. He was
paying very little attention to Talia, who was riding with Kris between them;
as if, because of her sex, she was not quite of an exalted enough station for
him to bother with. That was all to the good; since he was busy directing his
attention to Kris, she decided that this was no time for ethical quibbling; she
would try to probe him. This was neither diplomatic nor particularly moral, 772 Mercedes
Lackey but she
didn't much care. There was something lurking beneath the smooth, careful
surface of this cultivated Prince, and she was determined to discover what it
was. She was
stopped by a powerful shield—one unlike anything she had ever touched before.
There were no cracks in it that she could discover, not by the most careful
probing. Startled, she cast a surreptitious glance at Ancar; he continued his
conversation without seeming the least disturbed. So he was not the one doing
the shielding. Who was? Then
her sharp glance was intercepted by a nondescript man in gray riding to the
left of the Prince. He looked at her with eyes like dead brown pebbles, then
permitted himself a faint smile and a nod. She shivered, and looked hastily
away. They
couldn't reach the Palace grounds any too soon for Talia, who only wanted out
of the Prince's presence. When they reached the courtyard of the Palace the
entire entourage dismounted and dozens of liveried grooms appeared to lead the
horses away—and with them, their Companions. Shaken by the encounter with the
Prince's mage, Talia scanned the grooms quickly for any evidence of harmful
intent. Thank
the gods— To her
relief there was nothing there but admiration for the beautiful creatures and
the honest wish to make them comfortable. She tried to link with Rolan, and caught
an impression of concern, but in the confusion it was hard to make out what the
concern was for. Kris
began to say something—the Prince interrupted him before he'd even gotten a
single syllable out. "The
Palace is quite remarkable," said Ancar, a kind of glint in his eye that
Talia didn't understand and didn't at all like. "You really must see it
all" What
could they do but consent? And the
Prince seemed determined that they see every inch of his father's Palace,
conducting them all over it himself. He kept himself at Kris' side, and one of
his ubiquitous toadies at Talia's, effectively separating them. They couldn't
even signal to one another—and Talia was ARROW'S
FALL 173 nearly
stiff with apprehension before the enforced tour was over. Her anxiety,
carefully concealed, redoubled every moment they spent in his presence, and she
longed for one single moment alone with Kris. It almost seemed as if the Prince
were deliberately attempting to prevent any contact between the two Heralds
that did not take place under his gaze, for he kept them at his side until it
was nearly time for the state banquet that was to welcome them. At last
they were left alone in their sumptuous suite. Talia
scanned about her for listeners, but could detect none. But then—could she if
they were shielded? Make
discretion the better part, then. "Lord
of Light," she sighed, "I didn't think I could ever be so tired
..." Hand-sign;
Trap—listeners? She sat down on a couch, and patted the fabric next to her in
invitation. He took
a seat next to her, and her hand. Squeezed. Gift? She
squeezed back. Shields? His
eyebrows arched in surprise. How? "Did
you see that odd little man on the Prince's right?" she asked. Him.
"I wonder what on earth he could be." Shielded Ancar. Maybe more. "Who
knows? Some sort of tutor, maybe." Trouble. "Hm.
I could use a little air." For true. They
moved to the open window, arms around one another, loverlike. "Little
bird," Kris whispered in her ear, "There's another problem—there
aren't enough guards visible here." Talia
giggled and nuzzled his neck. "I'm not sure I understand you," she
murmured back. He
laughed, and kissed her with expertly feigned passion, "Look, Selenay is
well-loved, so she keeps a minimum of guards about her for safety—but they're
still there, still visible. Alessandar is just as highly regarded, •o I would
expect to see about the same number of guards. I didn't see them. If they're
not in sight, they mutt be out of sight. Why should he hide his guards? Unless
he doesn't know that they're hidden—and if you 174 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FAU 175 can
hide one, you can hide a dozen just as easily. I don't like it." "Kris,
please—" Talia whispered urgently. "I've changed my mind about
staying. I think we should get out of here. Now. Tonight." "I
agree; I think we've walked into a bit more than we can handle by
ourselves." He led her back to the couch, where they continued the
mock-loveplay. "I've got no doubt now after seeing that magician and
watching the way people react to Ancar that every one of the rumors is true. So
we'd better leave tonight-—but not quite yet. I want to find out what's going
on with Alessandar first." He stayed quiet for a moment, deep in thought,
hands resting in the small of her back, and face buried in her hair. "I
think we should send substitutes into the banquet and do some spying before we
leave." "All
right, but I'll do the spying. If I unshield I'll be able to detect people
coming long before you would." "Could
you tell if there's a shielded spy watching us by the shield on him?" "Alone—no." "I
see what you're getting at. Link—" By
Unking their two Gifts, her Empathy and his Farsight, they were able to scan
their entire vicinity for "null" areas. And discovered, to their
mutual chagrin, that there were no spies, shielded or otherwise. "Well—"
he pulled away from her, embarrassed. "I certainly feel like a fool." "Don't."
She ran her hands nervously through her hair, and smiled wanly at him.
"Better we take the precaution needlessly. If we send in substitutes,
won't they be recognized?" "No
one from the Prince's party will be at the banquet, remember? There won't be
anyone there who's ever seen us. And if we use a couple of the servants there
should be no problems. After all, no one ever looks at servants. The two they
assigned to us should do. They're enough like us in size and appearance that
our uniforms will fit reasonably well. I'll get their attention, and you deep-trance,
and take them over." Talia
shivered. She didn't like doing this, but Kris couldn't.
His Gift of Farsight would do him no good in implanting a false personality. It
was only by virtue of the fact that her Gift of Empathy was a particularly strong
one that Talia could do it at all—this was normally a trick only Mindspeakers
could manage. Kris
rang for the two who had been assigned to them. As he had pointed out, they
were similar enough in height and build to the two of them that the uniforms
should fit well enough to cause no comment. The
servants arrived, and with them, their baggage; Kris instructed them in the
unpacking of the formal uniforms. While he engaged their attention, Talia put
herself into deep-trance. Forgive
me—she thought, then reached out and touched their minds—lightly—there—first
the man, then the woman— Kris
caught them as they fell, easing them down onto the bed. Talia
insinuated herself carefully into their minds, sending their real selves into a
kind of waking sleep. Now—for
the next part she would need help— :Rolon?: In a
moment he was with her, still anxious, but in agreement with the plan, or at
least as much of it as she was able to show him without being able to Mindspeak
him in words instead of images. Together
they emplanted false personalities and memories in their two substitutes; he
could do some things she couldn't, she could make them believe that they were
the foreigners. For the next several hours the servants would be a sketchy sort
of Kris and Talia, and remain that way until they returned to these rooms after
the banquet. Their behavior would be rather stilted and wooden, but the formal
etiquette such occasions demanded would cover most of that. Talia
let Rolan go, and eased herself up out of trance, feeling very stiff, quite
exhausted, and just a bit guilty. "Is
it—" 'They're
ready," she replied, moving her head around to ease the stiffness in her
neck, and getting slowly to her feet. "Let's get some clothes on
them." 176 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 177 They
clothed the pair in the waiting forma! Whites as if they were dealing with two
dolls, it being easier to handle them in the entranced state. Talia cut their
hair in imitation of Kris* and her own, and applied her skill with makeup to
both of them. When she'd done, they bore at least enough of a superficial
resemblance to the two of them to get them safely through the doors. "Ail
right." Kris looked at her as they got the two substitutes on their feet.
'Tm for the stables. It's going to take a little time to find the Companions
and their tack without being detected, ff I can, I'll get everything and get
them ail saddled up. If you have the chance, you meet me at the stable
doors." "Fine,"
Talia replied nervously. "I'm going to sneak up to the second floor and
the minstrel's gallery. I ought to learn something there; with luck I may be
able to pick up something from one of Ancar's toadies, and I'll definitely be
able to probe Alessandar and find out if he knows what his son is up to. I
won't take long, if I can help it." "If
the worst happens, and you have to run for it, tell Rolan, and I'll pick you up
on the run in the courtyard." Kris gave her a tight grin, and she returned
it. Talia
took her substitute by the elbow; Kris did the same with his. Together they led
them as far as the doors to the suite; then Talia released their minds and gave
hers a tittle push. The young woman blinked once, then her implanted
personality took over. She took the young man's arm; he opened the door, and
led her toward the banquet hall. Kris and Talia followed behind them long
enough to be certain that the ruse would work, then separated. Thanks
to the Prince's enforced tour they were both familiar with the layout of the
entire Palace. Kris made for one of the servants' stairs that led to the
stables; once she saw him safely on his way, Talia headed for the gallery that
overlooked the banquet hall. She
dropped all her shielding and slipped from shadow to shadow along the corridor,
taking another of the servants' stairs to the second floor. The activity in the
banquet hall aided her; the servants hadn't yet had time to light more than a
few of the candles meant to illuminate the
maze of corridors. She detected no one as she moved to the wall that backed the
gallery. She
sensed the presence of many men as she paused there, hiding herself in the
folds of drapery along the wall. This was very wrong. There were to be no
minstrels playing in the gallery until much later this evening; at the moment
they were playing from behind a screen on the floor of the hall. There should
be no one at all in the gallery at this time. She
closed her eyes and carefully extended her other sense past the wall, hoping
that one of them might be nervous enough to let her read what he was seeing,
carried on the wind of his emotions. It was
easy—too easy. The images came charging into her mind—she knew who and what
they were, and what their intent was, and her heart leapt into her throat with terror. Ranged
at about three-foot intervals around the gallery, which ran the entire
circumference of the hall, were crossbowmen. Their weapons were loaded and
ready, and each had a full quiver of bolts beside him. These were not members of
Alessandar's guard, nor soldiers from his army; these were ruthless killers
recruited personally by Ancar. The
Prince was impatient, and no longer prepared to wait for his father's natural
death to bring him to the seat of power. He was also ambitious, and not content
with the prospect of ruling only one kingdom. Here in one room sat his lather
and everyone who might be opposed to Ancar's rule, as well as the two Heralds
who might have warned their Queen of his intent. The opportunity was far too
tempting for him to pass by. Once the banquet was well underway, the doors
would be locked—and all who might oppose Ancar's desires would die. With
the exception of the Heralds; Ancar's orders concerning them were to disable,
not kill. And if anything, that frightened Talia even more. Ancar
must have had this whole scheme planned for months, and had only waited for the
perfect moment to pot it in motion. The six days' warning he'd had when 178 Mercedes
Lackey they
crossed the Border was sufficient for him to mobilize what was already
prepared. When
the slaughter was over he would ride with his own army to the Border, overwhelm
the Queen and her escort as soon as they'd crossed it, kill her, seize Elspeth,
and present himself as Vaidemar's ruler by fait accompli. Talia
longed for KyriPs ability to Farspeak; even at this distance she would have
been able to get some kind of warning back to the Heralds near the Border. And
she would have been able to Mindcall Kris, and warn him as well. All she could
do was to Mindcall to Rolan, carrying her message on a burst of purest fear,
and hope he could convey the whole to Kris through Tantris. She
slipped back to the staircase as silently and carefully as she had come, and
made her way down to the lower floor. The
hall here was lighted well, and Talia feared to set foot in it; feared it
doubly when she sensed the presence of more of Ancar's men standing at
intervals along it, presumably to take care of any stragglers. She clung, half
paralyzed with terror, to the inside of the door, and tried to think. Was there
any other way out? Then
she recalled the smaller rooms of state, meant for receptions and the like,
that faced the forecourt on the second floor. Many of them had balconies, and
windows or doors that opened out onto the balconies. For the second time she
climbed the staircase, heart pounding, her Empathic-sense extended to the
utmost. She
moved along the wall, between it and the musty draperies lining it, until she
came to the door of one of those rooms. Mercifully it was unoccupied and
unlocked; not even a single candle was lit within. She crept out from behind
the drape, ignoring the itch of dust in her eyes and nose, and slipped inside. There
was only the gleam of torchlight and moonlight through the windows, but that
was enough to show her a room with a polished-wood floor empty of all
furniture. She edged around the walls, grudging the time, but not wanting to
silhouette herself against those windows for anyone passing by the hall door. The
door to the balcony was locked, but from the ARROW'S
FALL 179 inside.
Talia realized this after an instant of panic-stricken struggle with it. The
catch was stiff, but finally gave. She eased the door open and stepped out onto
the balcony, crouched low so as to be below the balustrade. A moment's
surveillance of the courtyard showed no eyes to be watching it; she slipped
over the balustrade and was about to drop to the court, when the killing began. With
her Empathic senses extended as they were, that nearly killed her along with
the rest. She felt the deaths of dozens of people in her own flesh; she lost
her grip on the railing and dropped to the cobblestones below. Shock, pain, and
fear drove any other thoughts out of her, she could not even move to save
herself. She was falling— and couldn't think, couldn't move, couldn't do
anything but wart—react to the agony, the terror—and the anguished guilt of
Alessandar's guards seeing him pinned to his throne by dozens of crossbow bolts
before they themselves were cut down— But
Alberich had foreseen the day when something like this might happen; he had
drilled her until some reactions had become instinctive. Though her mind might
be helpless beneath that onslaught, her body wasn't— She twisted
in midair, rolled into a limp ball—hit the pavement feet-first, and turned the
impact into a tumble that left her sprawled and bruised, but otherwise
unharmed. Her
face twisted with agony as she struggled to her feet and staggered toward the
entrance to the stable area, trying to shut her shields down and the pain out.
It seemed like an eternity between each stumbling step, yet she had hardly
taken half a dozen when she heard the pounding of hooves on stone and saw a
white form surging toward her. It was
Rolan—unsaddled. He did not pause as he passed her, knowing that she would not
be able to mount unless he came to a dead stop. Hard on his heels came Tantris
carrying Kris—who was leaning over as far as he dared, one hand wrapped in
Tantris' mane, the other extended toward her, his legs clenched so tightly she
could almost feel the muscles ache. As Companion and rider passed her, Talia
caught him, hands catching fore- was narrow 180 ,_ i
A *r»d Kris pulled her up in front of arms as she leaped i »' to ^^ trffl ^ Ro,an ^•J??8 if f ^v'd not had to st°P-ahead of him, but
they obstade to But
there was one and outЈr ^ lcd (o ^ passage
between the i* te And TaUa had
succeeded in portculhs and the out^K shielding
herself one e n|d J fe that
the walls were m^t mto a hail of am)WS They
galloped stratf ^ Fire |anced ^ h Taha,s It was
over in seoj ^ ^^ jn Juddered, shoulder-just
as TaЈ und She was thr* WIJ 'forward and and
crashed to the gfO ^ ^ t bre
Qff ^ *? lhe
Af,?Und H ^riving the head deeper. But
more shaft of the arrow and ^ ^
Kris F enduri agonizing
than her ow^headl mght_the
marksmen Rolan paused ml*, ^^ * f ^ wag Qne had let the unburden j^ Ј thought only in Taha sescape 5 J F that one of them
mus' ^ with voic heart " with
voic heart and 'Rolan — run"
she mi?T i.
•* * j i«neer, but shot through
the gate just He hesitated no 1^^^
d so%lose ^atjshe as the
Portcullis came ^ rf fcar felt
the sharp pain *» from ^ ^ earned away
a few - b* ^ the motionless bod yof Tantris> Kns lay crumpled b^5 he could not even ^ QUt She so racked with agony
^stumb,ed half.dragged 7herself to toed
to rise, and I hЈ pain.tortured body into her arms, his side She took his ^ Qf ^ ^^ desperately trying to ^^^ ^f he Iooked ,ike J that
bled it had been his bod her Even flickeri4 * him. He
was straw target-but a and Tantns that had torchlight she could creeping
scarlet blot She groped mmdles had used; not sure beyond sanity with burden of
his pressure building when desperation d whj,e
she g Kerithwyn d(f ^^ f^ ^ driv^n overwhelming
need to take the | .{ had driven
her to r of 181 what
she knew. It built past the point where she was conscious of anything outside
of herself, conscious even of the agony lancing her own shoulder— Then it
found sudden release. She
opened her eyes to find Kris' own eyes holding hers; free from pain and
feverishly clear. Although she could feel his pain still, he could not. She had
somehow come to stand between it and him. But he
was dying, and they both knew it. She looked
around, expecting to see soldiers surrounding them. "No." Kris'
hoarse whisper brought her attention back to him. "Hiey—it is a maze.
While I live, they will not come." She
understood. His Gift had shown him that there was a maze of stairs and
corridors to traverse before the soldiers reached an entrance to this area. But
it had also shown him how little tune he had left. "Kris—"
She couldn't get anything more past the tears that rose and choked off her
words. "No,
little love, little bird. Weep for yourself, not for me." She
nearly fell to pieces with grief at his words. "I
don't fear Death; gladly, willingly would I seek the Havens, if I but knew my
Companion waits for me there— but to leave you—how can I leave you with all my
burden and yours as well?" He coughed, and blood showed at the comer of
his mouth. Somehow he managed to raise one hand to touch her cheek; she seized
it with her own and wept into it. "It
isn't fair—to leave you alone—but warn them, heartsister. Somehow warn them. I
cannot carry the task to the end, so it ends with you." She
nodded, so choked with tears she could not speak. "Oh,
little bird, I love you—" He seemed to be trying to say more when another
spate of coughing shook him. He looked up again, but plainly did not see her;
his eyes brightened and gladdened as if he were seeing something wonderful and
unexpected. "So^-bright! T—" For one
fleeting moment Talia sensed—joy; joy and the touch of awe and a strange glory
that was like noth- 182 Mercedes
Lackey ing
she'd ever sensed before. Then his body shuddered once in her arms, and the
light and life left his eyes. He went limp within her embrace—and then there
was nothing but the empty husk she held. The
soldiers came then, tore them apart, and took her away; she was too numb with
shock and grief to resist. Eight Her
guards were anything but gentle. They
bound her hands behind her and kicked and shoved her down countless rock-faced
corridors and a flight of rough stone stairs; when she stumbled they kicked her
until she rose, when she faltered they sent her onward with blows. They gave
her a final push that sent her sprawling into the center of a bare room. There
they put her in the custody of three hulking brutes, creatures who looked more
beast than man. These
three stripped her to the skin, indifferent to the agony of her shoulder, and
brutally searched her. Then one by one, they raped her with the same brutality
and indifference. By that time, she was nearly senseless with shock and pain,
and it hardly seemed to matter. It was just one more torture. She couldn't even
concentrate enough to use her Gift to defend herself, and when she'd tried
feebly to fight back, the one using her had knocked her head against the stone
floor so hard she was barely conscious. When
they had finished with her they hauled her to her feet by one arm, and threw
her into a dirt-floored, stone-walled cell, then tossed what was left of her
bloodstained clothing in behind her. It was the cold that finally roused her,
cold that chilled her and made her shake uncontrollably, and awoke her
lacerated shoulder to new pain. She roused enough then to crawl to where they'd
tossed her things and pull them on over her abused flesh. Not
surprisingly, nothing had been done about the 183 184 Mercedes
Lackey wound
in her shoulder, which continued to bleed sluggishly. I've—got
to do something—she thought, through the pain and cold clouding her mind, —got
to—get it out. She got
a firmer grip on reality; thought she remembered that the arrows she'd seen the
guards carrying had had leafpoints. Right— She steeled herself against the
inevitable, got a good grip on what was left of the slippery, blood-soaked
shaft, and pulled. It came
free—she passed out briefly as it did. When her vision cleared, she bound the
wound with one hand using a scrap from her shredded shirt as a bandage, and
hoped that this would at least stem the blood loss. Setenay.
Elspeth. She had to warn the Queen— That
goad was driving her past the point where she should have collapsed, and
continued to drive her. She had to warn the others. For that she must stay
aware— and alive, much as she longed to die. She curled in on herself, forcing
herself into trance, driving herself regardless of the pain of her brutalized
body. With this much pain behind it, even she should be able to reach the
Border. But she
met with the same wall that had protected the Prince from her probe. She
battered herself against it like a wild bird against the bars of a cage, and
with as much effect. There were no cracks, no weak points in it. Try as she
might, she could not reach her Mindcall past it. Weeping with bitter pain and
tortured frustration, she gave up, and lay in a hopeless huddle on the floor in
the darkness. There
was no way of telling how long she lay there before an anomalous sound roused
her from a nightmare of shock, pain, and confused grief. She listened again. It
was the sound of someone whispering. "Herald!
Lady Herald!" The voice sounded vaguely familiar. "Herald!"
It was coming from a small opening in the ceiling. She
crawled on hands and knees across the dirt floor to lie beneath it, for her
legs trembled so much she doubted ARROW'S
FALL 185 hold
her, and coughed several times before she speak. "I'm—here." "Lady
Herald, it's me, Evan—Evan, the trader from Westmark in Valdemar. The one you
talked to a day ago." As she
reached out tentatively with her Gift she wondered briefly if this, too, was a
trap. Gods—if
it is—but what do I have to lose? Please, Lady— She
nearly fainted with relief when her Gift confirmed that it was the same man. "Oh,
gods—Evan, Evan, Lady bless you—" she gulped and got control over her
babbling. "Where are you?" "Outside
the walls in the dry moat. Some of my acquaintances have worked in the Palace
and Guard and told me of these ventilation holes. I arrived after you, late
this evening—I was drinking with some of the Guard when—there were screams.
They told me some of what was happening, and warned me to hold my tongue if I
wanted to live. They aren't bad men, but they are afraid, Herald, very much
afraid. The Prince is making no secret now that he has evil magicians, and an
entire army that answers only to him." —if
only I'd overruled Kris—he'd be alive now— "Later they told me they'd
captured you—I—couldn't leave you without trying to help. I bribed a guard to
learn which cell they had taken for you. Lady—" he seemed to be groping
for words. "Lady, your friend is dead." **Yes—I—I
know." She bowed her head as the tears fell anew and she did not try to
hold them back. He was
silent for a long moment. "Lady, you saved my fife; I am still in your
life-debt. Is there some way I can bete you? The Prince means to keep you
living; I am told he has plans for you." Hope
rose to faltering life. "Can you help me escape this place?" And
died. "No, Lady," he said sadly. "That would require an army. I
would gladly try alone—but it would 186 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 187 not
serve you. You would still be here, and I would be quite dead." Half a
dozen ideas flitted through her mind; one stayed. "Are
these holes straight? Could you lower something to me, or bring something
up?" "If
it were something small, yes, Lady; easily done. My guide told me that they
were quite straight, and unobstructed." "Can
you find me two arrows—if you can, see that the barbs of the fletching are
heavy—and—" She faltered, and forced herself to continue. "—and at least
ten drams of argonel." "Have
they hurt you, Lady? There are safer ways to ease pain than argonel. And Lady,
that much—" "Trader,
do not argue. I have my reasons, and argonel it must be. Can you do it?" "Within
the hour, Lady." There
was a thin whisper of sound as he left. She propped herself against the wall
and tried to use the pain-deadening tricks she'd been taught to ease her
shoulder and her throbbing loins. She would not let herself hope that the
trader would keep his promise, but strove to remain passive, unfeeling, in a
kind of numbness. It was still dark when she heard a scratch and the trader's
voice. "Lady,
I have all you asked for. It's coming now." She
pulled herself up the wall and reached for the bundle that dangled from the
ceiling with her good hand, feeling more of the injured shoulder muscles tear
as she reached up. "The
bottle holds fourteen drams, and it is full." "May
the Lord of Lights and the Fair Lady shine on you, friend, and all your kin and
trade—" she replied fervently, loosening the stopper enough to catch the
distinctive sweet-sour odor of argonel. The bottle was completely full.
"Leave the string. You will be taking something up in a moment and doing
me another service— one last office that will free you of life-debt
entirely." "I
am yours to command," he replied with simple sincerity. She
snapped the head from the first arrow by holding it
under one foot. She let the tears flow freely as she patterned it with Kris'
fletching pattern, grateful that she'd been made to learn to do the task in the
dark, and finding it hard to continue with the memory fresh of him teaching her
his own pattern. The headless arrow—code for a Herald dead. Now for the most
important half of the message—code for herself; and code for the mission in
such ruins that no attempt at rescue should be made. She broke the second arrow
in half and patterned the fletching as her own. She tore the remains of one
sleeve from her shirt, secured the arrows into a compact bundle with it, and
fastened the whole to the string dangling down from the hole in the ceiling. 'Trader,
pull it up." It
gleamed for a moment against the stone, then was gone. "Now
listen carefully. I want you to leave now, before dawn, before the Prince tries
to seal the city. You must get outside the city gates." **There
is a guard at the night-gate I know I can bribe." "Good.
Just out of sight of the guardpost on the main highway that runs from the
Triumph Gate there is a shrine to the god of wayfarers." "I
know the place." "My
horse will find you there." The one thing that damned magician couldn't
block was her bond with Rolan! "He the bundle around his neck, just as it
is, then take whatever plan seems good to you. If I were you, I would make a
run for the Border; you'll be safe enough on the Valdemar side. Know that you
have all my thanks and all my blessings." ^Lady—a
horse?" She
remembered then that he was Hardornen, and couldn't know how unlike horses the
Companions were. "He
is more than horse; think of him as a familiar spirit. He will return to my
people with my message. Will ; jbu do
this for me?" He was
close to weeping himself. "Is there nothing more I can do?" ;; "If you do that, you will have done
more than I dared 188 Mercedes
Lackey hope.
You take with you all my gratitude, and my blessings. Now go, please, and
quickly." He did
not speak again, and she heard the scrape that signaled his departure. She
felt for her contact with Rolan. Her bond with him was at too deep a level for
the magician even to sense, let alone block. Although alternating waves of pain
and faintness threatened to overwhelm her, she managed to remain aware until
she knew with total certainty that Rolan had gotten her message-bundle from the
trader. Rolan
did not need any instructions to know what to do. Her contact with him weakened
and faded as she weakened with effort and blood loss and he headed for the
Border at his fastest pace, until it vanished altogether as he reached the edge
of her fast-shrinking range. By then it was almost dawn. Now,
there were just two more tasks, and she would be able to give way to her
anguish, her hurts, her grief. First,
the bottle. The trader had been right to be nervous about argonel. It was
chancy stuff. Sometimes even the normal dose of four drams killed—but the
Healers used it now and again to end the suffering of one they could not save.
It had the advantage that no matter how great the overdose, there were no
painful side effects such as there were with other such drugs—nothing but a
peaceful drifting into sleep. If four drams could kill, fourteen should make
death very sure. Using
the broken-off arrowhead, she scraped a hole in the floor beneath the pile of
molding straw that was supposed to be her bed, a hole just deep enough to bury
the bottle. Alessandar had not been the kind of monarch that often used his
dungeons; by the grace of the gods the floors were packed earth rather than
stone, with a pit dug in one corner for a privy. She
would not use the drug yet—not until she was certain that the Queen had
received the warning. Soon, Bright Lady—make it soon— Then
she scraped a second hole, and a third, and hid the arrowhead from the broken
arrow and the one she'd pulled from her own shoulder. If by some mischance they ARROWS
FALL 189 should
find the bottle, she could still cut her wrists with one of them. Her
shoulder was aflame with pain and bleeding again, and a little gray tight was
creeping down the ventilation hole when she'd finished. She lay
on the straw and let herself mourn at last. Tears
of sorrow and of pain were still pouring from her eyes when blood loss and
exhaustion finally drove her into unconsciousness. When
she came to herself again, there was a single spot of sunlight on the floor,
making the rest of the .room seem black by comparison. She blinked in hurt and
confusion, as the door clanked once and opened. She saw
one of her jailors strolling toward her, wearing a sadistic grin and unfastening
his breeches as he walked. For the space of a second she was ready to cry out
and shrink away from him—but then a cold and deadly anger came over her, and
abruptly she could bear no more. She took all her agony and Kris' (still rawly
part of her), all her loss, all her hatred, and hurled them into his
unprotected mind in a blinding instant of forced rapport. Hatred
couldn't sustain her long—she couldn't maintain it for more than a single
moment—but that moment was enough. He
screamed soundlessly, and flung himself wildly at the door, nearly knocking
himself senseless when he readied it. He slammed it after himself, and threw
the bolt home. She could hear him babbling in panic to his comrades on the
other side. As she slumped back, she knew that they would not dare to molest
her again, not unless the magician was with them. That was very unlikely. That
one was too busy protecting his Prince and keeping her from Mindspeaking to
have time to spare to protect menials so that they might amuse themselves. ,
They shoved in a pail of water and a plate of some sort of slop later in the
day. She ignored the food, but drank Ae stale, fusty-tasting water avidly. Her
terrible thirst woke her to the fact that she was beginning to feel both
overheated and chilled. 190 Mercedes
Lackey Gingerly
she touched the skin next to the arrow-wound. It was hot and dry to the touch,
and badly swollen. She was
taking wound-fever. While
she was still able, she relieved herself down the privy hole in the corner,
telling herself that she should be grateful that there was nothing in her
stomach and bowels to make a flux of. It was cold comfort, that. She pulled the
bucket within reach of the straw and propped herself against the wall in case
someone should try to take her unaware. When the hallucinations and
fever-dreams began, she was more or less ready for them. There
was no pattern to the fever. When she was able to think, she would tend to
herself as best she could. When the fever took her, she endured. There
were horrible visions of the slaughter in the banquet hall, and the victims
paraded their death-wounds before her and mutely asked why she hadn't warned
them. In vain she told them that she hadn't known—they pressed in on her,
shoving mutilated limbs and dripping wounds in her face, smothering her— Her
bestial guards multiplied into a horde, and used her, and used her, and used
her— Then
Kris came. At
first she thought it was going to be another dream like the first, but it
wasn't. Instead, he was whole, well; even happy—until he saw her. Then, to her
distress, he began weeping—and blamed himself for what had happened to her. She
tried to put on a brave face for him, but when she moved, she hurt so much that
her fragile pretense shattered. He shook off his own distress at that, and
hurried to kneel at her side. He
somehow drove away some of the pain, spoke words of comfort, bathed her
feverish brow with cool water. When she whimpered involuntarily as movement
sent lances of hurt through her shoulder, he wept again with vexation at his
own impotence, and berated himself for leaving her alone. When the other,
horrible dreams came, he stood them off. The
next time she came to herself, she found that there was a scrap torn from her
sleeve near the bucket, ARROWS
FALL 191 still
damp. After trying to puzzle it out, she decided that ite'd done it herself,
and the dream had been a rationalization of it. "
As delirium began to take her again, she tried to tell fcerself that it was unlikely
that her hallucinations would include Kris a second time. But
they did, and Kris continued to guard her from the hideous visions, all the
while trying to give her courage. Finally
she gave up even trying to pretend to hope, and told Kris about the argonel. "No,
little bird," he said, shaking his head at her. "It isn't your time
yet." "But—" "Trust
me. Trust me, dearheart. Everything is going to come out fine. Just try to hold
on—" He faded into the stone, then, as she woke once more. That
puzzled her. Why should a fever-dream of her own making be trying to urge her
to live, when she only wanted release? But tor
the most part, she simply suffered, and en-dured the waiting, watching for some
sign that her message had safely reached Selenay. The Queen and her entourage
should have reached the Border about two days after she and Kris had ridden
through the palace gates. They would have been expecting Kris about three or
four days after they arrived—a week after she'd been thrown in here. With luck
and the Lady with him, Rolan should reach them about that time. She added the
days in her head—that meant he would reach the Queen in six to ten days at his
hardest gallop—six if he could take the Open roads, ten if he had to backtrack
and hide. "
When Hulda first appeared, at the end of the third day, Talia thought initially
that she was another hallucination, *, Kit
hadn't been that Hulda's sharp features and strange (ray-violet eyes were
unmistakable, Talia wouldn't have recognized her. She was swathed in a
voluptuous gown of burgundy-wine velvet, cut low and daringly across the bosom,
and there were jewels on her neck and hands and 192 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 193 the net
that bound her hair. But most amazing of all, she appeared to be hardly older
than Talia herself. She
stood peering into the darkness, eyes darting this way and that; a cruel smile
touched her tips when she finally spotted Talia huddled against the wall. She
moved from the center of the room with an odd, gliding step to stand above
Talia, eyes narrowed in pleasure, and nudged her sharply with one dainty shoe. The
pain she caused made Talia gasp and pull in on herself—and her heart leapt into
her throat when she realized that the woman was still standing there—real, and
no hallucination. When
Talia's eyes widened with shock and recognition, Hulda smiled. "You
remember me? How very touching! I had no hope you'd have any recollection of
little Elspeth's adored nurse." She
moved a few steps farther away and stood artfully posing in the light that came
through the ventilation bole. "And how low the mighty Herald has fallen!
You'd have been pleased to see me brought so low, wouldn't you? But I am not
caught so easily, little Herald. Not half so easily." "What—what
are you?" The words were forced out almost against Talia's will. "I?
Besides a nurse, you mean?" She laughed. "Well, a magician, I suppose
you'd call me. Did you think the Heralds held all the magic there was in the
world? Oh, no, little Herald, that is for, for from being the case." She
laughed again, and swept out of the cell, the door clanging shut behind her. Talia
struggled to think; but—Lord and Lady, this meant there was more, much more at
stake here than she'd dreamed. Hulda—so
young-looking, and claiming to be a magician. And she hadn't any trace of a
Gift, Talia knew thai for certain. Put that together with the mage who guarded
Ancar and kept her from Mmdspeaking to other Heralds— gods protect Valdemar!
That meant that old magic, real magic, and not just Heraldic Mind-magic, was
loose in the world again. And in the hands of Valdemar's enemies— And
Hulda had been—must have been—playing a deeper game than anyone ever guessed,
and for for longer. But to what purpose? Hulda
came again, this time after dark, bringing some kind of witchlight with her. It
was an odd, misty ball that gave off a red glare that flickered and pulsated;
it floated m behind her and hovered just above her shoulder, bath-iag die
entire cell in an eerie, reddish glow. This
time Talia was more or less ready for her. She was free from delirium for the
moment, and feeling light-vet dear-headed. She had managed to put her own
emotions and the helplessness of her position hi the back of her mind, hoping
for some stroke of luck that might bring her a chance to strike back at her
tormentors. She had
figured that Hulda was warded, even as the Prince was; she probed anyway, and
discovered her guess was correct. So rather than making any other moves, she •imply
shifted her weight where she sat so that she might be able to get to her feet
at a moment's notice. Hulda
smiled mockingly; Talia glared right back. "You
might rise to greet me," she mocked. "No? Well, I shan't ask it of
you. You'll be dancing to my tittle Prince's tunes soon enough. Or should I
say, 'King*? I •oppose
I should. Aren't you at all curious as to why and 1 how I came here?" "I
have the feeling you'd tell me whether I cared or not/* Talia said bitterly. "Spirited!
You're right, I would. Oh, I spent years looking for a child like Ancar—one of
high estate, yet oae who could readily incline himself to what I would teach
him. Then once I found nun, I knew within a year that one land would never be
enough for him. So once I taught him enough that he could do without me for a
time, I turned my attention toward finding him a suitable mete. Dear Elspeth
seemed so perfect—" she sighed theatrically. "Oh?" "You
are so talented, little Herald! What volumes of meaning you convey with a
single syllable! Yes, dear Efapeth seemed perfect—coming from a long line of
those 194 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 195 Gifted
magically, and with such a father! Plotting against his own wife!
Delicious!" "If
you're trying to convince me that treachery is inherited, you're wasting your
breath." She
laughed. "Very well then, I'll be brief. I intended Elspeih to be properly
trained and eventually consolidate an alliance with Ancar. As you probably
guessed, I substituted myself for the original Hulda. Things were progressing
quite well—until you intervened." This
time the glance she shot at Talia was venomous. "Fortunately I was
forewarned. I returned to my dear Prince, and when he was of an age to begin
taking part in the making of plans, we put together a quite tidy plot." She
began pacing the room, restlessly, the folds of her vermilion gown collecting
loose dirt from the floor, dirt which she ignored. "What
is it," Talia asked the ceiling above her head, "what is it about
would-be tyrants that makes them speak and posture like third-rate gleemen in a
badly-written play?" Hulda
pivoted sharply about and glared, her hands twitching a little as if she'd like
to settle them about Talia's neck. Talia braced herself, hoping she'd try.
Granted, she was as weak as water, but there were some tricks Alberich had
taught her. . . . "Haven't
you got anything better to do than boast about your petty triumphs to a captive
audience?" she taunted. Hulda's
face darkened with anger; then to Talia's disappointment she regained control
of herself, and slowly straightened and smoothed the folds of her gown while
she calmed her temper. "You're
to be a part of this, you know," she said abruptly. "Ancar wanted
both of you alive, but you alone will do. We'll all ride together to the Border
and wait for your Queen there. She'll see you with us, and be reassured.
Then—" "You
don't seriously think you'll get me to cooperate, do you?" "You
won't have a choice. Just as my Prince's servant can keep you from sending your
little messages, so I can control
of your own body from you—particularly you're in rather poor condition at the
moment." "You can try." "Oh, no, little Herald. I can bring
in more help than you could ever hope to hold against. I will succeed." She
laughed, and swept out the door, then, the witchlight following. As
Talia had hoped, on the tenth day of her captivity, the door to her cell
opened, and Prince Ancar and his magician stood before her. And with him was
Hulda. She was
in another of the periods of clear-headedness between bouts of delirium. She
debated facing them standing, but decided that she didn't have the strength.
She simply stared at them with undisguised contempt. "My
messengers have sent signals telling me that the Queen of Valdemar has turned
back at the Border," Aacar said, gazing at her with basilisk-eyes.
"And now they say she gathers an army to her side. Somehow you warned her,
Herald. How?" She
returned him stare for stare. "If you two are so all-powerful/' she asked
contemptuously, "why don't you read my thoughts?" His
race reddened with anger. "Damn you Heralds and your barriers—" he
spat, before Hulda managed to hush Talia
stared at him in astonishment. Brightest Lady—he can't read me—they can't read
me, can't read Heralds—no wonder we almost caught Hulda before— For one
mo-nent, she felt a stirring of excitement, but it faded. The information was
priceless—and useless. It only meant they would not be able to pluck truth from
her thoughts, and so would never know when and if she lied. So
start now. Tell them a truth they would never believe. According to Elspeth,
Hulda had never believed that the Companions were more than very well trained
beasts. She had been convinced it was the Heralds who picked the Chosen, not
the Companions. So.
"My horse," she said after a long pause, "My horse escaped to
warn them." Ancar
smiled, and ice rimed her blood. "An imagina- 196 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 197 tion, I
trow. You should have been a Bard. This will only delay things, you must
realize. I have been working toward my goals for years, and I can easily
compass a little more delay." He turned toward Hulda, and brushed his lips
along her hair. "Can't I, my dear nurse?" "Easily,
my Prince. You have been a most apt pupil." "And
the pupil has exceeded the teacher, no?" "In
some things, my love. Not in all." "Perhaps
you will be interested to hear that I know of your quarrel with the young Heir,
little Herald. It would seem that she is quite crestfallen, and determined to
make it up with you, since my informant tells me she is most eager to be
meeting with you again. A pity that won't happen. It would have been amusing to
watch the meeting—and you under my dear nurse's control." Talia
tried not to show any reaction, but her concentration slipped enough that she
bit her lip. "Do
tell her who our informant is, my love," Hulda murmured in Ancar's ear. "None
other than the trusted Lord Orthallen. What, you are not surprised? How vexing.
Hulda discovered him, you know—found that he had been working at undermining
the Heralds and the Monarchs so long and so cleverly that no one even guessed
how often he'd played his cards." "Some
of us guessed." "Really?"
Hulda pouted. "I am disappointed. But have you guessed why? Ancar has
promised him the throne. Orthallen has wanted that for so very long, you see.
He thought he had it when he arranged for an assassin to take Selenay's father
in battle. But then there was Selenay—and all those Heralds who persisted in
protecting her. He decided to do away with them first—it's a pity how little
luck he's had. He has been so surprised at the way you keep eluding his traps.
He'll be even more amazed when Ancar gives him the dagger instead of the crown.
But I am disappointed that you had guessed at his perfidy already." "My
poor dear—two disappointments in one day." Ancar turned his cold gaze back
on Talia. "Well, since you have denied me one pleasure, you can hardly
blame anyone
but yourself when I use you for another, can you? Perhaps it will make up for
the entertainments your actions denied my dear nurse." "Ah,
but be wary of this wench, my lord King," Hulda cautioned. "She is
not without weapons, even now. Your servant must not let the barrier break for
even a moment." He
smiled again. "Small chance of that, my love. He knows the penalty should
he fail to keep her trapped within her own mind. Should he weaken, my heart—he
becomes yours." She
trilled with delight as he signaled to the hulking guards that stood behind
him. They
seized Talia and dragged her to her feet, pinioning her arms behind her back.
Anguish threaded her body as the wound broke open anew, but she bit her lip and
suffered silently. "Stubborn
as well! How entertaining you will be, Herald. How very entertaining." He
turned and led the way from the cell with the magician and Hulda in close
attendance and the guards following with Talia. There was a long corridor that
smelled of mold and damp, and an iron door at the end of it. Beyond it was the
smell of fear, and blood. They
shackled her arms to the cold stone above her head, putting an almost
intolerable strain on her wounded shoulder. "I
consider myself an artist," Ancar told her, "There is a certain
artistry in producing the most pain without inflicting permanent damage, or
causing death." He removed a long, slender iron rod from the fire and
re-garded the white-hot tip thoughtfully. "There are such fascinating things
to be done with this, for instance." As from
a century distant she recalled Alberich discussing some of the more unpleasant
realities of becoming a Herald with a small knot of final-year students in
which she was included. *The
possibility of torture," Alberich had said on that long ago afternoon,
"is something we cannot afford to ignore. No matter what it is that the
stories say, anyone can be broken by pain. There are mental exercises that 193 Mercedes
Lackey will
enable one to escape, but they are not proof against the worst that man can
devise. All I can advise you if you find yourself in the hopeless situation is
that you must lie; lie so often and with such creativity that your captors will
not know the truth when they hear it. For the time will come when you will tell
them the truth—you will be unable to help yourself. But by then, I hope, you
will have muddied the waters past any hope of clarity. . . ." But
Ancar did not want information; he was getting that in plenty from Orthallen.
AH he wanted was to make her hurt. She was damned if she'd give him
satisfaction before she had to. So the
"fascinating things" failed to drive a sound from her, and the Prince
was displeased. He
proceeded to more sophisticated tortures, involving complicated apparatus. He
handled all of this himself, his long hands caressing the bloodstained straps
and cruel metal as he described in loving detail what each was to do to her
helpless body. Talia
did her best to keep herself shielded, and to retreat behind those mental
barriers to pain and the outside world she had long ago learned to erect, but
as he continued his entertainment, her barriers and shielding gradually eroded.
She became nauseatingly aware of every emotion he, Hulda, and the nameless
magician were experiencing. The intensely sexual pleasure he derived from her
pain was worse than rape; and she was in too much agony to block it out.
Hulda's pleasure was as perverted, and as hard to bear. In fact, both of them
were erotically aroused to a fever-pitch by what they were doing to her, and
were a scant step from tearing the clothing from each other's backs and
consummating their passion there and then. Twice
she tried to turn her agony back on him, but the magician always shielded him.
The magician was deriving nearly as much enjoyment from this as Ancar and his
"dear nurse" were, and Talia wished passionately (while she was still
thinking coherently enough to wish) to be able to strike out at all of them. After a
time, she was no longer capable of anything but screaming. ARROWS
FALL 199 When
they crushed her feet, she was not even capable of that. They
dragged her back to her cell when her voice was gone, for the Prince did not
derive half the pleasure from her torture when she could not respond to his
experiments. He stood over her, gloating, as she lay unable to move on the
straw where they'd left her. "So,
child, you must rest, and recover, so that we can play my games again," he
crooned. "Perhaps I will tire of the game soon; perhaps not. No matter.
Think on tomorrow—and think on this. When I tire of you, I shall still find a
use for you. First my men will again take their pleasure of you, for they shall
not mind that you are no longer as attractive as you once were; some of them would
find your appearance as stimulating as 7 do, my dear. Then you shall be my
messenger. How will your beloved Queen react to receiving her favorite Herald,
but a small piece at a time?" He
laughed, and swept out with Hulda at his side, already fondling one of her
breasts as the door thudded shut behind him. It took
every last bit of her will, but she remained where she was until it was dark,
dark enough that she knew that no one would be able to see what she was doing.
She rolled to one side then, pushed aside the straw, and uncovered the place
where she'd buried her precious bottle of argonel. It had been the knowledge
that she had it that was all that had sustained her this day, and she prayed
that they had not searched the cell anS found it. .TOy hadn't. She
kept her mind fastened on each tiny movement, knowing that otherwise she would
never be able to continue. Her
fingers were so swollen as to be all but useless, but she had anticipated that.
She managed to scrape back the loosely-packed dirt with the sides of her hands,
clearing away enough so that she could get her teeth around the neck and pull
the bottle out of the hole that way. The
effort nearly caused her to black out and left her 200 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 201 gasping
and weeping with pain, unable to stir for long moments. When she could move
again, she braced the bottle between wrists rubbed raw and pulled the stopper
out with her teeth. She lay
for a long, long moment again, while her mind threatened to retreat into
blackness. That would only be a temporary escape, and she needed a permanent
one. She
spat the stopper out and rolled onto her side while her body howled in anguish,
and poured the entire bottle into her mouth. It burned all the way down her raw
throat, and burned in her stomach where it lay like molten lead. It felt as if
it were eating a hole through to the outside. She
wept with pain, conscious of nothing but pain, for what seemed to be an
eternity. But then numbness began to spread from the fire, pushing the pain
before it. It spread faster as it moved outward, and soon she could no longer
feel anything, anything at all. Her mind seemed to be floating in warm, dark
water. A few
thoughts remained with her for a while. Elspeth; she hoped the child really had
forgiven her—she hoped the next Queen's Own would love her as much as Talia
did. And Dirk. Perhaps it was the best thing that he should not know how much
she loved him; he would be spared much anguish that way. Wouldn't he? She was
glad of one thing; that he and Kris had made up before they'd left. It was
going to hurt him badly enough when he learned of Kris' death as it was. If only
she'd been able to tell them—if only she'd known for certain about Orthallen.
He still was there, the unsuspected enemy, waiting to try yet again. And Ancar—
master of magicians and possessed of an army of killers. If only she could tell
them somehow. . . . While
she still had the strength and the will, she tried again to Mindcall, but was
foiled by the mage-barrier. Then
her will went numb, and all she could do was drift, It was
odd . . . Bards always claimed that alt the answers came when one died, but
there were no answers for her. Only questions, unanswered questions, and un- finished
business. Why were there no answers? One would think that at least one would
know why one had to die. Maybe
it didn't matter. Kris
had said it was bright. The tales all said the Havens were bright. But it
wasn't bright. It was dark— darkness all around, and never a hint of
brightness. AIM! so
lonely! She would have welcomed anything, even a fever-dream. But
perhaps that was just as well, too. In the darkness that damned magician
couldn't find her to bring her back. If she fled away far enough, he might get
tost in trying to find her. It was worth the effort—and the warm, numbing
darkness was very soothing, if the loneliness could be ignored. Perhaps
elsewhere, where the mage couldn't follow, she would find the Havens . . . and
there would be light. She let
the darkness pull her farther along, closing behind her, and thoughts began to
numb and fall away as well. As she
retreated away down into the darkness, her very last thought was to wonder why
there still was no hght at all, even at the end of it. Nine When
the Queen and her entourage set out at last, Dirk was part of her honorguard
despite the vehement protests of Healers and fellow Heralds that he was not
well enough for such an expedition. He had
responded that he was needed. This was true; the Collegium had suspended
classes and all Heralds normally teaching were serving as bodyguards, with the
»le exceptions being those too sick or old to travel. He also argued that he
was far healthier than he looked (which was not true), and that he would rest
just as well at die easy pace of the baggage train as he would fretting in the
infirmary (which was marginally true). The Healers threw up their hands in
disgust when Selenay agreed to Us presence, and pronounced her to be insane and
him tote the worst patient they had ever had since Keren. He knew
very well that Teren and Skif had quietly debated themselves to keep an eye on
him, not trusting te protestations of health in the slightest. He didn't care,
was worth not being left behind—even being over. he was
right about the leisurely quality of the ey—this was to be an easy trip; the
most exciting likely to occur would be when they met Talia or > at the
Border. The bodyguard of Heralds was more of tradition than suspected danger.
After all, was a trusted ally and a firm friend of lar, and it was as likely
for harm to come to iy and Elspeth in her own capital as it was for them 204 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 205 to come
to harm in Hardorn. Dirk figured he should be as safe with them as in his own
bed. There
were other reasons why Dirk wanted to accompany the others, although none that
he was willing to disclose to anyone else. His enforced idleness had given him
ample time for thought, and he was beginning to wonder if he hadn't made a bad
mistake in his assumptions about the relationship between Talia and Kris. While
he hadn't precisely left the field clear, Kris hadn't spent much (if any!) time
alone with her since they'd returned. Instead, he'd had a brief fling with Nessa,
then returned to his old semi-monastic habits. Nor had Talia sought him out. He
knew these things to be facts, since he'd been keeping track of their
whereabouts rather obsessively. Now that he thought back on it, Kris' frequent
paeans of praise for the Queen's Own seemed less like those of a lover lauding
his beloved, and more like a horsetrader trying to convince a reluctant buyer!
And the one whose company Talia hod been seeking was the one person who had
been trying to avoid her—himself. Then there
was that odd incident with Keren, right after he'd damn near collapsed. She'd
bullied her way past the Healers the morning Kris and Talia had left, while he
was still fairly light-headed with fever, and had delivered a vehement lecture
to him that he couldn't quite remember. It was maddening, because he had the
shrewd notion that it was important, and he couldn't quite bring himself to
confront Keren again and ask her what her diatribe had been all about. But if
what vague memories he did have were not totally misleading—and they very well
could be—she'd spoken of lifebonds, and more than once. And she'd gone on at
some length about what an idiot he was being, and how miserable he was making
Talia feel. Besides
all that, he had had some very frightening dreams that he didn't think could
all be laid to the fever, and had been entertaining very uneasy feelings about
the whole expedition from the moment he had learned that Talia and Kris were
gone. If something were to go wrong, he wanted to know about it firsthand. And
he wanted to be in a position where he could do something, not just wonder
what was happening; although in the kind of shape he was in, he was not too
sanguine that he'd be able to do much. Technically,
he was still an invalid, so he was sent to the rear of the company before the
baggage animals, to share Skifs bodyguard duty on Elspeth. Skifs Cymry had
foaled in early spring, and the youngster was just barely old enough to make
this kind of easy trip. Elspeth
was anxious, and Dirk had a notion that he and Skif were the best possible
company for the young Heir; the antics of Cymry's offspring and Skifs easy
patter kept her spirits up, and Dirk was more than will-mg to talk about the
one subject that overwhelmed her with guilt and dominated her thoughts—Talia. Selenay
had given Talia's note to Elspeth when the Heir had searched for the Queen's
Own without success and had finally demanded to know what her mother had done
with her. She had recalled her promise of many years' standing with heartfelt
remorse almost as soon as Talia had turned her back on her and ridden away.
"I'll never get mad at you," she had pledged. "No matter what
you say, unless I go away and think about it, and decide what you told me just
wasn't true." And a
great deal of what Talia had said that night, though harsh, was true. She
hadn't thought past her own pleasure and her own wishes. She hadn't once
considered her "affair" in the light of the larger view. Her
would-be lover's betrayal had hurt—but not nearly SO much as the thought that
she'd driven away a friend $tio truly loved her with that broken promise.
Talia's words had been ugly, but not unearned—and Elspeth had returned her own
share of harsh and ugly words. . If truth were to be told, though Elspeth was
even more ashamed when she thought about it, the name-calling bad begun with
her. She wanted desperately, now that Hfe'd read the note, to make her own
apologies and explanations, and to regain the closeness they'd had be-i.'•';•'.
fore Talia's stint in the field. Her remorse was very real, and she had the
urge to talk about it incessantly. 206 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 207 She
found a sympathetic ear in Dirk, who never seemed to find her own repetitive
litany boring. She
gradually managed to purge some of her guilt just by pouring her unhappiness
into his ears, and slowly it became less obsessive. But it
was still very much with her. "Daydreaming,
young milady?" The
smooth, cultivated voice startled Elspeth out of deep thought. "Not
daydreaming," she corrected Lord Orthallen, just a shade stiffly.
"Thinking." He
raised an inquisitive eyebrow, but she wasn't about to enlighten him. He
nudged his chestnut palfrey a little closer; Gwena responded to her unspoken twinge
of revulsion and moved away. "I
must admit to being caught up in a great deaf of thought, myself," he
said, as if unwilling to let her escape from him. "Thought—and
worry—" Damn
him! she thought. He is so smooth—he makes me want to trust him so much! If
Alberich hadn't said what he did to me— :Td
trust Alberich with my life,: Gwena said unexpectedly in her mind. :l wouldn't
trust that snake with my hoof-parings!: -.Hush,
loveling,: she replied the same way, amusement at her Companion's vehemence
restoring her good humor. :He won't catch me again,: "Worry
about what, my Lord?" she asked ingenuously. "My
nephew," he replied surprising the boots off her with his expression and
the tinge of real concern in his voice. "I wish that Seienay had consulted
me before sending him on this mission. He's so young." "He's
quite experienced." "But
not in diplomacy. And not alone." .•Bright
Havens, loveling, I could almost believe he really is anxious!: :He
is.: Gwena sounded just as surprised. :And somehow—somehow that frightens me.
What does he know that we don't?: "It's
a simple mission to an ally," she said aloud. "What could possibly go
wrong?" "Nothing,
of course. It's just an old man's foolish fancies" He laughed, but it
sounded forced. "No, never mind. I actually came back here to see if you
were pining aver one of those young men you've left back at Court." "Them?"
She produced a trill of very artificial gaiety. "Lady bless, my lord, I
can't for the life of me wonder what I ever saw in them. I never met a pack of
puppies with emptier heads in my life! I'm afraid they bored me so I was only
too pleased to escape them—and I think I'd better head to the rear and take my
turn making sure poor Dirk doesn't fall out of his saddle. Farewell, my .-Ofc,
that's putting a kink in his tail, little sister!: Gwena applauded as she spun
and cantered to the rear. :Well done indeed f: "Dilk?"
Elspeth cantered up next to him. "What
imp?" He'd been almost half-asleep; the sun was gentle and warm, Ahrodie's
pace was smooth, and the gentle chime of bridle bells and the ringing of hooves
on the road had been very soporific. ;**Do
you think it'll be Talia that meets us on the Border?" Elspeth's tone was
wistful, her face full of undisguised hope. Dirk hated to disappoint her, but
he didn't have much choice. He
sighed. "Not likely, I'm afraid. Fact is, as Queen's Own she's really your
mother's first representative, so chances are shell still be with
Alessandar." -
VQh." She looked rather crestfallen, but apparently Mil feeling like
continuing the conversation. "Are you feeimg all right? You've been
coughing a lot." She
looked sideways at him with a certain amount of concern in her glance. -
4*Don*t tell me you're going to nursemaid me," Dirk replied
with some exasperation. "It's bad enough with 4 tiWMC
two playing mother-hen." He nodded back in the Erection
where Skif and Teren were riding, just out of L* bright
noontide sun, so welcome after all those 208 Mercedes
Lackey ARROVTSFALL 209 weeks
of cold rain, made their white uniforms difficult to took at without squinting,
Teren positively glistened. And How
in blazes, Dirk found himself wondering, does he manage to took so immaculate
with all the dust we're kicking up? Elspeth
giggled. "Sorry. It does get to be a bit muchish, doesn't it? Now you know
how I feel! It was all right back at the Collegium, but I can't even slip off
into the woods to—you know—without two Heralds pounding up to bodyguard me!" "Don't
blame anybody but your mother, imp. You're the only offspring. She should have
whelped a litter, then you wouldn't have these problems." Elspeth
giggled even harder. "I wish some of the courtiers could near you, talking
about her like she was a prize bitch!" "They'd
probably call me out for insulting her. She, on the other hand, might very well
agree with me. What are you doing for classes since you're not wanning a
desk?" Much to
his own surprise, Dirk realized he was interested in hearing Elspetn's answer.
Some of the lethargy of his illness was ebbing, replaced by a little of his old
energy, and he was beginning to realize that a good deal of his mental distress
had vanished as well. Whether this was as a result of mending his quarrel with
Kris or something else he had no idea, but it was a welcome change. "Alberich
told Skif to teach me knife-throwing. I'm getting pretty good at it, if I can
be forgiven a boast. Watch—" Her
hand flicked out sideways and forward, and a small knife appeared almost
magically, quivering in the bole of a tree ahead of them. Dirk hadn't even seen
it leave her hand. "Not
bad—not bad at all." Elspeth
cantered up to retrieve it, cleaning the blade of sap on her sleeve, then
rejoined Dirk. "He gave me a wrist sheath with a trick release—see?"
She pushed up her sleeve to display it proudly. "Just like Talia's." "So
that's where she got them! Figures it'd be him. If there's a way to hide
anything, that boy knows it." Dirk orwned,
and realized with surprise that it had been a long while since he'd smiled.
"Not that I've got any objections, mind you. I'm just as glad you've got a
hidden sting, imp.'1 **Whyfor?
Mother wasn't all that happy about my learn-ing 'assassin's tricks,' as she so
tactfully put it. It was only toy saying that Alberich ordered it that made it
right with her." "Call
me a little more pragmatic, but if you know the assassin's tricks, you're one
up on the assassin—and there's only one of you, imp. We can't afford to lose
you." "Funny,
that's just what Skif said. I guess I'm out of the habit of thinking of myself
as important." She grinned, and Dirk thought fleetingly that a charming
young woman had been born out of the naughty Brat Talia had taken in charge. No
small miracle had been wrought there. "I
hope you're also learning that in a dangerous situation you react with
reflexes, not with your head." She
made a face. "Am I not! It hasn't been so long ago that Alberich, Skif and
Jeri were ambushing me every time I wasn't looking, solo or in groups! Anyway,
other than that, I'm just supposed to be talking with Heralds. I guess they
figure I'll pick things up by contamination, or something." ''That's
a fine way to talk about your elders! Although I hate to admit it—but with
Skif, 'contamination' is pretty accurate." /•Do I
hear my name being taken in vain?" Skif
nudged Cymry up to ride beside them. "Most
assuredly, my fine, feathered felon. I was just warning our innocent young Heir
about associating with "Me?"
Skif went round-eyed with innocence. "I am as pure—" "As
what they shovel out of the stables." "Hey, I don't have to sit here
and be insulted!" "That's right," Elspeth giggled. "You
could ride off and let
us insult you behind your back like we were doing As if
to echo her, a bold scarlet jay called down filthy on him just as he rode
beneath it. It hopped along 210 Mercedes
Lackey the
branch that overhung the road and continued catcalling after he'd passed. "I
do believe I am outnumbered—you're even getting the wildlife on your side! It's
time, as Master Alberich would say, for a strategic retreat." He
reined Cymry in and dropped back to resume his place beside Teren, making a
face at Elspeth when he saw she was sticking her tongue out at him. Dirk was
hard put to keep a straight face. But a
moment later Elspeth's mood abruptly shifted. "Dirk? Can I ask you
something?" "That's
what I'm here for, imp. Part of it, anyway." "What's
evil?" Dirk
nearly lost his teeth. Philosophy was not what he was expecting out of Elspeth.
"Ouch! Don't believe in asking the easy ones, do you?" He sat
silent for a long moment, aware after a sidelong glance at her that he had won
Elspeth's heart forever by taking her question seriously. "Have you ever
asked Gwena that one?" he said at last. "She's probably a better
authority than I am." "I
did—and all she did was look at me like I'd grown horns and say, 'It just is/1
" He
laughed, for the answer sounded very like the kind of response Ahrodie used to
give him. "They do seem to have some peculiar blind spots, don't they? All
right, I'll give it a try. This isn't the best answer by a long road, but I
think it might be somewhere in the right direction. It seems to me that evil is
a kind of ultimate greed, a greed that is so all-encompassing that it can't
ever see anything lovely, rare, or precious without wanting to possess it. A
greed so total that if it can't possess these things, it will destroy them
rather than chance that someone else might have them. And a greed so intense
that even having these things never causes it to lessen one iota—the lovely,
the rare and the precious never affect it except to make it want them." "So—'good'
would be a kind of opposite? Unselfishness?" He
frowned a little, groping for the proper words. "Oh, partially. Evil can't
create, it can only copy, mar, ARROWS
FALL 211 tx
destroy, because it's so taken up with itself. So 'good' would also be a kind
of selflessness. And you know what 8 lot of sects preach—that ultimate
good—Godhead—can only be reached by totally forgetting the self. What brought
this on?" "When
Skif mentioned Master Alberich—he—I—" she hesitated, looking shamefaced,
but Dirk did his best to took kind and understanding, and his expression
evidently encouraged her to continue. "You know about what happened—with
Talia and me. I was still angry with J»er the next day, even though I was
almost as angry with myself; well, that showed up in practice. Master Alberich
made me stop, and took me out to the Field for a walk to cool off. You know, I
never thought he was—I don't know, understanding, I guess. Nice. He seems so
hard, most of the time." "Perhaps
that's to mask the softness underneath," Dirk replied quietly. He knew
Alberich better than almost any *ower
Herald, except for Elcarth and Jeri; and despite all the time he spent in the
field, he had come as close as anyone was ever likely to get to the Armsmaster.
"Being easy with any of us might be a quick way to get us killed in the
field. So he's hard, hopefully harder than anything jwpill have to face. That
doesn't make him less a human, qf less a Herald. Think about it a minute. He's
the one teacher in the Collegium whose lessoning will make a difference whether
we live or die. If he eliminates one little thing—no matter for what reason—it
might be the cause of one of his pupils finding an early grave. You 1*1 say
that about any other instructor in the Colle-Vou might notice the next time the
Death Bell that you won't see him anywhere around. I don't r where he goes, but
I saw him leaving, once. He looked like he was in mortal agony. I think he
feels more than most of us would credit him with." 'I
guess I know that now. Anyway, he started talking, " you know how it is with
him, when he talks, you automatically listen. Somehow I ended up telling him
about everything—about how, since Talia seemed so busy, I started talking to
Lord-Un—I mean, Lord Orthallen. •;Aad
how that was why I—started being with—some peo- 212 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 213 pie.
The wild crowd, I guess. That boy. Lord Orthallen introduced us; he told me he
thought I ought to be spending more time with the other people of the Court. It
all made sense when he was saying it, and the boys he introduced me to seemed
so ... attentive. Flattering. I . . . like the attention; I told Alberich that.
That's when he said something really odd, Alberich, I mean. He said, "I
tell you this in strictest confidence, Herald to Herald, for I think I would
have to guard my back at all times should he come to learn of it. Lord
Orthallen is one of the only three truly evil persons I have ever encountered.
He does nothing without a purpose, my lady, and you would be wise never to
forget this.'" She
glanced at Dirk; he had the feeling she wanted to see the effect of her words. He made
no effort to hide that he was quite sobered by them. The first time she had
spoken Lord Orthallen's name, it had felt as if a cloud had passed between
himself and the gentle warmth of the sun. And her account of Alberich's words
had come as something of a revelation. "I'm
not sure what to say," he replied finally. "Alberich is hardly
inclined to make hasty judgments though; I'm sure you realize that. But at the
same time, I am hardly one of Orthallen's supporters. I'll just say this; Kris
and I quarreled largely because Orthallen insisted he be there when I was
accused, and because Orthallen did his best to force him to make a choice
between himself and me. I can't think why he would want to do that—except for
what I already have said about evil; that it can't see a precious thing without
wanting to own or destroy it. And our friendship, Kris' and mine, is one of the
most precious things in my life." Elspeth
rode silently by his side for a good many miles after that, her face very quiet
and thoughtful This
was only the first of many such conversations they were to have. They
discovered that they were very much alike, sharing a bent toward the mystical
that might have surprised those who didn't know them well. "Well?"
Elspeth asked aggressively, "Why don't they interfere? If I'm making an
ass of myself, why won't Gwena say anything?" Dirk
sighed. "Imp, I don t know. Have you ever asked her?" Elspeth
snorted, sounding rather like her own Companion when impatient. "Of
course—after I'd made a total fool of myself I asked her right off why she
didn't Just forbid me to have anything to do with that puppy." **And
what did she tell you?" "That
I knew very well Companions didn't do things that
way." "And
they don't . . . until we, their Chosen, come to tfaem." Dirk harbored no
small amount of chagrin for not having asked Ahrodie's advice when he'd
quarreled with Kris. "But
why? It isn't fairr At Elspeth's age, Dirk knew from his own experience,
"fair" achieved monumental importance. .•
Iffl't it? Would it be fair to us, in the long run, if they stepped in like
nursemaids and prevented us from falling on our noses every time we tried to
learn to walk?" *.Good
answer, Chosen,: Ahrodie told him, :Even if a bit simplistic.: :Untess
you've got a better one—: Mh, no!: she said hastily. :You go right on as you
were!: , "You mean, we have to learn from
experience by ilves?" Elspeth asked, as Dirk fought down a grin at ;'s
hurried reply. th
brooded over that while Gwena and Ahrodie themselves by matching paces with
such absolute pteciskm that they sounded like one Companion rather tout two.
'-' "Don't they ever interfere?" she asked, finally. **Not
in living memory. In some of the old chronicles, ftough..." ^Well?"
she prompted, when his silence had gone on too long. f^Some
Companions, very rarely, have intervened. But only when the situation was
hopeless, and only when 214 Mercedes
Lackey there
was no other way out of it except by their aid. They were always Grove-born,
though, and the only one of those we have now is Rolan. And they have never
done so except by freely volunteering, which is why Heralds never ask them
to." "Why
only then? Why shouldn't we ask?" "Imp—"
He was doing his best to try and express what until now he had only sensed.
"What's the one governing taw of this Kingdom?" She
looked at him askance. "Are you changing the subject?" "No.
No, I'm not, trust me." "There
is no 'one true way.' " "Take
it a step further. Why are the clergy forbidden by law to pray for Valdemar's
victory in war?" "I
... don't know." "Think
about it. Go away, if you like, and come back when you're ready." She
chose not to leave his side, and simply rode next to him with her expression
blank and her attention turned so inward that she never noticed Skif coming up
from behind them. Skif
pulled up on Dirk's other side, and gave the young Heir a long and curious
look. "Isn't
this a bit deep for her?" he asked, finally. "I mean, I've been
trying to follow this, and I'm lost." "I
don't think so," Dirk replied slowly. "I really don't. If she weren't
ready, she wouldn't be asking." "Lord
and Lady," Skif exclaimed, shaking his head in honest bewilderment,
"I give up. You are two of a kind." At
length the party reached the Border; Selenay ordered that they make camp there
on the Valdemar side since the outpost was far too small to accommodate all of
them. The last of the baggage train actually reached it very near dark, and so
the Queen was hardly surprised that neither of the two envoys was waiting for
them when they arrived. But when the next day passed, she felt a building
uneasiness. When two more went by without any sign whatsoever, the uneasiness
became alarm. ARROVTSFALL 215 "Kyril—"
Selenay did not remove her gaze from the road as she spoke to the Seneschal's
Herald. "—I have the feeling something has gone terribly, terribly wrong.
Am I being alarmist?" "No,
Majesty." Kyril's usually controlled voice held an unmistakable tenor of
strain. Selenay
looked at him sharply. Kyril's brow was lined with worry. "I've tried
Farspeech; I can't reach them— and Kris, at least, has enough of that Gift to
be able to receive what I send. He's done so in the past. I don't know what's
gone awry, but Majesty, I—I am afraid for them/' She did
not hesitate. "Order the camp moved back from the Border, and now. There's
a good place about half a mile back down the road; it's a flatfish hill, barren
except for grass. Should there be need, it won't be hard to defend." Kyril
nodded. He did not seem surprised by her paranoia. "When
you've gotten the rest on the move," she continued, "order the local
reserves of the Guard to meet us there. I'm going to have the Border Guards
stand alert and keep a watch down the Hardorn side of the trade road." Her
Companion, Caryo, came trotting up at her mental summons, and she pulled
herself up on the Companion's bare back, without bothering to call for saddle
or bridle. As she rode away, Kyril was going in search of the Herald in charge
of the camp to begin seeing to the first of her orders. TV new
camp was uncomfortable, but as Selenay had planned, was far more easily defensible
than the old. When the Guardsmen arrived, Selenay ordered them to bivouac
between their camp and the Border. She had sentries posted as well—and
ominously, she noticed that the Companions began taking up stations about the
perimeter, providing their own kind of sentry-duty. Elspeth
attached herself to Dirk and seldom left his side. Neither of them voiced their
fears until late in the 216 Mercedes
Lackey fifth
day, a day spent in an atmosphere of tension and anxiety. "Dirk,"
Elspeth finally said, after Dirk watched her try to read the same page in her
book ten times, and apparently never once see a word of it, "do you
suppose something's happened to them?" Dirk
hadn't even been making a pretense of doing anything but watching the road.
"Something must have," he answered flatly, "If it had been
simple delay, they would have gotten word to us. It's not like Kris—" He
broke off at the sight of her frightened eyes. "Look
imp, I'm sure they'll be all right. Kris and I have gotten out of a lot of
tight situations before this, and Talia's no faint-hearted Court flower. I'm
sure they're making their way back to us right now." "I
hope you're right . . ." Elspeth said faintly, but she didn't sound to
Dirk as if she really believed his words. For
that matter, he wasn't sure he believed them either. The
sixth day dawned, with Selenay—in fact, all of them—waiting for the axe to
fall. Late in
the afternoon, when one of the lookouts—a Herald with Farsight as well as
Mindspeech—reported that a Companion was approaching at speed, the entire
encampment was roused within moments, and lined the roadside. Selenay was one
of the first; eyes straining to catch the first glimpse. She,
Kyril, and several others of her immediate entourage stood in a tense knot at
the edge of the encampment. She noticed vaguely that Dirk, Teren, Skif,
Elspeth, and Jeri had formed their own little huddle just within earshot. None
of them moved or spoke. The sun beat down on them all without pity, but no one
made a move to look for shade. As Dirk
waited with mouth going dry with unspoken fear, a second lookout sprinted up
and whispered in the Queen's ear. Selenay grew pale as ice; Elspeth clutched
Dirk's arm and the rest stirred uneasily. Then a
dust-cloud and hoofbeats signaled the arrival of ARROW'S
FALL 217 the
Companion, and hard on the sound itself Rolan pounded into their midst. Rolan—alone.
Without saddle or bridle; gaunt, covered with dust and sweat, and completely
exhausted, a-state few had ever seen a Companion in before. He
staggered the last few feet up the hill to the Queen, paring a bundle from his
neck with his teeth and dropping it at her feet. Then he sagged with
exhaustion, standing motionless except for his heaving flanks and his quivering
muscles, head nearly touching the ground, eyes dosed, suffering written in
every line of him. Keren
was the first to break from her shock. She ran to him, throwing her cloak over
him for lack of any other blanket and began to lead him to a place where he
could be tended properly, step by trembling step. Selenay
picked up the filthy, stained package with hands that shook so hard she nearly
dropped it, and undid the knots holding it together. Into
the grass at her feet fell two arrows; one headless, one
broken. A
ripple of shocked dismay passed over the crowd. The Queen felt as frozen as a
snow-statue. As
Kyril bent to pick them up, Elspeth whimpered once beside her, and swayed with
shock. Jeri caught and supported her just as Dirk's agonized cry of negation
broke the silence. Selenay
started, and turned to see Dirk struggling to break away from Skif and Teren. "Damn
you, let me go/" he cried in agony, as Skif held him away from Ahrodie.
"I've got to go to her—I've got to help her!" "Dirk,
man, you don't even know if—" Teren choked out the words "—if she's
still alive." "She's
got to be. I'd know if she weren't. She's got to beP' He fought them still, as
(Cyril's low tones carried to where they stood. "The
headless arrow is Herald Kris," he said, his expressionless face belying
the anguish in his voice. "The broken is Herald Talia." 218 Mercedes
Lackey "You
see? I was right! Let me go!" Skif
caught his chin in one hand and forced his head around so that Dirk was forced
to look him in the eyes, with a strength that matched Dirk's own, even
augmented by the letter's frenzy. There were tears flowing freely down his
cheeks as he half sobbed his words. "Think, man! That's the broken arrow
she sent. She was as good as dead when she sent it, and dammit, she knew it.
There's no hope of saving her, but she gave us the warning to save ourselves.
Do you want to kill yourself, too, and make us mourn three of you?" His
words penetrated Dirk's madness, and the wild look left his eyes, replaced by
anguish and torture. "Oh,
gods!" The fight left him, and he sagged to his knees, buried his face in
his hands, and began weeping hoarsely. At this
moment Selenay wished with all her aching heart that she could do the same. But
this message could have only one meaning; a friend to her and her people had
suddenly turned his coat, and her land was in danger. Her Kingdom and the lives
of her folk were at stake and she had her duty just as surely as any other
Herald. There was no leisure time to spend on personal feelings. Later, when
all was safe, she would mourn. Now she must act. She
emptied herself of emotion, knowing she'd pay for this self-denial later. There
was the Guard to be alerted, the Lord Marshal to be brought; her mind filled
with plans, making it easier to ignore (for the moment) the sorrow she longed
to give vent to. She
gave orders crisply, sending one Herald after another flying for his Companion,
carrying messages to warn, to summon, to prepare. She turned on her heel with
Kyril at her side and strode hastily to her tent. Those with experience in
armed conflict followed; as did those who might still be needed to bear
messages. Those who were not of either group headed for the baggage train to
break out the weaponry, or down the hill to organize the tiny force of the
Guard to protect the Queen. ARROWS
FALL 219 Left in
their wake were Skif, Teren, and Dirk. Skif reached out his hand to his friend,
then pulled it bade. Dirk was curled in on himself, still kneeling in the dust
of the road. Only the shaking of his shoulders showed that he still wept. Skif
and Teren stood awkwardly at his side for long moments, both unsure of what, if
anything, they could do for him. Finally Teren said in an undertone, "He
won't try anything stupid now. Why don't we give him a tittle privacy?
Ahrodie's the only one likely to be able to comfort him at all." Skif
nodded, biting his lip to keep from sobbing himself; and they withdrew after
the others, as Ahrodie moved up beside Dirk and stood with her head bowed next
to his, almost, but not quite, touching his shoulder. Lost in
his own travail, Dirk heard nothing of another approaching, until a hand
lightly touched his shoulder. He
raised his head slowly, peering through blurred, burning eyes, to see that the
one touching him was Elspeth. Grief matching his stared out of her eyes, and
her features were as tear-streaked as his own. It was growing dark; the last
rays of sunset streaked the sky like bloodstains and stars were showing
overhead. He realized dimly that he must have been crouching there for hours.
And as he stared at her, he began to have the beginnings of an idea. "Elspeth,"
he croaked. "Do you know some place no one is likely to be right now? Some
place quiet?" "My
tent, and the area around it," she said. He thought he had surprised her
out of her own tears by the question. "I'm at the back of the camp, not
close to mother's tent. Everybody is with her right now." "Can I use
it?" "Of
course—why? Have you—can you—oh, Dirk, have you thought of something? You
have—you have!" "I
think . . . maybe ... I might be able to 'Fetch' her. But I need a place where
my concentration won't be broken." Elspeth
looked hopeful—and dubious. "It's an awfully long way." "I know.
That doesn't matter. It isn't the distance that 220 Mercedes
Lackey worries
me, it's the weight. I've never Fetched anything that big before; gods, nothing
alive even close to that size." His face and heart twisted with pain.
"But I've got to try—something, anything!" "But
Kris—" her voice broke. "Kris isn't here to See for you—no,
wait—" she said, kneeling next to him as his hope crumpled. "I can
See. I'm not trained, but I've got the Gift. It came on me early—it's been
getting a lot stronger since I was Chosen and I know I've got more range than
anybody else I've talked to. Will I do?" "Yes!
Oh, gods, yes!" He hugged her shoulders and they rose together and
stumbled through the dusk to her tent. Elspeth
slipped inside the tent and tossed two cushions out for them to sit on. Dirk
set his hands lightly on her wrists and calmed his own thoughts as best he
could. He tried to pretend to himself that this was just another student he was
training in her Gift, and began coaxing her into a light trance. The last of
the light faded, and the stars grew brighter overhead, while they sat oblivious
to their surroundings. She was silent for a very long time, and Dirk began to
fear that her untrained Gift would be useless against all that distance,
despite the power of the emotions fueling it. Then,
abruptly, Elspeth whimpered in fear and pain and her own hands closed
convulsively on his wrists. "I've found her—oh, gods! Dirk, they've done
such horrible things to her! I—think I'm going to be sick—" "Hold
on, imp. Don't break on me yet! I need you— she needs you!" Elspeth
gulped audibly, and held. He followed her mind to where it had reached, found
his target, took hold, and pulled with all his strength. He
could not tell how long he strove against the weight of it—but suddenly pain
rose in a wave to engulf him, and he blacked out. He
found himself slumped over, with Elspeth shaking him as hard as she could. "All
of a sudden—you stopped breathing," she said fearfully. "I thought
you were dead! Oh, gods, Dirk—it— it's no good, is it?" ARROVTS
FALL 221 He
shook his head numbly. "I tried, Goddess save me, I tried- I found her all
right, but I can't pull her here. I just don't have the strength." He felt
hot tears splash on his hand from Elspeth's eyes, and decided they would make a
second attempt. He knew with conviction that he'd rather die in trying to bring
Talia back than live with the knowledge that he wasn't brave enough to make the
second trial. But
before he could say anything, the matter was taken out of his hands. :Man,:
said a voice in his mind. :Dirk—Herald.: The
voice was not Ahrodie's; it was masculine. He looked up to find three
Companions standing beside them; Ahrodie, Elspeth's Gwena, and leading them,
Rolan. They had moved up on them without so much as a twig stirring. Behind
them, at the edge of the enclosure that held Elspeth's tent, were gathered more
Companions— every Companion in the encampment, down to Cymry's foal. Rolan
looked ghostlike, gaunt, and seemed to glow, and the back of Dirk's neck
prickled at the sight of him. He looked like something out of legend, not a
creature of the solid, everyday world. :You
have the Gift and the will to use it. She has the Sight. We have the strength
you need. : "I—but—are
you saying—" :That
we may yet save her, if our love and courage are enough. But—be prepared—if we
succeed, it will not be without high cost to you. There will be great pain. You
may ate of it.: Wordlessly,
Dirk looked at Elspeth, and knew by her nod that Rolan had spoken to her as
well. Dirk
looked into Rolan's glowing eyes—and they were glowing, a sapphirine light
brighter than the starshine. "Whatever the cost is, we'll pay it," he
said, knowing he spoke for both of them. They
stood up and made room for the three Companions between them. They stood in a
circle; Rolan, Elspeth, Gwena, Ahrodie, and Dirk. Elspeth and Dirk clasped
hands and rested their arms over the backs of the Com- 222 Mercedes
Lackey panions,
obtaining the needed physical contact among the five of them in that way. It was
much easier for Elspeth to find her target the second time. "I
have her," she said softly when she'd touched Talia again, then sobbed,
"Dirk—I think she's dying!" Once
more Dirk sent his own mind along the path Elspeth had laid for him, took hold,
and pulled. Then a
second strength was added to his, and it built, and grew. Then another joined
the second, and another. For one awful, pain-wracked moment—or was it an
eternity?—Dirk felt like the object of a tug-of-war game, being pulled apart
between two forces far greater than his own. Only his own stubbornness kept him
to the task, as he felt his mind being torn in two. He held; then felt himself
being stretched thinner and thinner, tighter, and tighter, quivering like a
harpstring about to snap. All his strength seemed to flow out of him; he felt
consciousness fading again, fought back, and held on with nothing left to him
but his own stubborn will. Then, one of the two forces broke—and not theirs.
And together they pulled their target toward them, cushioning and protecting it
against further damage. Their
combined strength was enough. Barely, but enough. The
conference of war was proceeding in Selenay's tent, with Council members,
Officers of the Army and Guard, and Heralds perched wherever there was room.
Kyril was pointing out weak spots in their own defenses— places that appeared
to be candidates to be attacked—on the map laid over her table. Then a cry of
horror from someone standing just outside the tent flap made everyone look up
with startlement. Someone
shoved tent flap and those standing inside it abruptly out of the way, and
Elspeth stumbled inside, face paper-white and drained, pushing others from her
path. Following her was Dirk, who looked even worse. When those inside saw what
he bore in his arms, the cry of horror was echoed inside the tent as well—for
it was a ARROWS
FALL 223 mangled,
bloody wreck of a human body and it had Tafia's
face. Ho one
moved—no one but Dirk and the Heir. Elspeth emptied Selenay's bed of the five
Heralds perched on the edge of tt, pushing them out of the way without a word.
Dirk went straight to the bed and set Talia down gently on ft. Without even looking
around he reached out a Mood-smeared hand and seized the most senior Healer
present by the arm, pulling her to Talia's side. Then he straightened up with
exaggerated care, moved two or three steps out of the way, and passed out,
dropping to die ground tike a felled tree. When
the furor was over and Selenay had a chance to look around, she discovered that
Elspeth had done the same—but less dramatically and more quietly, in the comer. ElspettTs
recovery was rapid—which, as she remarked somewhat astringently, was fortunate
for the sanity of those who could not imagine how the impossible rescue had
been accomplished. She was
the center of attention for all those who were not involved with the attempt to
save Talia. Kyril was her particular demon, insisting on being told every
detail so many times she thought she could recite the tale in her steep, and
coming up with countless questions. Eventually Elspeth's patience reached a
breaking point, and she toW him, in a quiet, but deadly voice, that if he
wanted to know any more he should ask his own Companion about it—she was going
to see what she could do about helping the Healers with Talia and Dirk. Healer
Thesa was worried; Dirk's recovery was not as rapid. He was still unconscious
the next day, and it was some time before she and the other Healers diagnosed
the problem as a relapse of his pneumonia coupled with incredible psychic
strain. She had charge of his case; her old friend Devan had charge of Talia's,
though they shared every germ of expertise they had on both cases. Dirk had
inadvertently brought the bottle Talia had drunk the argonel out of with her;
and the traces of it within the 224 Mercedes
Lackey bottle
told Devan what it was they had to fight besides her terrible injuries. Within
a day or two he and Thesa decided between them that they had done all they
possibly could for both of the patients under the primitive conditions of the
encampment. They decided that while it was dangerous to move them, it was far
more dangerous to leave them there. There might be warfare waged there at any
moment, and they both badly needed the expert touch of the teachers at the
Healer's Collegium. Yet
there was no time to spare—and assuredly no Heralds to spare—to move them back
to the capital. Instead, after a hasty conference, Thesa and her colleague
decided to take the patients a few miles up the road, and install them in the
stone-walled home of the Lord Holder, who gladly gave up his dwelling to the
Queen—and was equally glad to move himself and his family well out of the way
of possible combat. The
Queen had called for all the Healers of the Collegium that could be spared. The
Lord Holder's residence was more than half fortress; it was readily defensible
at need. The Healers were installed there as soon as they arrived with Thesa
organizing them as soon as Dirk began showing signs of improvement. Thesa knew
with grim certainty that although they had only Talia and Dirk to treat now, if
there should be war, they would have other patients, and soon. Elspeth
spent most of her time there; her mother had asked her—asked her, and not
ordered her, a sign that Selenay trusted her good sense and was tacitly
acknowledging that she was becoming adult—to stay with the Healers and some
other of the officials of the Court who began arriving as she called them. "But—"
Elspeth began to protest, until the haunted expression in her mother's eyes
stopped her. "Never mind. What do you want me to do?" "I'm
giving you powers of regency," Selenay replied. "The rest of the
Kingdom isn't going to cease to exist while we wait here. You've sat through
enough Council meetings, catling; you have a good idea what to do. You handle
the day-to-<lay needs of the Kingdom unless you ARROWS
FALL 225 futve
to have a decision from me. And one other thing—if die worst happens, you and
the Council and whatever Heralds are left escape together into the west and
north; Sorrows should hold you safe." "But what about you?" she
asked, around a lump in "Elspeth—if
it goes that badly—you'll be their new Queen." That
was an eventuality Elspeth preferred not to contemplate. She had enough worries
as it was. Talia looked far more dead than alive, and the Healers were
obviously baffled and frightened by something about her condition, though they
would not reveal to Elspeth what it was. It was
stalemate at the Border, and stalemate in the sickroom, and in neither case
could Elspeth do anything about the matter. It was not a position she
enjoyed—and she began to realize just how often it was a position the Queen was
in. All she could do was pray. So she
did, with a fervor that matched that of her ancestor, King Valdemar—and she
hoped that fervor would make her prayers heard. Ten Dirk
came to himself shortly after being put in the Healers' hands, but he was
confused and disoriented, as well as fevered. And the reaction-backlash he was
suffering had him near-blind with a headache no amount of herb tea could
remedy. They had to darken his room almost completely until the pain ebbed. In
living memory—or so Healer Thesa told him multitudinous times—no Healer had
ever seen anyone suffering from a case of backlash as profound as his—not and
still be alive to tell about it. Once
again he found himself alone in a small room— but this time it was not in the
House of Healing. For several days it was all he could do to feed himself and
respond to the orders the Healers gave him. This time he was far too weak to
even protest at the regime the Healers directed for him—unlike his previous
encounter with them. For a while he remained pliant and well-behaved—but as he
recovered, he began to grow suspicious and worried when his questions about
Talia remained unanswered or were evaded. The
more they evaded the subject, the more frustrated and angry he became. He even
queried Gwena, as soon as his reaction-headache wore off. Gwena couldn't help;
she tried to tell him what was wrong with Tatia, but her answers were
frightening and confusing. She couldn't seem to convey more than that there was
something seriously ailing the Queen's Own. Finally he decided to take matters
into his own hands. 227 228 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 229 Little
Robin had been brought by Lord Orthallen— although he had the feeling that his
lord did not realize it. The boy was a part of his household, though Orthallen
seemed to have long since forgotten the fact; and when the order came to pack
up the household and move to the Border, Robin found himself in the tail of the
baggage train, with no small bewilderment. He'd been at a loss in the
encampment, wandering about until someone had seen him and realized that a
small child had no place in a camp preparing for warfare. So he was sent
packing; first off with Elspeth, then pressed into service by the Healers.
They'd set him to fetching and carrying for Dirk, thinking that the child was
far too young to be able to pick anything up from the casual talk around him,
and that Dirk wouldn't think to interrogate a child as young as he. They
were wrong on both counts. Robin
was very much aware of what was going on— not surprising, since it concerned
his adored Talia. He was worried sick, and longing for an adult to talk to. And
Dirk was kind and gentle with him—and had he but known it, desperate enough for
news to have questioned the rats in the walls if he thought it would get him
anywhere. Dirk
knew all about Robin and his adoration of Talia. If anyone knew where she was
being kept and what her condition was, that boy would. Dirk
bided his time. Eventually the Healers stopped overseeing his every waking
moment. Finally there came a point when they began leaving him alone for hours
at a time. He waited then, until Robin was sent in alone with his lunch—alone,
unsupervised, and more than willing to talk—and put the question to him. "Robin,
Dirk had no intention of frightening the boy, and his tone was gentle, "I
need your help. The Healers won't answer my questions, and I need to know about
Talia." Robin
had turned back with his hand still on the doorknob; at the mention of Talia's
name, his expression was one of distress. "I'll
tell you what I know, sir," he replied, his voice quavering a little.
"But she's hurt real bad and they won't let anybody but Healers see
her." "Where
is she? Do you have any idea who's taking e»e of her?" The boy
not only knew where she was, but the names and seniority of every Healer caring
for her—and the list nearly froze Dirk's heart. They'd even pulled old
Farnherdt out of retirement—and he'd sworn that no case would ever be desperate
enough for them to call on him. "Robin,
I've got to get out of here—and I need you to bete me, all right?" he said
urgently. ; Robin nodded, his eyes widening. "Check
the hall for me—see if there's anybody out there." Robin
opened the door and stuck his head out. "Nobody," he reported. "Good.
I'm going to get dressed and sneak out. You stood just outside, and if anybody
comes this way, knock on the door." Robin
slipped out to play guard, while Dirk pulled on his dothing. He waited just a
few moments more, then left his room, giving Robin a conspiratorial wink on the
way out, determined to discover the truth. The
Healer in charge was Devan. Though not the most senior, he was the one with the
most expertise and the strongest Gift for dealing with wounds and trauma. He
was also one of Talia's first and best friends among the Healers, and had
worked with her on many other cases where Heralds were involved. There were
times when loving care was more important than seniority—and Devan would have
been one of Dirk's first choices to care for her, had he been consulted. Dirk
had a fairly good idea of where to find him at this hour—and most castle-keeps
were of the same design; Devan would be in the still-room, just off the herb
garden neat the kitchen—snatching lunch with one hand while he worked with the
other. Dirk used all his expertise at shadow-stalking to avoid being caught
while making his way to the little first-floor workroom, redolent with the 230 Mercedes
Lackey odors—pleasant,
and not so pleasant—of countless medicines. He
heard someone moving about behind the closed door, and slipped inside quickly
and quietly, shutting it behind him and putting his back up against it. Devan,
his back to the door, didn't seem to notice his presence. "Devan,
I want some answers." "I've
been expecting you," the Healer said calmly, without taking his attention
from the task in front of him. "I thought you might not be satisfied with
what you were being told about Talia. I said so, but I wasn't in charge of your
case, and Thesa felt you shouldn't be worried." "Then—how
is she?" Dirk demanded and at the sight of the Healer's gloomy face, asked
fearfully, "Is she—?" "No,
Herald," Devan replied with a sigh, stoppering the bottle he'd been
decanting liquid into and turning to face him. "She's not dying; not yet,
anyway. But she isn't alive, either." "What's
that supposed to mean?" Dirk asked, becoming angry. "What do you
mean, 'she's not alive'?" "Come
with me, and you'll see for yourself." The
Healer led the way to a small room in the infirmary, one of several that were
interconnected, such as were used for patients that needed to be isolated.
There was little there besides a bedside table with a candle and the bed in
which Talia lay without moving. Dirk
felt his throat constrict; she looked as if she'd been laid out for a funeral. Her
face was pale and waxen. By watching very closely, Dirk could see that she was
breathing—but just barely. "What's
wrong with her?" His voice cracked with strain. Devan
shrugged helplessly—feeling a lot less helpless than he looked, now that Dirk
had finally approached him. "I wish we knew. We think we counteracted the
argonel in time—well, the pain she was in neutralized a great deal of it, and
if we hadn't taken care of the rest she would be dead; argonel doesn't allow
for mistakes. We've restored some of the blood loss, we're doing painblockages
on most of the major injuries—we've done ARROWS
FALL 231 everything
we can to restore her, but she simply doesn't wake. No, it's more than that —
it's as if 'she' wasn't there .
anymore, as if we were dealing with an unensouled body. •flic
body works, the reflexes are all there, it breathes, the heart beats — but
there's no one 'home.' And we don't have the slightest notion why. One of the
older Healers speculates that her soul has 'gone somewhere,' perhaps trying to
escape some kind of mental coercion. I suppose that's possible; tradition claims
many mages have had Gifts like ours, and used them for evil purposes. It may be
she encountered one of them, along with her other trials. It's possible that
now she fears returning to herself, not knowing she is in the hands of friends
again, We were willing to try almost anything—" "So?" "So
we asked Herald Kyril to help. He was here for a solid day, holding her hand
and Mindcalling her. He pushed himself to his limits, pushed himself until he
had a reaction that sent him into a state of collapse. It did no good at all.
Frankly, I don't know what else we could try — " he glanced sideways at
Dirk. Devan had some-tiling in mind, but from what he understood about this
young man, Dirk would have to be lured into it very carefully. " — unless—" "Unless
what?" Dirk snatched at the offered scrap. "As
you know, her Gift was Empathic. She did not Mindhear or Mindcall very well. It
may be that Kyril simply wasn't able to reach her. I suppose if someone Hho had
a strong emotional bond with her were to try calling her, using that bond, she
might hear. We tried communicating with her Companion, but he apparently had no
better luck than Kyril, and possibly for the same reasons. Herald Kris had a
strong emotional tie with her, hot ..." "Ycs." "And
no one can think of anyone else." Dirk
gulped and closed his eyes, then whispered, "Could ...I try?" Devan
almost smiled despite the grimness of the situation. Come on, little fishy, he
thought, trying to imbue his will with all the coercive force of a Farspeaking
Her- 232 Merceries
Lackey aid.
Take the nice bait. I know all about your lifebond. Keren told me about the
night you fell ill—and about your performance over the death arrows and how you
rescued her. But if you don't admit that lifebond exists you might as well be
calling into the hurricane for all she'll hear you. He
pretended to be dubious. "I just don't know, Herald. It would have to be a
very strong emotional bond." The
answer he was praying for came as a nearly inaudible whisper. "I love her.
Is that enough?" Devan
almost cheered. Now that Dirk had admitted the existence of the lifebond, the
idea stood a chance of working. "Then by all means, do your best. I'll be
just outside if you need me." Dirk
sat heavily in the chair next to the bed, and took one bandaged, unresisting,
flaccid hand in his own. He felt so helpless, so alone . . . how in the names
of all the gods could you call through emotions? And ... it would mean letting
down barriers to his heart he'd erected years ago and meant to be permanent. But
they couldn't have been permanent, not if she'd already made him admit that he
loved her. It was too late now for anything but complete commitment—and
besides, he'd been willing to die to save her, hadn't he? Was the lowering of
those barriers any greater a sacrifice? Was life really worth anything if she
wasn't sharing it? But—where
was he going to find her? Suddenly
he sat ramrod straight; he had no way of knowing how or where to call her from,
but Rolan must! He
blanked his mind, and reached for Ahrodie. She
settled gently into his thoughts almost as soon as he called her. :Chosen?: :1 need
your help—and Rolan's,: he told her. :Then
you've seen—you know? You think we can help to call Her back? Rolan has been
trying, but cannot reach Her, not alone. Chosen, my brother, I had been hoping
you would understand and try!: Then
the other came into his mind. :Dirk-Herald—she has gone Elsewhere. Can you
See?: And
amazingly, as Rolan projected strongly into his ARROWS
FALL 233 , he
could See—a kind of darkness, with something that flickered feebly at the end
of it. :Do you
call her. We shall give you strength and an anchoring. You can go where we
cannot.: He took
a deep breath, closed his eyes, and sent himself into the deepest trance he'd
ever managed, trying to send out his love, calling with his heart, trying to
use his need of her as a shining beacon to draw her back through the darkness.
And somewhere "behind" him Rolan and Ahrodie remained, a double
anchor to the real world. How
long he called, he had no way of knowing; there was no time in the currents
through which he dove. Certainly the candle on the table had burned down
considerably when the faint movement of the hand he held broke his trance and
caused his eyes to fly open in startlement. He
could see color coming back into her face. She moved a little, winced, and
moaned softly in protest. Her free hand reached for her temple; her eyes
opened, focused, and saw him. "You
. . . called me." It was
the faintest of whispers. He
nodded, unable to speak through a throat choked with conflicting joy and doubt. "Where—I'm
home? But how—" Then intelligence and urgency flooded into her eyes. And
fear; terrible fear. "Orthallen—oh, my God—Orthallen!" She
began struggling to rise, whimpering involuntarily in pain, but driven beyond
caring for herself by some knowledge only she possessed. "Devan!"
Dirk could see she had something obsessively important to impart. He knew better
than to try and thwart her if the need was that urgent—and her evident fear
coupled with that name could mean worse trouble than anyone but she knew. So
instead of trying to prevent her, he gave her the support of his arms, and
called for help. "Devan!" Devan
nearly broke in the door in his haste to respond to Dirk's call. As he stared
at Talia, dumbfounded, she demanded to know who was in authority. Devan saw she 234 Mercedes
Lackey would
heed nothing he told her until he gave her what she wanted, and recited the
all-too-brief list. "I
want—Elspeth," she said breathlessly, "And Kyril— the Seneschal—and
Alberich. Now, Devan." And would not be gainsaid. When
Devan sent messengers for the four she had demanded, she finally gave in to his
insistent urgings to lie quietly. Dirk
remained in the room, wishing passionately that he could take some of the
burden of pain from her, for her face was lined and white with it. The
four she had sent for arrived at a run, and within a few moments of one
another. From the despair on their faces, it was evident they had expected to
find Talia at least at Death's door, if not already gone. But their joy at
seeing her once again awake and aware was quickly turned to shock and dismay by
what she had to tell them. "So
from the very beginning it has been Orthallen?" Alberich's question
appeared to be mostly rhetorical. He didn't look terribly surprised. "I
would give much to know how he has managed to mindblock himself for so long,
but that can wait for a later day." Both
Kyril and the Seneschal, however, were staggered by the revelation. "Lord
Orthallen?" the Seneschal kept muttering. "Anyone else, perhaps;
treason is always a possibility with any highborn—but not Orthallen! Why, he
predates me in the Council! Elspeth, can you believe this?" "I
... I'm not sure," Elspeth murmured, looking at Alberich, and then at
Dirk. "There
... is a very simple way ... to prove my words." Talia was lying quite
still to harbor her strength; her eyes were closed and her voice labored, but
there was no doubt that she was very much alive to everything about her.
"Orthallen . . . surely knows . . . where I was. Call him here ... but do
not let him know . . . that I have . . . recovered enough to speak. Devan . . .
you will painblock . . . everything. Then ... get me propped up ... somehow. I
... must seem to be ... completely ARROWS
FALL 235 well.
His reaction . . . when he sees me with Elspeth . . . should tell us ... all we
need to know." "There
is no way I will countenance anything of the sort!" Devan said angrily.
"You are in no shape to move a single inch, much less—" "You
will. You must," Talia's voice was flat, implacable, with no tinge of
anger, only of command. But Devan folded before it, and the look in the eyes
she opened to meet his. "Old
friend, it must be," she added softly. "More than my well-being is at
stake." "This
could kill you, you know," he said with obvious bitterness, beginning to
touch her forehead so that he cook) establish the painblocks she demanded.
"You're forcing me to violate every Healing Oath I ever swore." "No—"
Dirk couldn't quite fathom the sad, tender tittle smile she wore. "I have
it ... on excellent authority ... that it isn't my time." She got
other protests from the rest when she decreed that only she and Elspeth should
receive Orthallen, With
total painblocks established she was able to speak normally, if weakly.
"It has to be this way," she insisted. "If he sees you, I think
he might be able to mask his reaction. At the least he'll be warned by your
presence. With us alone, I think it will be genuine; I don't think hell bother
trying to hide it initially from two he doesn't consider to be physically or
mentally threatening." She
relented enough to allow them to conceal themselves in the room next door,
watching all that went on through the door that linked the two, provided they
keep that door open only a bare crack. Once everyone was in place, they sent
for Orthallen. R
seemed an age before they heard his slow, deliberate footsteps following the
pattering ones of the page. Hie
door opened; Orthallen stepped inside, his head turned back over his shoulder,
dismissing the page before be dosed the door behind himself. Only then did he
turn to face the two that awaited him. TaUa
had set her stage most carefully. She was propped »p like an oversized doll,
but to all appearances was 256 Mercedes
Lackey sitting
up in bed normally. She was a deathly white, but the relatively dim light of their
single candle concealed that. Elspeth stood at her right hand. The room was
entirely dark except for the candle that illuminated both their
faces—concealing the fact that the door behind the two of them was propped open
a tiny amount. "Elspeth,"
Orthallen began as he turned, "This is an odd place for a meet—" Then he
truly saw who was in the room besides the Heir. The
blood drained swiftly from his face, and the condescending smile he had worn
faded. As he
noted their expressions, he grew even more agitated. His hands began trembling,
and his complexion took on a grayish tinge. His eyes scanned the room, looking
for anyone else who might be standing in the shadows behind them. "I
have met Ancar, my lord, and seen Hulda—" Talia began. Then
the staid, poised Lord Orthallen, who always preferred words over any other
weapon, did the one thing none of them would ever have expected him to do. He went
berserk. He
snatched his ornamental dagger from its sheath at his side, and sprang for
them, madness in his eyes, his mouth twisted into a wild rictus of fear. For the
men hidden behind the door, time suddenly slowed to an agonizing crawl. They
burst through it, knowing as they did so that by the time they reached the two
women, anything they did would be far too late to save them. But
before anyone else even had time to react, before Orthallen had even moved more
than a single step, ElspetrTs right hand flickered out sideways, then snapped
forward. Halfway
to them, Orthallen suddenly collapsed over Talia's bed with an odd gurgle, then
slid to the floor. Time
resumed its normal pace. Elspeth,
white-faced and shaking, reached out and rolled him over with her foot as the
four men reached her side. There was a little throwing dagger winking in the
candle- ARROWSFALL 237 light
that fell on Orthallen's chest. Blood from the wound it had made stained his
blue velvet robe black. It was, Dirk noted with an odd, detached corner of his
mind, perfectly placed for a heart-shot. "By
my authority as Heir," Elspeth said in a voice that quavered on the edge
of hysterics, "I have judged this man guilty of high treason, and carried
out his sentence with my own hand." She
held to the edge of the bed to keep her shaking legs from collapsing under her,
as Tatia touched her arm with one bandaged hand—in an attempt, perhaps, to
comfort and support her. Her eyes looked like they were going to pop out of her
head, and dilated with shock. When Devan threw open the door to the hall, she
looked at him pleadingly. "Ana
now," she said in a strained voice, "I think I'd tike to be sick.
Please?" Devan
had the presence of mind to get her a basin before she lost the contents of her
stomach; she retched until she was totally empty, then burst into hysterical
tears. Devan took charge of her quickly, leading her off to clean herself up
and find a quiet place where she could vent her feelings in peace. Kyril
and Alberich removed the body, quickly and efficiently. The Seneschal wandered
after them, dazed and shaken. That left Dirk alone with Talia. Devan
reappeared for a moment before he could say or do anything. The Healer removed
the cushions that had been propping her up, and got her lying down again to bis
own satisfaction. He pressed his hand briefly to her forehead, then turned to
Dirk. "Stay
with her, would you? I took some of the painblocks off before they do her an
injury, but all this would have been a heavy strain if she had been healthy. In
the shape she's in—I can't predict the effect. She may very well be perfectly
all right; she seems in no worse state than she was before. If she starts to go
into shock, or looks like she's relapsing—or really, if you think anything is
going wrong, call me. I'll be within hearing distance, getting Elspeth
calmed." 238 Mercedes
Lackey What
else could he do, except nod? When
Devan left, he turned hungry eyes back toward Talia. There was so much he
wanted to say—and had no idea of how to say it. Now
that the impetus of the emergency was gone, she seemed confused, disoriented,
dazed with pain. He could see her groping after coherent thought. Finally
she seemed to see him. "Oh, gods, Dirk—Kris is dead. They murdered him—he
didn't have a chance. I couldn't help him, I couldn't save him. And it's all my
fault that it happened—if I'd told him we had to turn back when we first knew
something was wrong, he'd still be alive." She
began to weep, soundlessly, tears trickling slowly down her cheeks; she was
plainly too exhausted even to sob. Then it
hit him— "Goddess—"
he said. "Kris—oh, Kris—" He
knelt beside her, not touching her, while his shoulders shook with the sobs she
was too weary to share— and they mourned together. He had
no idea how long they wept together; long enough for his eyes and throat to go
raw. But flesh has its limits; finally he got himself back under control,
carefully wiped her tears away for her, and took a seat beside her. "I
knew what happened to him," he said at last. "Rolan made it through
with your message." "How
did—how did I get here?" "I
Fetched you—" he groped for the right words. "I mean, I had to, I
couldn't leave you there! I didn't know if it would work but I had to try!
Elspeth, the Companions, we all Fetched you together." "You
did that? It—I've never heard of anything like that— It's like—like some tale.
But I was lost in the dark," She seemed almost in a state of shock now, or
a half-trance. "I could see the Havens, you know, I could see them. But
they wouldn't let me go to them—they held me back." "Who?
Who held you back?" ARROWS
FALL 239 "Love
and duty—" she whispered as if to herself. "What?"
She wasn't making any sense. "But
Kris said—" Her voice was almost inaudible. He had
feared before. Now he was certain. It had been Kris whom she loved—and he'd
prevented her from reaching him. He hung his head, not wanting her to see the
despair on his face. "Dirk—"
Her voice was stronger, not quite so contused. "It was you who called me.
You saved me from Ancar, then brought me out of the dark. Why?" She'd
hate him for it, but she deserved the truth. Maybe one day she'd forgive him. "I
had to. I love you," he said helplessly, hopelessly. He stood up to leave,
his eyes burning with more tears— tears he dared not shed—and cast one longing
glance back at her. Talia
heard the words she'd been past hoping for— then saw her hope getting ready to
walk out the door. Suddenly everything fell into place. Dirk had thought that
Kris was the one she'd been in love with! That
was why he'd been acting so crazy—wanting her himself, yet fearing to try to
compete with Kris. Havens, half the time he must have loathed himself for a
very natural anger at his best friend who had turned rival. No wonder he'd been
in such a state! And now
Kris was gone, and he thought that she'd want no part of him, the constant
reminder, the second-best. Damn
the man! Stubborn as he was, there would be no reasoning with him. He would
never believe anything she toW him; it could take months, years to straighten
it all out. Her
mind felt preternaturalty clear, and she sought frantically for a way out of
her predicament—and found (Hie in memory. ".
. . just like with a Farspeaker." Ylsa's words were dear in her memory.
"They almost always begin by hearing first, not speaking. You're feeling
right now—but I suspect rfwf one day you'll learn how to project your own
feelings in such a way that others can read them, can share them. 240 Mercedes
Lackey That
could be a very useful trick—especially if you ever need to convince someone of
your sincerity!" Yes,
she'd done that without really thinking about it already. There was the forced
rapport, and the kind of rapport she'd shared with Kris and Rolan. And the
simpler tasks of projecting confidence, reassurance—this was just one step
farther along— She
reached for the strength and the will to show him, only to discover that she
was too drained, too exhausted. There was nothing left. She
nearly sobbed with vexation. Then Rolan made his presence felt, filling her
with his love—and more— Rolan—his
strength was there, as always, and offered to her with open-hearted generosity. And she
had the knowledge of what to do and how to doit. "Wait!"
she coughed, and as Dirk half-turned, she projected everything she felt into
his open mind and heart. All her love, her need for him—forcing him to see the
truth that words alone would never make him believe. Devan
heard a strange, strangled cry that sounded as if it were something torn from a
masculine throat. He whirled and started for Talia's room, fearing the worst. He
paused for a moment at the door, steeled himself against what he was likely to
see, and opened it slowly, words of comfort on his tongue. To his
total amazement, not only was Talia still living— but she was actually
clear-eyed and smiling, and trembling on the knife-edge between laughter and
tears. And Dirk was sitting on the side of her bed, trying his best to find
some way of holding her without hurting her, covering every uninjured inch of
her that he could reach with kisses and tears. Half
stunned, Devan slipped out before either of them noticed him, and signaled a
page passing in the hail. He absently noted that it was one whose face he had
seen often in this corridor, though he couldn't imagine why the child should
have spent so much time here. When the boy saw who it was that had summoned him
and what door he had come out of, he paled. ARROW'S
FALL 241 Incredible,
Devan thought wryly. Is there anyone who isn't worried to death about her? "I
need a messenger sent to the Queen, preferably a Herald-courier, since a Herald
is the only one likely to be able to find her without looking for hours, and
this is fairly urgent," he said. The
page's mouth trembled. "The Lady-Herald, sir," he said in an unsteady
treble. "Is she—dead?" "Lord
of Lights, no!" Devan suddenly realized that he felt like laughing for the
first time in days, and shocked the child with an enormous grin. "In fact,
while you're getting me that messenger, spread the news! She's very much with
us—and she's going to be very, very well indeed!" Eleven Dirk's
pure joy could not last for long: all too soon he recalled that there were far
more important issues at stake than just his happiness. Talia alone knew what
had transpired in Ancar's capital; might know what they could expect. Surely,
surely there was danger to Valdemar, and only she might be able to guess how
much. He
sobered; she caught his mood immediately. "Or-thallen isn't the only
enemy," he said slowly. .She
couldn't have gotten any paler, but her eyes widened and pupils dilated.
"No—how long—was I—" "Since
we Fetched you? Let me think—" he reckoned it up. He'd been unconscious
for two days; then spent six more recovering from backlash. "Just about
eight days." He guessed at what she'd ask next. "We're in Lord
Falthern's keep, right on the edge of the Border." "Selenay?" "Devan's
sent for her. You're in pain—" "No
choice, you know that." She managed a wan smile. "I—" She
forgot what she was about to say completely as Selenay fairly flew in the open
door, face alight with a fierce joy. "You
see, Majesty." Alberich was close on her heels. "It is only the truth
I told you." Dirk was astonished to see that the Armsmaster's face wore a
nearly identical expression. ^Talia,
Talia—" Selenay could manage no more before she was overcome with tears of
happiness. She took the hand that Dirk had not claimed gently in her own, 243 244 Mercedes
Lackey holding
it with every care, lest she cause more pain. Alberich stood beside her,
beaming as if it had all been his doing. Never in his entire life had Dirk seen
the Armsmaster smile so broadly. "Selenay—?" The
anxiety in Talia's voice penetrated even their joy, and brought them abruptly
back to earth. "There's
still danger?" Talia
nodded wearily. Dirk arranged the bedding so that she was spared as much pain
as he could manage, and she cast him a look that made him flush with pleasure.
"Ancar—has his own army." "And
he may attack with it?" "Will
attack. Has to, now. He meant to kill you. Then take Elspeth." "God
of Light—" "Last
I knew—planned to take Border. He—has to have—missed me. Can't guess his
reaction—but he has to assume—I lived long enough to talk." "So
we're in as much danger as before, maybe more," Selenay stood, jaw
clenched in anger. "He'll have a fight on his hands!" "Magicians.
He has magicians. Old magic. Kept me from Mindcalling—kept Heralds from knowing
Kris was dead; don't know what else they can do. Just know they can block us.
And Orthallen—kept him well informed." "Orthallen?"
Selenay lost some of her anger; now she looked bewildered. "Orthallen—Lady
help me, I still can't believe it of him—Goddess—he was Kris' uncle!" "He
was unpleased that you had sent the lad, Selenay," Alberich reminded her.
"I think that we know the reason, now. And his grief at hearing—that was
unfeigned." "But
over—perhaps a bit too soon," the Queen replied, biting her lip. "Though
he had never been one for making much of a show of feelings." "He
killed your father," Talia whispered, her eyes closed again, exhausted
with the effort of speaking for so long. "During the battle—sent an
assassin in the confusion." "He—"
Selenay went white. "I never guessed—I trusted him!" ARROW'S
FALL Silence
then; the silence before the tempest. 245 "Dirk?"
Talia opened her eyes very briefly, only to dose them quickly, as if she found
her vision wavering when she did so. He
needed no other clue than the dazed way she looked at him; he touched her cheek
gently and went looking for Devan himself. When he
came back, he brought with him not only Devan but three other Healers as well.
By then the tittle room was rather crowded; Kyril was back, and Elspeth with
him. The Seneschal had returned and had brought the Lord Marshal. Candles had
been brought, lighted and stuck on every available surface; the room was bright
and a little warm and stuffy. "I
hate to ask this of you and of her, Devan," Selenay said, looking guilty,
"But we haven't got the choice. Can you Healers hold her together long
enough for her to tell us what we need to know?" Dirk
wanted to protest—then his rebellion subsided. He knew what he'd be doing in
Talia's place; using his last breath to gasp out every bit of information he
could. Why should she be any different? "Majesty,"
Devan bowed his head in resignation. "I will say that I do not approve,
and we will not let her kill herself with exhaustion." "But
you'll do it?" "Like
Talia, we have no choice." The Healers surrounded her, touched her
lightly, and went into their Healing trances. She sighed; her pain-twisted
expression eased and she opened her eyes, which were alert and clear again. "Ask—quickly." "Ancar—what
can we expect from him?" the Lord Marshal spoke first. "How large is
this private army? What kind of men does he have in it?" "Prison
scum; about three thousand. No mercenaries I heard of. But they're trained,
well trained." "What
about the standing army? Will he use them?" "I
don't think yet. He murdered Alessandar; don't think he controls officers in
the regular army yet. Have 246 Mercedes
Lackey to put
down rebels in the corps before he can use them. Needs to replace al! officers
with his own puppets." "Do
you think—can we expect defections?" "I
think so. Whole Border Guard may come over when they learn what happened.
Welcome them, but Truth Spell them." "Where
was his own army last?" "Just
outside the capital." "Does
he know you know about his three thousand?" "No."
Her eyes were almost unnaturally bright. "He didn't ask any questions of
me, ever." "The
more fool, he. A bit overconfident, wouldn't you say, Alberich? So," the
Lord Marshal mused, stroking his beard, his black brows knitted in thought.
"Twelve to fourteen days of forced marching would get them here. Much
cavalry?" "I
don't think so; these were prison scum before he recruited them. But they're
trained to work together, been training for at least three years. He also has
magicians. Old magic, real magic, like in tales. If he thinks he'll come up
against Heralds, he'll use them." "How
good are they?" asked Kyril. "Don't
know. One of them kept me from Mindspeaking, from probing Ancar, from defending
myself, and kept Kris' passing from reaching you here—but he couldn't block
empathic link with Rolan. Gods—this is important— they can block us, but they
can't read us. Ancar let that slip—said something about 'damn Heralds and your
barriers.' " "Which
means they can't possibly use their magic to learn our plans, especially not if
we keep shields up?" Kyril asked, with hope in his eyes. "Think
so. Didn't even bother to try lo read me, and Hulda is a mage, too—taught
Ancar; I don't know how good they are. This isn't mind-magic; can't guess how
it works." "Orthallen,"
said the Seneschal. "How long has he been working against the Queen?" "Decades;
he had an assassin take the King during battle." "Who
was he working with?" ARROWS
FALL 247 "Nobody
then. Wanted the Throne for himself; just took advantage of Tedrel Wars."
"When did he change?" "When Hulda contacted him. He thought he
was using her." "
"That was years ago—! "Right.
She came to groom Elspeth as Ancar's consort. She found Orthallen, worked with
him. He warned her in time to escape. Later Ancar offered him the Throne in
exchange for information and internal help." "The
magicians—?" said Kyril, anxiously. "Not
much I can tell. Told you about the mindblock. Same mage kept Ancar shielded.
Hulda shielded herself, I think. She looked physically about twenty-five years
old. Could have been illusion, but don't think so. She's old enough to have
been actually Ancar's nurse—makes her at least forty. Saw her make a
witchlight—" Talia pulled her bandaged hand away from Dirk's for a moment,
and pulled her loose gown away from her shoulder. Selenay and Elspeth gasped,
and the Seneschal bit back an exclamation at what was revealed there—a
handprint, burned into the flesh of her chest as if with a branding iron.
"She did that, while they were—playing with me. Just laid her hand there,
casually. Like it was easy as breathing. Rumors were they can do worse; lots
worse." The
four Healers were beginning to look drawn; even with their aid, Talia was
visibly fading. "Tired—"
she said, begging with her eyes for a rest. "We've
got enough to go on for now," Selenay looked to each of the others and
they nodded in confirmation. "We can get our defenses organized, at least.
Rest, my brave one." She led
the others out; one by one the Healers disengaged themselves. As they did,
Talia seemed to wilt, and more than a little. Devan caught Dirk's shoulder
before he had a chance to panic. "Shell
live; she just needs rest and a chance to heal," he said wearily.
"And she's going to get at least some of both right now—if I have to post
guards to keep people out!" 246 Mercedes
Lackey Dirk
nodded, and returned to her side. She opened her eyes with an effort. "Love—you—"
she whispered. "My
own—" His throat closed for a moment, and he fought down a renewal of
tears. "I'm going to leave you for a while; Devan says you need rest. But
I'll be back as soon as he lets me!" "Make
it—soon—" He
left, walking backward; she keeping her eyes on him until the door closed. As
Alberich had suspected would be the case, when dawn came, the bivouac on the
Border as well as the smaller collection of Councillors and officials at the
Keep were in an uproar. Units of the Guard—heartbreakingly small—arrived every
hour. Tales, more or less garbled, of what had occurred the previous night were
spreading like oil from a shattered urn, and were just as potentially
flammable. Talia slept in an induced Healing-trance, blissfully unaware of the
confusion. The
Guard was easiest to deal with; the Lord Marshal simply called all the officers
together, and with Alberich present to verify exactly what had been said and
done, related to them the entire true story. The officers of the Guard, for the
most part, had never associated closely with Orthallen; thus, while they were
shocked by his betrayal, they took the tale at its face value. They were far
more worried about the army Ancar would bring against them, for they numbered
something around a thousand to Ancar's three thousand. The magicians they
dismissed out of hand. "My
lord," one veteran officer said, his face as scar-seamed as Alberich's
"Begging your pardon, but there's nothing we can do about mages. We'll
leave that in the hands of those that deal with magic—" His
gaze flickered to Alberich; the Armsmaster gave him a barely perceptible nod. "—we've
more than enough on our plate with what's coming at us." And
Ancar's army was on its way; Alberich and the Lord Marshal knew that for a
fact. There were two ARROW'S
FALL 249 Heralds
in Selenay's entourage gifted with Farsight who had also been in Hardorn on
more than one mission. They had bent their talents beyond the Border during the
Bight, at Alberich's urging. They had seen Ancar's army, plainly camped for a
few hours' rest. More disturbingly, they had "looked" again for that
army with the coming of dawn—and found nothing, nothing but empty countryside. "So
there's at least one mage with them," Kyril deduced, as the warleaders
conferred over breakfast. "And he's concealing their movements from our
Farsight somehow." Knowing what they now knew about mages being in Ancar's
entourage—however little that was—Kyril and Alberich had been made co-equal
with the Lord Marshal. Their task was to lead the assembled Heralds in
combat—either by steel or by Gift. One of the Heralds' most important tasks was
communications; each officer wottld have a Mindspeaking Herald with him at all
times, and Kyril would be with Selenay to coordinate all of them. That was the
trick that had won the Tedrel Wars far them, the one thing no other army could
match. "Doesn't
matter," the Lord Marshal replied, "at least not at the moment. We
know where they were; we know by that how fast they've come, and how soon
they're likely to get here. We also know those mages haven't been moving *em
somehow—else they wouldn't have needed all the horses your Heralds 'saw.'
" "My
lord?" One of his officers had appeared beyond the open tent flap,
saluting smartly. He was scarcely old enough to have grown a beard; morning sun
gilded his fair ban*, and he was having a difficult time repressing a grin.
"We're getting the recruits you warned us of." "Recruits?"
Kyril said, puzzled, as Alberich nodded. The Lord
Marshal gave a brief snort that might have been a laugh. "You'll see,
Herald. Bring them on up here, lad; we've got two here that can test
them." "AU
of them, sir?" "How
many are there?" The Lord Marshal was surprised now. "Over
a hundred, sir." 250 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 251 "Lady
Bright—aye, bring them all up. We'll get them sorted out, somehow." As the
three Warleaders left the tent to stand in the brilliant sunlight, there was a
small dust-cloud in the vicinity of the trade road. As those who made the cloud
neared, Kyril and Alberich saw that those at the front of the crowd that
approached afoot were wearing the black-and-gold uniforms of Alessandar's
regular army. It
appeared that the entire force guarding the Border, from officers to Healers
and all their dependents, had defected when they had learned of Alessandar's
murder. Elspeth
had the joyous task of breaking the news to the rest of the Council. There was
no such accord among the political leaders of Valdemar as there was among her
military leaders. Lord
Gartheser was speechless with outrage and shock; Bard Hyron was dazed. Lady
Kester and Lady Cathan, still seething over Orthallen's accusations of
complicity with the slavers, were surprised, but not altogether unhappy. Father
Aldon had closeted himself in the tiny chapel of the Keep; Lord Gildas was with
him. Healer Myrim made no attempt to conceal the fact that Orthallen's
treachery had not surprised her. Nor did she conceal that his demise gave her a
certain grim satisfaction. But then, she might well be forgiven such
uncharitable thoughts; she was one of the four Healers who were tending Talia's
wounds. Once
the bare bones had been told to the Councillors as a group, Elspeth went to
each of these Councillors in turn, privately. She gave a simple explanation of
what had occurred, but would answer no questions. Questions, she told them,
must wait until Talia had recovered enough to tell them all more. Long
before then, Ancar's army arrived. Alberich
was beginning to feel hopeful. The ranks of Valdemar's forces had been swelled
to nearly double the original size by deserters—partisans of Alessandar—from
across the Border. The Lord Marshal was fairly dancing with glee; with the
exception of the dependents, every one of
the men and women who sought sanctuary with them was a well-trained fighter or
Healer—and every one burned with hatred and anger for the murder of their
beloved King. For the
true tale had been spread to the countryside, from the capital westward, by a
most unexpected source— the members of Trader Evan's clan. Evan,
it seemed had taken to heart Talia's warning to flee—and done more than that.
He had spread the word among the traders of his own clan as he fled; they in
turn had carried the tale farther. Cose to the capital, the people were cowed
and afraid, too frightened to dare even escape; but close to the Border where
Ancar's hand ted not yet fallen so heavily, and where Alessandar had been
served out of love, feelings ran high. High enough, that when two or three
Border officers decided to defect to Valdemar's side of the Border, nearly the
entire con-tingent of the regular army stationed in the area chose to come with
them. Ancar
surely had not anticipated this, nor would Ancar have any way of knowing they
had gone. A small group of volunteers had remained behind at the signal towers
and continued to send messages and information—all of it false. "They'll
fade into the villages when Ancar has gone by," the Captain who had hosted
Kris and Talia told Alberich. "They've got civilian clothing at hand now.
If ftey can, they'll come across to us, but all the men who volunteered have
families, and they won't leave 'em." "Understandable,"
Alberich replied. "If it is that we win this battle, we shall post
watchers to guide them here at every likely crossing. If not..." "Then
it won't matter a damn, because Ancar will have us all," the Captain
answered grimly. The
Lord Marshal, with his forces doubled, was in no doubt as to the outcome. "Randon,"
Selenay said anxiously, as they waited for some sign that Ancar was within
striking distance, "I know it's your job to be confident, but he still has
us OBtiwmbered three to two—" 252 Mercedes
Lackey They
were standing, as they had every day since the Border had been alerted, at the
top of the highest hill in the vicinity. Ancar's mages probably could mask the
movements of his troops from Farsight, but they'd be hard put to eliminate the
dust-cloud of their passing, or the disturbance of birds, or any one of a
number of other signs of the movement of many men. From this hill there was a
clear line-of-sight for miles into Hardorn. Trained watchers were posted here,
but Selenay and the Lord Marshal also spent most of their time not otherwise
occupied squinting into the bright sunshine alongside them. "My
lady, we have more on our side than he can guess at. We have a thousand trained
fighters besides our own that he knows nothing about. We have the choice of
battleground. And we have the Heralds to ensure that there are no botched
orders or misheard messages, or commands that come too late to be effective.
The only thing I fear are his mages." Now doubt did shadow the Lord
Marshal's eyes, and creep into his voice. "We have no way of knowing what
they can do, how many he has, or if we can counteract them. And they may turn
the day for him." "And
Heraldic Gifts for the most part are not much use offensively," Selenay
added, sobered by the thought of the mages. "If only we had one of the
Herald-mages alive today." "Lady-Queen,
will I do?" Selenay
whirled, startled. As she and Randon had been absorbed in watching the Border
and in their conversation, two Heralds had climbed the hill behind them. One
was Dirk, pale, but looking better than he had in days. The
other, so begrimed with dust that his Whites were gray, his face lined with
exhaustion, but sporting a self-conscious grin despite his weariness, was
Griffon. "I
brought him right here as soon as we'd pried him off his saddle, Majesty,"
Dirk said. "This lout just may be our answer to the mages—remember his
Gift? He's a Firestarter, Majesty." "Just
point out what you want to go up in flames—or ARROW'S
FALL 253 who,"
Griffon added. "I guarantee it'll go. Kyril hasn't found anything that'll
block me yet." •/That's
no boast, Majesty; I trained him, I know what be can do. He's limited to
line-of-sight, but that should be good enough." **But—you
were riding circuit up North," Selenay said, dazed with the sudden turn in
their fortunes that brought Griffon there when he was most needed. "How
did you even find out we were under threat, much less get here in toe?" ,
**Pure, dumb, Herald's luck," Griffon replied. "I ran into a Herald
Courier whose Gift just happens to be Foresight; her message was delivered and
we were—ah— passing an evening together. That night she got a really strong
vision; all but dragged me out of bed and threw me into the saddle stark naked.
She took over my circuit, I rode for the Border as fast as Hare vis could carry
me. And here I am. I just hope I can do you some good." The
setting sun was turning the clouds bloody when one of the lookouts reported the
first long-awaited sign of Ancar's army. Selenay prayed that the blood-red of the
sunset was not an ill omen for her forces, even while die and the Lord Marshal
issued the first of the orders {or die battle to come. The
Lord Marshal had chosen as the battlefield a low, bare hill just on the
Valdemar side of the Border. It had woods to the rear and the left of it, and
open fields to the right. What Ancar couldn't know—and what even now the scouts
and skirmishers heading into the woods intended to keep him from learning—was
that the woods to die rear of the hill had flooded with the bursting of an
earthen dam earlier this spring. Water lay two and three feet deep all through
them, and the hitherto-spongy ground was a morass of mud. Others
besides those skirmishers were moving into the woods to the left of the chosen
field—the thousand or so fighters who had defected to Valdemar. In groups of a
hundred or thereabouts, each with a mindspeaking Herald, they were taking
positions to lie in wait past any point where Ancar's scouts would be allowed
to penetrate. 254 /Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 255 Teren
slapped at another mosquito, and curbed his irritation. Tlie ground was high
enough here that they weren't up to their rears in mud, but the stinging
insects were having a rare old party—not only acres of new-made marsh to lay
eggs in, but this unexpected bonus of humans as refreshments! It was dark, the
air was damp, and it was chilly. Wythra didn't like it any better than he did;
he could hear his Companion blowing impatiently in the darkness to his right. :Twin?:
he mind-sent. -.We're in position, how about you?: :The
same,: was Keren's reply, with an overtone of exasperation, :and up to our
armpits in goddamn midges!: :Mosquitos
here. : •.Count
your blessings,: came her retort. :The midges are crawling into people's armor
and you beat yourself black and blue trying to get them.: -.They're
everywhere—: That had the unmistakable overtones of Keren's stallion Dantris,
and he was irritated. Unlike most other Heralds, the twins could Mindspeak as
well with each other's Companions as with their own. :Even fellis-oil isn't
helping,: Dantris concluded in annoyance. :Sounds
like you may have more casualties from the wildlife than in battle.: Teren
grinned to himself despite his discomfort. :Let's
all hope you're right,: his twin answered soberly. "Be
my eyes and ears, love," Talia had begged Dirk. "They're going to
need me—" "But—"
he'd protested. "Take
Rolan; you know you can link to him. And when they need me—" "Not
if?" He'd sighed. "No, never mind. I link to Rolan and he links to
you? Gods, can't you rest for a moment?" "Dare
I?" He'd
had no answer to give her. So here he waited, in the lines behind Selenay,
waiting for dawn. Praying she didn't kill herself—because if he lost her, now
that he'd just found her. . . . When
dawn came, Selenay's forces were formed up along the top of the hill, with
their backs to the woods. There was a heavy knot of Heralds in Whites at the
end of die left flank, hard against the woods to the side. With them was Jen,
wearing some of Elspeth's student Grays; they were hoping Ancar would mistake
her for Elspeth and drive for that part of the line. Elspeth herself was back
at the Keep, ready to flee at a moment's notice if the tide turned against
them. She had agreed to this reluctantly, but saw the sense in it, and she
wanted to be certain if everything went wrong that Talia was not left behffld.
During one of her brief moments of wakefulness, the Queen's Own had soberly
asked the Heir to personally be certain that she didn't fall back into Ancar's
bands, and Elspeth had promised just as soberly. Although Elspeth had a shrewd
notion that Talia meant she should see to it that the Queen's Own received coup
de grace, the Heir was determined to bring her along even if it meant carrying
the injured Herald herself! In the
pale light of dawn, Selenay's original thousand looked pitiful against Ancar's
three thousand. They
were a shade more heavily armored than the Guard; from the way they obeyed
their officers' orders, they were as well trained. About five hundred of the
three thousand were still mounted; cavalry then, but light cavalry, not heavy.
The good news was that their bows were all crossbows—in an open field battle,
virtually useless in combat once fired, and lacking the range of a longbow. Selenay's
forces waited, patiently, Ancar would have to come to them. "He's
a good commander, I'll give him that," the Lord Marshal growled, when
after an hour of waiting nothing had happened. "He's assessing his chances—and
I hope to Mazes we look like fools! Wait a minute, something's happening—
" : ;A
nder came forward from the ranks with a white flag. He rode to the exact middle
of the battle, and paused. 256 Mercedes
Lackey The
Lord Marshal rode forward three paces, his battle-harness jingling, and
thundered, "Speak, man! Or are you just here to look pretty?" The
rider, a slightly foppish fellow wearing highly ornamented plate with a helmet
that bore an outlandish crest, colored angrily and spoke up. "Queen
Selenay, your envoys murdered King Alessandar, clearly on your orders. King
Ancar has declared a state of war upon Valdemar for your heinous act. Your
forces are outnumbered—will you surrender yourself now to Ancar's
justice?" An
angry muttering went up along the line, as Selenay grimaced. "I wondered
what sort of tale he'd concoct," she murmured to Kyril, then called to the
rider: "And just what can I expect from Ancar's justice?" "You
must abdicate and give over your daughter Elspeth in marriage to Ancar. The
Heralds of Valdemar must be disbanded and outlawed. Ancar will rule Valdemar
jointly with Elspeth; you will be imprisoned in a place of Ancar's choosing for
as long as you live." "Which
will be about ten minutes once Ancar has me in his hands," Selenay said
loud enough for the envoy to hear. Then she stood up in her stirrups, removed
her helm so that the sun shone fully on her golden hair, and called aloud,
"What do you say, my people? Shall I surrender?" The
resounding "No!" that met her question rang across the hilltop and
caused the envoy's horse to start and shy. "Now
hear me—" she said, in a voice so clear and carrying that there was no
doubt that every one of Ancar's men could hear it. "Ancar murdered his own
father, and my envoy as well. He consorts with evil magicians, and dabbles in
blood-sacrifice, and I'd sooner set a blade across Elspeth's throat than have
her spend so much as five minutes in his company! Let him beware the vengeance
of the gods for his false accusations—and the only way he'll rule Valdemar is
when every one of her citizens is dead in her defense!" The
envoy turned his horse back to his own lines, the cheering that followed
Selenay's words seeming to push him along before it like a leaf before the wind. ARROW*
FALL 257 "Well,
now we're for it," Selenay said to her commanders, settling her sword a
little more comfortably at her side. She replaced her helm, and patted her
Companion's neck. "Now we see if our plans work, even at
three-to-two." "And,"
Kyril replied, "if a Firestarter's the equal of Ancar's mages." "Why
are they just sitting there?" Griffon asked, his expression perplexed.
"Why aren't they charging?" tie was
far back behind the first and second lines, with tfae bowmen. His Gift was far
too precious to risk him anywhere near the front, but he chafed at his enforced They
found out in the next few moments as fog seemed to begin rising from the earth
at a point between their fines and Ancar's. The fog was a sickly yellow, and the
breeze Mowing across the battle field did not disturb it at aft. Then it seemed
to writhe and curdle; there was an eerie green glow all about it. The breeze
brought a whiff of a sulfurous stench, the whole battlefield seemed to sfaift
sideways for an instant, and Griffon's stomach torched—and hi place of the fog
was a clutch of demonic monsters. They
were easily seven feet tall, with dark pits in their skulls in place of eyes,
in the depths of which a dim red fire seemed to flicker. Their mouths were
fanged: their leathery yellow hides, the color of rancid butter, seemed armor
enough. They each carried a double-bladed axe in one hand, a knife nearly the
length of a sword in the other. There were nearly a hundred of them. A fearful
murmuring arose from the ranks of Selenay's forces—a few arrows flew in the
direction of the things, but those that connected merely bounced off. As they
opened their fanged mouths to roar and began advancing on the center of
Selenay's lines, her own troops fell back a step or two involuntarily. Then,
without warning, one of the demon-warriors •tapped dead in its tracks, and let
out a howl that caused men to dap their hands to their ears; then it burst into
name. 258 Mercedes
Lackey It
howled again, and began staggering in circles, a walking pyre. Selenay's troops
cheered again; then the cheering died, for the rest of the demons were still
coming, oblivious to the fate of the burning one, which had fallen to the
ground, still afire. A
second and a third ignited—and still they kept coming. They moved fairly
slowly, but it was evident that they would reach Selenay's lines in a few
moments. And so
they did—and the slaughter they caused was hideous. The demons waded into the
line of fighters as a man might wade into a pack of yipping curs. TTiey swung
their heavy axes with deceptive slowness—and sheared through armor and the
flesh beneath as if the armor were paper and the flesh as soft as melted
cheese. There was no deflecting the blows of those vicious axes; a man in the
way of one of them went down with his shield split, and his skull split as
well. Incredibly, fighters pressed to replace those that had fallen, but their
bravery was useless. The axes continued to swing, and the replacements joined
their fellows, either in death or in mangled agony. The Guard swarmed to make a
protective wall around Selenay and her commanders, but the demons were
inexorably cutting through them. There was blood everywhere—some of it yellow,
but precious little compared to the amount of red, human blood flowing. Men
cried out in fear or in pain, the monsters roared, and under all was the
screech of blade-edge meeting armor and the stink of demon-flesh burning. Griffon,
standing far behind the lines, brow furrowed with concentration, was focusing
on yet another of the demons. As it, too, went up in flames, he looked for a
new target in despair. It seemed that he alone could kill these monsters—but
there were so many of them! "Herald—"
He tried to ignore the insistent voice in his ear, but the man would not go
away. He turned impatiently, to see that his persistant companion was the
Councillor, Bard Hyron. Hyron was enough of a trained bowman to have warranted
a place back here, alongside Griffon. "Herald—the
tales say these things are dependent on their sorcerer. If you kill him,
they'll vanish!" ARROWS
FALL 259 -.
"What if the tales are wrong?" "You
won't have lost anything," the Bard pointed out. "Look—the mage must
be in that knot of people back by the standard; just to the left of the center
and the rear of Ancar's lines." "Get
me a Farseer!" Before Griffon had finished speaking, the man was off,
running faster than Griffon would have guessed he could. The
Bard was back in an instant—too long for Griffon, who watched, sickened, as the
demons carved down another swath of the Guard. "I'm
looking, Grif—" It was Griffon's red-haired year-mate, Davan, who came
stumbling up in the Bard's wake— stumbling because he had one hand pressed to
his forehead, trying to "See" as he ran. "I've—bloody hell! I
know he's there, but they're blocking me! Damn you, you bastards—" Davan
went to his knees, face twisted and unrecognizable with the effort of fighting
the blockage the mages were putting on him. **Come
on, Davan—" Griffon glanced up; and swallowed bile and fear. The demons
were continuing to advance. He concentrated, and sent the nearest up in flames,
but another took its place. Hyron
froze for a moment, then ran off again. Griffon hardly noticed; he was doing what
he could—and it wasn't enough. Pounding
hooves and a flash of white that Griffon saw out of the corner of his eye
signaled the arrival of another Herald. Distracted, Griffon turned to see who
it was. Dirk—and
not Ahrodie, but Rolan! Dirk
slid off the stallion's bare back, and took Davan by the shoulder, shaking him.
"Break it off, little brother— that isn't going to get you anywhere,"
he shouted over the noise of battle. "You two—don't argue. Link with us—'; Griffon
did not even bother to think, much less argue. He linked in with Dirk, as he
had so often done as a student— To find
himself, not in a four-way linkage, but a five. 260 Mercedes
Lackey Dirk
was linked to Rolan—who in his turn was linked to—Talia? Yes, it was Talia. Dirk's
ability at Mindspeech was limited, but urgency made it clear and strong.
:Davan, follow Her. Mage used death to raise power—pain, despair—She can track
it to him. Grif, follow Davan—I hold here.: Davan
caught that; they all remembered how Talia had used Visa's dying to lead Kris'
Farsight to where her body lay. The thread of Talia's sending was faint, but
unmistakable. Davan caught and followed it, and Griffon, linked in as closely
as he dared, was hot on his "heels." :Yes—yes,
I've got him! I See him! He's dressed in a bright sky-blue velvet robe—Grif,
strike now, through me!: Clear
in Davan's mind, Griffon saw a wizened man in a robe of vivid blue just a
little to one side of the knot of people around Ancar's standard. And that was
all he needed. With
hatred and anger he hadn't known he could feel, born of the horror he felt
watching his fellows being slaughtered, he reached— And
found himself blocked, as he'd never been before. He
strove against the wall blocking him, fighting his way through it with every
ounce of energy he possessed, fueled by his rage— He felt
it yield just the tiniest amount, and dragged up new reserves of energy—from
where, he neither knew nor
cared. There
was an explosion in Ancar's lines. And a tower of flame rose next to Ancar's
standard— And the
demons vanished. Griffon's
eyes rolled up into his head, he fainted dead away, and Davan went with him;
Hyron and Dirk caught them as they fell. When
the demon-warriors vanished, Selenay's forces let out a cheer of relief.
Selenay cheered with them, but wondered if they were being a bit premature. When no
other arcane attacks manifested, then she ARROWS
FALL 261 truly
felt like cheering. There must have been only the one mage, and somehow the
Heralds had been able to defeat him. "Griffon
and Davan found the mage and burned him," Kyrfl said at Selenay's glance
of inquiry. "They both collapsed, after. Griffon's still passed out, but
it doesn't look as if he'll be needed again in a hurry." No, it
didn't; for now Ancar's regular troops were charging Selenay's tine. The bowmen
showered them with arrows—no few of which found their marks. Ancar's own
crossbowmen had long since expended their own bolts—uselessly, it might be
added—and had switched to charging with the rest, swords in hand. Selenay's
Guards-folk braced themselves for the shock, for now the first step of their
battle plan was about to take place. When
Ancar's line hit Selenay's with a clangor of metal on metal and cries of
battle-rage and pain, most of their force was concentrated on the middle, where
Selenay's standard was. She waited, ignoring the sight and sound of her people
killing and being killed, for several long moments—for she, not the Lord
Marshal, was the field commander. Her Gift of Foresight was not a strong one,
but it was an invaluable one, for it operated best on the battlefield. It would
not tell her what was to happen, but given that there were plans already made,
it would tell her when the exact instant occurred that those plans should be
set into motion. She
waited, listening for that insistent inner prompting. Tlien—"Tell the left
to pull in," she said to Kyril. He
Mindsent, with a frown of concentration, and almost instantly the troops on the
lefthand side of the standard began making their way toward the center. As
she'd hoped, Ancar sent his cavalry to the left, with foot following—supposing
that he could encircle their ftne at that point, or even capture the supposed
Heir. "Wheel—•"
she told Kyril. And relayed by the Heralds with each group, the entire force
pivoted on the center, wjjtfa the leftmost end being on the very edge of the
swanjp, where some of Ancar's cavalry were even now discovering the two and
three feet of water and mud. 262 Mercedes
Lackey She
waited another long moment, until all of Ancar's forces were between her line
and the woods on the left. Then—"Now,
Kyril! Call them in!" And
pouring from the woods came the troops that had hidden there all night—fresh,
angry, and out for blood; the defectors from Alessandar's army, and the Heralds
that were their link to the command post. The defectors looked a little odd,
for each of them had spent a few moments of his hours in waiting cutting away
the sleeves of his uniform tunic so that the sleeves of the white, padded
gambeson showed. There could now be no mistaking them on the battlefield for
Ancar's troopers. Caught
between two forces, with a morass in front of them, even Ancar's seasoned
veterans began to panic. After
that, it was a rout. Griffon
was the first to reach the Keep, half-blind with reaction-headache. He had
stayed only long enough to assure himself that the victory was indeed
Selenay's, then pulled himself onto his Companion's back and sought the
Healers. "We
did it; we pulled it off," he told Elspeth, downing a swallow of
headache-potion with a grimace. "Those extra troops from Hardorn turned
the tide. By now what's left of Ancar's army is probably being chased across
the border with its tail between its legs." "What
about Ancar himself?" "Never
got into the thick of battle; probably he's gotten away. And before you ask, I
don't know if Hulda was with him, but I'd guess not. From what I've been able
to pick up from you and Talia, I'd say she isn't one to put herself at any kind
of risk. She's probably safely back at the capital, consolidating things for
her 'little dear.' " "What
about—" "Elspeth,
my head is about ready to break open. I think I know why Lavan called the
Firestorm down on himself—it probably felt better than his reaction-headache!
I'm going to go pass out for a while. Thank Talia for me. We couldn't have done
it without her. And you stay ready; they'll be bringing battle casualties back
any minute now. The Healers will need every hand they can get, ARROWS
FALL 263 and
there'll be plenty of fellows eager for the privilege of having the Heir
listening to their boasts while they're being patched up." So it
proved . . . and Elspeth learned firsthand of the aftermath of battle. She grew
a great deal older in the next few hours. And never again would she think of
war as "glorious." Selenay
remained on the Border, as fresh troops came to help with mopping-up, but
Elspeth, the Councillors, tfee wounded, and most of the Heralds (including
Talia and Dirk) returned to the capital. Just
before the Councillors left, Selenay called them all together. I must
remain here," she said, feeling gray with exhaustion. "Elspeth has
full powers of regency; in my absence she heads the Council—with full
vote." Lord
Gartheser looked as if he was about to protest, then subsided, sullenly. The
Councillors who had been QrthaQen's advocates—with the exception of Hyron—were
angry and unhappy and would be Elspeth's first problem. "You
have no choice in this, my Councillors," Selenay told them, fixing her
eyes on Gartheser in particular. "In war the Monarch has right of decree,
as you well know. And should there be any trouble ..." She
paused significantly. "Be
certain that I shall hear of it—and act." .
Elspeth called a Council meeting as soon as they were all settled, but sent
messages that it would be held in Talia's quarters. / With
the more aged or slothful of the Councillors grumbling and panting their way up
the stairs to the top story, the meeting convened. Talia
was by no means well; she was healed enough to an hour or two undrugged, but no
more than was propped up on her little couch, positioned under her window. She
wore bandages everywhere except her head and neck; her ruined feet were encased
mood bootlike contraptions. She was nearly as white as 264 Mercedes
Lackey the
uniform she wore. Elspeth sat next to her, with one eye on her at all times. Lord
Gartheser (predictably) was the first to speak. "What has been going on
here?" he snapped angrily. "What's all this nonsense about Orthallen
being a traitor? I—" "It
is not nonsense, my lord," Talia interrupted him quietly. "I heard it
from his co-conspirators, and his own actions when confronted merely with their
names proves his guilt." Simply,
and without elaboration, she told the whole story of what she and Kris had
learned about Ancar, of the massacre at the banquet, of Kris' death, and her
confrontations with Hulda and Ancar. When she
paused, obviously tired, Elspeth took up the tale, relating what Talia had told
them after Dirk had brought her back, and the scene with Orthallen. Lord
Gartheser sat silently through it all, mouth agape, growing paler by the
moment. "So
you can see, Councillors," Elspeth finished, "why my very first act
as regent must be to ascertain your loyalty under Truth Spell. Kyril, would you
be willing to administer to your fellow Councillors? I have only one question
to put to all of us—where and with whom do your first loyalties lie?" "Certainly,
Elspeth," Kyril replied, nodding his gray head toward her obediently.
"And Elcarth can administer the test to me." "But—I—"
Gartheser was sweating profusely. "You
have some objection, Gartheser?" Lady Cathan asked with honeyed sweetness. "I—uh—" "If
you prefer not to take the test, you could resign your position—" Lord
Gartheser looked from face to face, hoping for a reprieve, and found none.
"I—Lady Elspeth, I fear the— the stress of my position is too much for me.
With your leave, I should prefer to resign it." "Very
well, Gartheser," Elspeth said calmly. "Does anyone else object? No?
Then, my lord, you may leave us. I would suggest you retire to your estates for
the ARROWS
FALL 265 quiet,
peaceful life you have so richly earned. I do not think, given the stress you
have been through, that it would be wise to entertain many visitors." She
watched Gartheser rise and stumble out the door with an impassive expression
not even Selenay could have matched. "Kyril,"
she said when he was gone, "you may begin with me." "And
after Elspeth, I should like to be tested," Hyron said, shamefacedly,
"being as I was one of Orthallen's stronger supporters." "If
you wish. Kyril?" The
testing took a very short time; not surprisingly, all "Next,
we have two Council seats to fill, speaker for the North, and speaker for the
Central districts. Any suggestions?" **For
the Central, I would suggest Lord Jelthan," said Lady Kester. "He's
young, he's got some good ideas, but he's been lord of his holdings for nearly
fourteen years— his father died young." "Anyone
else? No? And the North?" No one
spoke, until Talia's whisper broke the silence. "If no one has any other
notions, I suggest Mayor Loschal of Trevendale. He's quite able, he knows the
problems of tee North intimately, he has no private axe to grind that I am
aware of, and he has enough years to balance Lord Jelthan's youth." "Any
other suggestions? So be it—Kyril, see to it, will you? Now, the other matter
facing us is Hardorn and Ancar. We are going to have to increase the size of
the Guard; that means a tax increase—" "Why?
We beat them, right soundly!" '*There's
no need—" "You're
starting at shadows—" *1 know
for a fact your mother gave you no such •'
**Quiet!" Kyril thundered out over the bedlam. When stared at him
dumbfounded, he continued, "Herald wishes to speak, and she can't be heard
over your 266 Mercedes
Lackey "Elspeth
is right," Talia whispered wearily. "I know Ancar better than any of
you. He'll be back at us, again and again, until one of our lands lacks its
leader. And I tell you, this kingdom is in more danger now than we were before
the battle we just won! Now he knows some of what we can do, and what kind of
strength we can raise at short notice. The next time he comes for us, it will
be with a force he deems overwhelming; we must be ready to meet that
force." "And
that means a larger Guard; taxes to support it—" "And
your help, Councillors. Bard Hyron, the help of your Circle especially,"
Talia continued. "My
Circle? Why?" "Because,
as you ably demonstrated with Griffon, the Bardic Circle is the only source of
information we have on old magic." "Surely
you overestimate these mages—" Lady Wyrist began. "Look
here and tell me I overestimate!" Again Talia pulled gown and bandage from
her shoulder to display the handprint-brand, still livid and raw-looking.
"I will bear this mark until the day I die, and this was just a parlor-trick
for Hulda!" Lady Wyrist paled and turned her head away. "Ask the
widows and children and widowers of those slain by demons if I overestimate the
danger! I tell you now that what Ancar brought with him is likely to be one of
his lesser mages—he would not risk the greater in battle. And Hyron, your
Circle alone preserves the tradition of what we can expect and how we can
defend against it. If, indeed, we can." "We
can," Hyron said thoughtfully. "It's in some of the chronkles from
Vanyel's time—when the Gifts were superseding the mage-crafts. It may be that
you Heralds and your Companions are all that will be able to guard us from
Ancar's magicians." "Sounds
like a rare good reason to have them by us, if you ask me," said Lady
Kester wryly. "And
we'll need you and your Circle for your traditional reason as well,1' Elspeth
said, smiling at Hyron. ARROWS
FALL 267 "Especially
if we're not to end up conscripting for the Guard." "Rousing
patriotic fervor and spreading tales of what's happened and what we can expect?
Aye, Lady Elspeth, as always, the Circle is yours to command." "And
keeping the spirits of our people high." "Ever
in your service—" Elspeth
took a quick glance at Talia, as she lay back on her pillows, face pinched and
drained. "If there's no more business at hand?" "None
that can't wait," said Lord Gildas. "Then
I think we'd best dismiss, and let the Healers see to Talia." As the
Councillors filed out, Skif slipped in, Healer Devan and Healer Rynee with him. "Little
sister, Dirk's waiting downstairs—" Skif began. Talia's
face crumpled, and she began to cry. "Please— not now—I'm so tired.
..." "Usten
to me—listen—" He caught one of her hands in his own and knelt beside her
couch. "I know what's happening to you, I understand! I've seen you trying
not to wince away when he touches you. I've talked him into going home to tell
his parents about you; I'm going with him. By the tune we get back, you'll be
fine again, I know you will. Now gather your courage and give him a wonderful
good-bye to keep him going, eh?" She
shuddered; he wiped her tears, and she relaxed. "Is that why you brought
Rynee?" He
chuckled. "You've got it. She'll give you a little mental painblock, as it
were. Let her work while I fetch Dirk." She was
able to do all Skif had asked and more, but when the two of them left, she
crumbled again. "Rynee,
am I ever going to be able to—be whole again? I love him, I need him—but
whenever he touches me, I see Ancar and Ancar's guards—" "Hu*h,
now, hush," Rynee soothed her as if Talia wens twelve years her junior
instead of four her senior. "It
was fine at first, but after the battle it started to build every time a man
touched me, and it was worse 268 Mercedes
Lackey than that
when the man was him! Rynee, I can't bear it, I can't bear it!" "Talia,
dear friend, be easy. Yes, you'll be fine, just like Skif said. It's just a
matter of Healing, inside instead of out. Now sleep." "Will
she Heal?" Devan looked at Rynee somberly, as Talia dropped into
Healing-trance. "She
will," Rynee replied serenely. "And it'll be mostly her own doing.
You'll see." "I
pray you're right." "I
know I am." Twelve Skif
took the tower stairs at a run, though for all the sound he made, no one would
ever have known there was anyone on the stairs at all. He'd been back from the
North for several hours now, and he was more than impatient. "You can't
see Talia yet," they'd told him. "She's with the Healers every
morning, and they've left orders that they're never to be disturbed."
Well, all right, but that didn't make a fellow any less twitchy, not when he
was worried about her. He'd determined to get up to her room as soon as he'd
finished lunch; he'd all but bolted his food and nearly choked as a
consequence. He'd
evidently misjudged the timing by a bit, for as he approached the half-open
door at the top of the stairs, he'd heard voices inside. He shrank back into a
shadow on the landing, and peeked around the corner. From where he was hidden
he could see inside the room quite easily. There were two Healers there, both
easily identifiable by their Greens, one on either side of a lounge that held
someone in Herald's Whites—Talia, without a doubt. He
winced inside, for her face was distorted by pain and her eyes streamed tears,
although she did not utter so much as a single moan. "Enough,"
said the Healer on her right; and Skif recognized Devan. "That's
absolutely all for today, Talia." Her
face relaxed somewhat, and the woman on her left gave her a look of caring
sympathy and a handkerchief to dry her tears with. "You
really don't need to be enduring all this, you know," Devan said, a bit
crossly. "If you'd let us Heal 269 270 Mercedes
Lackey you at
the normal rate it could all be done quite painlessly." "Dear
Devan, I don't have time, and you know that perfectly well," Talia replied
softly. "Then
you ought to at least let us work under painblock! And I still don't understand
why you don't think you have time!" "But
if you worked under painblocks, I wouldn't be able to help—and if 1 can't help,
neither can Rolan. In that case, it would take six of you to do what one does
now." Her voice actually held a touch of amusement. "She's
got you there, Devan," the woman Healer— Myrim, the Healer's
representative on the Council—pointed out wryly. He
snorted with disgust. "Heralds! I don't know why we put up with you! If
you're not out killing yourselves, you're trying to get us to speed-Heal you so
that you can go back out and get yourselves ruined that much sooner!" "Well,
old friend, if you'll recall—the first time you ever saw me, I was your
patient. There'd already been an attempt to rid the world of me, and I was only
a student. You could hardly expect this tabbycat to change color after such an
auspicious beginning, could you?" The
Healer reached out and touched her cheek in a spontaneous gesture of affection.
"It's just that it hurts me to have to put you through such agony,
dearling." She
caught the hand and held it, smiling at him. The smile transformed her from a
simply pretty woman (swollen and red-rimmed eyes notwithstanding) to a lovely
one. "Take heart, old friend. There are not many more days of this to
come; then whatever Healing is left will all be bone-Healing—and you can't
speed that." She laughed. "As for why I don't have time, well, I
can't tell you, because I don't know myself. I only know it's true, just as
true as the fact that Rolan's eyes are blue. Besides, I know you. I'm a
cooperative patient; unlike Keren and Dirk, I do exactly what I'm told. Since
you can't complain of that, you have to find something to be annoyed
about!" Myrim
chuckled, as did Healer Devan. "Oh, you know ARROWS
FALL 271 him far
too well, milady," she said, standing and stretching. "And we will
see you on the morrow." Ifhey
left the room and passed Skif without ever noticing that he was there. IJut
Talia seemed to sense that someone was there. "Whoever's outside, please
come in," she called out. "It can't be comfortable on that cold, dark
landing." Skif
chuckled, and pushed the door open all the way, to see Talia regarding him with
her head tilted to one side and an expectant look on her face. "I never
could fool you, could I?" "Skif1'
she exclaimed with delight, and held out both arms to him. "I hadn't
expected you back this soon!" "Oh,
you know me—a box of soap and a spare uniform, and I'm ready to go." He
embraced her very carefully, and kissed her forehead, before sitting on the
floor next to her couch. "And where Skif is—seeing as we went to the same
destination—can Dirk be far behind?" MYou tell me." He was pleased to
see her eyes light with carefully contained joy. "Well,
he's not. Far behind, that is. He planned to stay one day longer, but if I'm
any judge, he'll have made that up on the road. I wouldn't be surprised to see
him here tins afternoon. Dear heart, I'm glad to see you want him again." Her
eyes glowed, and she smiled. "I didn't fool you either, did I?" "Not
a bit. That's why I came up with the notion of sending him home to tell his
family in person. I could see all that old fear of men—and worse—building up in
you every time he touched you, and you trying not to show it so that you
wouldn't hurt him." "Oh,
Skif—what ever did I do to deserve you? You were right; it was horrible, I felt
like I was at war with myself." "Dearling,
I served a Border Sector, remember? And my old home neighborhood was a pretty
rough place. You weren't the first woman I've seen that was suffering the
aftereffects of rape and abuse. I know what the reaction is. I take it
you're—" 272 Mercede*
Lackey "Fine.
Better than ever; and half-mad with wanting to see him again." "That's
the best news I've had for a long tune. Well, don't you want to know how it all
went?" "I'm
consumed with curiosity because if I know Dirk, he probably sent his family a
two-tine note—"I'm getting married. I'll be there in a week,"—and no
further explanation whatsoever." Skif
laughed, and admitted that that was just about what Dirk hod written, word for
word. "And a fine turmoil it sent them into, I can tell you! Especially
coming on top of the rest of it—well, let me take it from the beginning." He
settled himself a bit more comfortably. "We got to the farm just about a
week after we left here, and it was hard riding all the way. Dirk didn't want
to spend any more time traveling than he had to; well, I can't say as 1 much
blame him. When we got there, the entire clan was out waiting for us, since they'd
had the children playing lookout ever since his message. Holy Stars, what a
mob! You're going to tike them, heartsister, they're all as mad as he is. They
got us separated almost at once; the younglings plying me with food and drink
while Dirk's mother ana father dragged him off for a family conference. I could
tell that he'd had them fan* worried, especially after the last time—that bitch
Naril and the way she played with him—" "I
know all about that. I don't blame them for being worried." "It
didn't help much that he was still a bit thin and worn-looking, I'm sure. They
weren't easy to convince that everything was all right, because they had him
incommunicado for several hours, at least an hour past supper, and we got there
just at lunch. The poor youngsters were at their wit's end, trying to find
something to distract me with!" Skifs lips pursed in a mischievous smile.
"And I'm afraid I didn't help much. I wasn't cooperating at all. Well,
they all finally emerged; Father looked satisfied, but Mother still had doubts
in her eyes. They fed us all, then it was my turn to come under fire. Let me
tell you, Dirk's mother is a lovely lady, and she ARROWS
FALL 273 ought
to be put in charge of questioning witnesses; the Troth Spell would become
entirely superfluous! By the time she was done with me, she knew everything
I've ever known about you, including a lot of things I'd forgotten. We were up
practically all night, talking; one of the best conversations I've ever had. I
didn't mind in the least, she's such a dear. It was worth every yawn to see the
worry going out of her eyes, the more I told her." Talia
sighed, and Skif could feel her relief and gratitude as she wordlessly squeezed
his hand. "I can't tell you how glad I was that you insisted on going with
him. You're a good friend to both of us." "Hm—you'll
be even gladder, I think—none of them are going to be able to be here for the
wedding. That's what I meant by 'coming on top of all the rest of it.' "
"What's happened?" she asked anxiously. "His third sister is
having a real problem with this child she's bearing. She can't travel,
obviously, her older sisters don't want to leave her. Needless to say, her
mother, as Healer as well as parent, feels obligated to stay. And Dirk's father's
joint problem is so bad he can't even take long wagon journey^ anymore, never
mind riding. I did my best to assure them that you wouldn't feel slighted or
insulted if they didn't come, given the circumstances." "I'd
never forgive myself if they had come, and something had gone wrong at home
while they were here." "Well,
that's what I told them. By the next day, we were all good friends, and I was
part of the family. Then I had tte hardest task I've ever faced. They asked me
about Kris." He
looked at his hands, his voice fogged a little with tears. "I—they loved
him, little sister. He was like another son to them. I've never had to tell
anyone how their son died before." He felt
her hand lightly on his shoulder, and looked up. The sadness that never quite
left her face was plain in net eyes. A single tear slid slowly down her cheek,
and she aid not trouble to wipe it away. He reached up, and brushed it away
with gentle fingers. "I
miss him," she said simply. "I miss him every day. K it weren't for
what I felt when he—left—it would be 274 Mercedes
Lackey unbearable.
At least—I know he must be happy. I have that. They don't even have that much
comfort." "I'm
glad I got Dirk to go home for that reason, too," Skif replied quietly.
"Kris was something special to him— more than a friend, more than anyone
else could ever be, I think. When he finally let himself grieve, he needed his
family around him . . .." He took
both of her hands in his own and they sat in silence for long moments, mourning
their loss. "Well,"
he coughed a little, "I wish you had the leisure to wait on this until you
were entirely well again." "I
know. So do I," Talia sighed. "But as soon as I can use my feet
again, I Have to return to duty; in fact, Selenay wrote me herself yesterday
that if it weren't so damnably painful for me to move, she'd have me on duty
now." "I
know, too. Well, it can't be helped. Listen—I have got to tell you what that
tribe is like—" Skif launched into a series of affectionate descriptions
of the various members of Dirk's family, and had the pleasure of seeing some of
the sorrow leave her eyes. "So
that's the last of them," he concluded. Then he noticed a basket of sewing
beside her—and none of the garments were her own! "What's all this?"
he asked, holding up an enormous shirt with both sleeves pulling out. Talia
blushed a charming crimson. "I can't go anywhere except this couch or my
bed. I'm tired of reading, I can't handle my harp very long without hurting
myself, and I can't stand having nothing to do. I suppose it goes back to my
farmgirl days, when I wasn't even allowed to read without having a task in my
hands. So since my embroidery is bad enough to make a cat laugh, I made Elspeth
hunt out all of Dirk's clothing, and I've been mending it. I can't keep him
from looking rumpled, but at least I can keep him from looking like a
rag-bag!" Before
Skif could tease her further, the sound of a familiar footstep—taking the tower
stairs three at a time— caused her to direct all her attention to the open
door, her visitor momentarily forgotten. There
was no mistaking it—it could only be Dirk. Skif ARROWS
FALL 275 bounced
to his feet and took himself out of the way before Dirk reached the door, not
wanting to intrude on their greeting. Every time Dirk had spoken of Talia when
he'd been with his family, he'd practically glowed. It had been that, at least
in part, that had convinced them that all was well. Well, if Skif had thought
he'd glowed when he only spoke of Talia, he was incandescent when he saw her
waiting for him, with both her hands sttetched yearningly out toward him. A
quick glance at her proved that she was equally radiant. Dirk
was across the room in a few steps and went to one knee beside her, taking both
her hands in his and kissing them gently. What would have been a hopelessly
melodramatic scene for anyone else seemed natural for them. Talia drew his
hands toward her and laid her cheek against them, and the expression on her
face made Skif hold his breath and freeze absolutely still lest he break the
mood. "Has
it been very bad, my love?" Dirk asked, so softly Skif could barely make
out the words. "I
don't know—while you were gone, all I could think of was how I wished you were
here; and now you're here, I'm too busy being glad you're with me," she
replied teasingly. Why
then I must needs find a way to shrink thee, and carry thee in my pocket
always," he said tenderly, falling into the speech-mode of his childhood. Talia
freed one hand from his and laid it softly along his cheek. "Would not
having me in thy pocket soon make thee tired of my company?" "Not
so long as it spares thee any pain at all. Oh, have a care to thyself, little
bird!" he murmured. "Thou hast my soul in thy keeping, and without
thee, I would be nothing but an empty, dead shell!" His
tone was jesting, but the light in his eyes said that he spoke nothing less
than the truth. "Oh,
beloved, then we are surely lost beyond redemption," she whispered
"for in truth I find myself in the like case. Thou hast mine in trade for
thine." Their
joy hi each other seemed to brighten the very air around them. 276 Mercedes
Lackey Skif
soon realized, however, that it is only possible to go without breathing for a
limited amount of time. On the other hand, he couldn't bear the notion that his
interference would break the mood of the two before him. "Dearest,"
Talia said with laughter in her voice, "my brotherling Skif is trying to
decide between disturbing us and fainting from lack of air—" Dirk
chuckled, and turned his head slightly so that he could see Skif out of the
corner of his eye. "Thought I hadn't noticed you were there, did you? Come
out of your corner, and stop pretending you're here to pick pockets!" To
Skifs intense relief, the mood had not broken. Perhaps the glow had been dimmed
a little, but if so, it had been a deliberate action on their part, to make it
easier for him. As he took a chair and pulled it nearer to the couch, Dirk
removed the pillows behind Talia and took their place. Now she was leaning on
his chest and shoulder instead, one of his arms protectively circling her. The
vague shadow of anxiety was gone from his face, and the pain that had faintly
echoed in her eyes was gone as well. There was a "tightness" about
them that defied analysis. No
sooner were they all settled again when more footsteps could be heard running
up the stairs. Elspeth came bursting into the room, her arms full of glorious
scarlet silk. "Talia,
the dresses are done! Has—" She stopped short at the sight of Dirk, and
gave a whoop of joy. She threw the dress at Skif (who caught it gingerly), and
danced around to grab both of Dirk's ears and plant an enthusiastic kiss
squarely on his mouth. "Well!"
he said, when he could finally speak. "If that's how I'm going to get
greeted on my return, I'm going to go away more often!" "Oh,
horse manure," Elspeth giggled, then rescued Skif from the folds of the
dress, and planted an equally enthusiastic kiss on his mouth. "I'm just
glad to see you for Talia's sake. She's been drooping like a wilted lily since
you left!" ARROWS
FALL 277 "Elspeth!"
Talia protested. "I'm
just as glad to see Skif. More—he can help me. Or hadn't you heard, oh,
cloud-scraper? You get to help me with putting this wedding together. Talia
can't, and Dirk hasn't been here." "And
besides that, Dirk has no idea of what is supposed to go on at weddings,"
Dirk said ruefully. "If you told me I was supposed to suspend myself by my
knees from a treelimb, I'd probably believe you." "Oooh—what
a wonderful opportunity!" Elspeth sparkled with mischief. "Maybe I'll
do that. No, I'd better not. Talia might tell you to beat me." ,'Td do
worse than have Dirk beat you," Talia twinkled back. "I'd tell Alberich
that I thought you were shirking your practices." tfYou
ore a beast, aren't you? Are you safe to hug, dearling?" "As
of this morning, quite safe." With
that assurance, Elspeth bent over the Heralds and hugged Talia with warmth and
enthusiasm, then tweaked Dirk's nose with an impudent grin. "I
have been wanting to do that for eons," she said, snatching a pillow from
the pile that Dirk had displaced and seating herself on the floor at Talia's
feet. "The
hug, or the nose?" Dirk asked. "Both—but
the hug more," she turned to Skif. "You wouldn't know, since you were
gone, too—but you hardly knew where you could touch her, at first. Poor Dirk,
practically all he could touch were her fingertips before he left!" "Oh,
I found a few other places," Dirk chuckled, and Tafia blushed furiously.
"So tell me, what new and wonderful plans for this fiasco have you managed
to crush since I've been gone?" "You'll
adore this one—and it's new today. The Lord Marshal thought it would be a grand
idea to load Talia up on a flower-bedecked platform and carry her to the priest
oo the shoulders of half the Heralds in the Kingdom. You know, like the image
of the Goddess in a Midsummer pageant." 278 Mercedes
Lackey "Oh,
nor* Talia plainly was torn between laughter and embarrassment. "Oh,
yes! And once I'd managed to convince him that poor Talia would probably die of
mortification if anyone even suggested it, the Lord Patriarch came storming in,
demanding to know why the thing wasn't being held in the High Temple!" "Lord
of Lights!" "After
I'd told him that since the Companions had a big part in the rescue, they were
being invited, too, he agreed that the High Temple probably wasn't the best
site." "I
can just see Dantris helping himself to the Goddess' lilies out of sheer
mischief," Dirk muttered. "Dantris?
Bright Havens, love, Rolan and Ahrodie would probably decide to watch from the
choir loft and leave hoofmarks all over the hardwood floor!" Talia
replied. "And to think that all I ever wanted was a private pledging with
a few friends." "Then
you shouldn't have been Chosen Queen's Own," Elspeth told her sweetly.
"You're a figure of national importance, so you can't begrudge people
their fun any more than I can." "And
I suppose it's too late to back out now." "Out
of the wedding, or being Queen's Own?" Dirk chuckled. "Guess." "I'd
rather not. I might not like the answer." "Look,"
Elspeth interjected, "since Skif is right here now, why don't I drag him
off and tell him what I've gotten set up so far? That way we won't be
interrupted." "Good
idea," Dirk approved. Elspeth
gathered up her dress and drew Skif with her into the bedroom, shutting the
<toor after them. "I
really don't need any help in getting these things organized, but let's pretend
I do, all right? And let's take lots of time about it," Elspeth said in a
low voice. "Being Heir has some advantages. As long as it's me that's up
here, nobody is going to come bursting in on them the way they do when the
Healers aren't with her. You'd ARROWS
FALL 279 dank
people would give them a little time alone! But even though he's just gotten
back, they won't." "But—why?" "Why
are people always up here? A lot of reasons. The Lord Marshal always manages to
think up something more about Ancar he'd like to know. Kyril and Hyron are
always asking about Hulda. Only the gods know what her powers could mean. Even
her friends, Lady bless *e», are always coming in to 'make sure that she's all
right/ Havens, I'm as bad as they are! Here, as long as you're here, you can
help me—I want to show this off." She hid behind the wardrobe door for a
moment, emerging in the scarlet dress. "Lace me up, would you? Then
there's the emergencies, though gods be thanked we haven't had any really bad
ones, like the backlash of a Herald getting killed." Her face clouded,
"Except for poor Nessa. Well, Talia fixed that quickly enough, once she
was well enough to handle it." "Gods,
does everyone in the world pop in and out of here?" "Sometimes
it seems that way. You know, I don't think anyone ever really realized how many
lives she's touched until we thought we'd lost her. That dress, for
instance—have you ever seen anything like that fabric in your life?" "Never."
Skif admired the gown, with an eye trained by thieving to evaluate it; it was
of scarlet silk, and patterned through the scarlet of the main fabric were
threads of pure gold and deep vermilion. It was incredible stuff. "Neither
have I—and I have seen a lot of Court gowns. It came by special messenger,
after Dirk had them keep watch tot the trader who smuggled in the argonel and
the arrows to her, then got the message out to Rolan. Dirk was hoping he could
find him and thank him, and let him know she was ail right. Well, he managed to
get back acron the Border before Ancar closed his side, and he got Dirk's
message and sent this in reply. The note that went with ft said that among his
people the bride always wore scarlet, and while he knew that this would not be
tfc* case among us, he hoped his 'little gift' could be put 280 Mercedes
Lackey to good
use. 'Little gift!' Mother said that the last time she saw anything like this
it was priced at a rate that would purchase a small town!" Elspeth
finished tying up the laces in back. "Talia thought it would be lovely to
use it for attendants' dresses. / am not going to argue with her! Mother would
never get me anything like this unless they discovered diamonds growing on the
trees in Sorrows!" She wiggled sensuously. "Then there was the other
truly strange gift. Did she ever tell you about the woman she helped up in
Berrybay? The one they called 'Weatherwitch'?" "A
bit." "Out
of the blue came this really elderly Herald—I mean, he was supposed have
retired, that's how old. He came with a message from this Weatherwitch person—
the exactly perfect day to have the wedding, and you know fall weather. Since
we're having it outside, we'd been a good bit worried about that. Talia says
Maeven's never wrong, so that's why we're having it then." She
pressed her ear briefly against the door and giggled. "I think it's safe
enough to go out now, but I'll bet it wasn't a few minutes ago. Let's go show
off." As far
as Skif could tell, neither Talia nor Dirk had moved an inch since they'd left
them—although Talia's hair was a trifle mussed, and both of them wore
preoccupied and dreaming expressions. "Well,
what do you think?" Elspeth asked, posing dramatically. "I
think it looks wonderful. No one in their right mind is going to be watching me
with you and Jeri around," Talia said admiringly. "Well,
Elspeth and I are agreed; we'll take care of the wedding arrangements,"
Skif said with a proprietary air. "That will free you up a bit more,
Dirk—that is, if you don't mind." "I
don't mind at all, and I think it's very good of you," Dirk replied,
surprised. "Especially since you know very well that I don't have to be
freed up to do anything except spend more time up here." "That
was the general idea," Elspeth said mockingly. ARROW*
FALL 281 "Enough,
enough! It's settled then," he laughed, "and much thanks to you
both." "Remember
that the next time I do something wrong!" Etopeth giggled back. She
teased Dirk for a few moments longer — then her face clouded with anxiety when
she realized that Talia had fallen asleep. She'd been doing that a great deal
lately, sometimes right in the middle of a conversation. Ebpeth was afraid that
this was a sign that she would never be quite well again. But
Dirk and Skif just exchanged amused glances while Dirk settled the sleeping
Herald a little more comfortably on his shoulder. Elspeth heaved an audible
sigh of retief at this; surely if anyone would know if something were wrong,
Dirk would. : Dirk hadn't missed the anxious look or the sigh of "Ifs
nothing important," he told her; quietly, to avoid waking Talia. "He's
right— honestly!" Skif assured her. "Dirk's mother told us she'll be
dropping off like this. It's just a side-effect of speed-Healing. It has
something to do with all the energy you're using, and all the strain you're
putting on yourself. She says it's the same kind of effect you'd get if you ran
twenty or thirty miles, swam a river, and climbed a mountain or two, then
stayed up three days straight." "According
to mother," Dirk continued, "It has to do with— fatigue poisons? — I
think that's what she called them. When you speed-Heal, they build up faster
than the body can get rid of them, and the person you're Healing tends to fall
asleep a lot. When they atop the speed-Healing, she'll stop falling asleep all
the time." "Show-off,"
Skif taunted. Dirk
grinned and shrugged. "See all the useless information you pick up when
you're a Healer's offspring?" Elspeth
protested; "Useless, my eye! I thought for .sure there was something wrong
that nobody wanted to 252 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 283 tell me
about—like there was when she wouldn't wake up. Nobody ever thinks to tell me
anything anymore!" "Well,
imp," Dirk retorted, "That's the price you pay for poking your nose
into things all the time. People think you already know everything!" The
Border was officially closed, but refugees kept slipping across every night,
each of them with a worse tale to tell than the last. Selenay had had a premonition
that Ancar wasn't quite through with Valdemar, and had stayed on the Border
with a force built mainly of the defectors from Hardorn's army, now fanatically
devoted to her. She had been absolutely right. This
time the attack came at night, preceded by a storm Selenay suspected of being
mage-caused. There was a feint in the direction of the Border Guardpost, a
strong enough feint that it would have convinced most leaders that the attack
there was genuine. But
Selenay had Davan—a Farseer—and Alberich—a Foreseer—with her, and knew better.
Ancar meant to regain some of his lost soldiers—and plant some traitors in
Selenay's new Border Guards. And to do both, he was going to use some of the
other talents of what was left of his army of thieves and murderers. But the
force of black-clad infiltrators who attempted to penetrate the
stockade-enclosed village that housed the defectors and their dependents met
with a grave surprise. They
got all the way to the foot of the stockade, when suddenly— Light!
Blinding light burst above their heads, light nearly as bright as day. As they
cringed, and looked up through watering eyes, four white-clad figures appeared
above them, and out of the darkness at the top of the stockade fence rose
hundreds of angry men and women armed with bows, who in no way wished to return
to the man who called himself their King. Suspended from the trees by thin
wires were burning balls of some unknown substance that flamed with a white
ferocity. "You
could have knocked," Griffon called down to them, "We'd have been
glad to let you in." -
"But perhaps it is that this is no friendly visit—" Alberich dodged
as one of those below threw a knife at him in desperation. i
t*%*God, Alberich, I believe you might be right," Davan dodged a second
missile. "Majesty?" r^Take them," Selenay ordered shortly. If A
few were taken alive; what they had to tell was ttMetfesting. More interesting
by far was the assortment of drugs and potions they had intended to use on the
village *elTDrugs
that, according to those Selenay questioned aader Truth Spell, would open the
minds of those that took them to the influence of Ancar's mages—and Ancar
himself. Tbat
told them much about what Ancar was currently abte to accomplish. What happened
next on Ancar's side of the Border told them more. He
fortified it, created a zone a mile deep in which he allowed neither farm nor
dwelling place—then left it. Aad neither Foreseer nor Farseer could see him
doing aaything offensive for some time. So for
the moment, Ancar's knife was no longer at Valdemar's throat—and Selenay felt
free to come home to resume her Throne, and in time for Talia's wedding. Companion's
Field was the only suitable place within easy reach of the Collegium that could
hold all the people expected to attend. The wedding site had to be within easy
reach, because Talia's feet were still not healed. The Healers were satisified
that the bones had all set well (after so many sessions of arranging the tiny
fragments that nonHealers had begun to wonder if her feet would ever be usable)
but they had only begun to knit, and she had been absolutely forbidden to put
one ounce of weight on them. That meant that wherever she needed to go, die had
to be carried. The
Healers had chosen not to put the kind of plaster casts on her that they had
used to hold Keren's broken hip in place. This was mostly because they needed
to be awe to monitor the Healing they were doing on a much finer level than
they had with Keren, but also partially because such casts would have been a
considerable bur- 284 Mercedes
Lackey den on
a body already heavily taxed and exhausted. Instead they constructed stiff
half-boots of glue, wood strips, and hardened leather, all lined with lambswool
felt. These had been made in two halves that laced together and could be
removed at will. Talia had been much relieved by this solution, needless to
say. "Can
you imagine trying to bathe with those plaster things on your feet?" she'd
said with a comical expression. "Or trying to find some way of covering
them during the wedding? Or finding someone strong enough to carry me and all
that damned plaster as well?" "Not
to mention Dirk's displeasure at trying to deal with them afterward—"
Elspeth had teased, while Talia blushed. Elspeth
was waiting in Talia's room, watching Keren and Jeri put the final touches on
her hair and face. The Heir privately thought that Talia was lovely enough to
make anyone's heart break. She was still thin, and very pale from her ordeal,
but that only served to make her more attractive, in an odd way. It was rather
as if she'd been distilled into the true essence of herself—or tempered and
honed like an heirloom blade. They'd taken great pains with her dress of white
silk and silver, designing something that draped well when the wearer was being
carried and extended past her feet to cover the ugly leather boots. By the same
token, nothing would fall far enough to the floor that the person carrying her
would be likely to trip over it. Jeri had given her a very simple hairstyle to
complement the simplicity of the dress, and her only ornaments were fresh
flowers. "
'Nobody in their right mind is going to look at me with you and Jeri around,'
" Elspeth quoted to Keren under her breath, her eyes sparkling with
laughter. "Bright Havens, next to her I look like a half-fledged red
heron!" "I
hope after all this time you women are finally ready," Dirk announced as
he came through the door, for once in his life totally immaculate, and
resplendent in white velvet. "Dirk!"
Jeri laughed, interposing herself between him ARROWS
FALL 265 ffA
Talia. "Tradition says you're not supposed to see the bride until you meet
before the priest!" /Tradition be damned. The only reason I'm letting
carry her at all is because if I try and manage her t ring, Til drop one of the
two!" , all right. I can see you're too stubborn to argue . She stepped aside, and at the sight of one
another, they seemed to glow from deep within. *Two
hours I spend on her — " Jeri muttered under her 'breath, obviously
amused, " — and in two eyeblinks he nakes everything I did look
insignificant." Dirk
gathered her up carefully, holding her in his arms » if she weighed next to
nothing. "Ready, leveling?" he asked softly. : v;*Tve
been ready forever," she replied, never once taking her eyes from his. the
Held was alive with color; Healer Green, Bard Scarlet, Guard Blue — the muted
grays, pale greens and red-brown of the students moving among them, the gilded
and bejeweled courtiers catching the sun. Most prevalent, of course, was
Heraldic White, and not just because even more Heralds had managed to appear
for this occa-flion than had arrived for Elspeth's fealty ceremony. Hah* of the
white figures in the crowd were Companions, be-flowered and be-ribboned by the
loving hands of their Chosen, and looking for all the world as if it were they
who were being wedded. Even Cymry's foal had a garland— though he kept trying
to eat it. Hie
ceremony was a simple one, though it was not one that was often performed— lor
the wedding of a lifebonded couple was less of a promising than an affirmation.
Despite well-meaning efforts to the contrary, Skif and Elspeth had managed to
keep the pomp and ritual to an absolute - Dirk
carried his love as far as the priest, handing her very carefully to Skif, who
felt proud and happy enough when he did so to burst. Elspeth gave him Talia's
ring, and he supped it onto her finger. Skif and Elspeth both bit their lips to
keep from shedding a tear or two at that moment; partially because she'd moved
Kris' friendship 206 Mercedes
Lackey ring to
the finger next to it, and partially because the wedding ring was still so
large for her. Dirk
repeated his vows in a voice that seemed soft, but carried to the edge of the
crowd. Then Talia took his ring from Keren, slipped it onto his ring-finger and
made her own vows in her clear, sweet voice. Dirk
took her back from Skif—and as he did so, the massed Heralds cheered
spontaneously. Somehow,
it seemed totally appropriate. The
wedded couple was enthroned on a pile of cushions brought by every hand in the
Collegium, with Talia arranged so that she could see everything without having
to strain herself. Elcarth waited until most of the well-wishers had cleared
away, and Talia and Dirk were pretty much alone before strolling over to them. He
shook his head at the sight. "I hope you two realize this display of yours
is fevering the imaginations of an entire generation of Bards," he said
with mock-severity. "I hesitate to think of all the the truly awful
creations we'll have to suffer through for the next year from the students
alone—and every full Bard is going to be determined that he will be the writer
of the next 'Sun and Shadow.' " "Oh,
gods," Dirk groaned, "I never thought of that. D'you suppose I could
give her back?" Talia
eyed him speculatively. "We could always have a horrible fight here and
now." She hefted a wine bottle, appraising its weight. "This would
make a lovely dent in his skull—not to mention the truly spectacular effect it
will have when the bottle breaks and the red wine splashes all over that
spotless white velvet." She considered it and him for a long moment, then
sighed. "No, it just won't do. I might get some of the wine on me. And if
I knock him cold, how will I get back to my room?" "And
if I give her away, who will I sleep with tonight?" Dirk added, as Talia
giggled. "Sorry, Elcarth. You're just going to have to suffer. What can we
do for you?" "Actually,
there is something. I wanted to let you both know what the Circle has decided
about Dirk's assignments." ARROW'S
FALL 287 . ••
Mi* Tafia
stiffened a little, but otherwise gave no sign that ^16 was dreading what
Elcarth's next words might contain. ;s^SSrst of all—I am retiring as Dean. I
intend to stay on » Historian, but to handle both positions is a little more
than I can manage these days. I'm a lot older than I look, Fitt afraid, and I'm
beginning to feel the years. Teren is jBpiicing me. Dirk, you are replacing
Teren as Orientation instructor, as well as working with training students |K
their Gifts." Ttlia
was stunned; she'd expected to learn that he was being given a new partner, or
that he would be assigned Sector duty at the least. She had partially resigned
her-•etf to die idea, telling herself that having him part of the was a
distinct improvement over not having him at •K* "Elcarth—you
can't be serious—" Dirk protested. "I'm BO kind of a scholar, you
know that! If the Circle is ttying to do us a favor by giving us preferential
treat- we'd
rather you didn't," Talia finished for him. "My dear children! It is
not preferential treatment that you are getting. Dirk, you will still be
expected to take on die kinds of special jobs you used to, make no mistake
about it. Hie only thing we're really pulling you off B riding the problem
Sectors. We've picked you to replace Teren for the same reason we picked him to
replace Werda as Orientation instructor; your ability to handle children. Both
of you are able to take confused, {tightened children and give them warmth,
reassurance, and die certain knowledge that they are in a place where they
belong and have friends. Dirk, you have demonstrated that over and over in
training Gifts—the way you brought Griffon along, giving him confidence without
oace making him feel that his Gift was a frightening or dangerous one, was
nothing short of masterful—and look at the result' He trusted you so completely
that he linked Wkh you without asking die why or wherefore; he trusted
yoajsnougfa to follow your directions exactly, and now Griffon is the unsung
hero of the Battle of Demons. That kmd of ability in a teacher is much rarer
than scholasti- 208 Mercedes
Lackey ARROWS
FALL 289 cism,
and it's one we need. So let's bear no more about 'preferential treatment,'
shall we?" Dirk
sighed with relief, and his arm tightened around Talia. She thanked Elcarth
with her shining eyes; no words were necessary. "That
isn't quite all. You'll also be working with Kyril— Dirk on a regular basis,
Talia as time permits. This is the first we've ever heard of the Companions
augmenting anyone's abilities purposefully except in chronicles so old we can't
winnow fable from truth; we'd like to know if it's something that any Herald
can take advantage of, or if it's something peculiar to you two and Elspeth, or
even if it's peculiar to your Companions. Before KyriTs through with you, you
may wish yourself back in the field again!" They
laughed a little ruefully; Kyril drove himself mercilessly in the cause of
investigating Heraldic Gifts, and would expect no less from them. "Last
of all, I bring your wedding gift from the Circle; the next two weeks are yours
to do with as you like. We can all get along without either of you for that
long. Talia still has to have her sessions with the Healers, of course, but
barring that—well, if you should choose to vanish on a few overnight trips, no
one will come looking for you. After all, Talia, you may not be able to walk, but
you can certainly ride! Just make sure you schedule everything with your
Healers. The last thing I need or want is to have Devan after my head! That
mail can be positively vicious!" Talia
laughed, and promised; she could tell by the speculative glint in Dirk's eyes
that he already had a destination or two in mind. They traded a few more
pleasantries with Elcarth, then the Historian—Dean no longer, and that would
take some getting used to—took himself off. Dirk
shook his head. "I never, ever pictured myself as a teacher," he said
quietly. 'That was always Kr—" He
choked off the end of the name. "That
was what Kris wanted," Talia finished, watching him. "You've been
avoiding speaking about him, love. Why?" 'Tear,"
he replied frankly. "Fear that I'd hurt you— I'd be
hurt myself. I—I still don't really know how you feh about each other—" ''All
you ever had to do was ask," she said softly, and w him into rapport with
gentle mental fingers. After a moment he raised his eyes to hers and smiled.
"And you said emotions don't speak clearly. So that's ; Wle* it was?" ^':"/-
i .She nodded. "No more, no less. He tried to tell you, -x' but you
weren't hearing." C^v. "I
wasn't, was I?" He sighed. "Gods—I miss him. I miss
him so damn much. . . ." ;-
>;(, ««^e lost more than a friend
when we lost him," she •1ЈЈWad* hesitating over the words. "I think—I
think we lost jy fcpart of
ourselves." H? :.ffe was silent for a long moment.
"Talia, what hap-pened after he died? You said some very strange things
when you answered my call and came back to us." She
shook her head slightly, her brow wrinkled in thought. "Love, I'm not
sure. It's not very clear, and it's all mixed up with pain and fever and
drug-dreams. All I can tell you for certain is that I wanted to die, and I
should have died—but something kept me from dying." "Or
someone." "Or
someone," she agreed. "Maybe it was Kris. That's who my memories say
it was." "I
have a lot to thank him for, and not just that," he said thoughtfully. "Hm?" ^
"You learned from him about loving before those beasts hurt you." "It
helped," she said, after a long moment of thought. "Leveling, are you
ready to go through with this?" he asked after a pause. "Are you
sure?" For
answer she kissed him with rapport still strung V between them. When they came up for air he chuckled, nuch more
relaxed. "Hedonist," he said. "At
least/' she agreed, wrinkling her nose at him, then sobered again. "Yes,
there are scars—but you have them, too. The wounds are healed—I'm not the only
Healer of minds, you know—just the only one that's a Herald as 290 Mercedes
Lackey well.
Rynee—she's very good, as good as I am. Besides, I refuse to let what happened
ruin what's between us— and really, all they did was hurt my body, they didn't
touch me. What happened to you was worse—-Naril raped your soul." "That's
healed, too," he said quietly. "Then
leave it in the dead past. No one goes through life without picking up a scar
or two." She nestled closer to him as someone else came to offer their
congratulations. Then
suddenly sat up. "Gods!" "What?"
Dirk asked, anxious until he saw that there was no sign of pain on her face.
"What is it?" "Back
on my internship—that business with Maeven Weatherwitch—she ForeSaw something
for me, and I couldn't even guess what she meant, then. Now I know! She said
that I would see the Havens but that love and duty would bar me from
them—and—" She
faltered. "And?"
he prompted, gently. "That—my
greatest joy would be preceded by my greatest grief. Oh, gods—if only I'd
known—if only I'd guessed—" "You
could never have anticipated what happened," Dirk replied with such force
that she shook off her anguish to stare at him. "JVo one could. Don't ever
blame yourself. Don't you think that with all the ForeSeers among the Heralds
if there had been any way of preventing what happened it would have been
done?" She
sighed, and relaxed again. "You're right. . ." she said, slowly.
"You're right." The
celebrating continued on well past dusk, until at last, by ones and twos, the
wedding guests began to drift away. Some were heading for other gatherings—like
the one Talia and Dirk knew their fellow Heralds must be having somewhere. Some
had more private affairs in mind. Finally Talia and Dirk were left alone, a
state with which they were not at all displeased. She
rested contentedly on his shoulder, both of his arms lightly around her, and
watched the stars blossoming overhead. ARROWS
FALL 291 :r
**It's getting chilly," she said at last. F "Are you cold?" :/;?A
little." •r
"Well," he chuckled, "They've certainly made it easy fcr us to
depart unnoticed." :^-i*Tm
fairly certain that was on purpose. All that cheer-was embarrassing enough,
without chivaree, too." 'ft could have been worse. Think of the
flower-bedecked •m! Think of Companions in the High Temple! __ of the
life-sized sugar replicas of both of us!" ^ *Td rather not!" She
laughed. "Ready to go?" ••;.
"Yes," she said, putting her arms around his neck so that he could
lift her. r-He
took her up the stairs to her rooms—now their room*—this time taking them one
at a time, and slowly, so as not to jar her. To
their mutual surprise, they found Elspeth seated on the top step. •>•
"What on earth are you doing here?" he asked. "Guarding
your threshold, oh, magnificent one. It was the students' idea. We took it turn
and turn about since you left this morning. Except for during the ceremony
itself that is—we left the staircase booby-trapped then. Not that we're
suspicious of anyone, mind, but we did want to make certain no one could get in
to play any tittle tricks while you were gone. Some people have very rotten
ideas about what's funny. Anyway, that's our wedding present." With that,
she skipped down the stairs without waiting for thanks. "
The caring heart,' " Talia said softly. "She'll be a good Queen, one
day." Dirk
nudged the door open with his foot, placed Talia carefully on her couch inside,
then turned to close it and throw the latch. "Not
that I'm suspicious of anyone," he said with a gleam in his eye, "but
a certain earlier performance of yours makes me wish to be certain that we're
undisturbed." "Not
quite yet/' she said with a smile. "First I've got a bride-gift for you." "A
what?" 292 Mercedes
Lackey "One
good custom of my people. The bride always has a gift for her husband. It's
over there—on the hearth." "But—"
for a moment he was speechless. "Talia, that's My Lady. She's your harp, I
couldn't take her!" "Look
again." He
did—and realized that there was a second harp hidden in the shadows. He pulled
both of them out into the light and scrutinized them closely. "I
can't tell them apart," he admitted at last. "Well,
I can, but I've had My Lady for years, I know every line of her grain. No one
else can, though. They're twins, made by the same hand, from the same wood;
they're even the same age. No—" she held up a warning hand. "Don't
ask me where or how I found it. That's my secret. But in return for this one,
you'll have to promise to teach me to play My Lady as well as she deserves to
be played." "Willingly—gladly.
We can play duets—like—" "Like
you and Kris used to play," she finished for him when he could not.
"Love—I think it's time for one last gift—" and she touched his mind,
sharing with him the incredulous joy that had marked Kris' passing. "Gods—oh,
gods, that helps . . . you must know how much that helps," he managed
after a moment. "Now if only—I wish I could know for certain that he knows
about us—about now." He
lifted her from the couch to move to the bedroom. "If
I were to have one wish granted, that would be mine, too," she replied,
her cheek resting against the velvet of his tunic. "He told me once that
it was his own dearest wish to see the two people he loved most find happiness
with each other—" She
would have said more, but a familiar perfume wreathed around her, and she
gasped. "What's
wrong? Did you hurt something?" Dirk asked anxiously. "There—on
the bed—" Lying
on the coverlet, in the middle and heart-high, was a spray of the little
flowers known as Maiden's Hope. Dirk set her down on the bed and she picked it
up with trembling hands. ARROWS
FALL 293 "Did
you put this here?" she asked in a voice that shook. "No." MAnd no
one else has been here since we left—" In hushed tones she continued:
"When Kris gave me this jing, it was around a Midsummer bouquet of those
flowers. I'd never smelled anything like them before—and he promised he'd find
some for my wedding garland if he had to grow them himself—but I've never seen
them anywhere around here—" ^There's
more to it than that, little bird," Dirk said, taking the flowers from her
and regarding them with wondering eyes. "This flower only blooms for the
week before and after Midsummer. We're well into fall. They cant be grown in
hothouses. People have tried. To find even one bloom, much less as many as
this, would take a miracle. No human could do it." They
looked from the flowers to each other—and slowly m to smile; smiles that, for
the first time in weeks, „ no
underlying hint of sadness. Dirk
took her into his arms, with the flowers held between them. "We've had our
wish—shall we give him his?" She
carefully reached behind her, and inserted the blossoms into the vase on her
night stand. "Yes,"
she breathed, turning back to him, and beginning to touch him with her rapport
even as she touched her lips to his, "I think we should." APPENDIX Songs
of Valdemar HER
FATHER'S EYES Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover (Setenay:
Arrows of the Queen) How
tenuous the boundary between love and hate— How easy to mistake the first, and
learn the truth too late—
How hard to bear what brings to mind mistakes that we despise—
And when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. He
tried to steal away my throne—he tried to rule my life— And I
am not made to forgive, a cowed and coward wife! My love became my enemy who
sought his Queen's demise—
And when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. Poor
child, we battled over her as two dogs with a bone— I
should not see his treachery in temper-tantrums thrown—
I should not see betrayal where there's naught but childish
lies— But when I look into her face, I see her father's eyes. Now how
am I to deal with this rebellion hi my soul? 295 296 Mercedes
Lackey I
cannot treat her fairly when my own heart is not whole. I truly wish to love
her—but I'm not so strong, nor wise— For when I look into her face, I see her
father's eyes— Only—her father's eyes. FIRST
LOVE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Frank Hayes (Jadus:
Arrows of the Queen) Was it
so long ago now that we met, you and I? Both held fast in a passion that we could
not deny? If my hands gave you life, then your voice woke my heart—
From such simple beginnings, how such wonder may start! Chorus: Through
my long, empty nights, through my cold, lonely days, How you
comfort and cheer me, delight and amaze— And your soft silver voice could charm
life into stone— My sweet mistress of music, My Lady, my own. With
your sweet song to guide me you have taught me to care How to
open my soul to both love and despair Though you're wood and bright silver, and
not warm flesh and
bone I think no one here doubts you've a soul of your own. And I
know my own journey will too soon reach its end— I must leave you with one I am
proud to call friend. How she opened my life when she opened my door! Give her
comfort, my dear one, when I am no more. ARROWS
FALL HOLDERKIN SHEEP-SONG 297 1^
Lvrics: Mercedes Lackey Music: Ernie
Mansfield "iSrfr'-V-'Tv (Talia:
Arrows of the Queen) sheep >
sleep will
watch around you keep the night be dark and deep past us dares to creep to
sleep. f|feWooly
heads t^:;
Have no dreads i^VThough
we'd rather seek out beds *
"' And our eyes are dull as leads And we long for hearths and Steads Have
no dreads. Do not
fear We are
here Though
this watch is lone and drear Lacking
in all warmth and cheer Till
the morn again draws near We are
here. In the
night Stars
shine bright And the
moon is at her height Lending
us her little light Nothing
comes to give you fright Stars shine
bright. With
the day We'll
away Leaving
you to greet the day Other
shepherds watch you play Keep
you safe from all that prey We'll
away. 298 Mercedes
Lackey Silly
sheep Go to
sleep. We will
watch around you keep Go to
sleep. Go to
sleep. IT WAS
A DARK AND STORMY NIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (Talia:
Arrows of the Queen) It was
a dark and stormy night—or so the Heralds say— And
lightning striking constantly transformed the night to day The
thunder roared the castle round—or thusly runs the tale— And
rising from the Northeast Tower there came a fearful wail. It was
no beast nor banshee that, the castle folk knew well, Nor
prisoner in agony, nor demon trapped by spell, No ghost
that moaned in penance, nor a soul in mortal fright— Twas
just the Countess "singing"—for she practiced every night. The
Countess was convinced that she should have been born a
Bard And thus she made the lives of those within her power hard.
For they must listen to her sing, and smile at what they heard,
And swear she had a golden voice that rivaled any bird. The
Countess was convinced that she had wedded 'neath her
state And so the worst lot fell upon her meek and mild mate. ARROWS
FALL 299 Not
only must the Count each night endure her every song But
suffer silent her abuse, be blamed for every wrong. It was
a dark and stormy night—or so the Bards aver— And so perhaps that was the
reason why there was no stir When suddenly the "music" ceased; so
when dawn raised his
head Within the Tower servants found the Countess stiff and dead. The
Heralds came at once to judge if there had been foul
play. The questioned all most carefully to hear what they would say.
And one fact most astounding to them quickly came to light—
That every moment of the Count was vouched for on that night. The
castle folk by ones and twos came forward on their own To
swear the Count had never once that night been all alone.
So though the Tower had been locked tight, with two keys to
the door, One his, one hers; the Count of guilt was plain absolved for
sure. At
length the Heralds then pronounced her death as "suicide." And all
within the district voiced themselves quite satisified. It was a verdict, after
all, that none wished to refute— Though no one could imagine why she'd try to
eat her lute. 300 Mercedes
Lackey MUSENGS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Mercedes Lackey (Selenay:
Arrows of the Queen) How did
you grow so wise, so young? Tell me
Herald, tell me. How did
you grow so wise, so young, Queen's Own? Where
did you learn the words to say That
take my pain and guilt away And
give me strength again today To sit
upon my throne? How
could you be so brave, so young? Tell
me, Herald, tell me. How
could you be so brave, so young, Queen's Own? How do
you overcome your fear? To know
my path was never clear While
knowing Death walks ever near Would chill
me to the bone. How can
you be so kind, so young? Tell
me, Herald, tell me. How can
you be so kind, so young, Queen's Own? To see
the best, and not the worst— To
soothe an anger, pain, or thirst— To
always think of others first And
never self alone. Where
did you learn to love so young? Tell me
Herald, tell me. Where
did you learn to love so young, Queen's Own? How did
you teach your heart to care— To
touch in ways I would not dare? Oh,
where did you find the courage? Where? Ah,
Herald—how you've grown! ARROWS
FALL 301 PHILOSOPHY Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover
(Skif: Arrows of the Queen) What's
the use of living if you never learn to laugh? Look at me, I grew up down among
the riff and raff But you won't catch me glooming 'round without a hint of
smile And when I have to do a thing, I do it right, with style! Chorus; 'Cause
if you're gonna be the one to take that tightrope walk, And if
you're gonna be the one to make the gossips talk,
If it's your job to be the one who always takes the chance,
And if you have to cross thin ice—then cross it in a dance! Now
take the time when I was "borrowing" a thing or two—
The owner of the house walked in—well, what was I to do?
I bowed and said, "Don't stir yourself," before he raised
a shout, "Thanks for your hospitality, I'll find my own way out!" I'd
just come up a chimney, I was black from head to toe— Climbed
to the yard to find a watchman—wouldn't you just
know! But in
the dark he took me for a demon, I would bet, 'Cause when I howled and went for
him—I think he's running
yet! Take my
Companion—did you know I thought to steal her too? 302 Mercedes
Lackey This
pretty horse out in the street, no owner in my view— I
grabbed her reins and hopped aboard, 1 thought I was
home free, Until I looked into her eyes—and now the joke's on me! 'Cause
now I've got to be the one to take that tightrope walk
And now I've got to be the one who'll make the gossips talk,
And it's my job to be the one who always takes the chance—
But when I have to cross thin ice, Til cross it in a dance! LAWS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (Skif:
Arrows of the Queen) The Law
of the Streetwise is "grab all you can For there's nothing that's
true—nothing lasts." The Law of the Dodger is "learn all the dirt—
The most pious of priests have their pasts." The Law of the Grifter is
"cheat the fool first Or the one who'll be cheated is you.'* But the Law
of the Herald is "give ail you can For some day you will need a gift
too." The Law
of the Liar is "there is no truth It is
all shades of meaning and greed." The Law
of the Hopeless is "never believe For all
faith is a hollowed-out reed." The Law
of the Empty is "there's nothing more, Life is
nothing but shadow and air." But the
Law of the Herald is "Seek out and find." And the
Law of the Heralds is "Care." ARROWS
FALL 303 The Law
of the Hunted is "guard your own back, For the
enemy strikes from behind." The Law
of the Greedy is "trust no one else, Hide
and hoard anything that you find." The Law
of the Hater is "crush and destroy," And the
Law of the Bigot is "kill." But the
Law of the Herald is "faith, hope and trust," And the
strength of the Herald is will. All
these Laws I have learned from the first to the last From
the ones who would teach me they're true— And full many the ones who taught
anger and fear, But the ones who taught hope—they were few. And I ask myself,
"Which is the Law I must take, Fitting truth as a hand fits a glove?"
Then I chose, and I never looked back from that day, For the Law of the Heralds
is "Love." THE
FACE WITHIN Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph
Klover and Larry
Warner (Dirk
and Kris: Arrow's Flight) The
Weaponsmaster has no heart; his hide is iron-cold His soul within that hide is
steel; or so I have been told. His
only care is for your skill, his only love, his own. And where another has a
heart, he has a marble stone. That's
what the common wisdom holds, but common is not
true. For there is often truth behind what's in the common view. V1WTV . And so
it is the Herald's task that hidden truth to win To see behind the face without
and find the face within. 304 Mercedes
Lackey ARROW'S
FALL 3O5 He
goads his students into rage, he drives them into pain;
He mocks them and he does not care that tears may fall
like rain. He works them when they're weary, and rebukes them when
they fail— Cuts them to ribbons with his tongue, as they stand meek
and pale— And
will our enemies be fair, or come on us behind? And will they stay their
tongues or in their words a weapon
find? Or wait
till we are rested before making their attacks? Or will they rather beat us
down and then go for our backs? But he
has no compassion, does not care for man nor beast—
And when a student's gone, he does not notice in the least—
And no one calls this man their love, and no one calls him
friend And none can judge him by his face, or what he may intend. But I
have seen him speak the word that brings hope from
despair— Or drop the one-word compliment that makes a student care—
And I have seen his sorrow when he hears the Death Bell
cry— His soul-deep agony of doubt that nothing can deny— For on
his shoulders rests the job of fitting us for war With nothing to give him the
clue of what to train us for. And if
he foils it is not he that pays, but you and I— And so he dies a little when he
hears the Death Bell cry. And now
you know the face within hid by the face without
The pain that he must harbor, all the guilt and all the doubt. The
Weaponsmaster has a heart; so grant his stony mask For you and I aren't strong
enough to bear that kind of
task. ARROWS
FLIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Paul Espinoza
(Talia: Arrow's Flight) Finding
your center—not hard for a child— But I am a woman now, patterned and grown.
Thrown out of balance, my Gift has run wild; Never have I felt so lost and
alone. Now all the questions that I did not ask Come back to haunt me by day
and by night. Finding your center—so simple a task— And one that I fear I shall
never set right. Chorus: Where
has my balance gone, what did I know That I have forgotten in Time's ebb and
flow? Wrong or right, dark or light, I cannot see— For I've lost the heart of
the creature called "me." Doubt
shatters certainty, fosters despair; Guilt
harbors weakness and fear makes me blind— Fear of
the secrets that I dare not share— Lost in
the spiral maze of my own mind. Knowing
the cost to us all if I foil— Feeling
that failure breathe cold at my back— All I
thought strong now revealed as so frail That I
could not weather one spiteful attack. An
arrow in flight must be sent with control— 306 Mercedes
Lackey But all
my control was illusion at best. Instinct alone cannot captain a soul-Direction
must be learned and not merely guessed. Seeking with purpose, not flailing
about— Trusting in others as they trust in me— Starting again from the shadows
of doubt Gods, how I fear what I yet know must be! Chorus
2: Finding
my center, and with it, control; Disciplined knowledge must now be my goal.
Knowing my limits, out judging what's right— Till nothing can hinder the arrow
in flight. FUNDAMENTALS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Kristoph Klover
(Kris: Arrow's Flight) Ground
and center; we begin Feel the shape inside your skin Feel the earth and feel
the air— Ground and center; "how" and "where." Ground
and center—don't just frown, Find the leaks and lock them down. Baby-games you
never learned Bring you pain you never earned. Ground
and center; do it, child If you'd tame that Talent wild-Girl, you learned it in
your youth— Life's not fair, and that's the truth. Ground
and center, once again; You're not finished--/'// say when. Ground and center
in your sleep Ground and center 'till you weep. ARROWS
FALL Ground
and center; that's the way— You might get somewhere, someday. Yes, I know I'm
being cruel And you're as stubborn as a mule! Ground
and center, feel the flow Can you tell which way to go? Instinct's not enough,
my friend— Make it reflex in the end. Ground
and center; hold it tight— Dammit, greenie, that's not right! (Every tear you
shed hurts me, But that's the way it has to be.) Ground
and center; good, at last! Once again; grab hard, hold fast. Half asleep or
half awake— Both of us know what's at stake. Ground
and center; now it's sure; What you have now will endure, Forgive me what I had
to do— Healing hurts—you know that's true. Ground
and center; lover, friend— You won't break, but now you bend. Costly lesson,
high the price— But you won't have to learn it twice! 307 OTHERLOVE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Leslie Fish (TaUa:
Arrow's Flight) I need
you as a friend, dear one, I love you as a brother; And my body lies beside you 308 Mercedes
Lackey While
my heart yearns for another. I wonder if you understand— Beneath your careless
guise I seem to sense uneasiness When looking in your eyes. I need
your help, my friend, and I Had swom to stand alone; How foolish were the vows
I made My present plight has shown. But don't mistake my need for love However
strong it seems— For while I lie beside you Someone else is in my dreams. I wish
that I could know your thoughts; I only
sense your pain— Unease
behind the smile you wear— A
haunted, sad refrain. I would
not be the cause of grief— I've
often told you so— Yet
there's a place within my heart Where
you, love, cannot go. AFTER
MIDNIGHT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Leslie Fish (Kris:
Arrow's Flight) In the
dead, dark hours after midnight When the world seems to stop in its place, You
can see a little more clearly, You can look your life in the face; You can see
the things that you have to— Speak the words too true for the day. In the dead,
dark hours after midnight, Little friend, will you listen—and stay? ARROWS
FALL 309 In the
time when I never knew you I could view the world as my own— I was God's own
gift to his creatures, And I wore an armor of stone. I was wise and faithful
and noble— I was pompous, pious and cold. I was cruel when I never meant it—
Far too cool to touch or to hold. It was
you who broke through my armor; It was
you who broke through the wall, With
your pain and your desperation— How
could I not answer your call? How
could I have guessed you would touch me, And in
ways I could not control? How
could I have known I would need you— Or have
guessed you'd see to my soul? For as
I taught you, so you taught me, Taught me how to love and to care— For your own
love melted my armor, Taught me how to feel and to dare. When I looked tonight,
I discovered I could not again stand apart— In the dead, dark hours after
midnight, I discovered I owe you my heart. SUN AND
SHADOW: MEETINGS Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music; Leslie Fish (Kris:
Arrow's Flight) (When
the "long version" of "Sun and Shadow" is sung, this is
sung as a kind of prologue) She
dances in the shadows; like a shadow is her hair. Her eyes hold midnight
captive, like a phantom, fell and fair. 310 Mercedes
Lackey While
the wood] arks sing the measures that her flying feet
retrace She dances in the shadows tike a dream of darkling grace. He
sings in summer sunlight to the cloudless summer skies;
His head is crowned with sunlight and the heavens match his
eyes. All the wildwood seems to listen to the singer's gladsome voice
He sings in summer sunlight and all those who hear rejoice. She
dances in the shadows, for a doom upon her lies; That if once the sunlight
touches her the Shadowdancer dies.
And on his line is this curse laid—that once the day is sped In
sleep like death he lies until again the night has fled. One
evening in the twilight that is neither day nor night, The
time part bred of shadow, and partly born of light, A
trembling Shadowdancer heard the voice of love and doom That
sang a song of sunlight through the gathering evening gloom. A spell
it cast upon her, and she followed in its wake To where Sunsinger sang it, all
unheeding, by her lake. She saw the one that she must love until the day she died—
Bitter tears for bitter loving then Shadowdancer cried. One
evening in the twilight e'er his curse could work its
will, Sunsinger
sang of sunlight by a lake serene and still— When out among the shadow stepped
a woman, fey and fair— A
woman sweet as twilight, with the shadows in her hair. ARROW'S
FALL 311 He saw
her, and he loved her, and he knew his love was
vain For he was born of sunlight and must be the shadow's bane.
So e'er the curse could claim him, then, he shed one bitter
tear For he knew his only love must also be his only fear. So now
they meet at twilight, though they only meet to part.
Sad meetings, sadder partings, and the breaking of each heart.
Why blame them, if they pray for time or death to bring a cure?
For the sake of bitter loving, nonetheless they will endure. SUN AND
SHADOW Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Paul Espinoza
(Talia and Kris: Arrow's Flight) "What
has touched me, reaching deep Piercing my ensorceled sleep? Darkling lady, do
you weep? Am I the cause of your grieving? Why do tears of balm and bane Bathe
my heart with bitter rain? What is this longing? Why this pain? What is this
spell you are weaving?" "Sunlight
Singer, Morning's peer— How I long for what I fear! Not by my will are you here
How I wish I could free you! Gladly in your arms I'd lie But I dare not come
you nigh For if you touch me I shall die— K I were wise I would flee you." 372 Mercedes
Lackey "Shadowdancer,
dark and fell, Lady that I love too well— Won't you free me from this spell
That you have cast around me? Star-eyed maid beyond compare, Mist of twilight
in your hair— Why must you be so sweet and fair? How is it that you have bound
me?" "In
your eyes your soul lies bare Hope is mingled with despair; Sunborn lover do I
dare Trust my heart to your keeping? Sunrise means that I must flee— Moonrise
steals your soul from me; Nothing behind but agony, Nothing before us but
weeping." "Sun
and Shadow, dark and light; Child of day and child of night, Who can set our
tale aright? Is there no future but sorrow? Will some power hear our plea— Take
the curse from you and me— Great us death, or set us free? Dare we to hope for
tomorrow?" THE
HEALER'S DILEMMA Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: Bill Roper (Devan:
Arrow's Fall) My
child, the child of my heart, though never of my name,
Who shares my Gift; whose eyes, though young, are mine—the
very same Who shares my every thought, whose skillful hands I taught
so well ARROWS
FALL 313 Now
hear the hardest lesson I shall ever have to tell. Young
Healer, I have taught you all I know of wounds and
pain— Of
illnesses, and all the herbs of blessing and of bane— Of all the usage of your
Gift; all that I could impart— And how you learned, young Healer, brought
rejoicing to my
heart. But
there is yet one lessoning I cannot give to you For you must find your own way
there—judge what is sound
and true This
lesson is the crudest ever Healer had to teach— It is—what you must do when
there are those you cannot reach. However
great your Gift there will be times when you will
fail There will be those you cannot help, your skill cannot prevail.
When you fight Death, and lose to Him, or what may yet be
worse You win—to find the wreck He left regards you with a curse. And
worst of all, and harder still, the times when it's a friend
Who looks to you to bring him peace and make his torment
end—-What will you do, young Healer, when there's nothing you can
do? I can give only counsel, for the rest is up to you. This
only will I counsel you; that if you build a shell Of armor close about you,
then you close yourself in Hell.
And if your heart should harden, then your Gift will fade and die
And all that you have lived and learned will then become a lie. 314 Mercedes
Lackey My
child, your Healing hands are guided by your Healing heart And
that is all the wisdom all my learning can impart. You take this pain upon you as
you challenge life unknown—
And there can be no answer here but one—and that's your
own. HERALD'S
LAMENT Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music: C. J. Cherryh (Dirk:
Arrow's Fait) A hand
to aid along the road— A laugh to lighten any load— A place to bring a burdened
heart And heal the ache of sorrow's dart— Who'd willing share in joy or tears
And help to ease the darkest fears Or my soul like his own defend— And all
because he was my friend. No
grave could hold so free a soul. I see him in the frisking foal— I hear him
laughing on the breeze That stirs the very tops of trees. He soars with falcons
on the wing— He is the song that nightbirds sing. Death never dared him captive
keep. He lies not there. He does not sleep. But—there
is silence at my side That haunts the place he used to ride. And my Companion
can't allay The loss I have sustained this day. How bleak the future now has
grown Since I must face it all alone. My road is weary, dark and steep— And it
is for myself I weep. ARROW'S
FAIL FOR TALIA 315 Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Larry Warner and Kristoph Klover (Dirk:
Arrow's Fall} The
lady that I cherish is enamored of a fool — A fool who lacks the wit to speak
his mind, A fool who often wears a mask indifferent and cool, A fool who's
often selfish, dense, and blind. lady
that I cherish is enamored of a fool — A fool too often wrapped in other cares,
Forgetting that his singlemindedness is wrong and cruel To lock her out who
gladly trouble shares. The
lady that I cherish is enamored of a fool Who
sometimes does not value what he holds Until
his loneliness confirms 'twere time his heart should rule
And the comfort of her love around him folds. But
though he must have hurt her without ever mean- ing to Her
temper never breaks and never frays, And she forgives whatever careless thing
that he may do And loves him still despite his thoughtless ways. She
only smiles and says that there is nothing to forgive
— And I
thank God she does so, for you see I fear without her love and care this poor
fool could not live —
The fool she loves and cherishes is me. 316 Mercedes
Lackey KEROWYN'S RIDE Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey Music:
Leslie Fish (This
is a fairly common song in Valdemar, although it originated several lands to
the south.) Kerowyn,
Kerowyn, where are you going, Dressed in men's clothing, a sword by your side,
Your face pale as death, and your eyes full of fury, Kerowyn, Kerowyn, where do
you ride? Last
night in the darkness foul raiders attacked us— Our
hah* lies in ruins below— They've
stolen our treasure, and the bride of my brother And to
her side now I must go To her
aid now I must go. Kerowyn,
Kerowyn, where is your father? Where is your brother? This fight should be
theirs. It is not seemly that maids should be warriors— Your pride is your
folly; go tend women's cares. This is
far more than a matter of honor And more than a matter of pride— She's only a
child, all alone, all unaided Though foolish and reckless beside, Still now to
her aid I must ride. Grandmother,
sorceress, I need a weapon— I'm one
against many—and I am afraid— For the
bastards have bought them a fell wizard's powers— I can't
hope to help her without magic aid. Kerowyn,
granddaughter, into your keeping I now
give the sword I once wore "Need"
is her name, yes, and great are her powers— She'll
serve you as many before— Though
her name be not found in men's lore. Grandmother,
grandmother, now you confuse me— ARROUrSFALL 317 Was
this a testing I got at your hand? Whence
comes this weapon of steel and of magic And why
do you put her now at my command? Kerowyn,
not for the weak or the coward Is the
path of the warrior maid. Yes my
child, you've been tested—now ride with my blessing And
trust in yourself and your blade. Ride now, and go unafraid! THREES Music:
Leslie Fish Lyrics:
Mercedes Lackey (Again:
a similar song from the same region as "Kerowyn's Ride" that migrated
northward.) Deep
into the stony hills, miles from town or hold A troupe of guards conies riding,
with a lady and her gold She
rides bemused among them, shrouded in her cloak of fur Companioned
by a maiden and a toothless, aged cur. Three things see no end, a flower
blighted ere it bloomed, A message that miscarries and a journey that is
doomed. One
among the guardsmen has a shifting, restless eye And as they ride, he scans the
hills that rise against the sky He
wears a sword and bracelet worth more than he can afford And
hidden in his baggage is a heavy, secret hoard. Of three things be wary, of a
feather on a cat The shepherd eating mutton, and the guardsman that is fat. Little
does the lady care what all the guardsmen know— That bandits ambush caravans
that on these traderoads go. 318 Mercedes
Lackey In
spite of tricks and clever traps and alt that men can do The brigands seem to
always sense which trains are false or
true. Three things are most perilous—the shape that walks behind,
The ice that will not hold you and the spy you cannot find. From
ambush bandits screaming charge the packtrain and its
prize And all
but four within the train are taken by surprise And all but four are cut down
as a woodsman fells a log; The guardsman and the lady and the maiden and the dog. Three
things hold a secret—lady riding in a dream, The dog that sounds no warning,
and the maid who does not
scream. Then
off the tady pulls her cloak, in armor she is clad—
Her sword is out and ready, and her eyes are fierce and glad.
The maiden makes a gesture, and the dog's a cur no more— A
wolf, sword-maid and sorceress now face the bandit corps. Three
things never anger, or you will not live for long, A wolf with cubs, a man with
power, and a woman's sense
of wrong. The
lady and her sister by a single trader lone Were hired out to try to lay a trap
all of their own And no one knew their plan except the two who rode that
day For
what you do not know you cannot ever give away! Three things is it better, far,
that only two should know— Where treasure hides, who shares your bed, and how
to catch
your foe! The
bandits growl a challenge, and the lady only grins The sorceress bows
mockingly, and then the fight begins! ARROWS
FALL 319 When it
ends there are but four left standing from that horde— . The witch, the wolf, the traitor and the
woman with the sword! Three
things never trust in; the maiden sworn as pure, The vows a king has given, and
the ambush that is "sure." They
strip the traitor naked and then whip him on his wav Into
the barren hillsides, like the folk he used to slay— And what of all the
maidens that this filth despoiled, then
slew? Why, as
revenge, the sorceress makes him a woman too! Three things trust above all
else—the horse on which you ride,
The beast that guards your sleeping, and your sister at your
side. (These
songs can be heard on the tape Heralds, Harpers, and Havoc available from Off
Centaur Publications, P.O. Box 424, El Cerrito CA 94530) |
|
|